Skip to main content

Full text of "Mythical monsters"

See other formats


Presented  to  the 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO 
LIBRARY 

by  the 

ONTARIO  LEGISLATIVE 
LIBRARY 

1980 


MYTHICAL    MONSTERS. 


MYTHICAL    MONSTERS. 


BY 


CHARLES  GOULD,  B.A., 

MEMBER  OF  THE  ROTAL  SOCIETY  OF  TASMANIA;  LATE  GEOLOGICAL  SURVEYOR 
OF  TASMANIA. 


WITH  NINETY-THREE  ILLUSTRATIONS. 


LONDON: 

W.  H.  ALLEN  &  CO.,  13  WATERLOO  PLACE.    S.W. 

PUBLISHERS    TO    THE    INDIA    OFFICE. 


1886. 

(All  rights  reserved. 


SEE1 

^  BY 

PRESutt 
S£«t\ 

VATION 

^ICtS<xVE 

L 

DATE 

•> 

(•^  ;"~''~~' 

•** 

LONDON : 
PRINTED   BY    W     H     ALLEN    AND   CO..    13   WATERLOO   PLACE,  PALL   HALL.       S.W. 


PREFACE. 


THE  Author  has  to  express  his  great  obligations  to  many 
gentlemen  who  have  assisted  him  in  the  preparation  of  this 
volume,  either  by  affording  access  to  their  libraries,  or  by 
furnishing  or  revising  translations  from  the  Chinese,  &c. ; 
and  he  must  especially  tender  them  to  J.  Haas,  Esq.,  the 
Austro-Hungarian  Vice-Consul  at  Shanghai,  to  Mr.  Thomas 
Kingsmill  and  the  Rev.  W.  Holt  of  Shanghai,  to  Mr. 
Falconer  of  Hong-Kong,  and  to  Dr.  N.  B.  Dennys  of 
Singapore. 

For  the  sake  of  uniformity,  the  author  has  endeavoured 
to  reduce  all  the  roinanised  representations  of  Chinese  sounds 
to  the  system  adopted  by  S.  W.  Williams,  whose  invaluable 
dictionary  is  the  most  available  one  for  students.  No  alte- 
ration, however,  has  been  made  when  quotations  from 
eminent  sinologues  like  Legge  have  been  inserted. 

Should  the  present  volume  prove  sufficiently  interesting  to 
attract  readers,  a  second  one  will  be  issued  at  a  future  date, 
in  continuation  of  the  subject. 

June,  1884. 


NOTE  BY  THE  PUBLISHEES. 

THE  Publishers  think  it  right  to  state  that,  owing  to  the  Author's 
absence  in  China,  the  work  has  not  had  the  advantage  of  his  supervision 
in  its  passage  through  the  press.  It  is  also  proper  to  mention  that  the 
MS.  left  the  Author's  hands  eighteen  months  ago. 

13,  WATERLOO  PLACE.    S.W. 
January,  1886. 


CONTENTS. 


PAGE 

INTRODUCTION 1 

LIST  OP  AUTHORS  CITED 27 

CHAPTEE  I.— ON  SOME  REMARKABLE  ANIMAL  FORMS         .        .      31 

CHAPTER  H.— EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES 42 

CHAPTEE  DX— ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN 78 

CHAPTEE  IV.— THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH        .        .        .        .101 
CHAPTEE  V.— ON  THE  TRANSLATION  OP  MYTHS  BETWEEN  THE 

OLD  AND  THE  NEW  WORLD      .        .        .        .137 

CHAPTEE  VI.— THE  DRAGON 159 

CHAPTEE  VII.— THE  CHINESE  DRAOON 212 

CHAPTEE  VIIL— THE  JAPANESE  DRAGON         .        .        .        .248 

CHAPTEE  IX.— THE  SEA-SERPENT 260 

CHAPTEE  X.— THE  UNICORN 338 

CHAPTEE  XI.— THE  CHINESE  PHCENIX 366 

APPENDICES  .  .     375 


MYTHICAL    MONSTERS. 


INTRODUCTION. 

IT  would  have  been  a  bold  step  indeed  for  anyone,  some 
thirty  years  ago,  to  have  thought  of  treating  the  public  to  a 
collection  of  stories  ordinarily  reputed  fabulous,  and  of  claim- 
ing for  them  the  consideration  due  to  genuine  realities,  or 
to  have  advocated  tales,  time-honoured  as  fictions,  as  actual 
facts ;  and  those  of  the  nursery  as  being,  in  many  instances, 
legends,  more  or  less  distorted,  descriptive  of  real  beings  or 
events. 

Now-a-days  it  is  a  less  hazardous  proceeding.  The  great 
era  of  advanced  opinion,  initiated  by  Darwin,  which  has  seen, 
in  the  course  of  a  few  years,  a  larger  progress  in  knowledge 
in  all  departments  of  science  than  decades  of  centuries  pre- 
ceding it,  has,  among  other  changes,  worked  a  complete 
revolution  in  the  estimation  of  the  value  of  folk-lore ;  and 
speculations  on  it,  which  in  the  days  of  our  boyhood  would 
have  been  considered  as  puerile,  are  now  admitted  to  be  not 
merely  interesting  but  necessary  to  those  who  endeavour  to 
gather  up  the  skeins  of  unwritten  history,  and  to  trace  the 
antecedents  and  early  migrations  from  parent  sources  of 
nations  long  since  alienated  from  each  other  by  customs, 
speech,  and  space. 

1 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


I  have,  therefore,  but  little  hesitation  in  gravely  proposing 
to  submit  that  many  of  the  so-called  mythical  animals,  which 
throughout  long  ages  and  in  all  nations  have  been  the  fertile 
subjects  of  fiction  and  fable,  come  legitimately  within  the 
scope  of  plain  matter-of-fact  Natural  History,  and  that  they 
may  be  considered,  not  as  the  outcome  of  exuberant  fancy, 
but  as  creatures  which  really  once  existed,  and  of  which, 
unfortunately,  only  imperfect  and  inaccurate  descriptions  have 
filtered  down  to  us,  probably  very  much  refracted,  through 
the  mists  of  time. 

I  propose  to  follow,  for  a  certain  distance  only,  the  path 
which  has  been  pursued  in  the  treatment  of  myths  by 
mythologists,  so  far  only,  in  fact,  as  may  be  necessary  to 
trace  out  the  homes  and  origin  of  those  stories  which  in 
their  later  dress  are  incredible ;  deviating  from  it  to  dwell 
upon  the  possibility  of  their  having  preserved  to  us,  through 
the  medium  of  unwritten  Natural  History,  traditions  of  crea- 
tures once  co-existing  with  man,  some  of  which  are  so  weird 
and  terrible  as  to  appear  at  first  sight  to  be  impossible.  I 
propose  stripping  them  of  those  supernatural  characters  with 
which  a  mysteriously  implanted  love  of  the  wonderful  has 
invested  them,  and  to  examine  them,  as  at  the  present  day 
we  are  fortunately  able  to  do,  by  the  lights  of  the  modern 
sciences  of  Geology,  Evolution,  and  Philology. 

For  me  the  major  part  of  these  creatures  are  not  chimeras 
but  objects  of  rational  study.  The  dragon,  in  place  of  being 
a  creature  evolved  out  of  the  imagination  of  Aryan  man  by 
;  the  contemplation  of  lightning  flashing  through  the  caverns 
which  he  tenanted,  as  is  held  by  some  mythologists,  is  an 
animal  which  once  lived  and  dragged  its  ponderous  coils,  and 
perhaps  flew  ;  which  devastated  herds,  and  on  occasions  swal- 
lowed their  shepherd ;  which,  establishing  its  lair  in  some 
cavern  overlooking  the  fertile  plain,  spread  terror  and 
destruction  around,  and,  protected  from  assault  by  dread  or 
superstitious  feeling,  may  even  have  been  subsidised  by  the 


INTRODUCTION. 


terror-stricken  peasantry,  who,  failing  the  power  to  destroy 
it,  may  have  preferred  tethering  offerings  of  cattle  adjacent 
to  its  cavern  to  having  it  come  down  to  seek  supplies  from 
amongst  their  midst.* 

To  me  the  specific  existence  of  the  unicorn  seems  not  in- 
credible, and,  in  fact,  more  probable  than  that  theory  which 
assigns  its  origin  to  a  lunar  myth,  f 

Again,  believing  as  I  do  in  the  existence  of  some  great 
undescribed  inhabitant  of  the  ocean  depths,  the  much-derided 
sea-serpent,  whose  home  seems  especially  to  be  adjacent  to 
Norway,  I  recognise  this  monster  as  originating  the  myths 
of  the  midgard  serpent  which  the  Norse  Elder  Eddas  have 
collected,  this  being  the  contrary  view  to  that  taken  by 
mythologists,  who  invert  the  derivation,  and  suppose  the 
stories  current  among  the  Norwegian  fishermen  to  be  modified 
versions  of  this  important  element  of  Norse  mythology.J 

*  This  tributary  offering  is  a  common  feature  in  dragon  legends.  A 
good  example  is  that  given  by  El  Edrisi  in  his  history  of  the  dragon 
destroyed  by  Alexander  the  Great  in  the  island  of  Mostachin  (one  of 
the  Canaries?). 

f  The  latest  writer  on  this  point  summarizes  his  views,  in  his  opening 
remarks,  as  follows : — "  The  science  of  heraldry  has  faithfully  preserved 
to  modern  times  various  phases  of  some  of  those  remarkable  legends 
which,  based  upon  a  study  of  natural  phenomena,  exhibit  the  process 
whereby  the  greater  part  of  mythology  has  come  into  existence.  Thus 
we  find  the  solar  gryphon,  the  solar  phoenix,  a  demi-eagle  displayed 
issuing  from  flames  of  fire ;  the  solar  lion  and  the  lunar  unicorn,  which 
two  latter  noble  creatures  now  harmoniously  support  the  royal  arms.  I 
propose  in  the  following  pages  to  examine  the  myth  of  the  unicorn, 
the  wild,  white,  fierce,  chaste,  moon,  whose  two  horns,  unlike  those  of 
mortal  creatures,  are  indissolubly  twisted  into  one ;  the  creature  that 
endlessly  fights  with  the  lion  to  gain  the  crown  or  summit  of  heaven, 
which  neither  may  retain,  and  whose  brilliant  horn  drives  away  the  dark- 
ness and  evil  of  the  night  even  as  we  find  in  the  myth,  that  Venym  is 
defended  by  the  horn  of  the  unicorn." — The  Unicorn;  a  Mythological 
Investigation.  Eobert  Brown,  jun.,  F.S.A.  London,  1881. 

|  "  The  midgard  or  world-serpent  we  have  already  become  tolerably 
well  acquainted  with,  and  recognise  in  him  the  wild  tumultuous  sea. 
Thor  contended  with  him ;  he  got  him  on  his  hook,  but  did  not  succeed 

1  » 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


I  must  admit  that,  for  my  part,  I  doubt  the  general  de- 
rivation of  myths  from  "  the  contemplation  of  the  visible 
workings  of  external  nature."*  It  seems  to  me  easier  to 
suppose  that  the  palsy  of  time  has  enfeebled  the  utterance  of 
these  oft-told  tales  until  their  original  appearance  is  almost 
unrecognisable,  than  that  uncultured  savages  should  possess 
powers  of  imagination  and  poetical  invention  far  beyond 
those  enjoyed  by  the  most  instructed  nations  of  the  present 
day  ;  less  hard  to  believe  that  these  wonderful  stories  of  gods 
and  demigods,  of  giants  and  dwarfs,  of  dragons  and  monsters 
of  all  descriptions,  are  transformations  than  to  believe  them 
to  be  inventions.! 

The  author  of  Atlantis^  indeed,  claims  that  the  gods  and 
goddesses  of  the  ancient  Greeks,  the  Phoenicians,  the  Hin- 
doos, and  the  Scandinavians  were  simply  the  kings,  queens, 
and  heroes  of  Atlantis,  and  the  acts  attributed  to  them  in 
mythology  a  confused  recollection  of  real  historical  events. 
Without  conceding  the  locus  of  the  originals,  which  requires 
much  greater  examination  than  I  am  able  to  make  at  the 


in  killing  him.  We  also  remember  how  Thor  tried  to  lift  him  in  the 
form  of  a  cat.  The  North  abounds  in  stories  about  the  sea-serpent, 
which  are  nothing  but  variations  of  the  original  myths  of  the  Eddas. 
Odin  cast  him  into  the  sea,  where  he  shall  remain  until  he  is  conquered 
by  Thor  in  Eagnarok." — Norse  Mythology,  p.  387.  E.  B.  Anderson, 
Chicago,  1879. 

*  Vide  Anderson. 

f  Just  as  even  the  greatest  masters  of  fiction  adapt  but  do  not  origi- 
nate. Harold  Skimpole  and  Wilkins  Micawber  sat  unconsciously  for 
their  portraits  in  real  life,  and  the  most  charming  characters  and  fertile 
plots  produced  by  that  most  prolific  of  all  writers,  A.  Dumas,  are  mere 
elaborations  of  people  and  incidents  with  which  historical  memoirs 
provided  him. 

I  Atlantis ;  the  Antediluvian  World.  J.  Donelly,  New  York,  1882. 
The  author  has  amassed,  with  untiring  labour,  a  large  amount  of  evi- 
dence to  prove  that  the  island  of  Atlantis,  in  place  of  being  a  myth  or 
fable  of  Plato,  really  once  existed  ;  was  the  source  of  all  modern  arts 
and  civilization  ;  and  was  destroyed  in  a  catastrophe  which  he  identifies 
with  the  Biblical  Deluge. 


INTRODUCTION. 


present  time,  I  quite  agree  with  him  as  to  the  principle.  I 
believe  that  the  mythological  deities  represent  a  confused 
chronology  of  far-distant  times,  and  that  the  destruction  of 
the  Nemean  lion,  the  Lernean  hydra,  and  the  Minotaur  are 
simply  the  records  of  acts  of  unusual  bravery  in  combating 
ferocious  animals. 

On  the  first  landing  of  Pizarro  the  Mexicans  entertained 
the  opinion  that  man  and  horse  were  parts  of  one  strange 
animal,*  and  we  have  thus  a  clue  to  the  explanation  of  the 
origin  of  the  belief  in  centaurs  from  a  distant  view  of  horse- 
men, a  view  possibly  followed  by  the  immediate  flight  of  the 
observer,  which  rendered  a  solution  of  the  extraordinary 
phenomenon  impossible. 

ON  THE  CREDIBILITY  OP  EEMAEKABLE  STORIES.  f 

Ferdinand  Mendez  Pinto  quaintly  observes,  in  one  of  his 
earlier  chapters,  "  I  will  not  speak  of  the  Palace  Koyal, 
because  I  saw  it  but  on  the  outside,  howbeit  the  Chinese  tell 
such  wonders  of  it  as  would  amaze  a  man;  for  it  is  my 
intent  to  relate  nothing  save  what  we  beheld  here  with  our 
own  eyes,  and  that  was  so  much  as  that  I  am  afraid  to  write 
it ;  not  that  it  would  seem  strange  to  those  who  have  seen 
and  read  the  marvels  of  the  kingdom  of  China,  but  because 
I  doubt  that  they  which  would  compare  those  wondrous 
things  that  are  in  the  countries  they  have  not  seen,  with  that 
little  they  have  seen  in  their  own,  will  make  some  question 


*  So  also,  Father  Stanislaus  Arlet,  of  the  Society  of  Jesus,  writing  to 
the  General  of  the  Society  in  1698  respecting  a  new  Mission  in  Peru, 
and  speaking  of  a  Peruvian  tribe  calling  themselves  Canisian,  says  : 
"  Having  never  before  seen  horses,  or  men  resembling  us  in  colour  and 
dress,  the  astonishment  they  showed  at  our  first  appearance  among 
them  was  a  very  pleasing  spectacle  to  us,  the  sight  of  us  terrifying 
them  to  such  a  degree  that  the  bows  and  arrows  fell  from  their  hand ; 
imagining,  as  they  afterwards  owned,  that  the  man,  his  hat,  his  clothes, 
and  the  horse  he  rode  upon,  composed  but  one  animal." 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


of  it,  or,  it  may  be,  give  no  credit  at  all  to  these  truths, 
because  they  are  not  conformable  to  their  understanding 
and  small  experience."* 


*  The  Voyages  and  Adventures  of  Ferdinand  Mendez  Pinto,  done  into 
English  by  H.  C.  Gent,  London,  1653,  p.  109.  The  vindication  of 
Pinto' s  reputation  for  veracity  will  doubtless  one  day  be,  to  a  great 
extent,  effected,  for  although  his  interesting  narrative  is  undoubtedly 
embroidered  with  a  rich  tissue  of  falsity,  due  apparently  to  an  exagge- 
rated credulity  upon  his  part,  and  systematic  deception  upon  that  of  his 
Chinese  informants,  he  certainly  is  undeserving  of  the  wholesale  con- 
demnation of  which  Congreve  was  the  reflex  when  he  made  Foresight, 
addressing  Sir  Sampson  Legend,  say :  "  Thou  modern  Mandeville, 
Ferdinand  Mendez  Pinto  was  but  a  type  of  thee,  thou  liar  of  the  first 
magnitude." — Love  for  Love,  Act.  2,  Scene  1.  There  are  many  points 
in  his  narrative  which  are  corroborated  by  history  and  the  accounts  of 
other  voyages ;  and  it  must  be  remembered  that,  although  the  major 
part  of  the  names  of  places  and  persons  which  he  gives  are  now  un-^ 
recognisable,  yet  this  may  be  due  to  alterations  from  the  lapse  of  time, 
and  from  the  difficulty  of  recognising  the  true  original  Chinese  or 
Japanese  word  under  those  produced  by  the  foreign  mode  of  translitera- 
tion in  vogue  in  those  days.  Thus  the  Port  Liampoo  of  Pinto  is  now 
and  has  been  for  many  years  past  only  known  as  Ningpo,  the  first  name 
being  a  term  of  convenience,  used  by  the  early  Portuguese  voyagers, 
and  long  since  abandoned.  Just  as  the  wonderful  Quinsay  of  Marco 
Polo  (still  known  by  that  name  in  Pinto's  time)  has  been  only  success- 
fully identified  (with  Hangchow-fu)  through  the  antiquarian  research 
of  Colonel  Yule.  So  also  the  titles  of  Chaems,  Tutons,  Chumbins, 
Ay  tons,  Anchacy's,  which  Pinto  refers  to  (p.  108),  are  only  with  diffi- 
culty recognisable  in  those  respectively  of  Tsi'ang  (a  Manchu  governor), 
Tu-tung  (Lieutenant-General),  Tsung-ping  (Brigadier- General),  Tao-tai 
[?  ?]  (Intendant  of  Circuit)  and  Ngan-ch'a  She-sze  (Provincial  Judge), 
as  rendered  by  the  modern  sinologue  Mayers  in  his  Essay  on  the 
Chinese  Government,  Shanghai,  1878.  The  incidental  references  to  the 
country,  people,  habits,  and  products,  contained  in  the  chapter  describing 
his  passage  in  captivity  from  Nanquin  to  Pequin  are  true  to  nature,  and 
the  apparently  obviously  untruthful  statement  which  he  makes  of  the 
employment  by  the  King  of  Tartary  of  thousands  of  rhinoceri  both  as 
beasts  of  burthen  and  articles  of  food  (p.  158)  is  explicable,  I  think,  on 
the  supposition  that  some  confusion  has  arisen,  either  in  translation  or 
transcription,  between  rhinoceros  and  camel.  Anyone  who  has  seen  the 
long  strings  of  camels  wending  their  way  to  Pekin  from  the  various 
northern  roads  through  the  passes  into  Mongolia,  would  readily  believe 


INTRODUCTION. 


Now  as  some  of  the  creatures  whose  existence  I  shall  have 
to  contend  for  in  these  volumes  are  objects  of  derision  to  a 
large  proportion  of  mankind,  and  of  reasonable  doubt  to 
another,  I  cannot  help  fortifying  myself  with  some  such  out- 
work of  reasoning  as  the  pith  of  Pinto's  remarks  affords, 
and  supplementing  it  by  adding  that,  while  the  balance 
between  scepticism  and  credulity  is  undoubtedly  always  diffi- 
cult to  hold,  yet,  as  Lord  Bacon  well  remarks,  "  There  is 
nothing  makes  a  man  suspect  much  more  than  to  know  little  ; 
and  therefore  men  should  remedy  suspicion  by  procuring  to 
know  more." 

Whately  extends  Bacon's  proposition  by  adding,  "  This  is 
equally  true  of  the  suspicions  that  have  reference  to  things 
as  persons " ;  in  other  words,  ignorance  and  suspicion  go 
hand-in-hand,  and  so  travellers'  tales,  even  when  supported 
by  good  evidence,  are  mostly  denied  credence  or  accepted 
with  repugnance,  when  they  offend  the  experience  of  those 
who,  remaining  at  home,  are  thus  only  partially  educated. 
Hence  it  is,  not  to  go  too  far  back  for  examples,  that  we 
have  seen  Bruce,  Mungo  Park,  Du  Chaillu,  Gordon  Gum- 
ming, Schliemann,*  and  Stanley  treated  with  the  most  un- 
generous criticism  and  contemptuous  disbelief  by  persons 
who,  however  well  informed  in  many  subjects,  lacked  the 
extended  and  appreciative  views  which  can  only  be  acquired 
by  travel. 

Nor  is  this  incredulity  limited  to  travellers'  tales  about 
savage  life.  It  is  just  as  often  displayed  in  reference  to  the 


that  a  large  transport  corps  of  them  could  easily  be  amassed  by  a 
despotic  monarch ;  while  the  vast  numbers  of  troops  to  which  Pinto 
makes  reference  are  confirmed  by  more  or  less  authentic  histories. 

*  "  I  was  myself  an  eye-witness  of  two  such  discoveries  and  helped 
to  gather  the  articles  together.  The  slanderers  have  long  since  been 
silenced,  who  were  not  ashamed  to  charge  the  discoverer  with  an  impos- 
ture."— Prof.  Virchow,  in  Appendix  I.  to  Schliemann's  Ilios.  Murray, 
i880. 


8  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

surroundings  of  uneventful  life,  provided  they  are  different 
from  those  with  which  we  are  familiar. 

Saladin  rebuked  the  Knight  of  the  Leopard  for  falsehood 
when  the  latter  assured  him  that  the  waters  of  lakes  in  his 
own  country  became  at  times  solidified,  so  that  armed  and 
mounted  knights  could  cross  them  as  if  on  dry  land.  And 
the  wise  Indian  who  was  taken  down  to  see  the  large  Ameri- 
can cities,  with  the  expectation  that,  being  convinced  of  the 
resources  and  irresistible  power  of  civilization  he  would 
influence  his  tribe  to  submission  on  his  return,  to  the  surprise 
of  the  commissioners  who  had  conveyed  him,  spoke  in  directly 
contrary  terms  to  those  expected  of  him,  privately  explaining 
in  reply  to  their  remonstrances,  that  had  he  told  the  truth 
to  his  tribe  he  would  have  been  indelibly  branded  for  the 
remainder  of  his  life  as  an  outrageous  and  contemptible  liar. 
Chinese  students,  despatched  for  education  in  American  or 
European  capitals,  are  compelled  on  their  return  to  make 
similar  reservations,  under  pain  of  incurring  a  like  penalty ; 
and  officials  who,  from  contact  with  Europeans  at  the  open 
ports,  get  their  ideas  expanded  too  quickly,  are  said  to  be 
liable  to  isolation  in  distant  regions,  where  their  advanced 
and  fantastic  opinions  may  do  as  little  harm  to  right-thinking 
people  as  possible.* 

Even  scientific  men  are  sometimes  as  crassly  incredulous 
as  the  uncultured  masses.  On  this  point  hear  Mr.  A.  R. 
Wallace. f  "  Many  now  living  remember  the  time  (for  it  is 

*  "  But  ask  them  to  credit  an  electric  telegram,  to  understand  a 
steam-engine,  to  acknowledge  the  microscopic  revelations  spread  out 
before  their  eyes,  to  put  faith  in  the  Atlantic  cable  or  the  East  India 
House,  and  they  will  tell  you  that  you  are  a  barbarian  with  blue  eyes,  a 
fan  kwai,  and  a  sayer  of  that  which  is  not.  The  dragon  and  the  phoenix 
are  true,  but  the  rotifer  and  the  message,  the  sixty  miles  an  hour,  the 
cable,  and  the  captive  kings  are  false."— H ousehold  Words,  October  30th, 
1855. 

f  Address  delivered  to  the  Biological  Section  of  the  British  Associa- 
tion. Glasgow,  1876. 


INTRODUCTION. 


little  more  than  twenty  years  ago)  when  the  antiquity  of 
man,  as  now  understood,  was  universally  discredited.  Not 
only  theologians,  but  even  geologists  taught  us  that  man 
belonged  to  the  existing  state  of  things  ;  that  the  extinct 
animals  of  the  tertiary  period  had  finally  disappeared,  and 
that  the  earth's  surface  had  assumed  its  present  condition 
before  the  human  race  first  came  into  existence.  So  pre- 
possessed were  scientific  men  with  this  idea,  which  yet  rested 
on  purely  negative  evidence,  and  could  not  be  supported  by 
any  argument  of  scientific  value,  that  numerous  facts  which 
had  been  presented  at  intervals  for  half  a  century,  all  tending 
to  prove  the  existence  of  man  at  very  remote  epochs,  were 
silently  ignored,  and,  more  than  this,  the  detailed  statements 
of  three  distinct  and  careful  observers  confirming  each  other 
were  rejected  by  a  great  scientific  society  as  too  improbable 
for  publication,  only  because  they  proved  (if  they  were  true) 
the  co-existence  of  man  with  extinct  animals."* 

The  travels  of  that  faithful  historian,  Marco  Polo,  were  for 
a  long  time  considered  as  fables,  and  the  graphic  descriptions 
of  the  Abbe  Hue  even  still  find  detractors  continuing  the 
role  of  those  who  maintained  that  he  had  never  even  visited 
the  countries  which  he  described. 

Gordon  Gumming  was  disbelieved  when  he  asserted  that 
he  had  killed  an  antelope,  out  of  a  herd,  with  a  rifle-shot  at 
a  distance  of  eight  hundred  yards. 

Madame  Merianf  was  accused  of  deliberate  falsehood  in 
reference  to  her  description  of  a  bird-eating  spider  nearly 


*  In  1854  a  communication  from  the  Torquay  Natural  History 
Society,  confirming  previous  accounts  by  Mr.  Goodwin  Austen,  Mr. 
Vivian,  and  the  Kev.  Mr.  McEnery,  "  that  worked  flints  occurred  in 
Kents  Hole  with  remains  of  extinct  species,"  was  rejected  as  too  impro- 
bable for  publication. 

f  "  She  is  set  down  a  thorough  heretic,  not  at  all  to  be  believed,  a 
manufacturer  of  unsound  natural  history,  an  inventor  of  false  facts  in 
science."— Gosse,  Romance  of  Nat.  Hist.,  2nd  Series,  p.  227. 


10 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


two  hundred  years  ago.  But  now-a-days  Mr.  Bates  and  other 
reliable  observers  have  confirmed  it  in  regard  to  South 
America,  India,  and  elsewhere. 

Audubon  was  similarly  accused  by  botanists  of  having  in- 
vented the  yellow  water-lily,  which  he  figured  in  his  Birds  of 
the  South  under  the  name  of  Nymphsea  lutea,  and  after  having 
lain  under  the  imputation  for  years,  was  confirmed  at  last  by 
the  discovery  of  the  long-lost  flower,  in  Florida,  by  Mrs. 
Mary  Trent,  in  the  summer  of  1876  ;*  and  this  encourages 
us  to  hope  that  some  day  or  other  a  fortunate  sportsman  -may 
rediscover  the  Halisetus  Washingtonii,  in  regard  to  which 
Dr.  Cover  says:  "  That  famous  bird  of  Washington  was  a 
myth;  either  Audubon  was  mistaken,  or  else,  as  some  do  not 
hesitate  to  affirm,  he  lied  about  it." 


FIG.  1. — FISHERMAN  ATTACKED  BY  OCTOPUS. 

(Facsimile  from  a  drawing  by  Hokusai,  a  celebrated  Japanese  artist  who  lived  about 
the  beginning  of  the  present  century.) 

Victor  Hugo  was  ridiculed  for  having  exceeded  the  bounds 
of  poetic  license  when  he  produced  his  marvellous  word- 
painting  of  the  devil-fish,  and  described  a  man  as  becoming 
its  helpless  victim.  The  thing  was  derided  as  a  monstrous 

*  Pop.  tici.  Monthly,  No.  60,  April  1877. 


INTRODUCTION.  11 


impossibility  ;  yet  within  a  few  years  were  discovered,  on  the 
shores  of  Newfoundland,  cuttle-fishes  with  arms  extending  to 
thirty  feet  in  length,  and  capable  of  dragging  a  good-sized 
boat  beneath  the  surface  ;  and  their  action  has  been  repro- 
duced for  centuries  past,  as  the  representation  of  a  well- 
known  fact,  in  net  sukes  (ivory  carvings)  and  illustrations  by 
Japanese  artists.* 

*  "  By  the  kindness  of  my  friend,  Mr.  Bartlett,  I  have  been  enabled 
to  examine  a  most  beautiful  Japanese  carving  in  ivory,  said  to  be  one 
hundred  and  fifty  years  old,  and  called  by  the  Japanese  net  suJce  or  togle. 
These  togles  are  handed  down  from  one  generation  to  the  next,  and 
they  record  any  remarkable  event  that  happens  to  any  member  of  a 
family.  This  carving  is  an  inch  and  a  half  long,  and  about  as  big 
as  a  walnut.  It  represents  a  lady  in  a  quasi-leaning  attitude,  and 
at  first  sight  it  is  difficult  to  perceive  what  she  is  doing ;  but  after 
a  while  the  details  come  out  magnificently.  The  unfortunate  lady  has 
been  seized  by  an  octopus  when  bathing — for  the  lady  wears  a  bathing- 
dress.  One  extended  arm  of  the  octopus  is  in  the  act  of  coiling  round 
the  lady's  neck,  and  she  is  endeavouring  to  pull  it  off  with  her  right 
hand;  another  arm  of  the  sea-monster  is  entwined  round  the  left 
wrist,  while  the  hand  is  fiercely  tearing  at  the  mouth  of  the  brute. 
The  other  arms  of  the  octopus  are  twined  round,  grasping  the  lady's 
body  and  waist — in  fact,  her  position  reminds  one  very  much  of 
Laocoon  in  the  celebrated  statue  of  the  snakes  seizing  him  and  his 
two  sons.  The  sucking  discs  of  the  octopus  are  carved  exactly  as  they 
are  in  nature,  and  the  colour  of  the  body  of  the  creature,  together 
with  the  formidable  aspect  of  the  eye,  are  wonderfully  represented. 
The  face  of  this  Japanese  lady  is  most  admirably  done;  it  expresses 
the  utmost  terror  and  alarm,  and  possibly  may  be  a  portrait.  So 
carefully  is  the  carving  executed  that  the  lady's  white  teeth  can  be 
seen  between  her  lips.  The  hair  is  a  perfect  gem  of  work;  it  is  jet 
black,  extended  down  the  back,  and  tied  at  the  end  in  a  knot;  in 
fact,  it  is  so  well  done  that  I  can  hardly  bring  myself  to  think  that 
it  is  not  real  hair,  fastened  on  in  some  most  ingenious  manner ;  but  by 
examining  it  under  a  powerful  magnifying  glass  I  find  it  is  not  so — it 
is  the  result  of  extraordinary  cleverness  in  carving.  The  back  of  the 
little  white  comb  fixed  into  the  thick  of  the  black  hair  adds  to  the 
effect  of  this  magnificent  carving  of  the  hair.  I  congratulate  Mr. 
Bartlett  on  the  acquisition  of  this  most  beautiful  curiosity.  There 
is  an  inscription  in  Japanese  characters  on  the  underneath  part  of  the 
carving,  and  Mr.  Bartlett  and  myself  would,  of  course,  only  be  too  glad 
to  get  this  translated." — Frank  Buckland,  in  Land  and  Water. 


12  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Before  the  days  of  Darwinism,  what  courage  was  requisite 
in  a  man  who  propounded  any  theory  a  little  bit  extravagant ! 
Hark  how,  even  less  than  twenty  years  ago-,  the  ghost  of  the 
unfortunate  Lord  Monhoddo  had  bricks  of  criticism  pelted  at 
it,  half  earnestly,  half  contemptuously,  by  one  of  our  greatest 
thinkers,  whose  thought  happened  to  run  in  grooves  different 
from  those  travelled  in  by  the  mind  of  the  unfortunate 
Scotchman. 

"  Lord  Monboddo*  had  just  finished  his  great  work,  by 
which  he  derives  all  mankind  from  a  couple  of  apes,  and  all 
the  dialects  of  the  world  from  a  language  originally  framed 
by  some  Egyptian  gods,  when  the  discovery  of  Sanskrit  came 
on  him  like  a  thunderbolt.  It  must  be  said,  however,  to  his 
credit,  that  he  at  once  perceived  the  immense  importance  of 
the  discovery.  He  could  not  be  expected  to  sacrifice  his 
primordial  monkeys  or  his  Egyptian  idols,  &c." 

And  again  :  "It  may  be  of  interest  to  give  one  other 
extract  in  order  to  show  how  well,  apart  from  his  men  with, 
and  his  monkeys  without,  tails,  Lord  Monboddo  could  sift 
and  handle  the  evidence  that  was  placed  before  him." 

Max  Muller  also  furnishes  us  with  an  amazing  example 
of  scepticism  on  the  part  of  Dugald  Stewart.  He  saysf  : 
"  However,  if  the  facts  about  Sanskrit  were  true,  Dugald 
Stewart  was  too  wise  not  to  see  that  the  conclusions  drawn 
from  them  were  inevitable.  He  therefore  denied  the  reality 
of  such  a  language  as  Sanskrit  altogether,  and  wrote  his 
famous  essay  to  prove  that  Sanskrit  had  been  put  together, 
after  the  model  of  Greek  and  Latin,  by  those  archforgers 
and  liars,  the  Brahmans,  and  that  the  whole  of  Sanskrit 
literature  was  an  imposition." 

So  Ctesias  attacked  Herodotus.      The  very  existence  of 

*  Max  Muller,  Science  of  Language,  4th  edition,  p.  163-165.  London, 
1864. 

f  Science  of  Language,  p.  168. 


INTRODUCTION.  13 


Homer  has  been  denied,  and  even  the  authorship  of  Shake- 
speare's plays  questioned.* 

We  are  all  familiar  enough  now  with  the  black  swan,  but 
Ovidf  considered  it  as  so  utterly  impossible  that  he  clinched, 
as  it  were,  an  affirmation  by  saying,  "If  I  doubted,  0 
Maximus,  of  thy  approval  of  these  words,  I  could  believe 
that  there  are  swans  of  the  colour  of  Memnon  "  [i.e.  black] ; 
and  even  so  late  as  the  days  of  Sir  Thomas  Browne,  we  find 
them  classed  by  him  with  flying  horses,  hydras,  centaurs, 
harpies,  and  satyrs,  as  monstrosities,  rarities,  or  else  poetical 
fancies.  { 

Now  that  we  have  all  seen  the  great  hippopotamus  disport 
himself  in  his  tank  in  the  gardens  of  the  Zoological  Society, 
we  can  smile  at  the  grave  arguments  of  the  savant  who, 
while  admitting  the  existence  of  the  animal,  disputed  the 
possibility  of  his  walking  about  on  the  bed  of  a  river,  because 
his  great  bulk  would  prevent  his  rising  again.§  But  I  dare- 

*  "  When  a  naturalist,  either  by  visiting  such  spots  of  earth  as  are 
still  out  of  the  way,  or  by  his  good  fortune,  finds  a  very  queer  plant  or 
animal,  he  is  forthwith  accused  of  inventing  his  game,  the  word  not 
being  used  in  its  old  sense  of  discovery  but  in  its  modern  of  creation. 
As  soon  as  the  creature  is  found  to  sin  against  preconception,  the  great 
(mis  ?)  guiding  spirit,  a  priori  by  name,  who  furnishes  philosophers 
with  their  omniscience  pro  re  natd,  whispers  that  no  such  thing  can  be, 
and  forthwith  there  is  a  charge  of  hoax.  The  heavens  themselves  have 
been  charged  with  hoaxes.  When  Leverrier  and  Adams  predicted  a 
planet  by  calculation,  it  was  gravely  asserted  in  some  quarters  that  the 
planet  which  had  been  calculated  was  not  the  planet  but  another  which 
had  clandestinely  and  improperly  got  into  the  neighbourhood  of  the 
true  body.  The  disposition  to  suspect  hoax  is  stronger  than  the  dispo- 
sition to  hoax.  Who  was  it  that  first  announced  that  the  classical 
writings  of  Greece  and  Eome  were  one  huge  hoax  perpetrated  by  the 
monks  in  what  the  announcer  would  be  as  little  or  less  inclined  than 
Dr.  Maitland  to  call  the  dark  ages  ?  "—Macmillan,  1860. 

f  Poetic  Epistles,  Bk.  hi.,  Ep.  3. 

J  Rara  avis  in  terris,  nigroque  simillima  cygno. 

§  "  Having  showed  the  foregoing  description  of  the  mountain  cow, 
called  by  the  Spaniards  ante  [manatee?],  to  a  person  of  honour,  he  was 
pleased  to  send  it  to  a  learned  person  in  Holland."  This  learned  person 


14  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

say  it  passed  muster  in.  his  days  as  a  very  sound  and  shrewd 
observation,  just  as,  possibly,  but  for  the  inconvenient  wag- 
gery of  Peter  Pindar,  might  have  done  the  intelligent  inquiry, 
which  he  records,  after  the  seam  in  the  apple-dumpling. 

Poor  Fray  Gaspar  de  Jan  Bernardine  who,  in  1611,  under- 
took the  journey  by  land  from  India  to  Portugal,  was  unfor- 
tunate enough  to  describe  the  mode  in  which  the  captain  of 
the  caravan  communicated  intelligence  to  Bagdad  by  carrier 
pigeon.  "  He  had  pigeons  whose  young  and  nests  were  at 
his  house  in  that  city,  and  every  two  days  he  let  fly  a  pigeon 
with  a  letter  tied  to  its  foot  containing  the  news  of  his 
journey.  This  account  met  with  but  little  belief  in  Europe, 
and  was  treated  there  as  a  matter  of  merriment."* 

The  discredit  under  which  this  traveller  fell  is  the  more 
surprising  because  the  same  custom  had  alreadybeen  noted 
by  Sir  John  Mandeville,  who,  in  speaking  of  Syria  and  adja- 
cent countries,  says :  "  In  that  contree,  and  other  contrees 
beyond,  thei  have  custom,  whan  thei  schulle  usen  warre,  and 
when  men  holden  sege  abouten  Cytee  or  Castelle,  and  thei 
withinen  dur  not  senden  messagers  with  lettres  fro  Lord  to 
Lord  for  to  ask  Sokour,  thei  maken  here  Lettres  and  bynden 
hem  to  the  Nekke  of  a  Colver  and  leten  the  Colver  flee,  and 
the  Colveren  ben  so  taughte,  that  thei  flun  with  the  Lettres 
to  the  very  place  that  men  wolde  send  hem  to.  For  the  Col- 


discusses  it  and  compares  it  with  the  hippopotamus,  and  winds  up  by 
saying,  in  reference  to  a  description  of  the  habits  of  the  hippopotamus, 
as  noticed  at  Loango  by  Captain  Eogers,  to  the  effect  that  when  they 
are  in  the  water  they  will  sink  to  the  bottom,  and  then  walk  as  on  dry 
ground,  "  but  what  he  says  of  her  sinking  to  the  bottom  in  deep  rivers, 
and  walking  there,  if  he  adds,  what  I  think  he  supposes,  that  it  rises 
again,  and  comes  on  the  land,  I  much  question ;  for  that  such  a  huge 
body  should  raise  itself  up  again  (though  I  know  whales  and  great  fish 
can  do)  transcends  the  faith  of  J.  H." — F.  J.  Knapton,  Collection  of 
Voyages,  vol.  ii.,  part  ii.  p.  13.  4  vols.,  London,  1729. 

*  Historical  Account  of  Discoveries  and  Travels  in  Asia.   Hugh  Murray, 
F.R.S.E.,  3  vols.  8vo.  Edinburgh,  1820. 


INTRODUCTION.  15 


veres  ben  norrysscht  in  the  Places  Where  thei  been  sent  to, 
and  thei  senden  them  there,  for  to  beren  here  Lettres,  and 
the  Colveres  retournen  agen,  where  as  thei  ben  norrischt, 
and  so  thei  dou  commonly." 

While,  long  before,  Pliny  had  referred  to  it  in  his  Natural 
History*  as  follows  :  "  In  addition  to  this,  pigeons  have  acted 
as  messengers  in  affairs  of  importance.  During  the  siege  of 
Mutina,  Decimus  Brutus,  who  was  in  the  town,  sent 
despatches  to  the  camp  of  the  Consuls,  fastened  to  pigeons' 
feet.  Of  what  use  to  Antony,  then,  were  his  entrenchments? 
and  all  the  vigilance  of  the  besieging  army  ?  his  nets,  too, 
which  he  had  spread  in  the  river,  while  the  messenger  of  the 
besieged  was  cleaving  the  air  ?  " 

The  pace  of  railways  ;  steam  communication  across  the 
Atlantic  ;  the  Suez  Canalf ;  were  not  all  these  considered  in 
former  days  to  be  impossible  ?  With  these  examples  of 
failure  of  judgment  before  us,  it  may  be  fairly  asked  whether, 
in  applying  our  minds  to  the  investigation  of  the  reality  of 
creatures  apparently  monstrous,  we  duly  reflect  upon  the 
extraordinary,  almost  miraculous,  events  which  incessantly 
occur  in  the  course  of  the  short  existence  of  all  animated 
nature  ?  Supposing  the  history  of  insects  were  unknown  to 
us,  could  the  wildest  imagination  conceive  such  a  marvellous 
transformation  as  that  which  takes  place  continually  around 
us  in  the  passage  from  the  larva  through  the  chrysalis  to  the 
butterfly  ?  or  human  ingenuity  invent  one  so  bizarre  as  that 
recorded  by  Steenstrup  in  his  theory  of  the  alternation  of 
generation  ? 

We  accept  as  nothing  marvellous,  only  because  we  see 
them  daily,  the  organization  and  the  polity  of  a  community 

*  Bk.  x.,  cliap.  53. 

f  A  writer  in  Macmillan's  Magazine  in  1860  concludes  a  series  of  ob- 
jections to  the  canal  as  follows :  "  And  the  Emperor  must  hesitate  to 
identify  himself  with  an  operation  which  might  not  impossibly  come  to 
be  designated  by  posterity  as  '  Napoleon's  Folly.'  " 


16  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

of  ants ;  their  collaboration,  their  wars,  and  their  slaveries 
have  been  so  often  stated  that  they  cease  to  astonish.  The 
same  may  be  said  of  the  marvellous  architecture  of  birds, 
their  construction  of  houses  to  live  in,  of  bowers  to  play  in, 
and  even  of  gardens  to  gratify  their  sense  of  beauty.* 

We  admire  the  ingenious  imagination  of  Swift,  and 
essayists  dwell  upon  his  happy  conceits  and  upon  the  ability 
with  which,  in  his  celebrated  work,  he  has  ordered  all  things 
to  harmonise  in  dimensions  with  the  enlarged  and  reduced 
scales  on  which  he  has  conceived  the  men  and  animals  of 
Brobdignag  and  Lilliput.  So  much  even  has  this  quaint 
idea  been  appreciated,  that  his  story  has  achieved  a  small 
immortality,  and  proved  one  of  the  numerous  springs  from 
which  new  words  have  been  imported  into  our  language. 
Yet  the  peculiar  and  essential  singularities  of  the  story  are 
quite  equalled,  or  even  surpassed,  by  creatures  which  are,  or 
have  been,  found  in  nature.  The  imaginary  diminutive  cows 
which  Gulliver  brought  back  from  Lilliput,  and  placed  in  the 
meadows  at  Dulwich,  are  not  one  bit  more  remarkable,  in 
respect  to  relative  size,  than  the  pigmy  elephant  (E.  Falconeri) 
whose  remains  have  been  found  in  the  cave-deposits  of  Malta, 
associated  with  those  of  pigmy  hippopotami,  and  which  was 
only  two  feet  six  inches  high  ;  or  the  still  existing  Hippopo- 
tamus (Chceropsis)  liberiensis,  which  M.  Milne  Edwardesf 
figures  as  little  more  than  two  feet  in  height. 

The  lilliputian  forests  from  which  the  royal  navy  was  con- 
structed contained  even  large  trees  in  comparison  with  the 
dwarf  oaks  of  Mexico,  {  or  with  the  allied,  even  smaller 


*  The  Bower  Bird,  Ptilonorhyncus  holosericeus,  and  the  Garden- 
building  Bird  of  New  Guinea,  Amllyornis  inornara. 

f  Recherches,  &c.  des  Mammiferes,  plate  1.     Paris,  1868  to  1874. 

J  "  This  obstacle  was  a  forest  of  oaks,  not  giant  oaks,  but  the  very 
reverse,  a  forest  of  dwarf  oaks  (Quercus  nana).  Far  as  the  eye  could 
reach  extended  the  singular  wood,  in  which  no  tree  rose  above  thirty 


INTRODUCTION.  17 


species,  which  crawls  like  heather  about  the  hill-slopes  of 
China  and  Japan,  and  still  more  so  in  comparison  with  that 
singular  pine,  the  most  diminutive  known  (Dacrydium  taxi- 
folium),  fruiting  specimens  of  which,  according  to  Kirk,  are 
sometimes  only  two  inches  high,  while  the  average  height  is 
only  six  to  ten  inches ;  while  even  among  the  forests  of 
Brobdignag,  a  very  respectable  position  could  be  held  by  the 
mammoth  trees  of  California  (Sequoia  gigantea),  or  by  the 
loftier  white  gums  of  Australia  (Eucalyptus  amygdalina),  which 
occasionally  reach,  according  to  Von  Mueller,*  the  enormous 
height  of  480  feet.  Nor  could  more  adequate  tenants  (in 
point  of  size)  be  found  to  occupy  them  than  the  gigantic 
reptilian  forms  lately  discovered  by  Marsh  among  the  deposits 
of  Colorado  and  Texas. 

Surely  a  profound  acquaintance  with  the  different  branches 
of  natural  history  should  render  a  man  credulous  rather  than 
incredulous,  for  there  is  hardly  conceivable  a  creature  so 
monstrous  that  it  may  not  be  paralleled  by  existing  ones  in 
every-day  life.f 


inches  in  height.  Yet  was  it  no  thicket,  no  undergrowth  of  shrubs,  but 
a  true  forest  of  oaks,  each  tree  having  its  separate  stem,  its  boughs,  its 
lobed  leaves,  and  its  bunches  of  brown  acorns." — Capt.  Mayne  Reid, 
The  War  Trail,  chap.  Ixiv. 

*  Respecting  the  timber  trees  of  this  tract,  Dr.  Ferdinand  von 
Mueller,  the  Government  botanist,  thus  writes  : — "  At  the  desire  of  the 
writer  of  these  pages,  Mr.  D.  Bogle  measured  a  fallen  tree  of  Eucalyptus 
amygdalina,  in  the  deep  recesses  of  Dandenong,  and  obtained  for  it  a 
length  of  420  feet,  with  proportions  of  width,  indicated  in  a  design  of  a 
monumental  structure  placed  in  the  exhibition ;  while  Mr.  G-.  Klein 
took  the  measurement  of  a  Eucalyptus  on  the  Black  Spur,  ten  miles 
distant  from  Healesville,  480  feet  high  !  In  the  State  forest  of  Dande- 
nong, it  was  found  by  actual  measurement  that  an  acre  of  ground  con- 
tained twenty  large  trees  of  an  apparent  average  height  of  about  350 
feet."— E.  Brough  Smyth,  The  Gold  Fields  of  Victoria.  Melbourne, 
1869. 

t  "  In  the  next  place,  we  must  remember  how  impossible  it  is  for  the 
mind  to  invent  an  entirely  new  fact.  There  is  nothing  in  the  mind  of 

2 


18  MYTHICAL   MONSTERS. 

Are  the  composite  creatures  of  Chaldaean  mythology  so 
very  much  more  wonderful  than  the  marsupial  kangaroo,  the 
duck-billed  platypus,  and  the  flying  lizard  of  Malaysia  which 


2.  —  PTERODACTYLUS.     (After  Figuier.) 


are,  or  the  pterodactylus,  rhamphorynchus,  and  archseopteryx 
which  have  been  ?  Does  not  geological  science,  day  by  day, 
trace  one  formation  by  easy  gradation  to  another,  bridge  over 


FIG.  3. — RHAMPHORYNCHUS.     (From  " Nature") 


the  gaps  which  formerly  separated  them,  carry  the  proofs  of 
the  existence  of  man  constantly  further  and  further  back  into 
remote  time,  and  disclose  the  previous  existence  of  inter- 
man  that  has  not  pre-existed  in  nature.  Can  we  imagine  a  person,  who 
never  saw  or  heard  of  an  elephant,  drawing  a  picture  of  such  a  two- 
tailed  creature  ?  " — J.  Donelly,  RangaroJc,  p.  119.  New  York,  1883. 


INTRODUCTION.  19 

mediate  types  (satisfying  the  requirements  of  the  Darwinian 
theory)  connecting  the  great  divisions  of  the  animal  kingdom, 
of  reptile-like  birds  and  bird-like  reptiles  ?  Can  we  suppose 
that  we  have  at  all  exhausted  the  great  museum  of  nature  ? 
Have  we,  in  fact,  penetrated  yet  beyond  its  ante-chambers  ? 


FIG.  4. — ABCHJEOPTBKYX. 

Does  the  written  history  of  man,  comprising  a  few  thou- 
sand years,  embrace  the  whole  course  of  his  intelligent 
existence  ?  or  have  we  in  the  long  mythical  eras,  extending 
over  hundreds  of  thousands  of  years  and  recorded  in  the 
chronologies  of  Chaldsea  and  of  China,  shadowy  mementoes 
of  pre-historic  man,  handed  down  by  tradition,  and  perhaps 
transported  by  a  few  survivors  to  existing  lands  from  others 
which,  like  the  fabled  (?)  Atlantis  of  Plato,  may  have  been 
submerged,  or  the  scene  of  some  great  catastrophe  which 
destroyed  them  with  all  their  civilization. 

The  six  or  eight  thousand  years  which  the  various  inter- 
preters of  the  Biblical  record  assign  for  the  creation  of 
the  world  and  the  duration  of  man  upon  the  earth,  allow 
little  enough  space  for  the  development  of  his  civilization — a 
civilization  which  documental  evidence  carries  almost  to  the 
verge  of  the  limit — for  the  expansion  and  divergence  of 
stocks,  or  the  obliteration  of  the  branches  connecting  them. 

2  * 


20  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

But,  fortunately,  we  are  no  more  compelled  to  fetter  our 
belief  within  such  limits  as  regards  man  than  to  suppose  that 
his  appearance  on  the  globe  was  coeval  with  or  immediately 
successive  to  its  own  creation  at  that  late  date.  For  while 
geological  science,  on  the  one  hand,  carries  back  the  creation 
of  the  world  and  the  appearance  of  life  upon  its  surface  to  a 
period  so  remote  that  it  is  impossible  to  estimate  it,  and 
difficult  even  to  faintly  approximate  to  it,  so,  upon  the  other, 
the  researches  of  palaeontologists  have  successively  traced 
back  the  existence  of  man  to  periods  variously  estimated  at 
from  thirty  thousand  to  one  million  years — to  periods  when 
he  co-existed  with  animals  which  have  long  since  become 
extinct,  and  which  even  excelled  in  magnitude  and  ferocity 
most  of  those  which  in  savage  countries  dispute  his  empire 
at  the  present  day.  Is  it  not  reasonable  to  suppose  that  his 
combats  with  these  would  form  the  most  important  topic  of 
conversation,  of  tradition,  and  of  primitive  song,  and  that 
graphic  accounts  of  such  struggles,  and  of  the  terrible  nature 
of  the  foes  encountered,  would  be  handed  down  from  father  to 
son,  with  a  fidelity  of  description  and  an  accuracy  of  memory 
unsuspected  by  us,  who,  being  acquainted  with  reading  and 
writing,  are  led  to  depend  upon  their  artificial  assistance, 
and  thus  in  a  measure  fail  to  cultivate  a  faculty  which,  in 
common  with  those  of  keenness  of  vision  and  hearing,  are 
essential  to  the  existence  of  man  in  a  savage  or  semi-savage 
condition  ?* 

The  illiterate  backwoodsman  or  trapper  (and  hence  by 
inference  the  savage  or  semi-civilized  man),  whose  mind  is 


*  "  I  conceive  that  quite  a  large  proportion  of  the  most  profound 
thinkers  are  satisfied  to  exert  their  memory  very  moderately.  It  is,  in 
fact,  a  distraction  from  close  thought  to  exert  the  memory  overmuch, 
and  a  man  engaged  in  the  study  of  an  abstruse  subject  will  commonly 
rather  turn  to  his  book-shelves  for  the  information  he  requires  than 
tax  his  memory  to  supply  it."— R.  A.  Proctor,  Pop.  Sci.  Monthly,  Jan. 
1874. 


INTRODUCTION.  21 


occupied  merely  by  his  surroundings,  and  whose  range  of 
thought,  in  place  of  being  diffused  over  an  illimitable  horizon, 
is  confined  within  very  moderate  limits,  develops  remarkable 
powers  of  observation  and  an  accuracy  of  memory  in  regard 
to  localities,  and  the  details  of  his  daily  life,  surprising  to  the 
scholar  who  has  mentally  to  travel  over  so  much  more  ground, 
and,  receiving  daily  so  many  and  so  far  more  complex  ideas, 
can  naturally  grasp  each  less  firmly,  and  is  apt  to  lose  them 
entirely  in  the  haze  of  a  period  of  time  which  would  still 
leave  those  of  the  uneducated  man  distinguishable  or  even 
prominent  landmarks.*  Variations  in  traditions  must,  of 
course,  occur  in  time,  and  the  same  histories,  radiating  in 
all  directions  from  centres,  vary  from  the  original  ones  by 
increments  dependent  on  proportionately  altered  phases  of 
temperament  and  character,  induced  by  change  of  climate, 
associations  and  conditions  of  life ;  so  that  the  early  written 
history  of  every  country  reproduces  under  its  own  garb,  and 
with  a  claim  to  originality,  attenuated,  enriched,  or  deformed 
versions  of  traditions  common  in  their  origin  to  many  or 
all.t 


*  "  It  was  through  one  of  these  happy  chances  (so  the  Brothers 
Grimm  wrote  in  1819)  that  we  came  to  make  the  acquaintance  of  a 
peasant  woman  of  the  village  of  Nieder-Zwehrn,  near  Cassel,  who  told 
us  the  greater  part  of  the  Marchen  of  the  second  volume,  and  the  most 
beautiful  of  it  too.  She  held  the  old  tales  firmly  in  her  memory,  and 
would  sometimes  say  that  this  gift  was  not  granted  to  everyone,  and 
that  many  a  one  could  not  keep  anything  in  its  proper  connection. 
Anyone  inclined  to  believe  that  tradition  is  easily  corrupted  or  carelessly 
kept,  and  that  therefore  it  could  not  possibly  last  long,  should  have 
heard  how  steadily  she  always  abided  by  her  record,  and  how  she  stuck 
to  its  accuracy.  She  never  altered  anything  in  repeating  it,  and  if  she 
made  a  slip,  at  once  righted  herself  as  soon  as  she  became  aware  of  it, 
in  the  very  midst  of  her  tale.  The  attachment  to  tradition  among 
people  living  on  in  the  same  kind  of  life  with  unbroken  regularity,  is 
stronger  than  we,  who  are  fond  of  change,  can  understand." — Odinic 
Songs  in  Shetland.  Karl  Blind,  Nineteenth  Century,  June  1879. 

t  See  quotation  from  Gladstone,  Nineteenth  Century,  Oct.  1879. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Stories  of  divine  progenitors,  demigods,  heroes,  mighty 
hunters,  slayers  of  monsters,  giants,  dwarfs,  gigantic  ser- 
pents, dragons,  frightful  beasts  of  prey,  supernatural  beings, 
and  myths  of  all  kinds,  appear  to  have  been  carried  into  all 
corners  of  the  world  with  as  much  fidelity  as  the  sacred  Ark 
of  the  Israelites,  acquiring  a  moulding — graceful,  weird  or 
uncouth — according  to  the  genius  of  the  people  or  their 
capacity  for  superstitious  belief ;  and  these  would  appear  to 
have  been  materially  affected  by  the  varied  nature  of  their 
respective  countries.  For  example,  the  long-continuing 
dwellers  in  the  open  plains  of  a  semi-tropical  region,  relieved 
to  a  great  extent  from  the  cares  of  watchfulness,  and  nur- 
tured in  the  grateful  rays  of  a  genial  but  not  oppressive  sun, 
must  have  a  more  buoyant  disposition  and  more  open  tem- 
perament than  those  inhabiting  vast  forests,  the  matted  over- 
growth of  which  rarely  allows  the  passage  of  a  single  ray, 
bathes  all  in  gloom,  and  leaves  on  every  side  undiscovered 
depths,  filled  with  shapeless  shadows,  objects  of  vigilant 
dread,  from  which  some  ferocious  monster  may  emerge  at 
any  moment.  Again,  on  the  one  hand,  the  nomad  roaming 
in  isolation  over  vast  solitudes,  having  much  leisure  for  con- 
templative reflection,  and  on  the  other,  the  hardy  dwellers  on 
storm-beaten  coasts,  by  turns  fishermen,  mariners,  and 
pirates,  must  equally  develop  traits  which  affect  their  religion, 
polity,  and  customs,  and  stamp  their  influences  on  mythology 
and  tradition. 

The  Greek,  the  Celt,  and  the  Viking,  descended  from  the 
same  Aryan  ancestors,  though  all  drawing  from  the  same 
sources  their  inspirations  of  religious  belief  and  tradition, 
quickly  diverged,  and  respectively  settled  into  a  generous 
martial  race — martial  in  support  of  their  independence  rather 
than  from  any  lust  of  conquest — polite,  skilled,  and  learned ; 
one  brave  but  irritable,  suspicious,  haughty,  impatient  of 
control ;  and  the  last,  the  berserker,  with  a  ruling  passion 
for  maritime  adventure,  piracy,  and  hand-to-hand  heroic 


INTRODUCTION. 


struggles,  to  be  terminated  in  due  course  by  a  hero's  death 
and  a  welcome  to  the  banqueting  halls  of  Odin  in  Walhalla. 
The  beautiful  mythology  of  the  Greek  nation,  comprising 
a  pantheon  of   gods    and    demigods,  benign   for  the   most 
part,  and  often  interesting  themselves  directly  in  the  welfare 
of  individual  men,  was   surely  due  to,   or   at  least  greatly 
induced  by,  the  plastic  influences  of  a  delicious  climate,  a 
semi-insular  position  in  a  sea  comparatively  free  from  stormy 
weather,  and  an  open  mountainous  country,  moderately  fer- 
tile.    Again,   the   gloomy   and   sanguinary  religion   of  the 
Druids  was  doubtless  moulded  by  the  depressing  influences  of 
the  seclusion,  twilight  haze,  and  dangers  of  the  dense  forests 
in  whi3h  they  hid  themselves — forests  which,  as  we  know 
from  Caesar,  spread  over  the  greater  part  of  Gaul,  Britain, 
and  Spain;  while  the  Viking,  having  from  the  chance  or 
choice  of  his  ancestors,  inherited  a  rugged  seaboard,  lashed 
by  tempestuous  waves  and  swept  by  howling  winds,  a  sea- 
boari  with  only  a  rugged  country  shrouded  with  unsubdued 
forests  at  its  back,  exposed  during  the  major  portion  of  the 
year  to  great  severity  of  climate,  and  yielding  at  the  best  but 
a  niggard  and  precarious  harvest,  became  perforce  a  bold  and 
skilful  mariner,  and,  translating  his  belief  into  a  language 
symbolic  of  his  new  surroundings,  believed  that  he  saw  and 
heard  Thor  in  the  midst  of  the  howling  tempests,  revealed 
majestic  and  terrible  through  rents  in  the  storm-cloud.    Pur- 
suing our  consideration  of  the  effects  produced  by  climatic 
conditions,  may  we  not  assume,  for  example,  that  some  at 
least  of  the  Chaldseans,  inhabiting  a  pastoral  country,  and 
being  descended  from  ancestors  who  had  pursued,  for  hun- 
dreds or  thousands  of  years,  a  nomadic  existence  in  the  vast 
open  steppes  in  the  highlands  of  Central  Asia,  were  indebted 
to  those  circumstances  for  the  advance  which  they  are  credited 
with  having  made  in  astronomy  and  kindred  sciences.     Is  it 
not  possible  that  their  acquaintance  with  climatology  was  as 
exact  or  even  more  so  than  our  own  ?     The  habit  of  solitude 


24  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

would  induce  reflection,  the  subject  of  which  would  naturally 
be  the  causes  influencing  the  vicissitudes  of  weather.  The 
possibilities  of  rain  or  sunshine,  wind  or  storm,  would 
be  with  them  a  prominent  object  of  solicitude  ;  and  the 
necessity,  in  an  unfenced  country,  of  extending  their  watch 
over  their  flocks  and  herds  throughout  the  night,  would  per- 
force more  or  less  rivet  their  attention  upon  the  glorious 
constellations  of  the  heavens  above,  and  lead  to  habits  of 
observation  which,  systematized  and  long  continued  by  the 
priesthood,  might  have  produced  deductions  accurate  in  the 
result  even  if  faulty  in  the  process. 

The  vast  treasures  of  ancient  knowledge  tombed  in  the 
ruins  of  Babylon  and  Assyria,  of  which  the  recovery  and  de- 
ciphering is  as  yet  only  initiated,  may,  to  our  surprise,  reveal 
that  certain  secrets  of  philosophy  were  known  to  the 
ancients  equally  with  ourselves,  but  lost  through  intervening 
ages  by  the  destruction  of  the  empire,  and  the  fact  of  Iheir 
conservancy  having  been  entrusted  to  a  privileged  and  limited 

order,  with  which  it  perished.* 

u_ 

*  Mr.  C.  P.  Daly,  President  of  the  American  Geographical  Society, 
informs  us,  in  his  Annual  Address  [for  1880],  that  in  one  book  found  in 
the  royal  library  at  Nineveh,  of  the  date  2000  B.C.,  there  is — 

1.  A  catalogue  of  stars. 

2.  Enumeration  of  twelve  constellations  forming  our  present  zodiac. 

3.  The  intimation  of  a  Sabbath. 

4.  A  connection  indicated  (according  to  Mr.  Perville)  between  the 
weather  and  the  changes  of  the  moon. 

5.  A  notice  of  the  spots  on  the  sun :  a  fact  they  could  only  have 
known  by  the  aid  of  telescopes,  which  it  is  supposed  they  possessed 
from  observations  that  they  have  noted  down  of  the  rising  of  Venus, 
and  the  fact  that  Layard  found  a  crystal  lens  in  the  ruins  of  Nineveh. 
(N.B. — As  to  the  above,  1  must  say  that  telescopes  are  not  always 
necessary  to  see  the  spots  on  the  sun :  these  were  distinctly  visible  with 
the  naked  eye,  in  the  early  mornings,  to  myself  and  the  officers  of  the 
S.S.  Scotia,  in  the  Bed  Sea,  in  the  month  of  August  of  1883,  after  the 
great  volcanic  disturbances  near  Batavia.     The  resulting  atmospheric 
effects  were  very  marked  in  the  Eed  Sea,  as  elsewhere,  the  sun,  when 
near  the  horizon,  appearing  of  a  pale  green  colour,  and  exhibiting  the 
spots  distinctly.) 


INTRODUCTION.  25 


We  hail  as  a  new  discovery  the  knowledge  of  the  existence 
of  the  so-called  spots  upon  the  surface  of  the  sun,  and  scientists, 
from  long-continued  observations,  profess  to  distinguish  a 
connection  between  the  character  of  these  and  atmospheric 
phenomena  ;  they  even  venture  to  predict  floods  and  droughts, 
and  that  for  some  years  in  anticipation  ;  while  pestilences  or 
some  great  disturbance  are  supposed  to  be  likely  to  follow  the 
period  when  three  or  four  planets  attain  their  apogee  within 
one  year,  a  supposition  based  on  the  observations  extended 
over  numerous  years,  that  similar  events  had  accompanied 
the  occurrence  of  even  one  only  of  those  positions  at  previous 
periods. 

May  we  not  speculate  on  the  possibility  of  similar  or  parallel 
knowledge  having  been  possessed  by  the  old  Chaldsean  and 
Egyptian  priesthood ;  and  may  not  Joseph  have  been  able,  by 
superior  ability  in  its  exercise,  to  have  anticipated  the  seven 
years'  drought,  or  Noah,  from  an  acquaintance  with  meteoro- 
logical science,  to  have  made  an  accurate  forecast  of  the  great 
disturbances  which  resulted  in  the  Deluge  and  the  destruction 
of  a  large  portion  of  mankind  ?  * 


*  Ammianus  Marcellinus  (bk.  xxii.,  ch.  xv.,  s.  20),  in  speaking  of 
the  Pyramids,  says :  "  There  are  also  subterranean  passages  and  winding 
retreats,  which,  it  is  said,  men  skilful  in  the  ancient  mysteries,  by  means 
of  which  they  divined  the  coming  of  a  flood,  constructed  in  different 
places  lest  the  memory  of  all  their  sacred  ceremonies  should  be  lost." 

As  affording  a  minor  example  of  prophesy,  I  quote  a  correspondent's 
communication,  relating  to  Siam,  to  the  North  China  Daily  News  of 
July  28th,  1881 : — "  Singularly  enough  the  prevalence  of  cholera  in 
Siam  this  season  has  been  predicted  for  some  months.  The  blossoming 
of  the  bamboo  (which  in  India  is  considered  the  invariable  forerunner 
of  an  epidemic)  was  looked  upon  as  ominous,  while  the  enormous  quantity 
and  high  quality  of  the  fruit  produced  was  cited  as  pointing  out  the  over- 
charge of  the  earth  with  matter  which,  though  tending  to  the  development 
of  vegetable  life,  is  deleterious  to  human.  From  these  and  other  sources 
of  knowledge  open  to  those  accustomed  to  read  the  book  of  nature,  the 
prevalence  of  cholera,  which,  since  1873,  has  been  almost  unknown  in 
Siam,  was  predicted  and  looked  for ;  and,  unli ke  most  modern  predic- 


26  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Without  further  digression  in  a  path  which  opens  the  most 
pleasing  speculations,  and  could  be  pursued  into  endless 
ramifications,  I  will  merely,  in  conclusion,  suggest  that  the 
same  influences  which,  as  I  have  shown  above,  affect  so 
largely  the  very  nature  of  a  people,  must  similarly  affect  its 
traditions  and  myths,  and  that  due  consideration  will  have 
to  be  given  to  such  influences,  in  the  case  of  some  at  least  of 
the  remarkable  animals  which  I  propose  to  discuss  in  this 
and  future  volumes. 


tions,  it  has  been  certainly  fulfilled.  So  common  was  the  belief,  that 
when,  some  months  since,  a  foreign  official  in  Siamese  employ  applied 
for  leave  of  absence,  it  was  opposed  by  some  of  the  native  officials  on 
the  ground  that  he  ought  to  stay  and  take  his  chance  of  the  cholera  with 
the  rest  of  them." 


27 


CHRONOLOGICAL  LIST  OP  SOME  AUTHORS  WRITING  ON,  AND 
WORKS  RELATING  TO  NATURAL  HlSTORY,  TO  WHICH 
REFERENCES  ARE  MADE  IN  THE  PRESENT  VOLUME  ; 
EXTRACTED  TO  A  GREAT  EXTENT,  AS  TO  THE  WESTERN 
AUTHORS,  PROM  KNIGHT'S  "  CYCLOPEDIA  of  BIOGRAPHY." 

The  Shan  Hai  King — According  to  the  commentator  Kwoh 
Poh  (A.D.  276-324),  this  work  was  compiled  three 
thousand  years  before  this  time,  or  at  seven  dynas- 
ties' distance.  Yang  Sun  of  the  Ming  dynasty 
(commencing  A.D.  1368),  states  that  it  was  com- 
piled by  Kung  Chia  (and  Chung  Ku  ?)  from  en- 
gravings on  nine  urns  made  by  the  Emperor  Yii, 
B.C.  2255.  Chung  Ku  was  an  historiographer, 
and  at  the  time  of  the  last  Emperor  of  the  Hia 
dynasty  (B.C.  1818),  fearing  that  the  Emperor 
might  destroy  the  books  treating  of  the  ancient 
and  present  time,  carried  them  in  flight  to  Yin. 

The  'Rh  Ya — Initiated  according  to  tradition,  by  Chow  Kung  ; 
uncle  of  Wu  Wang,  the  first  Emperor  of  the  Chow 
dynasty,  B.C.  1122.  Ascribed  also  to  Tsze  Hea, 
the  disciple  of  Confucius. 

The  Bamboo  Books — Containing  the  Ancient  Annals  of  China, 
said  to  have  been  found  A.D.  279,  on  opening  the 
grave  of  King  Seang  of  Wei  [died  B.C.  295].  Age 
prior  to  last  date,  undetermined.  Authenticity  dis- 
puted, favoured  by  Legge. 


28  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Confucius — Author  of  Spring  and  Autumn  Classics,  &c., 
B.C.  (551-479). 

Ctesias — Historian,  physician  to  Artaxerxes,  B.C.  401. 

Herodotus — B.C.  484. 

Aristotle — B.C.  384. 

Megasthenes — About  B.C.  300.  In  time  of  Seleucus  Nicator. 
His  work  entitled  Indica  is  only  known  by  extracts 
in  those  of  Strabo,  Arrian,  and  .ZElian. 

Eratosthenes — Born  B.C.  276.  Mathematician,  Astronomer, 
and  Geographer. 

Posidonius — Born  about  B.C.  140.  Besides  philosophical 
treatises,  wrote  works  on  geography,  history,  and 
astronomy,  fragments  of  which  are  preserved  in 
the  works  of  Cicero,  Strabo,  and  others. 

Nicander — About  B.C.  135.  Wrote  the  Theriaca,  a  poem 
of  1,000  lines,  in  hexameter,  on  the  wounds  caused 
by  venomous  animals,  and  the  treatment.  Is  fol- 
lowed in  many  of  his  errors  by  Pliny.  Plutarch 
says  the  Theriaca  cannot  be  called  a  poem,  because 
there  is  in  it  nothing  of  fable  or  falsehood. 

Strabo — Just  before  the  Christian  era.     Geographer. 

Cicero — Born  B.C.  106. 

Propertius  (Sextus  Aurelius) — Born  probably  about  B.C.  56. 

Diodorus  Siculus — Wrote  the  Bibliotheca  Historica  (in  Greek), 
after  the  death  of  Julius  Caesar  (B.C.  44).  Of  the 
40  books  composing  it  only  15  remain,  viz.  Books 
1  to  5  and  11  to  20. 

Juba — Died  A.D.  17.  Son  of  Juba  I.,  King  of  Numidia. 
Wrote  on  Natural  History. 

Pliny — Born  A.D.  23. 

Lucan — A.D.  38.  The  only  work  '  of  his  extant  is  the  Phar- 
salia,  a  poem  on  the  civil  war  between  Caesar  and 
Pompey. 


LIST  OF  A  UTHORS  CITED.  29 

Ignatius— Either  an  early  Patriarch,  A.D.  50,  or  Patriarch  of 

Constantinople,  799. 
Isidorus — Isidorus   of  Charaux   lived   probably    in   the   first 

century  of  our  era.     He  wrote  an  account  of  the 

Parthian  empire. 
Anian — Born  about  A.D;  100.     His  work  on  the  Natural 

History,  &c.  of  India  is  founded  on  the  authority  of 

Eratosthenes  and  Megasthenes. 
Pausanias — Author  of  the  Description  or  Itinerary  of  Greece. 

In  the  2nd  century. 
Philostratus — Born  about  A.D.  1 82. 
Solinus,  Caius  Julius — Did  not  write  in  the  Augustan  age,  for 

his  work  entitled  Polyhistor  is  merely  a  compilation 

from  Pliny's  Natural  History.     According  to   Sal- 

masius,  he  lived   about  two  hundred  years  after 

Pliny. 
Mlian — Probably  middle  of  the  3rd  century  A.D.     De  Natum 

Animalium.     In  Greek. 
Ammianus  Marcellinus — Lived  in  4th  century. 
Cardan,  Jerome  A. — About  the  end  of  4th  century  A.D. 

Printing  invented  in  China,  according  to  Du  Halde,  A.D.  924. 
Block-printing  used  in  A.D.  593. 

Marco  Polo — Reached  the  Court  of    Kublai  Khan   in   A.D. 

1275. 
Mandeville,  Sir  John  de — Travelled  for  thirty-three  years  in 

Asia  dating  from  A.D.   1327.      As  he  resided  for 

three  years  in  Peking,  it  is  probable  that  many  of 

his  fables  are  derived  from  Chinese  sources. 
Printing  invented  in  Europe  by  John  Koster  of  Haarlem, 

A.D.  1438. 
Scaliger,  Julius  Ccesar — Born  April  23rd,  1484.     Wrote  Aris- 

totelis  Hist.  Anim.  liber  decimus  cum  vers.  et  comment. 

8vo.     Lyon,  1584,  &c. 


30  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Gesner — Born  1516.     Historice  Animalium,  &c. 

Ambrose  Pare — Born  1517.     Surgeon. 

Belon,  Pierre. — Born  1518.     Zoologist,  Geographer,  &c. 

Aldrovandus — Born  1552.     Naturalist. 

Tavernier,  J.  B.— Born  1605. 

Pan  Ts'ao  Kang  Muh. — By  Li  She-chin  of  the  Ming  dynasty 

(A.D.  1368-1628). 
Yuen  Kien  Lei  Han.     A.D.  1718. 


31 


CHAPTER   I. 

ON    SOME    REMARKABLE    ANIMAL    FORMS. 

THE  reasoning  upon  the  question  whether  dragons,  winged 
snakes,  sea-serpents,  unicorns,  and  other  so-called  fabulous 
monsters  have  in  reality  existed,  and  at  dates  coeval  with 
man,  diverges  in  several  independent  directions. 

We  have  to  consider  :  — 

1. — Whether  the  characters  attributed  to  these  creatures 
are  or  are  not  so  abnormal  in  comparison  with  those  of  known 
types,  as  to  render  a  belief  in  their  existence  impossible  or 
the  reverse. 

2. — Whether  it  is  rational  to  suppose  that  creatures  so 
formidable,  and  apparently  so  capable  of  self-protection, 
should  disappear  entirely,  while  much  more  defenceless 
species  continue  to  survive  them. 

3. — The  myths,  traditions,  and  historical  allusions  from 
which  their  reality  may  be  inferred  require  to  be  classified 
and  annotated,  and  full  weight  given  to  the  evidence  which 
has  accumulated  of  the  presence  of  man  upon  the  earth 
during  ages  long  prior  to  the  historic  period,  and  which 
may  have  been  ages  of  slowly  progressive  civilization,  or 
perhaps  cycles  of  alternate  light  and  darkness,  of  knowledge 
and  barbarism. 

4. — Lastly,  some  inquiry  may  be  made  into  the  geo- 
graphical conditions  obtaining  at  the  time  of  their  possible 
existence. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


It  is  immaterial  which  of  these  investigations  is  first 
entered  upon,  and  it  will,  in  fact,  be  more  convenient  to 
defer  a  portion  of  them  until  we  arrive  at  the  sections  of  this 
volume  treating  specifically  of  the  different  objects  to  which 
it  is  devoted,  and  to  confine  our  attention  for  the  present  to 
those  subjects  which,  from  their  nature,  are  common  and 
in  a  sense  prefatory  to  the  whole  subject. 

I  shall  therefore  commence  with  a  short  examination  of 
some  of  the  most  remarkable  reptilian  forms  which  are 
known  to  have  existed,  and  for  that  purpose,  and  to  show 
their  general  relations,  annex  the  accompanying  tables, 
compiled  from  the  anatomy  of  vertebrated  animals  by 
Professor  Huxley  : — 


Amphibia. 


EEPTILES  CLASSIFIED  BY  HUXLEY. 


ORDER. 

— 

SUB-ORDER. 

GROUPS. 

ILLUSTRATIVE 
GENERA. 

RANGE  OF  THE 
ORDER. 

Chelonia. 

Land 

1.  Testudinea 

Pyxis,  Cinyxis 

-^ 

tortoises 

The  Chelonia 

J? 

River  and 

2.  Emydea 

a  Terra- 

Emys,  Cistudo 

are  first 

marsh  do. 

penes 

known  to 

b  Chelo- 

Chelys,  Chelodina 

-  occur  in  the 

dines 

Lias. 

Mud  tor- 

3. Trionychoidea 

Gymnopus 

toises 

Cryptopus 

To  recent. 

» 

Turtles 

4.  Euereta 

Sphargis,  Chelone 

. 

Plesio- 

5.         ... 

Post 

Plesiosaurus 

-] 

sauria. 

Triassic 

Pliosaurus 

f      Trias  to 

H 

6.         ... 

Triassic 

Nothosaurus 

Chalk 

Simosaurus 

inclusive. 

Pistosaurus 

Lacertilia. 

Geckos 

7.  Ascalabota 

recent 

M 

8.  Rhynchocephala 

Sphenodon  or 

9.  Homceosauria 

Rhyncocephalus 

Solenhofen 

J 

slates  to 

0 

Trias 

g 

» 

10.  Protosauria 

Permian 

5 

.. 

Monitor 

11.  Platynota 

recent 

J 

„ 

12.  Eunota 

c/- 

M 

Pn 

„ 

13.  Lacertina 

„ 

. 

14.  Chalcidea 

„ 

ON  SOME  REMARKABLE  ANIMAL  FORMS. 


33 


REPTILES  CLASSIFIED  BY  HUXLEY. — cont. 


ORDER. 

— 

SUB-ORDER. 

GROUPS           ILLUSTRATIVE            BANGE  OP  THE 
GENERA.                        ORDER. 

Lacertilia. 

15.  Scincoidea 

Recent       ~|  -g 

„ 

16.  Dolichosauria 

Dolichosaurus 

Chalk             g 

17.  Mosasauria 

Mososaurus 

Chalk          f  | 

.5 

^ 

18.  Amphisbaenoida 

Chirotes    Amphis- 

| 

baena 

cS 

,, 

19.  Chamaeleonida 

Ophidia. 

Non-vene- 

20.  Aglyphodontia 

Python,  Tortrix 

"I 

mous  con- 

stricting 

m 

21.  Opisthoglyphia 

Older 

M 

22.  Proteroglyphia 

)•     Tertiary 

to  recent. 

Vipers  and 

23.  Solenoglyphia 

Crotalus 

1 

Rattle- 

snakes 

M 

24.  Typhlopidae 

J 

Icthyo- 

Icthyosaurus 

Trias(?)  to 

sauria. 

chalk  mclusive. 

Crocodile. 

Alligator 

26.  Alligatoridse 

Alligator     Caiman 

Jacare 

n 

Crocodiles 

27.  Crocodilidae 

Crocodilus 

,, 

Gavials 

28.  Gavialidae 

Mecistops 
Rhynchosuchus 
Gavialis 

Trias  to 
recent 

„ 

29.  Teleosauridae 

Teleosaurus 

„ 

30.  Belodontidae 

Belodon 

Dicyno- 
dontia. 

31.         ... 

Dicynodon 
Oudenodon 

Trias. 

Ornitho- 

32.  Dinosauria 

Thecodontosaurus 

Trias 

scelida 

Scelidosaurus 

Lias             0  « 

Megalosaurus        J 
Iguanodon 

Middle  &     '3  § 
Upper        o  '-§ 
Mesozoic      «  | 

33.  Compsognatha 

Solenho-     »  5 

fen  slates 

Ptero- 
sauria. 

Flying 
reptile 

34.  Pterodactylidae 

Ornithopterus 
Pterodactylus 
Rhamphorynchus 

1  Lias  to  Chalk 
inclusive. 

Dimorphodon            J 

Area. 


The  most  bird-like  of  reptiles,  the  Pterosauria,  appear  to 
have  possessed  true  powers  of  flight ;  they  were  provided  with 
wings  formed  by  an  expansion  of  the  integument,  and  sup- 
ported by  an  enormous  elongation  of  the  ulnar  finger  of  the 

3 


34  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

anterior  limb.  The  generic  differences  are  based  upon  the 
comparative  lengths  of  the  tail,  and  upon  the  dentition.  In 
Pterodactylus  (see  Fig.  2,  p.  18),  the  tail  is  very  short,  and 
the  jaws  strong,  pointed,  and  toothed  to  their  anterior  ex- 
tremities. In  Bhamphorynchus  (see  Fig.  3,  p.  18),  the  tail  is 
very  long  and  the  teeth  are  not  continuous  to  the  extremities 
of  the  jaws,  which  are  produced  into  toothless  beaks.  The 
majority  of  the  species  are  small,  and  they  are  generally 
considered  to  have  been  inoffensive  creatures,  having  much 
the  habits  and  insectivorous  mode  of  living  of  bats.  One 
British  species,  however,  from  the  white  chalk  of  Maidstone, 
measures  more  than  sixteen  feet  across  the  outstretched 
wings;  and  other  forms  recently  discovered  by  Professor 
Marsh  in  the  Upper  Cretaceous  deposits  of  Kansas,  attain 
the  gigantic  proportions  of  nearly  twenty-five  feet  for  the 
same  measurements;  and  although  these  were  devoid  of 
teeth  (thus  approaching  the  class  Aves  still  more  closely), 
they  could  hardly  fail,  from  their  magnitude  and  powers  of 
flight,  to  have  been  formidable,  and  must,  with  their  weird 
aspects,  and  long  outstretched  necks  and  pointed  heads, 
have  been  at  least  sufficiently  alarming. 

We  need  go  no  farther  than  these  in  search  of  creatures 
which  would  realise  the  popular  notion  of  the  winged 
dragon. 

The  harmless  little  flying  lizards,  belonging  to  the  genus 
Draco,  abounding  in  the  East  Indian  archipelago,  which  have 
many  of  their  posterior  ribs  prolonged  into  an  expansion  of 
the  integument,  unconnected  with  the  limbs,  and  have  a 
limited  and  parachute-like  flight,  need  only  the  element  of 
size,  to  render  them  also  sufficiently  to  be  dreaded,  and 
capable  of  rivalling  the  Pterodactyls  in  suggesting  the 
general  idea  of  the  same  monster. 

It  is,  however,  when  we  pass  to  some  of  the  other  groups, 
that  we  find  ourselves  in  the  presence  of  forms  so  vast  and 
terrible,  as  to  more  than  realise  the  most  exaggerated  im- 


ON  SOME  REMARKABLE  ANIMAL  FORMS.  35 

pression  of  reptilian  power  and  ferocity  which  the  florid 
imagination  of  man  can  conceive. 

We  have  long  been  acquainted  with  numerous  gigantic 
terrestrial  Saurians,  ranging  throughout  the  whole  of  the 
Mesozoic  formations,  such  as  Iguanodon  (characteristic  of  the 
Wealden),  Megalosaurus  (Great  Saurian),  and  Hylceosaurus 
(Forest  Saurian),  huge  bulky  creatures,  the  last  of  which, 
at  least,  was  protected  by  dermal  armour  partially  produced 
into  prodigious  spines  ;  as  well  as  with  remarkable  forms 
essentially  marine,  such  as  Icthyosaurus  (Fish-like  Saurian), 
Plesiosaurus,  &c.,  adapted  to  an  oceanic  existence  and  pro- 
pelling themselves  by  means  of  paddles.  The  latter,  it  may 
be  remarked,  was  furnished  with  a  long  slender  swan-like 
neck,  which,  carried  above  the  surface  of  the  water,  would 
present  the  appearance  of  the  anterior  portion  of  a  ser- 
pent. 

To  the  related  land  forms  the  collective  term  Dinosauria 
(from  Seivds  "  terrible  ")  has  been  applied,  in  signification  of 
the  power  which  their  structure  and  magnitude  imply  that 
they  possessed ;  and  to  the  others  that  of  Enaliosauria,  as 
expressive  of  their  adaptation  to  a  maritime  existence.  Yet, 
wonderful  to  relate,  those  creatures  which  have  for  so  many 
years  commanded  our  admiration  fade  into  insignificance  in 
comparison  with  others  which  are  proved,  by  the  discoveries 
of  the  last  few  years,  to  have  existed  abundantly  upon,  or 
near  to,  the  American  continent  during  the  Cretaceous  and 
Jurassic  periods,  by  which  they  are  surpassed,  in  point  of 
magnitude,  as  much  as  they  themselves  exceed  the  mass 
of  the  larger  Vertebrata. 

Take,  for  example,  those  referred  to  by  Professor  Marsh  in 
the  course  of  an  address  to  the  American  Association  for  the 
Advancement  of  Science,  in  1877,  in  the  following  terms  : — 
"  The  reptiles  most  characteristic  of  our  American  cretaceous 
strata  are  the  Mososauria,  a  group  with  very  few  representa- 
tives in  other  parts  of  the  world.  In  our  cretaceous  seas 


36  MYTHICAL  MONSTEKS. 

they  rule  supreme,  as  their  numbers,  size,  and  carnivorous 
habits  enabled  them  to  easily  vanquish  all  rivals.  Some 
were  at  least  sixty  feet  in  length,  and  the  smallest  ten  or 
twelve.  In  the  inland  cretaceous  sea  from  which  the  Kocky 
Mountains  were  beginning  to  emerge,  these  ancient  '  sea- 
serpents  '  abounded,  and  many  were  entombed  in  its  muddy 
bottom  ;  on  one  occasion,  as  I  rode  through  a  valley  washed 
out  of  this  old  ocean-bed,  I  saw  no  less  than  seven  different 
skeletons  of  these  monsters  in  sight  at  once.  The  Moso- 
sauria  were  essentially  swimming  lizards  with  four  well- 
developed  paddles,  and  they  had  little  affinity  with  modern 
serpents,  to  which  they  have  been  compared." 

Or,  again,  notice  the  specimens  of  the  genus  Cidastes, 
which  are  also  described  as  veritable  sea-serpents  of  those 
ancient  seas,  whose  huge  bones  and  almost  incredible  number 
of  vertebrae  show  them  to  have  attained  a  length  of  nearly 
two  hundred  feet.  The  remains  of  no  less  than  ten  of  these 
monsters  were  seen  by  Professor  Mudge,  while  riding  through 
the  Mauvaise  Terres  of  Colorado,  strewn  upon  the  plains, 
their  whitened  bones  bleached  in  the  suns  of  centuries,  and 
their  gaping  jaws  armed  with  ferocious  teeth,  telling  a 
wonderful  tale  of  their  power  when  alive. 

The  same  deposits  have  been  equally  fertile  in  the  remains 
of  terrestrial  animals  of  gigantic  size.  The  Titanosaurus 
montanus,  believed  to  have  been  herbivorous,  is  estimated  to 
have  reached  fifty  or  sixty  feet  in  length  ;  while  other  Dino- 
saurians  of  still  more  gigantic  proportions,  from  the  Jurassic 
beds  of  the  Rocky  Mountains,  have  been  described  by  Pro- 
fessor Marsh.  Among  the  discovered  remains  of  Atlantosaurus 
immanis  is  a  femur  over  six  feet  in  length,  and  it  is  estimated 
from  a  comparison  of  this  specimen  with  the  same  bone  in 
living  reptiles  that  this  species,  if  similar  in  proportions  to 
the  crocodile,  would  have  been  over  one  hundred  feet  in 
length. 

But  even  yet  the  limit  has  not  been  reached,  and  we  hear 


ON  SOME  REMARKABLE  ANIMAL  FORMS. 


37 


of  the  discovery  of  the  remains  of  another  form,  of  such 
Titanic  proportions  as  to  possess  a  thigh-bone  over  twelve 
feet  in  length. 


FIG.  5. — MONSTER  BONKS  OF  EXTINCT  GIGANTIC  SAURIANS  FROM  COLORADO,  SHOWING 
RELATIVE  PROPORTIONS  TO  CORRESPONDING  BONE  IN  THE  CROCODILE  (A). 
(From  the  "  Scientific  American.") 


38  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

From  these  considerations  it  is  evident  that,  on  account  of 
the  dimensions  usually  assigned  to  them,  no  discredit  can  be 
attached  to  the  existence  of  the  fabulous  monsters  of  which 
we  shall  speak  hereafter;  for  these,  in  the  various  myths, 
rarely  or  never  equal  in  size  creatures  which  science 
shows  to  have  existed  in  a  comparatively  recent  geological 
age,  while  the  quaintest  conception  could  hardly  equal 
the  reality  of  yet  another  of  the  American  Dinosaurs, 
Stegosaurus,  which  appears  to  have  been  herbivorous,  and 
more  or  less  aquatic  in  habit,  adapted  for  sitting  upon  its 
hinder  extremities,  and  protected  by  bony  plate  and  nume- 
rous spines.  It  reached  thirty  feet  in  length.  Professor 
Marsh  considers  that  this,  when  alive,  must  have  presented 
the  strangest  appearance  of  all  the  .Dinosaurs  yet  discovered. 

The  affinities  of  birds  and  reptiles  have  been  so  clearly 
demonstrated  of  late  years,  as  to  cause  Professor  Huxley  and 
many  other  comparative  anatomists  to  bridge  over  the  wide 
gap  which  was  formerly  considered  to  divide  the  two  classes, 
and  to  bracket  them  together  in  one  class,  to  which  the  name 
Sauropsidse  has  been  given.* 

There  are,  indeed,  not  a  few  remarkable  forms,  as  to  the 
class  position  of  which,  whether  they  should  be  assigned  to 

*  "  It  is  now  generally  admitted  by  biologists  who  have  made  a  study 
of  the  Vertebrata  that  birds  have  come  down  to  us  through  the  Dino- 
saurs, and  the  close  affinity  of  the  latter  with  recent  struthious  birds 
will  hardly  be  questioned.  The  case  amounts  almost  to  a  demonstration 
if  we  compare  with  Dinosaurs  their  contemporaries,  the  Mesozoic  birds. 
The  classes  of  birds  and  reptiles  as  now  living  are  separated  by  a  gulf 
so  profound  that  a  few  years  since  it  was  cited  by  the  opponents  of 
evolution  as  the  most  important  break  in  the  animal  series,  and  one 
which  that  doctrine  could  not  bridge  over.  Since  then,  as  Huxley  has 
clearly  shown,  this  gap  has  been  virtually  filled  by  the  discoveries  of 
bird-like  reptiles  and  reptilian  birds.  Compsognathus  and  Archaeo- 
pteryx  of  the  old  world,  and  Icthyornis  and  Hesperornis  of  the  new, 
are  the  stepping-stones  by  which  the  evolutionist  of  to-day  leads  the 
doubting  brother  across  the  shallow  remnant  of  the  gulf,  once  thought 
impassable." — Marsh. 


ON  SOME  REMARKABLE  ANIMAL  FORMS.  39 


birds  or  reptiles,  opinion  was  for  a  long  time,  and  is  in  a  few 
instances  still,  divided.  It  is,  for  example,  only  of  late 
years  that  the  fossil  form  Archaeopteryx*  (Fig.  4,  p.  19) 
from  the  Solenhofen  slates,  has  been  definitely  relegated 
to  the  former,  but  arguments  against  this  disposal  of  it 
have  been  based  upon  the  beak  or  jaws  being  furnished 
with  true  teeth,  and  the  feather  of  the  tail  attached  to 


FlG.    6. SlVATHERIUM    (RESTORED),    FROM    THE    UPPER    MlOCENE    DEPOSITS    OF   THE 

SIWALIK  HILLS.     (After  Figuier.) 

a  series  of  vertebras,  instead  of  a  single  flattened  one  as 
in  birds.  It  appears  to  have  been  entirely  plumed,  and  to 
have  had  a  moderate  power  of  flight. 

On  the  other  hand,  the  Ornithopterus  is  only  provisionally 

*  Professor  Carl  Vogt  regards  the  Archseopteryx  "  as  neither  reptile 
nor  bird,  but  as  constituting  an  intermediate  type.  He  points  out  that 
there  is  complete  homology  between  the  scales  or  spines  of  reptiles  and 
the  feathers  of  birds.  The  feather  of  the  bird  is  only  a  reptile's  scale 
further  developed,  and  the  reptile's  scale  is  a  feather  which  has  remained 
in  the  embryonic  condition.  He  considers  the  reptilian  hoinologies  to 
preponderate." 


40 


MYTHICAL  MONSTEES. 


classed  with  reptiles,  while  the  connection  between  the  two 
classes  is  drawn  still  closer  by  the  copious  discovery  of  the 
birds  from  the  Cretaceous  formations  of  America,  for  which 
we  are  indebted  to  Professor  Marsh. 

The  Lepidosiren,  also,  is  placed  mid- way  between  reptiles 
and  fishes.  Professor  Owen  and  other  eminent  physiologists 
consider  it  a  fish  ;  Professor  Bischoff  and  others,  an  amphi- 
bian reptile.  It  has  a  two-fold  apparatus  for  respiration, 
partly  aquatic,  consisting  of  gills,  and  partly  aerial,  of  true 
lungs. 

So  far,  then,  as  abnormality  of  type  is  concerned,  we  have 
here  instances  quite  as  remarkable  as  those  presented  jjby 
most  of  the  strange  monsters  with  the  creation  of  which 
mythological  fancy  has  been  credited. 


FIG.  7. — SKELETON  OF  MEGATHERIUM.     (After  Figuier.) 

Among  mammals  I  shall  only  refer  to  the  Megatherium, 
which  appears  to  have  been  created  to  burrow  in  the  earth 
and  to  feed  upon  the  roots  of  trees  and  shrubs,  for  which 
purpose  every  organ  of  its  heavy  frame  was  adapted.  This 


I 


ON  SOME  REMARKABLE  ANIMAL  FORMS.  41 


Hercules  among  animals  was  as  large  as  an  elephant  or 
rhinoceros  of  the  largest  species,  and  might  well,  as  it  has 
existed  until  a  late  date,  have  originated  the  myths,  current 
among  the  Indians  of  South  America,  of  a  gigantic  tun- 
nelling or  burrowing  creature,  incapable  of  supporting  the 
light  of  day.* 


*  A  similar  habit  is  ascribed  by  the  Chinese  to  the  mammoth  and  to 
the  gigantic  Sivatherium  (Fig.  6,  p.  39),  a  four-horned  stag,  which  had 
the  bulk  of  an  elephant,  and  exceeded  it  in  [height.  It  was  remarkable 
for  being  in  some  respects  between  the  stags  and  the  pachyderms.  The 
Dinotherium  (Fig.  8),  which  had  a  trunk  like  an  elephant,  and  two 
inverted  tusks,  presented  in  its  skull  a  mixture  of  the  characteristics 
of  the  elephant,  hippopotamus,  tapir,  and  dugong.  Its  remains  occur 
in  the  Miocene  of  Europe. 


FIG.  8. — DINOTHKRIUM.     (After  Figuier.) 


42  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


CHAPTER  II. 

EXTINCTION    OF    SPECIES. 

IN  reviewing  the  past  succession  of  different  forms  of  ancient 
life  upon  the  globe,  we  are  reminded  of  a  series  of  dissolving 
views,  in  which  each  species  evolves  itself  by  an  imperceptible 
gradation  from  some  pre-existing  one,  arrives  at  its  maximum 
of  individuality,  and  then  slowly  fades  away,  while  another 
type,  either  higher  or  lower,  evolved  in  turn  from  it,  emerges 
from  obscurity,  and  succeeds  it  on  the  field  of  view. 

Specific  individuality  has  in  all  cases  a  natural  term,  de- 
pendent on  physical  causes,  but  that  term  is  in  many  cases 
abruptly  anticipated  by  a  combination  of  unfavourable  con- 
ditions. 

Alteration  of  climate,  isolation  by  geological  changes,  such 
as  the  submergence  of  continents  and  islands,  and  the  com- 
petition of  other  species,  are  among  the  causes  which  have 
at  all  times  operated  towards  its  destruction ;  while,  since  the 
evolution  of  man,  his  agency,  so  far  as  we  can  judge  by  what 
we  know  of  his  later  history,  has  been  especially  active  in 
the  same  direction. 

The  limited  distribution  of  many  species,  even  when  not 
enforced  by  insular  conditions,  is  remarkable,  and,  of  course, 
highly  favourable  to  their  destruction.  A  multiplicity  of 
examples  are  familiar  to  naturalists,  and  possibly  not  a 
few  may  have  attracted  the  attention  of  the  ordinary  observer. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  43 

For  instance,  it  is  probably  generally  known,  that  in  our 
own  island,  the  red  grouse  (which,  by  the  way,  is  a  species 
peculiar  to  Great  Britain)  is  confined  to  certain  moorlands, 
the  ruffs  and  reeves  to  fen  districts,  and  the  nightingale,* 
chough,  and  other  species  to  a  few  counties ;  while  Ireland 
is  devoid  of  almost  all  the  species  of  reptiles  common  to 
Great  Britain.  In  the  former  cases,  the  need  of  or  predilec- 
tion for  certain  foods  probably  determines  the  favourite 
locality,  and  there  are  few  countries  which  would  not  furnish 
similar  examples.  In  the  latter,  the  explanation  depends  on 
biological  conditions  dating  prior  to  the  separation  of  Ireland 
from  the  main  continent.  Among  birds,  it  might  fairly  be 
presumed  that  the  power  of  flight  would  produce  unlimited 
territorial  expansion,  but  in  many  instances  the  reverse  is 
found  to  be  the  case  :  a  remarkable  example  being  afforded 
by  the  island  of  Tasmania,  a  portion  of  which  is  called  the 
unsettled  waste  lands,  or  Western  Country.  This  district, 
which  comprises  about  one-third  of  the  island  upon  the 
western  side,  and  is  mainly  composed  of  mountain  chains  of 
granites,  quartzite,  and  mica  schists,  is  entirely  devoid  of  the 
numerous  species  of  garrulous  and  gay-plumaged  birds,  such 
as  the  Mynah  mocking-bird,  white  cockatoo,  wattle  bird,  and 
Kosella  parrot,  though  these  abundantly  enliven  the  eastern 
districts,  which  are  fertilized  by  rich  soils  due  to  the  presence 
of  ranges  of  basalt,  greenstone,  and  other  trappean  rocks. 

Another  equally  striking  instance  is  given  by  my  late 
father,  Mr.  J.  Gould,  in  his  work  on  the  humming-birds. 
Of  two  species,  inhabiting  respectively  the  adjacent  moun- 


*  "  It  enters  Europe  early  in  April,  spreads  over  France,  Britain, 
Denmark,  and  the  south  of  Sweden,  which  it  reaches  by  the  beginning 
of  May.  It  does  not  enter  Brittany,  the  Channel  Islands,  or  the  western 
part  of  England,  never  visiting  Wales,  except  the  extreme  south  of 
Glamorganshire,  and  rarely  extending  farther  north  than  Yorkshire." — 
A.  E,  Wallace,  Geographical  Distribution  of  Animals,  vol.  i.  p.  21. 
London,  1876. 


44  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

tains  of  Pichincha  and  Chimborazo  at  certain  elevations,  each 
is  strictly  confined  to  its  own  mountain  ;  and,  if  my  memory 
serves  me  correctly,  he  mentions  similar  instances  of  species 
peculiar  to  different  peaks  of  the  Andes. 

Limitation  by  insular  isolation  is  intelligible,  especially  in 
the  case  of  mammals  and  reptiles,  and  of  birds  possessing 
but  small  power  of  flight ;  and  we  are,  therefore,  not  sur- 
prised to  find  Mr.  Grosse  indicating,  among  other  examples, 
that  even  the  smallest  of  the  Antilles  has  each  a  fauna  of  its 
own,  while  the  humming-birds,  some  of  the  parrots,  cuckoos, 
and  pigeons,  and  many  of  the  smaller  birds  are  peculiar  to 
Jamaica.  He  states  still  further,  that  in  the  latter  instance 
many  of  the  animals  are  not  distributed  over  the  whole 
island,  but  confined  to  a  single  small  district. 

Continental  limitation  is  effected  by  mountain  barriers. 
Thus,  according  to  Mr.  Wallace,  almost  all  the  mammalia, 
birds,  and  insects  on  one  side  of  the  Andes  and  Rocky 
Mountains  are  distinct  in  species  from  those  on  the 
other ;  while  a  similar  difference,  but  smaller  in  degree, 
exists  with  reference  to  regions  adjacent  to  the  Alps  and 
Pyrenees. 

Climate,  broad  rivers,  seas,  oceans,  forests,  and  even  large 
desert  wastes,  like  the  Sahara  or  the  great  desert  of  Gobi, 
also  act  more  or  less  effectively  as  girdles  which  confine 
species  within  certain  limits. 

Dependence  on  each  other  or  on  supplies  of  appropriate 
food  also  form  minor  yet  practical  factors  in  the  sum  of 
limitation ;  and  a  curious  example  of  the  first  is  given  by 
Dr.  Van  Lennep  with  reference  to  the  small  migratory  birds 
that  are  unable  to  perform  the  flight  of  three  hundred  and 
fifty  miles  across  the  Mediterranean.  He  states  that  these 
are  carried  across  on  the  backs  of  cranes.* 


*  Bible  Customs  in  Bible  Lands.     By  H.  J.  Van  Lennep,  D.D.     1875. 
Quoted  in  Nature,  March  24,  1881. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  45 

In  the  autumn  many  flocks  of  cranes  may  be  seen  coming  from  the 
North,  with  the  first  cold  blast  from  that  quarter,  flying  low,  and  utter- 
ing a  peculiar  cry,  as  if  of  alarm,  as  they  circle  over  the  cultivated 
plains.  Little  birds  of  every  species  may  be  seen  flying  up  to  them, 
while  the  twittering  cries  of  those  already  comfortably  settled  upon 
their  backs  may  be  distinctly  heard.  On  their  return  in  the  spring  they 
fly  high,  apparently  considering  that  their  little  passengers  can  easily 
find  their  way  down  to  the  earth. 

The  question  of  food-supply  is  involved  in  the  more 
extended  subject  of  geological  structure,  as  controlling  the 
flora  and  the  insect  life  dependent  on  it.  As  an  example 
we  may  cite  the  disappearance  of  the  capercailzie  from 
Denmark  with  the  decay  of  the  pine  forests  abundant  during 
late  Tertiary  periods. 

Collision,  direct  or  indirect,  with  inimical  species  often 
has  a  fatal  ending.  Thus  the  dodo  was  exterminated  by  the 
swine  which  the  early  visitors  introduced  to  the  Mauritius 
and  permitted  to  run  wild  there  ;  while  the  indigenous  insects, 
mollusca,  and  perhaps  some  of  the  birds  of  St.  Helena, 
disappeared  as  soon  as  the  introduction  of  goats  caused  the 
destruction  of  the  whole  flora  of  forest  trees. 

The  Tsetse  fly  extirpates  all  horses,  dogs,  and  cattle,  from 
certain  districts  of  South  Africa,  and  a  representative  species 
in  Paraguay  is  equally  fatal  to  new-born  cattle  and  horses. 

Mr.  Darwin  *  shows  that  the  struggle  is  more  severe 
between  species  of  the  same  genus,  when  they  come  into 
competition  with  each  other,  than  between  species  of  distinct 
genera.  Thus  one  species  of  swallow  has  recently  expelled 
another  from  part  of  the  United  States;  and  the  missel- 
thrush  has  driven  the  song-thrush  from  part  of  Scotland. 
In  Australia  the  imported  hive-bee  is  rapidly  exterminating 
the  small  stingless  native  bee,  and  similar  cases  might  be 
found  in  any  number. 

Mr.  Wallace,  in  quoting  Mr.  Darwin  as  to  these  facts, 
points  the  conclusion  that  "  any  slight  change,  therefore, 

*  Origin  of  Species,  C.  Darwin.     5th  edit.     1869. 


46  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

of  physical  geography  or  of  climate,  which  allows  allied 
species  hitherto  inhabiting  distinct  areas  to  come  into 
contact,  will  often  lead  to  the  extermination  of  one  of  them." 
It  is  the  province  of  the  palaeontologist  to  enumerate  the 
many  remarkable  forms  which  have  passed  away  since  man's 
first  appearance  upon  the  globe,  and  to  trace  their  fluctuations 
over  both  hemispheres  as  determined  by  the  advance  and 
retreat  of  glacial  conditions,  and  by  the  protean  forms 
assumed  by  past  and  existing  continents  under  oscillations 
of  elevation  and  depression.  Many  interesting  points,  such 
as  the  dates  of  the  successive  separation  of  Ireland  and 
Great  Britain  from  the  main  continent,  can  be  determined 
with  accuracy  from  the  record  furnished  by  the  fossil  remains 
of  animals  of  those  times ;  and  many  interesting  associations 
of  animals  with  man  at  various  dates,  in  our  present  island 
home  and  in  other  countries,  have  been  traced  by  the 
discovery  of  their  remains  in  connection  with  his,  in  bone 
deposits  in  caverns  and  elsewhere. 

Conversely,  most  valuable  deductions  are  drawn  by  the 
zoologist  from  the  review  which  he  is  enabled  to  take, 
through  the  connected  labours  of  his  colleagues  in  all 
departments,  of  the  distinct  life  regions  now  mapped  out 
upon  the  face  of  the  globe.  These,  after  the  application  of 
the  necessary  corrections  for  various  disturbing  or  controlling 
influences  referred  to  above,  afford  proof  reaching  far  back 
into  past  periods,  of  successive  alterations  in  the  disposition 
of  continents  and  oceans,  and  of  connections  long  since 
obliterated  between  distant  lands. 

The  palaeontologist  reasons  from  the  past  to  the  present, 
the  zoologist  from  the  present  to  the  past ;  and  their  mutual 
labours  explain  the  evolution  of  existing  forms,  and  the 
causes  of  the  disparity  or  connection  between  those  at 
present  characterizing  the  different  portions  of  the  surface  of 
the  globe. 

The  palaeontologist,  for  example,  traces  the  descent  of  the 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  47 

horse,  which,  until  its  reintroduction  by  the  Spaniards  was 
unknown  in  the  New  World,  through  a  variety  of  inter- 
mediate forms,  to  the  genus  Orohippus  occurring  in  Eocene 
deposits  in  Utah  and  Wyoming.  This  animal  was  no  larger 
than  a  fox,  and  possessed  four  separated  toes  in  front,  and 
three  behind.  Domestic  cattle  he  refers  to  the  Bos  primi- 
genius,  and  many  existing  Carnivora  to  Tertiary  forms  such 
as  the  cave-bear,  cave-lion,  sabre-tiger,  and  the  like. 

The  zoologist  groups  the  existing  fauna  into  distinct 
provinces,  and  demands,  in  explanation  of  the  anomalies 
which  these  exhibit,  the  reconstruction  of  large  areas,  of 
which  only  small  outlying  districts  remain  at  the  present 
date,  in  many  instances  widely  separated  by  oceans,  though 
once  forming  parts  of  the  same  continent;  and  so,  for  the 
simile  readily  suggests  itself,  the  workers  in  another  branch 
of  science,  Philology,  argue  from  words  and  roots  scat- 
tered like  fossils  through  the  various  dialects  of  very  distant 
countries,  a  mutual  descent  from  a  common  Aryan  language: 
the  language  of  a  race  of  which  no  historical  record  exists, 
though  in  regard  to  its  habits,  customs,  and  distribution  much 
may  be  affirmed  from  the  large  collection  of  word  speci- 
mens stored  in  philological  museums.  . 

Thus  Mr.  Sclater,  on  zoological  grounds,  claims  the  late 
existence  of  a  continent  which  he  calls  Lemuria,  extending 
from  Madagascar  to  Ceylon  and  Sumatra ;  and  for  similar 
reasons  Mr.  Wallace  extends  the  Australia  of  Tertiary 
periods  to  New  Guinea  and  the  Solomon  Islands,  and  per- 
haps to  Fiji,  and  from  its  marsupial  types  infers  a  connection 
with  the  northern  continent  during  the  Secondary  period. 

Again,  the  connection  of  Europe  with  North  Africa  during 
a  late  geological  period  is  inferred  by  many  zoologists 
from  the  number  of  identical  species  of  mammalia  inhabit- 
ing the  opposite  sides  of  the  Mediterranean,  and  palaeontolo- 
gists confirm  this  by  the  discovery  of  the  remains  of 
elephants  in  cave-deposits  in  Malta,  and  of  hippopotami  in 

x-C*      <*  ' 


48  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Gibraltar;  while  hydrographers  furnish  the  supplemental 
suggestive  evidence  that  an  elevation  of  only  fifteen  hun- 
dred feet  would  be  sufficient  to  establish  two  broad  connec- 
tions between  the  two  continents — so  as  to  unite  Italy  with 
Tripoli  and  Spain  with  Morocco,  and  to  convert  the  Mediter- 
ranean Sea  into  two  great  lakes,  which  appears,  in  fact,  to 
have  been  its  condition  during  the  Pliocene  and  Post  Plio- 
cene periods. 

It  was  by  means  of  these  causeways  that  the  large  pachy- 
derms entered  Britain,  then  united  to  the  continent;  and 
it  was  over  them  they  retreated  when  driven  back  by  glacial 
conditions,  their  migration  northward  being  effectually  pre- 
vented by  the  destruction  of  the  connecting  arms  of  land. 

Some  difference  of  opinion   exists    among  naturalists 
to  the  extent   to  which  zoological  regions  should  be  sub- 
divided, and  as  to  their  respective  limitations. 

But  Mr.  A.  E.  Wallace,  who  has  most  recently  written 
on  the  subject,  is  of  opinion  that  the  original  division  pro- 
posed by  Mr.  Sclater  in  1857  is  the  most  tenable,  and  he 
therefore  adopts  it  in  the  very  exhaustive  work  upon  the 
geographical  distribution  of  animals  which  he  has  recently 
issued.  Mr.  Sclater's  Six  Regions  are  as  follows  : — 

1. — The  Palcearctic  Region,  including  Europe,  Temperate 
Asia,  and  North  Africa  to  the  Atlas  mountains. 

2. — The  Ethiopian  Region,  Africa  south  of  the  Atlas, 
Madagascar,  and  the  Mascarene  islands,  with 
Southern  Arabia. 

3. — The  Indian  Region,  including  India  south  of  the 
Himalayas,  to  South  China,  and  to  Borneo  and  Java. 

4. — The  Australian  Region,  including  Celebes  and  Lombok, 
Eastward  to  Australia  and  the  Pacific  islands. 

5. — The  Nearctic  Region,  including  Greenland,  and  North 
America,  to  Northern  Mexico. 

6. — The  Neotropical  Region,  including  South  America,  the 
Antilles,  and  Southern  Mexico. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  49 

This  arrangement  is  based  upon  a  detailed  examination  of 
the  chief  genera  and  families  of  birds,  and  also  very  nearly 
represents  the  distribution  of  mammals  and  of  reptiles.  Its 
regions  are  not,  as  in  other  subsequently  proposed  and  more 
artificial  systems,  controlled  by  climate  ;  for  they  range,  in 
some  instances,  from  the  pole  to  the  tropics.  It  probably 
approaches  more  nearly  than  any  other  yet  proposed  to  that 
desideratum,  a  division  of  the  earth  into  regions,  founded 
on  a  collation  of  the  groups  of  forms  indigenous  to  or  typical 
of  them,  and  upon  a  selection  of  those  peculiar  to  them;  with 
a  disregard  of,  or  only  admitting  with  caution,  any  which, 
though  common  to  and  apparently  establishing  connection 
between  two  or  more  regions,  may  have  in  fact  but  little 
value  for  the  purpose  of  such  comparison  ;  from  the  fact  of 
its  being  possible  to  account  for  their  extended  range  by 
their  capability  of  easy  transport  from  one  region  to  another 
by  common  natural  agencies.* 

Such  an  arrangement  should  be  consistent  with  the  retro- 
spective information  afforded  by  palaeontology ;  and,  taking 
an  extended  view  of  the  subject,  be  not  merely  a  catalogue 


*  Thus  Mr.  Wallace  considers  that  the  identity  of  the  small  fish, 
Galaxias  attenuatus,  which  occurs  in  the  mountain  streams  of  Tasmania, 
with  one  found  in  those  of  New  Zealand,  the  Falkland  Islands,  and  the 
temperate  regions  of  South  America,  cannot  be  considered  as  demon- 
strating a  land  connection  between  these  places  within  the  period  of 
its  specific  existence.  For  there  is  a  possibility  that  its  ova  have 
been  transported  from  one  point  to  another  on  floating  ice;  and  for 
similar  reasons  fresh- water  fish  generally  are  unsafe  guides  to  a 
classification  of  zoological  regions.  Mr.  Darwin  has  shown  (Origin  of 
Species,  and  Nature,  vol.  xviii.  p.  120  and  vol.  xxv.  p.  529)  that  mollusca 
can  be  conveyed  attached  to  or  entangled  in  the  claws  of  migratory 
birds.  Birds  themselves  are  liable  to  be  blown  great  distances  by 
gales  of  wind.  Beetles  and  other  flying  insects  may  be  similarly 
transferred.  Reptiles  are  occasionally  conveyed  on  floating  logs  and 
uprooted  trees.  Mammals  alone  appear  to  be  really  trustworthy  guides 
towards  such  a  classification,  from  their  being  less  liable  than  the 
other  classes  to  accidental  dispersion. 

4 


50  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

of  the  present,  but  also  an  index  of  the  past.  It  should 
afford  an  illustration  of  an  existing  phase  of  the  distribution 
of  animal  life,  considered  as  the  last  of  a  long  series  of  similar 
phases  which  have  successively  resulted  from  changes  in  the 
disposition  of  land  and  water,  and  from  other  controlling 
agencies,  throughout  all  time.  A  reconstruction  of  the  areas 
respectively  occupied  by  the  sea  and  the  land  at  different 
geological  periods  will  be  possible,  or  at  least  greatly  facili- 
tated, when  a  complete  system  of  similar  groupings,  illus- 
trative of  each  successive  period,  has  been  compiled. 

It  is  obvious  that  any  great  cosmical  change,  affecting  to 
a  wide  extent  any  of  the  regions,  might  determine  a  destruc- 
tion of  specific  existence  ;  and  this  on  a  large  scale,  in  com- 
parison with  the  change  which  is  always  progressing  in  a 
smaller  degree  in  the  different  and  isolated  divisions. 

The  brief  remarks  which  I  have  made  on  this  subject  are 
intended  to  suggest,  rather  than  to  demonstrate — which  could 
only  be  done  by  a  lengthy  series  of  examples — the  causes 
influencing  specific  existence  and  its  in  many  cases  extreme 
frailty  of  tenure.  And  I  shall  now  conclude  by  citing  from 
the  works  of  Lyell  and  Wallace  a  short  list  of  notable 
species,  now  extinct,  whose  remains  have  been  collected 
from  late  Tertiary,  and  Post  Tertiary  deposits — that  is  to 
say,  at  a  time  subsequent  to  the  appearance  of  man.  From 
other  authors  I  have  extracted  an  enumeration  of  species 
which  have  become  locally  or  entirely  extinct  within  the 
historic  period. 

These  instances  will,  I  think,  be  sufficient  to  show  that, 
as  similar  destructive  causes  must  have  been  in  action 
during  pre -historic  times,  it  is  probable  that,  besides  those 
remarkable  animals  of  which  remains  have  been  discovered, 
many  others  which  then  existed  may  have  perished  without 
leaving  any  trace  of  their  existence.  There  is,  consequently, 
a  possibility  that  some  at  least  of  the  so-called  myths 
respecting  extraordinary  creatures,  hitherto  considered  fabu- 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  51 


lous,  may  merely  be  distorted  accounts — traditions — of  species 
as  yet  unrecognised  by  Science,  which  have  actually  existed, 
and  that  not  remotely,  as  man's  congener. 


FIG.  0. — THK  MAMMOTH.     (After  Jukes.) 

Extinct  Post  Tertiary  Mammalia. 

THE  MAMMOTH. — Among  other  remarkable  forms  whose 
remains  have  been  discovered  in  those  later  deposits,  in 
which  geologists  are  generally  agreed  that  remains  of  man 
or  traces  of  his  handicraft  have  also  been  recognised,  there 
is  one  which  stands  out  prominently  both  for  its  magnitude 
and  extensive  range  in  time  and  space.  Although  the  animal 
itself  is  now  entirely  extinct,  delineations  by  the  hand  of 
Palaeolithic  man  have  been  preserved,  and  even  frozen  car- 
cases, with  the  flesh  uncorrupted  and  fit  for  food,  have  been 
,  occasionally  discovered. 

This  is  the  mammoth,  the  Elephas  primigenius  of  Blumen- 
bach,   a   gigantic    elephant  nearly   a  third  taller   than  the 

largest  modern  species,  and  twice  its  weight.     Its  body  was 

4  * 


52  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

protected  from  the  severity  of  the  semi- arctic  conditions 
under  which  it  flourished  by  a  dense  covering  of  reddish 
wool,  and  long  black  hair,  and  its  head  was  armed  or  orna- 
mented with  tusks  exceeding  twelve  feet  in  length,  and 
curiously  curved  into  three  parts  of  a  circle.  Its  ivory  has 
long  been,  and  still  is,  a  valuable  article  of  commerce,  more 
especially  in  North-eastern  Asia,  and  in  Eschscholtz  Bay 
in  North  America,  near  Behring's  straits,  where  entire 
skeletons  are  occasionally  discovered,  and  where  even  the 
nature  of  its  food  has  been  ascertained  from  the  undigested 
contents  of  its  stomach. 

There  is  a  well-known  case  recorded  of  a  specimen  found 
(1799),  frozen  and  encased  in  ice,  at  the  mouth  of  the  Lena. 
It  was  sixteen  feet  long,  and  the  flesh  was  so  well  preserved 
that  the  Yakuts  used  it  as  food  for  their  dogs.  But  similar 
instances  occurred  previously,  for  we  find  the  illustrious 
savant  and  Emperor  Kang  Hi  [A.D.  1662  to  1723]  penning 
the  following  note*  upon  what  could  only  have  been  this 
species  : — 

"  The  cold  is  extreme,  and  nearly  continuous  on  the 
coasts  of  the  northern  sea  beyond  Tai-Tong-Kiang.  It  is 
on  this  coast  that  the  animal  called  Fen  Chou  is  found,  the 
form  of  which  resembles  that  of  a  rat,  but  which  equals  an 
elephant  in  size.  It  lives  in  obscure  caverns,  and  flies  from 
the  light.  There  is  obtained  from  it  an  ivory  as  white  as 
that  of  the  elephant,  but  easier  to  work,  and  which  will  not 
split.  Its  flesh  is  very  cold  and  excellent  for  refreshing  the 
blood.  The  ancient  work  Chin-y-king  speaks  of  this  animal 
in  these  terms  :  '  There  is  in  the  depths  of  the  north  a  rat 
which  weighs  as  much  as  a  thousand  pounds  ;  its  flesh  is  very 
good  for  those  who  are  heated.'  The  Tsee-Chou  calls  it  Tai- 
Chou  and  speaks  of  another  species  which  is  not  so  large.  It 


*  Memoiree  concernant  I'hietoire,  &c.  des  Chinois,  par  les  Missionaires 
de  PeJcin,  vol.  iv.  p.  481, 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  53 

says  that  this  is  as  big  as  a  buffalo,  buries  itself  like  a  mole, 
flies  the  light,  and  remains  nearly  always  under  ground ; 
it  is  said  that  it  would  die  if  it  saw  the  light  of  the  sun  or 
even  that  of  the  moon." 


FIG.  10.— TOOTH  OF  THE  MAMMOTH.     (After  Figuier.) 

It  seems  probable  that  discoveries  of  mammoth  tusks 
formed  in  part  the  basis  for  the  story  which  Pliny  tells  in 
reference  to  fossil  ivory.  He  says  *  : —  "  These  animals 
[elephants]  are  well  aware  that  the  only  spoil  that  we  are 
anxious  to  procure  of  them  is  the  part  which  forms  their 
weapon  of  defence,  by  Juba  called  their  horns,  but  by  Hero- 
dotus, a  much  older  writer,  as  well  as  by  general  usage,  and 
more  appropriately,  their  teeth.  Hence  it  is  that,  when 
these  tusks  have  fallen  off,  either  from  accident  or  old  age, 
they  bury  them  in  the  earth." 

Nordenskjold  f  states  that  the  savages  with  whom  he  came 

in   contact  frequently  offered   to   him  very  fine  mammoth 

'  tusks,  and  tools  made  of  mammoth  ivory.     He  computes 

'  that  since  the  conquest  of  Siberia,  useful  tusks  from  more 

j  than  twenty  thousand  animals  have  been  collected. 

Mr.  Boyd  Dawkins,];  in  a  very  exhaustive  memoir  on  this 
animal,  quotes  an  interesting  notice  of  its  fossil  ivory  having 


*  The  Natural  History  of  Pliny,  J.  Bostock  and  H.  T.  Eiley,  book 
viii.  chap  iv. 

t  The  Voyage  of  the  Vega,  A.  E.  Nordenskjold.     London,  1881. 
'.  J  On   the  Range    of  the  Mammoth   in  Space  and    Time,  by  W.   B. 
Dawkins,  Quart.  Journ.  Geol.  Soc.,  1879,  p.  138. 


54  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

been  brought  for  sale  to  Khiva.  He  derives  *  this  account 
from  an  Arabian  traveller,  Abou-el-Cassim,  who  lived  in  the 
middle  of  the  tenth  century. 

Figuierf  says  :  "New  Siberia  and  the  Isle  of  Lachon  are 
for  the  most  part  only  an  agglomeration  of  sand,  of  ice,  and 
of  elephants'  teeth.  At  every  tempest  the  sea  casts  ashore 
new  quantities  of  mammoth's  tusks,  and  the  inhabitants  of 
New  Siberia  carry  on  a  profitable  commerce  in  this  fossil 
ivory.  Every  year  during  the  summer  innumerable  fisher- 
men's barks  direct  their  course  to  this  isle  of  bones,  and 
during  winter  immense  caravans  take  the  same  route,  all  the 
convoys  drawn  by  dogs,  returning  charged  with  the  tusks  of 
the  mammoth,  weighing  each  from  one  hundred  and  fifty 
to  two  hundred  pounds.  The  fossil  ivory  thus  with- 
drawn from  the  frozen  north  is  imported  into  China  and 
Europe." 

In  addition  to  its  elimination  by  the  thawing  of  the  frozen 
grounds  of  the  north,  remains  of  the  mammoth  are  procured 
from  bogs,  alluvial  deposits,  and  from  the  destruction  of 
submarine  beds.J  They  are  also  found  in  cave  deposits, 
associated  with  the  remains  of  other  mammals,  and  with 


*  The  notice  is  taken  from  Les  Peuples  du  Caucause,  ou  Voyage 
d' Abou-el-Cassim,  par  M.  C.  D'Ohsson,  p.  80,  as  follows : — "  On  trouve 
souvent  dans  la  Boulgarie  des  os  (fossils)  d'une  grandeur  prodigieuse. 
J'ai  vu  une  dent  qui  avait  deux  palmes  de  large  sur  quatre  de  long, 
et  un  crane  qui  ressemblait  a  une  hutte  (Arabe).  On  y  deterre  des 
dents  semblables  aux  defenses  d'elephants,  blanche  comme  la  neige  et 
pesant  jusqu'  a  deux  cents  menns.  On  ne  sait  pas  a  quel  animal 
elles  ont  appartenu,  niais  on  les  transporte  dans  le  Khoragur  (Kiva), 
ou  elles  se  vendent  a  grand  prix.  On  en  fait  des  peignes,  des  vases,  et 
d'autres  objets,  comme  on  fa9onne  1'ivoire;  toute  fois  cette  substance 
est  plus  dure  que  1'ivoire ;  jamais  elle  ne  se  brise." 

f  The  World  before  the  Deluge,  L.  Figuier.     London,  1865. 

J  According  to  Woodward,  over  two  thousand  grinders  were  dredged 
up  by  the  fishermen  of  Happisburgh  in  the  space  of  thirteen  years ; 
and  other  localities  in  and  about  England  are  also  noted.  —  Dana's 
Manual  of  Geology,  p.  564. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  55 

flint  implements.     This  creature  appears  to  have  been  an 
object  of  the  chase  with  Palaeolithic  man. 

Mr.  Dawkins,  reviewing  all  the  discoveries,  considers  that 
its  range,  at  various  periods,  extended  over  the  whole  of 
Northern  Europe,  and  as  far  south  as  Spain ;  over  Northern 
Asia,  and  North  America  down  to  the  Isthmus  of  Darien. 
Dr.  Falconer  believes  it  to  have  had  an  elastic  constitu- 
tion, which  enabled  it  to  adapt  itself  to  great  change  of 
climate. 

Murchison,  De  Verneuil,  and  Keyserling  believed  that 
this  species,  as  well  as  the  woolly  rhinoceros,  belonged  to 
the  Tertiary  fauna  of  Northern  Asia,  though  not  appearing 
until  the  Quaternary  period  in  Europe. 

Mr.  Dawkins  shows  it  to  have  been  pre -glacial,  glacial, 
and  post-glacial  in  Britain  and  in  Europe,  and,  from  its 
relation  to  the  intermediate  species  Elephas  armeniacus, 
accepts  it  as  the  ancestor  of  the  existing  Indian  elephant. 
Its  disappearance  was  rapid,  but  not  in  the  opinion  of  most 
geologists  cataclysmic,  as  suggested  by  Mr.  Howorth. 

Another  widely  distributed  species  was  the  Rhinoceros  ticho- 
rhinus — the  smooth-skinned  rhinoceros — also  called  the  woolly 
rhinoceros  and  the  Siberian  rhinoceros,  which  had  two  horns, 
and,  like  the  mammoth,  was  covered  with  woolly  hair.  It 
attained  a  great  size ;  a  specimen,  the  carcase  of  which  was 
found  by  Pallas  imbedded  in  frozen  soil  near  Wilui,  in 
Siberia  (1772),  was  eleven  and  a  half  feet  in  length.  Its 
horns  are  considered  by  some  of  the  native  tribes  of  northern 
Asia  to  have  been  the  talons  of  gigantic  birds  ;  and  Ermann 
and  Middendorf  suppose  that  their  discovery  may  have  origi- 
nated the  accounts  by  Herodotus  of  the  gold-bearing  griffons 
and  the  arimaspi. 

Its  food,  ascertained  by  Von  Brandt,  and  others,  from 
portions  remaining  in  the  hollows  of  its  teeth,  consisted  of 
leaves  and  needles  of  trees  still  existing  in  Siberia.  The 
range  of  this  species  northwards  was  as  extensive  as  that  of 


56  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

the  mammoth,  but  its  remains  have  not  yet  been  discovered 
south  of  the  Alps  and  Pyrenees. 

The  investigation,*  made  by  M.  E.  Lartet  in  1860,  of  the 
contents  of  the  Grotto  of  Aurignac,  in  the  department  of  the 
Haute  Garonne,  from  which  numerous  human  skeletons  had 
been  previously  removed  in  1852,  shows  that  this  animal  was 
included  among  the  species  used  as  ordinary  articles  of  food, 
or  as  exceptional  items  at  the  funeral  feasts  of  the  Paleolithic 
troglodytes.  In  the  layers  of  charcoal  and  ashes  immediately 
outside  the  entrance  to  the  grotto,  and  surrounding  what  is 
supposed  to  have  been  the  hearth,  the  bones  of  a  young 
Rhinoceros  tichorhinus  were  found,  which  had  been  split  open 
for  the  extraction  of  the  marrow.  Numerous  other  species 
had  been  dealt  with  in  the  same  manner ;  and  all  these 
having  received  this  treatment,  and  showing  marks  of  the 
action  of  fire,  had  evidently  been  carried  to  the  cave  for 
banqueting  purposes.  The  remains  of  Herbivora  associated 
with  those  of  this  rhinoceros,  consisted  of  bones  of  the 
mammoth,  the  horse  (Equus  caballus),  stag  (Cervus  elaphus), 
elk  (Megaceros  hibernicus),  roebuck  (C.  capreolus),  reindeer 
(C.  tarandus),  auroch  (Bison  europceus.)  .Among  carnivora 
were  found  remains  of  Ursus  spelceus  (cave-bear),  Ursus 
arctos?  (brown  bear),  Meles  taxus  (badger),  Putorius  vulgaris 
(polecat),  Hyaena  spelcea  (cave -hyaena),  Felis  spelcea  (cave-lion), 
Felis  catus  ferus  (wild  cat),  Canis  lupus  (wolf),  Canis  vulpis 
(fox).  Within  the  grotto  were  also  found  remains  of  Felis 
spelcea  (cave-lion)  and  Sus  scrofa  (pig).  The  cave-bear,  the 
fox,  and  indeed  most  of  these,  probably  also  formed  articles 
of  diet,  but  the  hysena  seems  to  have  been  a  post  attendant 
at  the  feast,  and  to  have  rooted  out  and  gnawed  off  the 
spongy  parts  of  the  thrown-away  bones  after  the  departure 
of  the  company. 

In  the  Pleistocene  deposits  at  Wiirzburg,  in  Franconia, 

*  Lyell,  Antiquity  of  Man,  p.  185,  2nd  edit.,  1863. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  57 


a  human  finger-bone  occurs  with  bones  of  this  species,  and 
also  of  other  large  mammalia,  such  as  the  mammoth,  cave- 
bear,  and  the  like. 

And  flint  implements,  and  pointed  javelin-heads  made  of 
reindeer  horn,  are  found  associated  with  it  in  the  vicinity 
of  the  old  hearths  established  by  Palaeolithic  man  in  the 
cave  called  the  Trou  du  Bureau,  on  the  river  Malignee  in 
Belgium. 

In  the  cavern  of  Goyet,  also  in  Belgium,  there  are  five 
bone  layers,  alternating  with  six  beds  of  alluvial  deposits, 
showing  that  the  cave  had  been  inhabited  by  different  species 
at  various  periods.  The  lion  was  succeeded  by  the  cave- 
bear,  and  this  by  hyaenas  ;  then  Palaeolithic  man  became  a 
tenant  and  has  left  his  bones  there,  together  with  flint  imple- 
ments and  remains  of  numerous  species,  including  those 
already  enumerated  as  his  contemporaries. 

THE  SABRE-TOOTHED  TIGER  OR  LION.  —  This  species, 
Machairodus*  latifrons  of  Owen,  was  remarkable  for  having 
long  sabre-shaped  canines.  It  belongs  to  an  extinct  genus, 
of  which  four  other  species  are  known,  characterised  by  the 
possession  of  serrated  teeth.  The  genus  is  known  to  be 
represented  in  the  Auvergne  beds  between  the  Eocene  and 
Miocene,  in  the  Miocene  of  Greece  and  India,  in  the  Plio- 
cene of  South  America  and  Europe,  and  in  the  Pleistocene. 
Mr.  Dawkins  believes  that  this  species  survived  to  post- 
glacial times.  It  is  one  of  the  numerous  animals  whose 
remains  have  been  found  with  traces  of  man  and  flint  im- 
plements in  cave  deposits  at  Kent's  Hole,  near  Torquay, 
and  elsewhere. 

THE  CAVE-BEAR,  Ursus  spelceus,  of  Rosenmiiller. — The 
appearance  of  this  species  has  been  preserved  to  us  in  the 
drawing  by  Palaeolithic  man  found  in  the  cave  of  Massat 
(Arieze). 

*  Fr. '/xoiaipa  "a  sword,"  and  68ov<s  "a.  tooth." 


58  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

It  occurs  in  the  Cromer  Forest  Bed,  a  deposit  referred  by 
Mr.  Boyd  Dawkins  to  the  early  part  of  the  Glacial  period, 
and  generally  regarded  as  transitional  between  the  Pliocene 
and  Quaternary.  It  is  also  found  in  the  caves  of  Perigaud, 
which  are  considered  to  belong  to  the  reindeer  era  of 
M.  Lartet  or  the  opening  part  of  the  Recent  period,  and 
numerous  discoveries  of  its  remains  at  dates  intermediate  to 
these  have  been  made  in  Britain  and  im  Europe.  Carl 
Vogt,  indeed,  is  of  opinion  that  this  species  is  the  progenitor 
of  our  living  brown  bear,  Ursus  arctos,  and  Mr.  Boyd  Daw- 
kins  also  says  that  those  "  who  have  compared  the  French, 
German,  and  British  specimens,  gradually  realize  the  fact 
that  the  fossil  remains  of  the  bears  form  a  graduated  series, 
in  which  all  the  variations  that  at  first  sight  appear  specific 
vanish  away." 

It  has  been  identified  by  Mr.  Busk  among  the  associated 
mammalian  bones  of  the  Brixham  cave.  Its  remains  are 
very  abundant  in  the  bone  deposit  of  the  Trou  de  Sureau  in 
Belgium,  and  in  the  cavern  of  G-oyet,  which  it  tenanted 
alternately  with  the  lion  and  hyaena,  and,  like  them,  appears 
to  have  preyed  on  man  and  the  larger  mammalia. 

Mr.  Prestwich  has  obtained  it  in  low-level  deposits  of  river 
gravels  in  the  valleys  of  the  north  of  France  and  south  of 
England,  and  it  has  been  obtained  from  the  Loss,  a  loamy, 
usually  unstratified  deposit,  which  is  extensively  distributed 
over  central  Europe,  in  the  valleys  of  the  Rhine,  Rhone, 
Danube,  and  other  great  rivers.  This  deposit  is  considered 
by  Mr.  Prestwich  to  be  equivalent  to  other  high-level  gravels 
of  the  Pleistocene  period. 

THE  MASTODON. — The  generic  title  Mastodon  has  been 
applied  to  a  number  of  species  allied  to  the  elephants,  but 
distinguished  from  them  by  a  peculiar  structure  of  the  molar 
teeth ;  these  are  rectangular,  and  in  their  upper  surfaces 
exhibit  a  number  of  great  conical  tuberosities  with  rounded 
points  disposed  in  pairs,  to  the  number  of  four  or  five, 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  59 

according  to  the  species;  whereas  in  the  elephants  they 
are  broad  and  uniform,  and  regularly  marked  with  furrows 
of  large  curvature.  The  mastodons,  in  addition  to  large 
tusks  in  the  premaxillaB,  like  those  of  the  elephant,  had  also 
in  most  instances,  a  pair  of  shorter  ones  in  the  mandible. 


FIG.  11.— MASTODON'S  TOOTH  (WORN).    (After  Fiyuier.) 

Cuvier  established  the  name  Mastodon,*  or  teat-like 
toothed  animals,  for  the  gigantic  species  from  America  which 
Buffon  had  already  described  under  the  name  of  the  animal 
or  elephant  of  the  Ohio. 


FIG.  12. — MASTODON'S  TOOTH.     (After  Figuier.) 

The  form  first  appears  in  the  Upper  Miocene  of  Europe, 
five  species  being  known,  two  of  them  from  Pikermi,  near 
Athens,  and  one,  M .  angustidens,  from  the  Miocene  beds  of 

*  From  /wurros  "  a  teat,"  and  68ovs  "  a  tooth." 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Malta.  Mastodon  remains  have  also  been  found  in  the  beds 
of  the  Sivalik  hills,  and  four  species  of  mastodon  in  all 
are  known  to  have  ranged  over  India  during  those  periods. 

In  Pliocene  deposits  we  have  abundant  remains  of 
M.  arvernensis,  and  M.  longirostris  from  the  Val  d'Arno  in 
Italy,  and  the  M .  Borsoni  from  central  France. 

The  M .  arvernensis  may  be  considered  as  a  characteristic 
Pliocene  species  in  Italy,  France,  and  Europe  generally.  In 
Britain  it  occurs  in  the  Norwich  Crag  and  the  Red  Crag  of 
Suffolk. 

Species  of  mastodon  occur  in  the  Pliocene  of  La  Plata,  and 
of  the  temperate  regions  of  South  America  ;  on  the  Pampas, 
and  in  the  Andes  of  Chili. 

The  Mastodon  mirificus  of  Leidy  is  the  earliest  known  species 
in  America  ;  this  occurs  in  Pliocene  deposits  on  the  Niobrara 
and  the  Loup  fork,  west  of  the  Mississippi. 

The  remains  of  the  Mastodon  americanus  of  Cuvier  occur 
abundantly  in  the  Post  Pliocene  deposits  throughout  the 
United  States,  but  more  especially  in  the  northern  half;  they 
are  also  found  in  Canada  and  Nova  Scotia. 


FIG.  13.— THE  MASTODON. 


Perfect  skeletons  are  occasionally  procured  from  marshes, 
where  the  animals  had  become  mired.  In  life  this  species 
appears  to  have  measured  from  twelve  to  thirteen  feet  in 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  61 

height  and  twenty-four  to  twenty-five  feet  in  length,  includ- 
ing seven  feet  for  the  tusks.  Undigested  food  found  with 
its  remains  show  that  it  lived  partly  on  spruce  and  fir-trees. 
A  distinct  species  characterised  the  Quaternary  deposits  of 
South  America. 

THE  IRISH  ELK.— The  species  (Megaceros  hibernicus), 
commonly  but  erroneously  called  the  Irish  Elk,  was,  as  pro- 
fessor Owen*  has  pointed  out,  a  true  deer,  whose  place  is 
between  the  fallow  and  reindeer. 

Though  now  extinct,  it  survived  the  Palaeolithic  period, 
and  may  possibly  have  existed  down  to  historic  times.  Mr. 
Gosse  adduces  some  very  strong  testimony  on  this  point,  and 
is  of  opinion  that  its  extinction  cannot  have  taken  place 
more  than  a  thousand  years  ago. 

It  had  a  flattened  and  expanded  form  of  antler,  with 
peculiarities  unknown  among  existing  deer,  and  was,  in 
comparison  with  these,  of  gigantic  size ;  the  height  to  the 
summit  of  the  antlers  being  from  ten  to  eleven  feet  in  the 
largest  individuals,  and  the  span  of  the  antlers,  in  one  case, 
over  twelve  feet. 

Although  its  remains  have  been  found  most  abundantly 
in  Ireland,  it  was  widely  distributed  over  Britain  and  middle 
Europe.  It  has  been  found  in  peat  swamps,  lacustrine 
marls,  bone  caverns,  fen  deposits,  and  the  Cornish  gravels. 
It  has  been  obtained  from  the  cavern  of  Goyet  in  Belgium, 
and  from  the  burial-place  at  Aurignac,  in  the  department 
of  the  Haute  Garonne.  Its  known  range  in  time  is  from  the 
early  part  of  the  Glacial  period  down  to,  possibly,  historic 
periods. 

The  CAVE-HY-ZENA — Hycena  spelcea  of  Goldfuss — is,  like 
the  cave-bear,  characteristic  of  Europe  during  the  Palaeolithic 
age.  It  has  been  found  in  numerous  caves  in  Britain,  such 
as  Kent's  Hole,  the  Brixhain  cave,  and  one  near  Wells  in 

*  Palaeontology,  E.  Owen.     Edinburgh,  1860. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Somersetshire,  explored  by  Dawkins  in  1859  ;  in  all  of  these 
the  remains  are  associated  with  those  of  man,  or  with  his 
implements.  This  species  is  closely  related  to  the  H.  crocuta 
of  Zimrn,  at  present  existing  in  South  Africa,  and  is  by  some 
geologists  considered  identical  with  it.  It  is,  however,  larger. 

It  appears  to  have  to  some  extent  replaced  the  cave-bear 
in  Britain  ;  we  are  also,  doubtless,  greatly  indebted  to  it  for 
some  of  the  extensive  collections  of  bones  in  caverns,  result- 
ing from  the  carcases  which  it  had  dragged  thither,  and 
imperfectly  destroyed. 

In  a  cave  at  Kirkdale,  in  the  vale  of  Pickering,  the  bones 
of  about  three  hundred  individuals — hyaenas — were  found 
mingled  with  the  remains  of  the  mammoth,  bear,  rhinoceros, 
deer,  cave-lion,  brown  bear,  horse,  hare,  and  other  species. 
Mr.  Dawkins,*  in  describing  it,  says :  "  The  pack  of  hyaenas 
fell  upon  reindeer  in  the  winter,  and  at  other  times  on  horses 
and  bisons,  and  were  able  to  master  the  hippopotamus,  the 
lion,  the  slender-nosed  rhinoceros,  or  the  straight-tusked 
elephant,  and  to  carry  their  bones  to  their  den,  where  they 
were  found  by  Dr.  Buckland.  The  hyaenas  also  inhabiting 
the  '  Dukeries,'  dragged  back  to  their  dens  fragments  of 
lion." 

Notable  Quaternary  forms  (now  extinct)  on  the  American 
continent  are  the  gigantic  sloth-like  animals  Megatherium, 
which  reached  eighteen  feet  in  length,  and  Mylodon,  one 
species  of  which  (M .  robustus)  was  eleven  feet  in  length ; 
Armadillos,  such  as  Glyptodon,  with  a  total  length  of  nine 
feet ;  Chlamydotherium,  as  big  as  a  rhinoceros ;  and  Pachy- 
therium,  equalling  an  ox. 

In  Australia  we  find  marsupial  forms  as  at  the  present 
day  ;  but  they  were  gigantic  in  comparison  with  the  latter. 
As  for  example,  the  Diprotodon,  which  equalled  in  size  a 
hippopotamus,  and  the  Nototherium,  as  large  as  a  bullock. 

*  The  British  Lion,  W.  Boyd  Dawkins,  Contemporary  Review,  1882. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  63 

I  may  mention  a  few  other  species,  the  remains  of  which 
are  associated  with  some  of  those  commented  on  in  the  last 
few  pages ;  but  which,  as  they  have  undoubtedly  continued 
in  existence  down  to  the  present  period,  are  external  to  the 
present  portion  of  my  argument,  and  are  either  treated  of 
elsewhere,  or  need  only  to  be  referred  to  in  a  few  words. 


FIG.  14. — MYLODON  ROBUSTUS.     (After  Figuier.') 

It  must  also  be  borne  in  mind  that  the  linking  together  of 
species  by  the  discovery  of  intermediate  graduated  forms,  is 
daily  proceeding ;  so  that  some  even  of  those  spoken  of  in 
greater  detail  may  shortly  be  generally  recognised,  as  at 
present  they  are  held  by  a  few,  to  be  identical  with  existing 
forms. 

The  HIPPOPOTAMUS. — The  Hippopotamus  major,  now  con- 
sidered identical  with  the  larger  of  the  two  African  species — 
H.  amphibia,  has  been  found  associated  with  E.  antiquus  and 
R.  hemitcechus  of  Falc  in  Durdham  Down  and  Kirkdale  caves, 


64  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

and  in  those  at  Kent's  Hole  and  BavensclifF.  It  has  also 
been  found  in  river  gravels  at  Grays,  Ilford,  and  elsewhere, 
in  the  lower  part  of  the  river-border  deposits  of  Amiens  with 
flint  implements,  and  in  Quaternary  deposits  on  the  continent 
of  Europe. 

THE  CAVE-LION — Fells  spelcea — is  now  considered  to  be 
merely  a  variety  of  the  African  lion  (Felis  ko),  although  of 
larger  size ;  it  had  a  very  wide  range  over  Britain  and 
Europe  during  the  Post  Pliocene  period,  as  also  did  the 
leopard  (F.  pardus)  and  probably  the  lynx  (Lyncus). 

The  KEINDEER  or  CAEIBOO — Cervus  tarandus — which  still 
exists,  both  domesticated  and  wild,  in  northern  Europe  and 
America,  is  adapted  for  northern  latitudes.  It  formerly 
extended  over  Europe,  and  in  the  British  Isles  probably 
survived  in  the  north  of  Scotland  until  the  twelfth  century. 

Its  remains  have  been  found  in  Pleistocene  deposits  in 
numerous  localities,  but  most  abundantly  in  those  which 
M.  Lartet  has  assigned  to  the  period  which  he  calls  the 
Eeindeer  age. 

Other  Pleistocene  mammals  still  existing,  but  whose  range 
is  much  restricted,  are  the  musk  ox  (Ovibos  moschatus), 
familiar  to  us,  from  the  accounts  of  arctic  expeditions,  as 
occurring  in  the  circumpolar  regions  of  North  America  ;  the 
glutton  (Gulo  luscus),  the  auroch  (Bison  europceus),  the 
wild  horse  (E.  fossilis),  the  arctic  fox  (Canis  lagopus), 
the  bison  (Bison  prisons),  the  elk  or  moose  (Alces  malchis), 
found  in  Norway  and  North  America,  the  lemming,  the 
lagomys  or  tail-less  hare,  &c. 

As  examples  of  total  extinction  in  late  years,  we  may 
mention  the  dodo,  the  solitaire,  and  species  allied  to  them, 
in  the  islands  of  Mauritius,  Bourbon,  and  Eeunion  ;  the 
moa  in  New  Zealand;  the  jEpiornis  in  Madagascar;  the 
great  auk,  Alca  impennis,  in  northern  seas,  and  the  Rhytina 
Stelleri,  common  once  in  the  latitude  of  Behring's  Straits,  and 
described  by  Steller  in  1742. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES. 


65 


The  Dodo,  a  native  of  the  island  of  Mauritius,  was  about 
50  Ibs.  in  weight,  and  covered  with  loose  downy  plumage,  it 


66  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

was  unable  to  rise  from  the  ground  in  consequence  of  the 
imperfect  development  of  its  wings;  it  was  minutely  de- 
scribed by  Sir  Thomas  Herbert  in  1634,  and  specimens  of 
the  living  bird  and  of  its  skin  were  brought  to  Europe.  Its 
unwieldiness  led  to  its  speedy  destruction  by  the  early 
voyagers. 


FIG.  16. — RHTTINA  STELLERI.     {From  "  The  Voyage  of  the  '  Vega.'  ") 

The  Solitaire  was  confined  to  the  island  of  Mascaregue  or 
Bourbon.  It  is  fully  described  by  Francis  Leguat,  who, 
having  fled  from  France  into  Holland  in  1689,  to  escape 
religious  persecution  consequent  on  the  revocation  of  the 
Edict  of  Nantes,  engaged  under  the  Marquis  de  Quesne  in  an 
expedition  for  the  purpose  of  settlement  on  that  island.  This 
bird  also  speedily  became  extinct. 

The  Moa  (Dinornis  giganteus,  Owen)  reached  from  twelve 
to  fourteen  feet  in  height,  and  survived  for  a  long  period  after 
the  migration  of  the  Maories  to  New  Zealand.  Bones  of  it 
have  been  found  along  with  charred  wood,  showing  that  it 
had  been  killed  and  eaten  by  the  natives ;  and  its  memory 
is  preserved  in  many  of  their  traditions,  which  also  record  the 
existence  of  a  much  larger  bird,  a  species  of  eagle  or  hawk, 
which  used  to  prey  upon  it.* 

*  The  Moa  was  associated  with  other  species  also  nearly  or  totally 
extinct:  some  belonging  to  the  same  genus,  others  to  those  of  Papteryx, 
of  Nestor,  and  of  Notornis.  One  survivor  of  the  latter  was  obtained 
by  Mr.  Gideon  Mantell,  and  described  by  my  father,  Mr.  John  Gould, 
in  1850.  I  believe  the  Nestor  is  still,  rarely,  met  with.  Mr.  Mantell  is 
of  opinion  that  the  Moa  and  his  congeners  continued  in  existence  long 
after  the  advent  of  the  aboriginal  Maori.  Mr.  Mantell  discovered  a 
gigantic  fossil  egg,  presumably  that  of  the  Moa. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  67 

Bapidly  approaching  total  extinction  are  the  several 
species  of  Apteryx  in  the  same  country — remarkable  birds 
with  merely  rudimentary  wings  :  as  also  the  Notornis,  a  large 
Rail — at  first,  and  for  a  long  time,  only  known  in  the  fossil 
state,  but  of  which  a  living  specimen  was  secured  by  Mr. 
Walter  Mantell  in  1849  :  and  the  Kapapo  (Strigops  habrop- 
tilus)  of  G-.  B.  Gray — a  strange  owl-faced  nocturnal  ground- 
parrot. 

The  dEpyornis  maximus  was  almost  as  large  as  the  Moa  ; 
of  this  numerous  fossil  bones  and  a  few  eggs  have  been 
discovered,  but  there  are  not,  I  believe,  any  traditions  extant 
among  the  natives  of  Madagascar  of  its  having  survived  to  a 
late  period. 

The  Great  Auk  (Alca  impennis)  is  now  believed  to  be 
extinct.  It  formerly  occurred  in  the  British  Isles,  but  more 
abundantly  in  high  latitudes  ;  and  its  remains  occur  in  great 
numbers  on  the  shores  of  Iceland,  Greenland,  and  Denmark, 
as  also  of  Labrador  and  Newfoundland. 


FIG.  17.— RHYTINA  STELLERI.     (After  J.  Fr.  Brandt.) 

Steller's  Sea-cow  (Rhijtina  Stelleri  of  Cuvier)  was  a  mam- 
mal allied  to  the  Manatees  and  Dugongs  ;  it  was  discovered 
by  Behring  in  1768  on  a  small  island  lying  off  the  Kamt- 
chatkan  coast.  It  measured  as  much  as  from  twenty-eight 
to  thirty-five  feet  in  length,  and  was  soon  nearly  exterminated 
by  Behring' s  party  and  other  voyagers  who  visited  the  island. 
The  last  one  of  which  there  is  any  record  was  killed  in 
1854.* 

*  A.  E.  Nordenskiold,  The  Voyage  of  the  '  Vega,'  vol.  i.  p.  272,  et  seq. 
London,  1881, 

5  * 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


To  the  above  may  be  added  the  Didunculus,  a  species  of 
ground -pigeon  peculiar  to  the  Samoa  Islands,  and  the  Nestor 
productus,  a  parrot  of  Norfolk  Island.  An  extended  list  might 
be  prepared,  from  fossil  evidences,  of  other  species  which 
were  at  one  time  associated  with  those  I  have  enumerated. 


FIG.  18.— RHYTINA  STELLEEI.    (From  "  The  Voyage  of  the  '  Vega.'  ") 

In  conclusion,  I  may  point  out  that  that  excellent  naturalist 
Pliny*  records  the  disappearance,  in  his  days,  of  certain  species 
formerly  known.  He  mentions  the  Incendiary,  the  Olivia, 
and  the  Subis  (species  of  birds),  and  states  that  there  were 
many  other  birds  mentioned  in  the  Etruscan  ritual,  which 
were  no  longer  to  be  found  in  his  time.  He  also  says  that 
there  had  been  a  bird  in  Sardinia  resembling  the  crane,  and 
called  the  Gromphsena,  which  was  no  longer  known  even  by 
the  people  of  the  country. 

Local  Extinction. 

Of  local  extinction  we  may  note  in  our  own  island  the  cases 
of  the  beaver,  the  bear,  the  wolf,  the  wild  cattle,  the  elk, 
the  wild  boar,  the  bustard,  and  the  capercailzie ;  of  these 
the  beaver  survived  in  Wales  and  Scotland  until  the  time 
of  Giraldus  Cambrensis  in  1188,  and  Pennant  notes  indica- 
tions of  its  former  existence  in  the  names  of  several  streams 
and  lakes  in  Wales.  It  was  not  uncommon  throughout  the 
greater  part  of  Europe  down  to  the  Middle  Ages. 

*  Pliny,  Nat.  Hist.,  Bk.  x.,  chap,  xvii.,  and  Bk.  xxx.,  chap,  liii, 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES. 


The  bear,  still  common  in  Norway  and  the  Pyrenees,  is 
alluded  to,  as  Mr.  Gosse  points  out,  in  the  Welsh  Triads,* 
which  are  supposed  to  have  been  compiled  in  the  seventh 
century.  They  say  that  "  the  Kymri,  a  Celtic  tribe,  first 
inhabited  Britain ;  before  them  were  no  men  here,  but  only 
bears,  wolves,  beavers,  and  oxen  with  high  prominences." 
Mr.  Gosse  adds,  "  The  Roman  poets  knew  of  its  existence 
here.  Martial  speaks  of  the  robber  Laureolis  being  exposed 
on  the  cross  to  the  fangs  of  the  Caledonian  bear ;  and  Clau- 
dian  alludes  to  British  bears.  The  Emperor  Claudius,  on 
his  return  to  Eome  after  the  conquest  of  this  island,  exhi- 
bited, as  trophies,  combats  of  British  bears  in  the  Arena. 
In  the  Penitential  of  Archbishop  Egbert,  said  to  have  been 
compiled  about  A.D.  750,  bears  are  mentioned  as  inhabiting 
the  English  forests,  and  the  city  of  Norwich  is  said  to  have 
been  required  to  furnish  a  bear  annually  to  Edward  the 
Confessor,  together  with  six  dogs,  no  doubt  for  baiting  him." 

The  wolf,  though  greatly  reduced  in  numbers  during  the 
Heptarchy,  when  Edgar  laid  an  annual  tribute  of  three 
hundred  wolf-skins  upon  the  Welsh,  still  occurred  in  for- 
midable numbers  in  England  in  1281,  and  not  unfrequently 
until  the  reign  of  Henry  VII.  The  last  wolf  was  killed  in 
Scotland  in  the  year  1743,  and  in  Ireland  in  1770.f 

The  wild  cattle  are  now  only  represented  by  the  small 
herds  in  Chartley  Castle,  Chillingham,  and  Cadgow  parks ; 
the  spare  survivors  probably  of  the  species  referred  to  by 
Herodotus  when  he  speaks  of  "large  ferocious  and  fleet 
white  bulls  "  which  abounded  in  the  country  south  of  Thrace, 
and  continued  in  Poland,  Lithuania,  and  Muscovy  until  the 
fifteenth  century,  or  perhaps  of  the  Urus  described  by  Caesar 
as  little  inferior  to  the  elephant  in  size,  and  inhabiting  the 


*  The  Romance  of  Natural   History,  by  P.   H.  Gosse,   2nd   Series, 
London  1875. 

t  Pop.  Sei.  Monthly,  October  1878. 


70  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Hercynian  forest,  and  believed  to  be  identical  with  the  Bos 
primigenius  found  in  a  fossil  state  in  Britain. 

The  wild  boar  was  once  abundant  in  Scotland  and  England. 
The  family  of  Baird  derives  its  heraldic  crest  from  a  grant 
of  David  I.  of  Scotland,  in  recognition  of  his  being  saved 
from  an  infuriated  boar  which  had  turned  on  him.  In  Eng- 
land only  nobles  and  gentry  were  allowed  to  hunt  it,  and 
the  slaughter  of  one  by  an  unauthorized  person  within  the 
demesnes  of  William  the  Conqueror  was  punished  by  the 
loss  of  both  eyes.* 

The  bustard,  once  abundant,  is  now  extinct  in  Britain, 
so  far  as  the  indigenous  race  is  concerned.  Occasionally  a 
chance  visitant  from  the  continent  is  seen  ;  but  there,  also,  its 
numbers  have  been  greatly  diminished.  It  was  common  in 
Buffon's  time  in  the  plains  of  Poitou  and  Champagne,  though 
now  extremely  rare,  and  is  still  common  in  Eastern  Asia. 

The  capercailzie,  or  cock  of  the  woods,  after  complete  ex- 
tinction, has  been  reintroduced  from  Norway,  and,  under 
protection,  is  moderately  abundant  in  parts  of  Scotland. 

In  America,  the  process  of  extermination  marches  with 
the  settlement  of  the  various  states.  W.  J.  J.  Allen  records 
the  absolute  disappearance  of  the  walrus  from  the  Gulf  of 
Si  Lawrence,  and  of  the  moose,  the  elk,  and  the  Virginian 
deer,  from  many  of  the  states  in  which  they  formerly 
abounded.  This  also  is  true,  to  some  extent,  of  the  bear, 
the  beaver,  the  grey  wolf,  the  panther,  and  the  lynx. 

The  buffalo  (Bos  americanus)  is  being  destroyed  at  the 
rate  of  two  hundred  and  fifty  thousand  annually,  and  it  is 
estimated  that  the  number  slain  by  hunters  for  their  hides 
during  the  last  forty  years  amounts  to  four  millions.  It  has 
disappeared  in  the  eastern  part  of  the  continent  from  many 
extensive  tracts  which  it  formerly  inhabited. 

Among  the  ocean  whales,  both  the  right  and  the  sperm 

*  Excelsior,  vol.  iii.     London,  J855. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  71 

have  only  been  preserved  from  extinction  by  the  fortunate 
discovery  of  petroleum,  which  has  reduced  the  value  of  their 
oil,  and  thus  lessened  considerably  the  number  of  vessels 
equipped  for  the  whale  fishery. 

In  South  Africa,  elephants  and  all  other  large  game  are 
being  steadily  exterminated  within  the  several  colonies. 

In  Australia,  we  find  that  the  seals  which  thronged  the 
islands  of  Bass's  Straits  in  countless  thousands,  at  the  period 
when  Bass  made  his  explorations  there,  have  utterly  disap- 
peared. The  bulk  of  them  were  destroyed  by  seal-hunters 
from  Sydney  within  a  few  years  after  his  discovery.  The 
lamentable  records  of  the  Sydney  Gazette  of  that  period  show 
this,  for  they  detail  the  return  to  port,  after  a  short  cruise, 
of  schooners  laden  with  from  twelve  to  sixteen  thousand 
skins  each.  The  result  of  this  has  been  that  for  many  years 
past  the  number  of  seals  has  been  limited  to  a  few  indivi- 
duals, to  be  found  on  one  or  two  isolated  rocks  off  Clarke's 
Island,  and  on  Hogan's  group. 

The  great  sea-elephant,  which,  in  Peron's  time,  still 
migrated  for  breeding  purposes  from  antarctic  regions  to  the 
shores  of  King's  Island,  where  it  is  described  by  him  as 
lining  the  long  sandy  beaches  by  hundreds,  has  been  almost 
unseen  there  since  the  date  of  his  visit,  and  its  memory  is 
only  preserved  in  the  names  of  Sea-Elephant  Bay,  Elephant 
Kock,  &c.  which  are  still  inscribed  on  our  charts. 

The  introduction  of  the  Dingo,  by  the  Australian  blacks 
in  their  southward  migration,  is  supposed  to  have  caused  the 
extinction  of  the  Thylacinus  (T.  cynocephalus),  or  striped 
Australian  wolf,  on  the  main  land  of  Australia,  where  it  was 
once  abundant  ;  it  is  now  only  to  be  found  in  the  remote 
portions  of  the  island  of  Tasmania.  This  destruction  of  one 
species  by  another  is  paralleled  in  our  own  country  by  the 
approaching  extinction  of  the  indigenous  and  now  very  rare 
black  rat,  which  has  been  almost  entirely  displaced  by  the 
fierce  grey  rat  from  Norway. 


72  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


We  learn  from  incidental  passages  in  the  Bamboo  Books* 
that  the  rhinoceros,  which  is  now  unknown  in  China,  formerly 
extended  throughout  that  country.  We  read  of  King  Ch'aou, 
named  Hea  (B.C.  980),  that  "in  his  sixteenth  year  [of  reign] 
the  king  attacked  Ts'oo,  and  in  crossing  the  river  Han  met 
with  a  large  rhinoceros."  And,  again,  of  King  E,  named 
See  (B.C.  860),  that  "  in  his  sixth  year,  when  hunting  in  the 
forest  of  Shay,  he  captured  a  rhinoceros  and  carried  it 
home."  There  is  also  mention  made— though  this  is  less 
conclusive — that  in  the  time  of  King  Yiu,  named  Yeu 
(B.C.  313),  the  King  of  Yueh  sent  Kung-sze  Yu  with  a 
present  of  three  hundred  boats,  five  million  arrows,  together 
with  rhinoceros'  horns  and  elephants'  teeth. 

Elephants  are  now  unknown  in  China  except  in  a  domes- 
ticated state,  but  they  probably  disputed  its  thick  forest  and 
jungly  plains  with  the  Miaotsz,  Lolos,  and  other  tribes  which 
held  the  country  before  its  present  occupants.  This  may  be 
inferred  from  the  incidental  references  to  them  in  the  Shan 
Hai  King,  a  work  reputed  to  be  of  great  antiquity,  of  which 
more  mention  will  be  made  hereafter,  and  from  evidence 
contained  in  other  ancient  Chinese  works  which  has  been 
summarized  by  Mr.  Kingsmillf  as  follows  : — 

"  The  rhinoceros  and  elephant  certainly  lived  in  Honan 
B.C.  600.  The  Tso-chuen,  commenting  on  the  C'hun  T'siu 
of  the  second  year  of  the  Duke  Siuen  (B.C.  605),  describes 
the  former  as  being  in  sufficient  abundance  to  supply  skins 
for  armour.  The  want,  according  to  the  popular  saying, 
was  not  of  rhinoceroses  to  supply  skins,  but  of  courage  to 
animate  the  wearers.  From  the  same  authority  (Duke  Hi 
XIII.,  B.C.  636)  we  learn  that  while  T'soo  (Hukwang)  pro- 
duced ivory  and  rhinoceros'  skins  in  abundance,  Tsin,  lying 


*  The  Chinese  Classics,  vol.  iii.  p.  1,  by  James  Legge,  B.D. 
f  Inaugural  Address  by  President,  T.  W.  Kingsmill,  North  China 
Branch  of  the  Royal  Asiatic  Society,  1877. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  73 

north  of  the  Yellow  River,  on  the  most  elevated  part  of  the 
Loess,  was  dependent  on  the  other  for  its  supplies  of  those 
commodities.  The  Tribute  of  Yu  tells  the  same  tale.  Yang- 
chow  and  King  (Kiangpeh  and  Hukwang),  we  are  told,  sent 
tribute  of  ivory  and  rhinoceros'  hide,  while  Liang  (Shensi) 
sent  the  skins  of  foxes  and  bears.  Going  back  to  mythical 
times,  we  find  Mencius  (III.  ii.  9)  telling  how  Chow  Kung 
expelled  from  Lu  (Shantung)  the  elephants  and  rhinoceroses, 
the  tigers  and  leopards." 

Mr.  Kingsmill  even  suggests  that  the  species  referred  to 
were  the  mammoth  and  the  Siberian  rhinoceros  (E.  ticho- 
rhinus) . 

M.  Chabas*  publishes  an  Egyptian  inscription  showing 
that  the  elephant  existed  in  a  feral  state  in  the  Euphrates 
Valley  in  the  time  of  Thothmes  III.  (16th  century  B.C.). 
The  inscription  records  a  great  hunting  of  elephants  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  Nineveh. 

Tigers  still  abound  in  Manchuria  and  Corea,  their  skins 
forming  a  regular  article  of  commerce  in  Vladivostock,  New- 
chwang,  and  Seoul.  They  are  said  to  attain  larger  dimen- 
sions in  these  northern  latitudes  than  their  southern  congener, 
the  better-known  Bengal  tiger.  They  are  generally  extinct 
in  China  Proper  ;  but  Pere  David  states  that  he  has  seen 
them  in  the  neighbourhood  of  Pekin,  in  Mongolia,  and  at 
Moupin,  and  they  are  reported  to  have  been  seen  near  Amoy. 
Within  the  last  few  yearsf  a  large  specimen  was  killed  by 
Chinese  soldiery  within  a  few  miles  of  the  city  of  Ningpo ; 
and  it  is  probable  that  at  no  distant  date  they  ranged  over 
the  whole  country  from  Hindostan  to  Eastern  Siberia,  as 
they  are  incidentally  referred  to  in  various  Chinese  works — 
the  Urh  Yah  specially  recording  the  capture  of  a  white  tiger 


*  Chabas,  Etudes  sur  VAntiquite  Historique,  cPapres  les  sources 
tiennes. 

t  Subsequently  to  1874. 


74  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

in  the  time  of  the  Emperor  Siien  of  the  Han  dynasty,  and  of  a 
black  one,  in  the  fourth  year  of  the  reign  of  Yung  Kia,  in  a 
netted  surround  in  Kien  Ping  Fu  in  the  district  of  Tsz  Kwei. 

The  tailed  deer  or  Mi-lu  (Cervus  Davidianus  of  Milne 
Edwardes),  which  Chinese  literature*  indicates  as  having 
once  been  of  common  occurrence  throughout  China,  is  now 
only  to  be  found  in  the  Imperial  hunting  grounds  south  of 
Peking,  where  it  is  restricted  to  an  enclosure  of  fifty  miles 
in  circumference.  It  is  believed  to  exist  no  longer  in  a  wild 
state,  as  no  trace  of  it  has  been  found  in  any  of  the  recent 
explorations  of  Asia.  The  Chlun  ts'iu  (B.C.  676)  states  that 
this  species  appeared  in  the  winter  of  that  year,  in  such 
numbers  that  it  was  chronicled  in  the  records  of  Lu  (Shan- 
tung), and  that  in  the  following  autumn  it  was  followed  by 
an  inroad  of  "  Yih,"  which  Mr.  Kingsmill  believes  to  be  the 
wolf. 

There  also  appears  reason  to  suppose  that  the  ostrich  had 
a  much  more  extended  range  than  at  present ;  for  we  find 
references  in  the  Shi-Ki,j-  or  book  of  history  of  Szema 
Tsien,  to  "  large  birds  with  eggs  as  big  as  water-jars  "  as 
inhabiting  T'iaou-chi,  identified  by  Mr.  Kingsmill  as  Saran- 
gia  or  Drangia;  and,  in  speaking  of  Parthia,  it  says,  "  On 
the  return  of  the  mission  he  sent  envoys  with  it  that  they 
might  see  the  extent  and  power  of  China.  He  sent  with 
them,  as  presents  to  the^  Emperor,  eggs  of  the  great  bird  of 
the  country,  and  a  curiously  deformed  man  from  Samar- 
kand." 

The  gigantic  Chelonians  which  once  abounded  in  India 


*  0.  F.  von  Mollendorf,  Journal  of  North  China  Branch  of  the  Koyal 
Asiatic  Society,  New  Series,  No.  2,  and  T.  W.  Kingsmill,  "  The  Border 
Lands  of  Geology  and  History,"  Journal  of  North  China  Branch  of  the 
Eoyal  Asiatic  Society,  1877. 

f  "  Intercourse  of  China  with  Eastern  Turkestan  and  the  adjacent 
country  in  the  second  century  B.C.,"  T.  W.  Kingsmill,  Journal  of  North 
China  Branch  of  the  Eoyal  Asiatic  Society,  New  Series,  No.  14. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  75 

and  the  Indian  seas  are  now  entirely  extinct ;  but  we  have 
had  little  difficulty  in  believing  the  accounts  of  their  actual 
and  late  existence  contained  in  the  works  of  Pliny  and 
JElian  since  the  discovery  of  the  Colossochelys,  described  by 
Dr.  Falconer,  in  the  Upper  Miocene  deposits  of  the  Siwalik 
Hills  in  North-Western  India.  The  shell  of  Colossochelys 
Atlas  (Falconer  and  Cautley)  measured  twelve  feet,  and  the 
whole  animal  nearly  twenty. 

Pliny,*  who  published  his  work  on  Natural  History  about 
A.D.  77,  states  that  the  turtles  of  the  Indian  Sea  are  of  such 
vast  size  that  a  single  shell  is  sufficient  to  roof  a  habitable 
cottage,  and  that  among  the  islands  of  the  Ked  Sea  the 
navigation  is  mostly  carried  on  in  boats  formed  from  this 
shell. 

JElian,f  about  the  middle  of  the  third  century  of  our  era, 
is  more  specific  in  his  statement,  and  says  that  the  Indian 
river-tortoise  is  very  large,  and  in  size  not  less  than  a  boat 
of  fair  magnitude ;  also,  in  speaking  of  the  Great  Sea,  in 
which  is  Taprobana  (Ceylon),  he  says :  "  There  are  very 
large  tortoises  generated  in  this  sea,  the  shell  of  which  is 
large  enough  to  make  an  entire  roof ;  for  a  single  one  reaches 
the  length  of  fifteen  cubits,  so  that  not  a  few  people  are  able 
to  live  beneath  it,  and  certainly  secure  themselves  from  the 
vehement  rays  of  the  sun ;  they  make  a  broad  shade,  and  so 
resist  rain  that  they  are  preferable  for  this  purpose  to  tiles, 
nor  does  the  rain  beating  against  them  sound  otherwise  than 
if  it  were  falling  on  tiles.  Nor,  indeed,  do  those  who  inhabit 
them  have  any  necessity  for  repairing  them,  as  in  the  case 
of  broken  tiles,  for  the  whole  roof  is  made  out  of  a  solid 
shell  so  that  it  has  the  appearance  of  a  cavernous  or  under- 
mined rock,  and  of  a  natural  roof." 


*  The  Natural  History  of  Pliny.     Translated  by  J.  Bostock  and  H.  T. 
Biley,  6  vols.     Bohn,  London,  1857. 

t  Mliani  de  Natura  Animalium,  P.  Jacobs.     Jense,  1832. 


76  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

El  Edrisi,  in  his  great  geographical  work,*  completed 
A.D.  1154,  speaks  of  them  as  existing  down  to  his  day,  but 
as  his  book  is  admitted  to  be  a  compilation  from  all  preceding 
geographical  works,  he  may  have  been  simply  quoting,  with- 
out special  acknowledgment,  the  statements  given  above. 
He  says,  speaking  of  the  Sea  of  Herkend  (the  Indian  Ocean 
west  of  Ceylon),  "  It  contains  turtles  twenty  cubits  long, 
containing  within  them  as  many  as  one  thousand  eggs." 
Large  tortoises  formerly  inhabited  the  Mascarene  islands,  but 
have  been  destroyed  on  all  of  them,  with  the  exception  of 
the  small  uninhabited  Aldabra  islands,  north  of  the  Seychelle 
group ;  and  those  formerly  abundant  on  the  Galapagos  islands 
are  now  represented  by  only  a  few  survivors,  and  the  species 
rapidly  approaches  extinction. 

I  shall  close  this  chapter  with  a  reference  to  a  creature 
which,  if  it  may  not  be  entitled  to  be  called  "  the  dragon," 
may  at  least  be  considered  as  first  cousin  to  it.  This  is  a 
lacertilian  of  large  size,  at  least  twenty  feet  in  length,  pano- 
plied with  the  most  horrifying  armour,  which  roamed  over 
the  Australian  continent  during  Pleistocene  times,  and  pro- 
bably until  the  introduction  of  the  aborigines. 

Its  remains  have  been  described  by  Professor  Owen  in 
several  communications  to  the  Royal  Society,f  under  the 
name  of  Megalania  prisca.  They  were  procured  by  Mr.  G. 
F.  Bennett  from  the  drift-beds  of  King's  Creek,  a  tributary 
of  the  Condamine  River  in  Australia.  It  was  associated  with 
correspondingly  large  marsupial  mammals,  now  also  extinct. 

From  the  portions  transmitted  to  him  Professor  Owen 
determined  that  it  presented  in  some  respects  a  magnified 
resemblance  of  the  miniature  existing  lizard,  Moloch  honidus, 


*  Geographie  d'Edrisi,  traduite  de  I' Arabs  en  Francis,  P.  Amedee 
Jaubert,  2  vols.  Paris,  ]  836. 

f  Phil.  Trans.,  vol.  cxlix.  p.  43,  1859;  vol.  clxxi.  p.  1,037,  1880  5 
vol.  clxxii.  p.  547, 1881. 


EXTINCTION  OF  SPECIES.  77 

found  in  Western  Australia,*  of  which  Dr.  Gray  remarks, 
"  The  external  appearance  of  this  lizard  is  the  most  ferocious 
of  any  that  I  know."  In  Megalania  the  head  was  rendered 
horrible  and  menacing  by  horns  projecting  from  its  sides, 
and  from  the  tip  of  the  nose,  which  would  be  "as  available 
against  the  attacks  of  Thylacoleo  as  the  buffalo's  horns  are 
against  those  of  the  South  African  lion."  The  tail  con- 
sisted of  a  series  of  annular  segments  armed  with  horny 
spikes,  represented  by  the  less  perfectly  developed  ones  in 
the  existing  species  Uromastix  princeps  from  Zanzibar,  or  in 
the  above-mentioned  moloch.  In  regard  to  these  the  Pro- 
fessor says,  "  That  the  horny  sheaths  of  the  above-described 
supports  or  cores  arming  the  end  of  the  tail  may  have  been 
applied  to  deliver  blows  upon  an  assailant,  seems  not  impro- 
bable, and  this  part  of  the  organization  of  the  great  extinct 
Australian  dragon  may  be  regarded,  with  the  cranial  horn,  as 
parts  of  both  an  offensive  and  defensive  apparatus." 

The  gavial  of  the  Ganges  is  reported  to  be  a  fish-eater 
only,  and  is  considered  harmless  to  man.  The  Indian 
museums,  however,  have  large  specimens,  which  are  said  to 
have  been  captured  after  they  had  destroyed  several  human 
beings ;  and  so  we  may  imagine  that  this  structurally  herbi- 
vorous lizard  (the  Megalania  having  a  horny  edentate  upper 
jaw)  may  have  occasionally  varied  his  diet,  and  have  proved 
an  importunate  neighbour  to  aboriginal  encampments  in 
which  toothsome  children  abounded,  and  that  it  may,  in  fact, 
have  been  one  of  the  sources  from  which  the  myth  of  the 
Bunyip,  of  which  I  shall  speak  hereafter,  has  been  derived. 

*  Description  of  some  New  Species  and  Genera  of  Eeptiles  from 
Western  Australia,  discovered  by  John  Gould,  Esq.,  Annals  and  Maga- 
zine of  Natural  History,  vol.  vii.  p.  88,  1841. 


78  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


CHAPTER  III. 

ANTIQUITY    OF    MAN. 

I  DO  not  propose  to  bestow  any  large  amount  of  space  upon 
the  enumeration  of  the  palseontological  evidence  of  the 
antiquity  of  man.  The  works  of  the  various  eminent 
authors  who  have  devoted  themselves  to  the  special  conside- 
ration of  this  subject  exhaust  all  that  can  be  said  upon  it 
with  our  present  data,  and  to  these  I  must  refer  the  reader 
who  is  desirous  of  acquainting  himself  critically  with  its 
details,  confining  myself  to  a  few  general  statements  based 
on  these  labours. 

In  the  early  days  of  geological  science  when  observers 
were  few,  great  groups  of  strata  were  arranged  under  an 
artificial  classification,  which,  while  it  has  lost  to  a  certain 
extent  the  specific  value  which  it  then  assumed  to  possess,  is 
still  retained  for  purposes  of  convenient  reference.  Masters 
of  the  science  acquired,  so  to  say,  a  possessive  interest  in 
certain  regions  of  it,  and  the  names  of  Sedgwick,  Murchison, 
Jukes,  Phillips,  Lyell,  and  others  became,  and  will  remain, 
inseparably  associated  with  the  history  of  those  great  divi- 
sions of  the  materials  of  the  earth's  crust,  which,  under  the 
names  of  the  Cambrian,  Silurian,  Devonian,  Carboniferous, 
and  Tertiary  formations,  have  become  familiar  to  us. 

In  those  days,  when  observations  were  limited  to  a  com- 
paratively small  area,  the  lines  separating  most  of  these 
formations  were  supposed  to  be  hard  and  definite ;  forms  of 
life  which  characterized  one,  were  presumed  to  have  become 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  79 

entirely  extinct  before  the  inauguration  of  those  which  suc- 
ceeded them,  and  breaks  in  the  stratigraphical  succession 
appeared  to  justify  the  opinion,  held  by  a  large  and  influential 
section,  that  great  cataclysms  or  catastrophes  had  marked  the 
time  when  one  age  or  formation  terminated  and  another 
commenced  to  succeed  it. 

By  degrees,  and  with  the  increase  of  observers,  both  in 
England  and  in  every  portion  of  the  world,  modifications  of 
these  views  obtained ;  passage  beds  were  discovered,  con- 
necting by  insensible  gradations  formations  which  had 
hitherto  been  supposed  to  present  the  most  abrupt  separa- 
tions; transitional  forms  of  life  connecting  them  were 
unearthed ;  and  an  opinion  was  advanced,  and  steadily  con- 
firmed, which  at  the  present  day  it  is  probable  no  one  would 
be  found  to  dispute,  that  not  all  in  one  place  or  country,  but 
discoverable  in  some  part  or  other  of  the  world,  a  perfect 
sequence  exists,  from  the  very  earliest  formations  of  which 
we  have  any  cognizance,  up  to  the  alluvial  and  marine 
deposits  in  process  of  formation  at  the  present  day.* 


*  "  We  shall,  I  think,  eventually  more  fully  recognise  that,  as  is  the 
case  with  the  periods  of  the  day,  each  of  the  larger  geological  divisions 
follows  the  other,  without  any  actual  break  or  boundary ;  and  that  the 
minor  subdivisions  are  like  the  hours  on  the  clock,  useful  and  conven- 
tional rather  than  absolutely  fixed  by  any  general  cause  in  Nature." — 
Annual  Address,  President  of  Geological  Society,  1875. 

"  With  regard  to  stratigraphical  geology,  the  main  foundations  are 
already  laid,  and  a  great  part  of  the  details  filled  in.  The  tendency  of 
modern  discoveries  has  already  been,  and  will  probably  still  be,  to  fill 
up  those  breaks,  which,  according  to  the  view  of  many,  though  by  no 
means  all  geologists,  are  so  frequently  assumed  to  exist  between  different 
geological  periods  and  to  bring  about  a  more  full  recognition  of  the 
continuity  of  geological  time.  As  knowledge  increases,  it  will,  I  think, 
become  more  and  more  apparent  that  all  existing  divisions  of  time  are 
to  a  considerable  extent  local  and  arbitrary.  But,  even  -when  this  is 
fully  recognised,  it  will  still  be  found  desirable  to  retain  them,  if  only 
for  the  sake  of  convenience  and  approximate  precision." — Annual 
Address,  President  of  Geological  Society,  1876. 


, 

r 


80  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Correlatively  it  was  deduced  that  the  same  phenomena  of 
nature  have  been  in  action  since  the  earliest  period  when 
organic  existence  can  be  affirmed.  The  gradual  degradation 
of  pre-existing  continents  by  normal  destructive  agencies, 
the  upheaval  and  subsidence  of  large  areas,  the  effusion  from 
volcanic  vents,  into  the  air  or  sea,  of  ashes  and  lavas,  the 
action  of  frost  and  ice,  of  heat,  rain,  and  sunshine — all  these 
have  acted  in  the  past  as  they  are  still  acting  before  our 


In  earlier  days,  arguing  from  limited  data,  a  progressive 
creation  was  claimed  which  confined  the  appearance  of  the 
higher  form  of  vertebrate  life  to  a  successive  and  widely- 
stepped  gradation. 

Hugh  Miller,  and  other  able  thinkers,  noted  with  satisfac- 
tion the  appearance,  first  of  fish,  then  of  reptiles,  next  of 
birds  and  mammals,  and  finally,  as  the  crowning  work  of  all, 
both  geologically  and  actually,  quite  recently  of  man. 

This  wonderful  confirmation  of  the  Biblical  history  of 
creation  appealed  so  gratefully  to  many,  that  it  caused  for  a 
time  a  disposition  to  cramp  discovery,  and  even  to  warp  the 
facts  of  science,  in  order  to  make  them  harmonize  with  the 
statements  of  Revelation.  The  alleged  proofs  of  the  existence 
of  pre-historic  man  were  for  a  long  time  jealously  disputed, 
and  it  was  only  by  slow  degrees  that  they  were  admitted, 
that  the  tenets  of  the  Darwinian  school  gained  ground,  and 
that  the  full  meaning  was  appreciated  of  such  anomalies  as 
the  existence  at  the  present  day  of  Ganoid  fishes  both  in 
America  and  Europe,  of  true  Palaeozoic  type,  or  of  Oolitic 
forms  on  the  Australian  continent  and  in  the  adjacent  seas. 

But  step  by  step  marvellous  palseontological  discoveries 
were  made,  and  the  pillars  which  mark  the  advent  of  each 
great  form  of  life  have  had  to  be  set  back,  until  now  no  one 
would,  I  think,  be  entirely  safe  in  affirming  that  even  in  the 
Cambrian,  the  oldest  of  all  fossiliferous  formations,  vestiges 
of  mammals,  that  is  to  say,  of  the  highest  forms  of  life,  may 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  81 

not  at  a  future  day  be  found,  or  that  the  records  contained 
between  the  Cambrian  and  the  present  day,  may  not  in  fact 
be  but  a  few  pages  as  compared  with  the  whole  volume  of 
the  world's  history.* 


*  "  It  was  not  until  January  1832,  that  the  second  volume  of  the 
Principles  was  published,  when  it  was  received  with  as  much  favour  as 
the  first  had  been.  It  related  more  especially  to  the  changes  in  the 
organic  world,  while  the  former  volume  had  treated  mainly  of  the 
inorganic  forces  of  nature.  Singularly  enough,  some  of  the  points 
which  were  seized  on  by  his  great  fellow-labourer  Murchison  for  his 
presidential  address  to  this  Society  in  1832,  as  subjects  for  felicitation, 
are  precisely  those  which  the  candid  mind  of  Lyell,  ever  ready  to  attach 
the  full  value  to  discoveries  or  arguments  from  time  to  time  brought 
forward,  even  when  in  opposition  to  his  own  views,  ultimately  found 
reason  to  modify.  We  can  never,  I  think,  more  highly  appreciate  Sir 
Charles  Lyell's  freshness  of  mind,  his  candour  and  love  of  truth,  than 
when  we  compare  certain  portions  of  the  first  edition  of  the  Principles 
with  those  which  occupy  the  same  place  in  the  last,  and  trace  the 
manner  in  which  his  judicial  intellect  was  eventually  led  to  conclusions 
diametrically  opposed  to  those  which  he  originally  held.  To  those 
acquainted  only  with  the  latest  editions  of  the  Principles,  and  with  his 
Antiquity  of  Man,  it  may  sound  almost  ironical  in  Murchison  to  have 
written,  '  I  cannot  avoid  noticing  the  clear  and  impartial  manner  in 
which  the  untenable  parts  of  the  dogmas  concerning  the  alteration  and 
transmutation  of  species  and  genera  are  refuted,  and  how  satisfactorily 
the  author  confirms  the  great  truth  of  the  recent  appearance  of  man 
upon  our  planet.' 

"By  the  work  (Principles  of  Geology,  vol.  iii.),  as  a  whole,  was  dealt 
the  most  telling  blow  that  had  ever  fallen  upon  those  to  whom  it 
appears  '  more  philosophical  to  speculate  on  the  possibilities  of  the  past 
than  patiently  to  explore  the  realities  of  the  present,'  while  the  earnest 
and  careful  endeavour  to  reconcile  the  former  indications  of  change 
with  the  evidence  of  gradual  mutation  now  in  progress,  or  which  may 
be  in  progress,  received  its  greatest  encouragement.  The  doctrines 
which  Hutton  and  Playf air  had  held  and  taught  assumed  new  and  more 
vigorous  life  as  better  principles  were  explained  by  their  eminent  suc- 
cessor, and  were  supported  by  arguments  which,  as  a  whole,  were  incon- 
trovertible."— Annual  Address,  President  of  Geological  Society,  1876. 

"But,  as  Sir  Eoderick  Murchison  has  long  ago  proved,  there  are 
parts  of  the  record  which  are  singularly  complete,  and  in  those  parts 
we  have  the  proof  of  creation  without  any  indication  of  development. 
The  Silurian  rocks,  as  regards  oceanic  life,  are  perfect  and  abundant  in 

6 


82  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

It  is  with  the  later  of  these  records  that  we  have  to  deal, 
in  which  discoveries  have  been  made  sufficiently  progressive 
to  justify  the  expectation  that  they  have  by  no  means  reached 
their  limit,  and  sufficiently  ample  in  themselves  to  open  the 
widest  fields  for  philosophic  speculation  and  deduction. 

Before  stating  these,  it  may  be  premised  that  estimates 
have  been  attempted  by  various  geologists  of  the  collective 
age  of  the  different  groups  of  formations.  These  are  based 
on  reasonings  which  for  the  most  part  it  is  unnecessary  to  give 
in  detail,  in  so  much  as  these  can  scarcely  yet  be  considered 
to  have  passed  the  bounds  of  speculation,  and  very  different 
results  can  be  arrived  at  by  theorists  according  to  the  relative 
importance  which  they  attach  to  the  data  employed  in  the 
calculation. 

Thus  Mr.  T.  Mellard  Reade,  in  a  paper  communicated  to 
the  Royal  Society  in  1878,  concludes  that  the  formation  of 
the  sedimentary  strata  must  have  occupied  at  least  six  hun- 
dred million  years :  which  he  divides  in  round  numbers  as 
follows : — 

Millions  of  Tears. 

Laurentian,  Cambrian,  and  Silurian  ....     200 
Old  Eed,  Carboniferous,  Permian,  and  New  Red       .     200 
Jurassic,   Wealden,   Cretaceous,   Eocene,   Miocene, 
Pliocene,  and  Post  Pliocene 200 

600 

He  estimates  the  average  thickness  of  the  sedimentary 
crust  of  the  earth  to  be  at  least  one  mile,  and  from  a  compu- 


the  forms  they  have  preserved.  Yet  there  are  no  fish.  The  Devonian 
age  followed  tranquilly  and  without  a  break,  and  in  the  Devonian  sea, 
suddenly,  fish  appear,  appear  in  shoals,  and  in  form  of  the  highest  and 
most  perfect  type." — The  Duke  of  Argyll,  Primeval  Man,  p.  45,  London, 
1869. 

*  T.  Mellard  Reade,  "  Limestone  as  an  Index  of  Geological  Time," 
Proceedings,  Royal  Society,  London,  vol.  xxviii.,  p.  281. 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN. 


tation  of  the  proportion  of  carbonate  and  sulphate  of  lime 
to  materials  held  in  suspension  in  various  river-waters  from 
a  variety  of  formations,  infers  that  one-tenth  of  this  crust  is 
calcareous. 

He  estimates  the  annual  flow  of  water  in  all  the  great 
river-basins,  the  proportion  of  rain-water  running  off  the 
granitic  and  trappean  rocks,  the  percentage  of  lime  in  solu- 
tion which  they  carry  down,  and  arrives  at  the  conclusion 
that  the  minimum  time  requisite  for  the  elimination  of  the 
calcareous  matter  contained  in  the  sedimentary  crust  of  the 
earth,  is  at  least  six  hundred  millions  of  years. 

A  writer  in  the  Gentleman's  Magazine*  (Professor  Huxley  ?), 
whose  article  I  am  only  able  to  quote  at  second-hand,  makes 
an  estimate  which,  though  much  lower  than  the  above,  is  still 
of  enormous  magnitude,  as  follows  : — 

Feet.  Years. 

Laurentian         ....  30,000  30,000,000 

Cambrian  .        .       ..        .        .  25,000  25,000,000 

Silurian 6,000  6,000,000 

Old  Eed  and  Devonian       .        .  10,000  10,000,000 

Carboniferous     ....  12,000  12,000,000 

Secondary 10,000  10,00.0,000 

Tertiary  and  Post  Tertiary         .  1,000  1,000,000 

Gaps  and  unrepresented  strata  .  6,000  6,000,000 


Total    .     100,000,000 

Mr.  Darwin,  arguing  upon  Sir  W.  Thompson's  estimate  of 
a  minimum  of  ninety-eight  and  maximum  of  two  hundred 
millions  of  years  since  the  consolidation  of  the  crust,  and  on 
Mr.  Croll's  estimate  of  sixty  millions,  as  the  time  elapsed 
i  since  the  Cambrian  period,  considers  that  the  latter  is  quite 
insufficient  to  permit  of  the  many  and  great  mutations  of 
life  which  have  certainly  occurred  since  then.  He  judges 


Scientific  American,  Supplement,  February  1881. 

6  * 


84  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

from  the  small  amount  of  organic  change  since  the  com- 
mencement of  the  glacial  epoch,  and  adds  that  the  previous 
one  hundred  and  forty  million  years  can  hardly  be  considered 
as  sufficient  for  the  development  of  the  varied  forms  of  life 
which  certainly  existed  towards  the  close  of  the  Cambrian 
period. 

On  the  other  hand,  Mr.  Croll  considers  that  it  is  utterly 
impossible  that  the  existing  order  of  things,  as  regards  our 
globe,  can  date  so  far  back  as  anything  like  five  hundred 
millions  of  years,  and,  starting  with  referring  the  commence- 
ment of  the  Glacial  epoch  to  two  hundred  and  fifty  thousand 
years  ago,  allows  fifteen  millions  since  the  beginning  of 
the  Eocene  period,  and  sixty  millions  of  years  in  all  since  the 
beginning  of  the  Cambrian  period.  He  bases  his  arguments 
on  the  limit  to  the  age  of  the  sun's  heat  as  detailed  by  Sir 
William  Thompson. 

Sir  Charles  Lyell  and  Professor  Haughton  respectively 
estimated  the  expiration  of  time  from  the  commencement 
of  the  Cambrian  at  two  hundred  and  forty  and  two  hundred 
millions  of  years,  basing  their  calculations  on  the  rate  of  ( 
modification  of  the  species  of  mollusca,  in  the  one  case,  and  on 
the  rate  of  formation  of  rocks  and  their  maximum  thickness, 
in  the  other. 

This,  moreover,  is  irrespective  of  the  vast  periods  during 
which  life  must  have  existed,  which  on  the  development 
theory  necessarily  preceded  the  Cambrian,  and,  according  to 
Mr.  Darwin,  should  not  be  less  than  in  the  proportion  of 
five  to  two. 

In  fine,  one  school  of  geologists  and  zoologists  demand 
the  maximum  periods  quoted  above,  to  account  for  the 
amount  of  sedimentary  deposit,  and  the  specific  developments 
which  have  occurred  ;  the  other  considers  the  periods  claimed 
as  requisite  for  these  actions  to  be  unnecessary,  and  to  be  in 
excess  of  the  limits  which,  according  to  their  views,  the 
physical  elements  of  the  case  permit. 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  85 

Mr.  Wallace,  in  reviewing  the  question,  dwells  on  the  pro- 
bability of  the  rate  of  geological  changes  having  been  greater 
in  very  remote  times  than  it  is  at  present,  and  thus  opens  a 
way  to  the  reconciliation  of  the  opposing  views  so  far  as  one 
half  the  question  is  concerned. 

Having  thus  adverted  to  the  principles  upon  which  various 
theorists  have  in  part  based  their  attacks  on  the  problem  of 
the  estimation  of  the  duration  of  geological  ages,  I  may  now 
make  a  few  more  detailed  observations  upon  those  later 
periods  during  which  man  is,  now,  generally  admitted  to  have 
existed,  and  refer  lightly  to  the  earlier  times  which  some,  but 
not  all,  geologists  consider  to  have  furnished  evidences  of  his 
presence. 

I  omit  discussing  the  doubtful  assertions  of  the  extreme 
antiquity  of  man,  which  come  to  us  from  American  observers, 
such  as  are  based  on  supposed  footprints  in  rocks  of  secon- 
dary age,  figured  in  a  semi-scientific  and  exceedingly  valuable 
popular  journal.  There  are  other  theories  which  I  omit, 
both  because  they  need  further  confirmation  by  scientific 
investigators,  and  because  they  deal  with  periods  so  remote 
as  to  be  totally  devoid  of  significance  for  the  argument  of 
this  work. 

Nor,  up  to  the  present  time,  are  the  evidences  of  the 
existence  of  man  during  Miocene  and  Pliocene  times  admitted 
as  conclusive.  Professor  Capellini  has  discovered,  in  deposits 
recognised  by  Italian  geologists  as  of  Pliocene  age,  cetacean 
bones,  which  are  marked  with  incisions  such  as  only  a  sharp 
instrument  could  have  produced,  and  which,  in  his  opinion, 
must  be  ascribed  to  human  agency.  To  this  view  it  is  ob- 
jected that  the  incisions  might  have  been  made  by  the  teeth 
of  fishes,  and  further  evidence  is  waited  for. 

Not  a  few  discoveries  have  been  made,  apparently  extend- 
ing the  existence  of  man  to  a  much  more  remote  antiquity, 
that  of  Miocene  times.  M.  1'Abbe  Bourgeois  has  collected, 
from  undoubted  Miocene  strata  at  Thenay,  supposed  flint 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


implements  which  he  conceives  to  exhibit  evidences  of  having 
been  fashioned  by  man,  as  well  as  stones  showing  in  some 
cases  traces  of  the  action  of  fire,  and  which  he  supposes  to 
have  been  used  as  pot-boilers.  M.  Carlos  Kibeiro  has  made 
similar  discoveries  of  worked  flints  and  quartzites  in  the 
Pliocene  and  Miocene  of  the  Tagus  ;  worked  flint  has  been 
found  in  the  Miocene  of  Aurillac  (Auvergne)  by  M.  Tardy, 
and  a  cut  rib  of  Halitherium  fossile,  a  Miocene  species,  by 
M.  Delaunay  at  Pouance. 

Very  divided  opinions  are  entertained  as  to  the  interpreta- 
tion of  the  supposed  implements  discovered  by  M.  1'Abbe 
Bourgeois.  M.  Quatrefages,  after  a  period  of  doubt,  has 
espoused  the  view  of  their  being  of  human  origin,  and  of 
Miocene  age.  "  Since  then,"  he  says,  "fresh  specimens  dis- 
covered have  removed  my  last  doubts.  A  small  knife  or 
scraper,  among  others,  which  shows  a  fine  regular  finish,  can, 
in  my  opinion,  only  have  been  shaped  by  man.  Nevertheless, 
I  do  not  blame  those  of  my  colleagues  who  deny  or  still 
doubt.  In  such  a  matter  there  is  no  very  great  urgency, 
and,  doubtless,  the  existence  of  Miocene  man  will  be  proved, 
as  that  of  Glacial  and  Pliocene  has  been,  by  facts."  Mr. 
Geikie,  from  whose  work — Prehistoric  Europe — I  have  sum- 
marized the  above  statements,  says,  in  reference  to  this 
question :  "  There  is  unquestionably  much  force  in  what 
M.  Quatrefages  says  ;  nevertheless,  most  geologists  will 
agree  with  him  that  the  question  of  man's  Miocene  age  still 
remains  to  be  demonstrated  by  unequivocal  evidence.  At 
present,  all  that  we  can  safely  say  is,  that  man  was  probably 
living  in  Europe  near  the  close  of  the  Pliocene  period,  and 
that  he  was  certainly  an  occupant  of  our  continent  during 
glacial  and  interglacial  times." 

Professor  Marsh  considers  that  the  evidence,  as  it  stands 
to-day,  although  not  conclusive,  "  seems  to  place  the  first 
appearance  of  man  [in  America]  in  the  Pliocene,  and  that 
the  best  proofs  of  this  are  to  be  found  on  the  Pacific  coast." 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  87 

He  adds  :  "  During  several  visits  to  that  region  many  facts 
were  brought  to  my  knowledge  which  render  this  more  than 
prohable.  Man,  at  this  time,  was  a  savage,  and  was  doubt- 
less forced  by  the  great  volcanic  outbreaks  to  continue  his 
migration.  This  was  at  first  to  the  south,  since  mountain 
chains  were  barriers  on  the  east,"  and  "  he  doubtless  first 
came  across  Behring's  Straits." 

I  have  hitherto  assumed  a  certain  acquaintance,  upon  the 
part  of  the  general  reader,  with  the  terms  Eocene,  Miocene, 
and  Pliocene,  happily  invented  by  Sir  Charles  Lyell  to  desig- 
nate three  of  the  four  great  divisions  of  the  Tertiary  age. 
These,  from  their  universal  acceptation  and  constant  use, 
have  "  become  familiar  in  our  mouths  as  household  words." 
But  it  will  be  well,  before  further  elaborating  points  in  the 
history  of  these  groups,  bearing  upon  our  argument,  to  take 
into  consideration  their  subdivisions,  and  the  equivalent  or 
contemporary  deposits  composing  them  in  various  countries. 
This  can  be  most  conveniently  done  by  displaying  these,  in 
descending  order,  in  a  tabular  form,  which  I  accordingly  annex 
below.  This  is  the  more  desirable  as  there  are  few  depart- 
ments in  geological  science  which  have  received  more  attention 
than  this ;  or  in  which  greater  returns,  in  the  shape  of  im- 
portant and  interesting  discoveries  relative  to  man's  existence, 
have  been  made. 

Comparatively  recent — comparatively,  that  is  to  say,  with 
regard  to  the  vast  aeons  that  preceded  them,  but  extending 
back  over  enormous  spaces  of  time  when  contrasted  with  the 
limited  duration  of  written  history, — they  embrace  the  period 
during  which  the  mainly  existing  distribution  of  land  and  ocean 
has  obtained,  and  the  present  forms  of  life  have  appeared  by 
evolution  from  preceding  species,  or,  as  some  few  still  maintain, 
by  separate  and  special  creation, 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


S3 


THE  TERTIARY  OR  CAINOZOIC  AGE. 

1.  Recent 

2.  Post  Glacial] 


|0> 


3  £ 

a  ° 
|1 


^     3.  Pleistocene    or 

Quaternary 

^  (including 

Glacial 
JM  formation)  ^ 


s-Post  Tertiary 


4.  Newer  Pliocene  ^ 

>  Pliocene 

5.  Older  Pliocene  ) 

6.  Upper  Miocene  ^ 

>  Miocene 

7.  Lower  Miocene  ) 


8.  Upper  Eocene 

9.  Middle    do. 
10.  Lower     do. 


Eocene 


PLIOCENE. 

BRITAIN. 

Norwich 

Sand  loam  and  gravel 

Marine,  land,  and  fresh- water 

shells 

Many       f  Fusus  striatus 
shells       \       „      antiquus 
abundant,  1  Tunitella  communis 
such  as      V^Cardium  edule,  still  existing 

in  adjacent  sea. 
Norwich  Crag. 


Crag 


I 


Red, 

White, 

or 
Coralline 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN. 


II 


I  « 

q  £ 


I     g 


ill 

Ml 


ri 


,§     »S        g.S^ 
I     1 ^ a    «1« 


!l    I 


E-^e0 


is 


5,  f 


ll 


s 

11 


\\\ 


111 


•|i 


*|  a- 

iM- 

3      g 


90 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


ut  pousd  ^q^  jo  •Bnn'Bj  aqq.  o^ 
sraaoj  jeq^o  pnii  'tn 


S"? 

If 
11 

ll 


II 

ss 


in ! 


uaaq  ^aX  q.ou  SBq  s^isodap 

TTBOTjamy  jaq^o  sq^  jo  rasiisn'BJ'Bd  aq^  ;  HIIS^T  jg  jo  anaoog; 
aq^  jo  ijTraj'eAinba  eq^  SB  nojC1!  JCq  pajepisuoD  aj 

1       fi    l?ii 

C3    O  -r*  r3  S 


[poua  j 


•so      . 


ill 

4*     O 

•    is 


rr 


" 


iri 


I  I 

II  € 

Li    I 


A 


o^ol^fe;  "-S  f 


.A  !i 

sis  g        -§  S 
is  S  I         °'S 

laing  1^ 

"Hi.** 

S'S.LS'C   », 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  91 

We  learn,  both  from  the  nature  of  these  deposits  and  from 
their  organic  contents,  that  climatic  oscillations  have  been 
passing  during  the  whole  period  of  their  deposition  over  the 
surface  of  the  globe,  and  inducing  corresponding  fluctuations 
in  the  character  of  the  vegetable  and  animal  life  abounding 
on  it.  A  complete  collation  of  these  varying  conditions  at 
synchronous  periods  remains  to  be  achieved,  but  the  study 
of  our  own  country,  and  those  adjacent  to  it,  shows  that 
alternations  of  tropical,  boreal,  and  temperate  climate  have 
occurred  in  it ;  a  remarkable  series  of  conditions  which  has 
only  lately  been  thoroughly  and  satisfactorily  accounted  for. 

Thus,  during  a  portion  of  the  Eocene  period  a  tropical 
climate  prevailed,  as  is  evidenced  by  deposits  containing 
remains  of  palms  of  an  equatorial  type,  crocodiles,  turtles, 
tropical  shells,  and  other  remains  attesting  the  existence  of 
a  high  temperature.  The  converse  is  proved  of  the  Pleisto- 
cene by  the  existence  of  a  boreal  fauna,  and  the  widespread 
evidences  of  glacial  action.  The  gradations  of  climate  during 
the  Miocene  and  Pliocene,  and  the  amelioration  subsequent 
to  the  glacial  period,  have  resulted  in  the  gradual  develop- 
ment or  appearance  of  specific  life  as  it  exists  at  present. 

Corresponding  indications  of  secular  variability  of  climate 
are  derived  from  all  quarters :  during  the  Miocene  age, 
Greenland  (in  N.  Lat.  70°)  developed  an  abundance  of  trees, 
such  as  the  yew,  the  Redwood,  a  Sequoia  allied  to  the  Cali- 
fornian  species,  beeches,  planes,  willows,  oaks,  poplars,  and 
walnuts,  as  well  as  a  Magnolia  and  a  Zamia.  In  Spitzbergen 
(N.  Lat.  78°  56')  flourished  yews,  hazels,  poplars,  alders, 
beeches,  and  limes.  At  the  present  day,  a  dwarf  willow  and 
a  few  herbaceous  plants  form  the  only  vegetation,  and  the 
ground  is  covered  with  almost  perpetual  ice  and  snow. 

Many  similar  fluctuations  of  climate  have  been  traced  right 
back  through  the  geological  record ;  but  this  fact,  though 
interesting  in  relation  to  the  general  solution  of  the  causes, 
has  little  bearing  on  the  present  purpose. 


92  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Sir  Charles  Lyell  conceived  that  all  cosmical  changes  of 
climate  in  the  past  might  be  accounted  for  by  the  varying 
preponderance  of  land  in  the  vicinity  of  the  equator  or  near 
the  poles,  supplemented,  of  course,  in  a  subordinate  degree 
by  alteration  of  level  and  the  influence  of  ocean  currents. 
When,  for  example,  at  any  geological  period  the  excess  of 
land  was  equatorial,  the  ascent  and  passage  northwards  of 
currents  of  heated  air  would,  according  to  his  view,  render 
the  poles  habitable ;  while,  per  contra,  the  excessive  massing 
of  land  around  the  pole,  and  absence  of  it  from  the  equator, 
would  cause  an  arctic  climate  to  spread  far  over  the  now 
temperate  latitudes. 

The  correctness  of  these  inferences  has  been  objected  to 
by  Mr.  James  Geikie  and  Dr.  Croll,  who  doubt  whether  the 
northward  currents  of  air  would  act  as  successful  carriers  of 
heat  to  the  polar  regions,  or  whether  they  would  not  rather 
dissipate  it  into  space  upon  the  road.  On  the  other  hand, 
Mr.  Geikie,  though  admitting  that  the  temperature  of  a  large 
unbroken  arctic  continent  would  be  low,  suggests  that,  as  the 
winds  would  be  stripped  of  all  moisture  on  its  fringes,  the 
interior  would  therefore  be  without  accumulations  of  snow  and 
ice;  and  in  the  more  probable  event  of  its  being  deeply  indented 
by  fjords  and  bays,  warm  sea-currents  (the  representatives  of 
our  present  Gulf  and  Japan  streams,  but  possessing  a  higher 
temperature  than  either,  from  the  greater  extent  of  equatorial 
sea-surface  originating  them,  and  exposed  to  the  sun's  influ- 
ence) would  flow  northward,  and,  ramifying,  carry  with  them 
warm  and  heated  atmospheres  far  into  its  interior,  though 
even  these,  he  'thinks,  would  be  insufficient  in  their  effects 
under  any  circumstances  to  produce  the  sub-tropical  climates 
which  are  known  to  have  existed  in  high  latitudes. 

Mr.  John  Evans*  has  thrown  out  the  idea  that  possibly  a 


*  Proceedings,  Royal  Sooip+v,  vol.  xv.  No.  82,  1866. 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN. 


complete  translation  of  geographical  position  with  respect  to 
polar  axes  may  have  been  produced  by  a  sliding  of  the  whole 
surface  crust  of  the  globe  about  a  fluid  nucleus.  This,  he 
considers,  would  be  induced  by  disturbances  of  equilibrium 
of  the  whole  mass  from  geological  causes.  He  further  points 
out  that  the  difference  between  the  polar  and  equatorial  dia- 
meters of  the  globe,  which  constitutes  an  important  objection 
to  his  theory,  is  materially  reduced  when  we  take  into  con- 
sideration the  enormous  depth  of  the  ocean  over  a  large 
portion  of  the  equator,  and  the  great  tracts  of  land  elevated 
considerably  above  the  sea-level  in  higher  latitudes.  He  also 
speculates  on  the  general  average  of  the  surface  having  in 
bygone  geological  epochs  approached  much  more  nearly  to 
that  of  a  sphere  than  it  does  at  the  present  time. 

Sir  John  Lubbock  favoured  the  idea  of  a  change  in  the 
position  of  the  axis  of  rotation,  and  this  view  has  been  sup- 
ported by  Sir  H.  James*  and  many  later  geologists.!  If  I 
apprehend  their  arguments  correctly,  this  change  could  only 
have  been  produced  by  what  may  be  termed  geological  revo- 
lutions. These  are  great  outbursts  of  volcanic  matter,  eleva- 
tions, subsidences,  and  the  like.  These  having  probably 
been  almost  continuous  throughout  geological  time,  incessant 
changes,  small  or  great,  would  be  demanded  in  the  position 
of  the  axis,  and  the  world  must  be  considered  as  a  globe 
rolling  over  in  space  with  every  alteration  of  its  centre  of 
gravity.  The  possibility  of  this  view  must  be  left  for  mathe- 
maticians and  astronomers  to  determine. 

Sounder  arguments  sustain  the  theory  propounded  by  Dr. 
Croll  (though  this,  again,  is  not  universally  accepted),  that 
all  these  alterations  of  climate  can  be  accounted  for  by  the 
effects  of  nutation,  and  the  precession  of  the  equinoxes. 


*  Athenaeum,  August  25,  I860,  &c. 

f  The  mass  of  astronomers,  however,  deny  that  this  is  possible  to  any 
very  great  extent. 


94  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

From  these  changes,  combined  with  the  eccentricity  of  the 
ecliptic  from  the  first,  it  results  that  at  intervals  of  ten 
thousand  five  hundred  years,  the  northern  and  southern 
hemispheres  are  alternately  in  aphelion  during  the  winter, 
and  in  perihelion  during  the  summer  months,  and  vice  versa  ; 
or,  in  other  words,  that  if  at  any  given  period  the  inclination 
of  the  earth's  axis  produces  winter  in  the  northern  hemi- 
sphere, while  the  earth  is  at  a  maximum  distance  from  that 
focus  of  its  orbit  in  which  the  sun  is  situated,  then,  after 
an  interval  of  ten  thousand  five  hundred  years,  and  as  a 
result  of  the  sum  of  the  backward  motion  of  the  equinoxes 
along  the  ecliptic,  at  the  rate  of  50'  annually,  the  converse 
will  obtain,  and  it  will  be  winter  in  the  northern  hemisphere 
while  the  earth  is  at  a  minimum  distance  from  the  sun. 

The  amount  of  eccentricity  of  the  ecliptic  varies  greatly 
during  long  periods,  and  has  been  calculated  for  several 
million  years  back.  Mr.  Croll*  has  demonstrated  a  theory 
explaining  all  great  secular  variations  of  climate  as  indirectly 
the  result  of  this,  through  the  action  of  sundry  physical 
agencies,  such  as  the  accumulation  of  snow  and  ice,  and 
especially  the  deflection  of  ocean  currents.  From  a  consi- 
deration of  the  tables  which  he  has  computed  of  the  eccen- 
tricity and  longitude  of  the  earth's  orbit,  he  refers  the  glacial 
epoch  to  a  period  commencing  about  two  hundred  and  forty 
thousand  years  back,  and  extending  down  to  about  eighty 
thousand  years  ago,  and  he  describes  it  as  "  consisting  of 
a  long  succession  of  cold  and  warm  periods  ;  the  warm 
periods  of  the  one  hemisphere  corresponding  in  time  with 
the  cold  periods  of  the  other,  and  vice  versa." 

Having  thus  spoken  of  the  processes  adopted  for  estimating 
the  duration  of  geological  ages,  and  the  results  which  have 
been  arrived  at,  with  great  probability  of  accuracy,  in  regard 


*  James  Croll,  F.B.S.,  &c.,  Climate  and  Time  in  their  Geological  Rela- 
tions. 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  95 

to  some  of  the  more  recent,  it  now  only  remains  to  briefly 
state  the  facts  from  which  the  existence  of  man,  during  these 
latter  periods,  has  been  demonstrated.  The  literature  of 
this  subject  already  extends  to  volumes,  and  it  is  therefore 
obviously  impossible,  in  the  course  of  the  few  pages  which 
the  limits  of  this  work  admit,  to  give  anything  but  the 
shortest  abstract,  or  to  assign  the  credit  relatively  due  to  the 
numerous  progressive  workers  in  this  rich  field  of  research. 
I  therefore  content  myself  with  taking  as  my  text-book  Mr. 
James  Geikie's  Prehistoric  Europe,  the  latest  and  most  ex- 
haustive work  upon  the  subject,  and  summarizing  from  it 
the  statements  essential  to  my  purpose. 

From  it  we  learn  that,  long  prior  to  the  ages  when  men 
were  acquainted  with  the  uses  of  bronze  and  iron,  there 
existed  nations  or  tribes,  ignorant  of  the  means  by  which 
these  metals  are  utilized,  whose  weapons  and  implements 
were  formed  of  stone,  horn,  bone,  and  wood. 

These,  again,  may  be  divided  into  an  earlier  and  a  later 
race,  strongly  characterized  by  the  marked  differences  in  the 
nature  of  the  stone  implements  which  they  respectively 
manufactured,  both  in  respect  to  the  material  employed  and 
the  amount  of  finish  bestowed  upon  it.  To  the  two  periods 
in  which  these  people  lived  the  terms  Palaeolithic  and  Neo- 
lithic have  been  respectively  applied,  and  a  vast  era  is  sup- 
posed to  have  intervened  between  the  retiring  from  Europe 
of  the  one  and  the  appearance  there  of  the  other. 

Palaeolithic  man  was  contemporaneous  with  the  mammoth 
(Elephas  primigenius),  the  woolly  rhinoceros  (Rhinoceros  primi- 
genius),  the  Hippopotamus  major,  and  a  variety  of  other  species, 
now  quite  extinct,  as  well  as  with  many  which,  though  still 
existing  in  other  regions,  are  no  longer  found  in  Europe ; 
whereas  the  animals  contemporaneous  with  Neolithic  man 
were  essentially  the  same  as  those  still  occupying  it. 

The  stone  implements  of  Palaeolithic  man  had  but  little 
variety  of  form,  were  very  rudely  fashioned,  being  merely 


96 


MYTHICAL  MONSTEBS. 


*  Figs.  19  and  21  are  taken,  by  permission  of  Edmund  Christy,  Esq. 
from  Eeliquice  Aquitanicce,  &c.,  London,  1875. 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN. 


97 


chipped  into  shape,  and  never  ground  or  polished  ;  they  were 
worked  nearly  entirely  out  of  flint  and  chert.  Those  of 
Neolithic  man  were  made  of  many  varieties  of  hard  stone, 
often  beautifully  finished,  frequently  ground  to  a  sharp  point 
or  edge,  and  polished  all  over. 

Palaeolithic  men  were  unacquainted  with  pottery  and  the 
art  of  weaving,  and  apparently  had  no  domesticated  animals 
or  system  of  cultivation  ;  but  the  Neolithic  lake  dwellers  of 
Switzerland  had  looms,  pottery,  cereals,  and  domesticated 
animals,  such  as  swine,  sheep,  horses,  dogs,  &c. 

Implements  of  horn,  bone,  and  wood  were  in  common  use 
among  both  races,  but  those  of  the  older  are  frequently  dis- 
tinguished by  their  being  sculptured  with  great  ability  or 
ornamented  with  life-like  engravings  of  the  various  animals 
living  at  the  period ;  whereas  there  appears  to  have  been  a 
marked  absence  of  any  similar  artistic  ability  on  the  part  of 
Neolithic  man. 


FIG.  20.— REINDEER  ENGRAVED  ON  ANTLER  BY  PALEOLITHIC  MAN 
(After  Get/tie.) 

Again,  it  is  noticeable  that,  while  the  passage  from  the 

i  Neolithic  age  into  the  succeeding  bronze  age  was  gradual, 

and,  indeed,  that  the  use  of  stone  implements  and,  in  some 

7 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


parts,  weapons,  was  contemporaneous  with  that  of  bronze  in 
other  places,  no  evidence  exists  of  a  transition  from  Palaeo- 
lithic into  Neolithic  times.  On  the  contrary,  the  examination 
of  bone  deposits,  such  as  those  of  Kent's  Cave  and  Victoria 
Cave  in  England,  and  numerous  others  in  Belgium  and 
France,  attest  "  beyond  doubt  that  a  considerable  period 
must  have  supervened  after  the  departure  of  Palaeolithic  man 
and  before  the  arrival  of  his  Neolithic  successor."  The 
discovery  of  remains  of  Palaeolithic  man  and  animals  in  river 
deposits  in  England  and  on  the  Continent,  often  at  consider- 
able elevations*  above  the  existing  valley  bottoms,  and  in 
Loss,  and  the  identification  of  the  Pleistocene  or  Quaternary 
period  with  Preglacial  and  Glacial  times,  offer  a  means  of 
estimating  what  that  lapse  of  time  must  have  been.f 


*  In  some  cases  as  much  as  150  feet. 

f  "  Starting  from  the  opinion  generally  accepted  among  geologists, 
that  man  was  on  the  earth  at  the  close  of  the  Glacial  epoch,  Professor 
B.  F.  Mudge  adduces  evidence  to  prove  that  the  antiquity  of  man  cannot 
be  less  than  200,000  years. 

"  His  argument,  as  given  in  the  Kansas  City  Review  of  Science,  is 
about  as  follows : — 

"  After  the  Glacial  epoch,  geologists  fix  three  distinct  epochs,  the 
Champlain,  the  Terrace,  and  the  Delta,  all  supposed  to  be  of  nearly 
equal  lengths. 

"  Now  we  have  in  the  delta  of  the  Mississippi  a  means  of  measuring 
the  duration  of  the  third  of  these  epochs. 

"  For  a  distance  of  about  two  hundred  miles  of  this  delta  are  seen 
forest  growths  of  large  trees,  one  after  the  other,  with  interspaces  of 
sand.  There  are  ten  of  these  distinct  forest  growths,  which  have  begun 
and  ended  one  after  the  other.  The  trees  are  the  bald  cypress  (Tazo- 
dium)  of  the  Southern  States,  and  some  of  them  were  over  twenty-five 
feet  in  diameter.  One  contained  over  five  thousand  seven  hundred  annual 
rings.  In  some  instances  these  huge  trees  have  grown  over  the  stumps 
of  others  equally  large,  and  such  instances  occur  in  all,  or  nearly  all,  of 
the  ten  forest  beds.  This  gives  to  each  forest  a  period  of  10,000  years. 

"  Ten  such  periods  give  100,000  years,  to  say  nothing  of  the  time 
covered  by  the  interval  between  the  ending  of  one  forest  and  the  begin- 
ning of  another,  an  interval  which  in  most  cases  was  considerable. 

"  '  Such  evidence,'  writes  Professor  Mudge,  'would  be  received  in  any 


ANTIQUITY  OF  MAN.  99 

Skeletons  or  portions  of  the  skeletons  of  human  beings, 
of  admitted  Palaeolithic  age,  have  been  found  in  caverns  in 
the  vicinity  of  Liege  in  Belgium,  by  Schmerling,  and  pro- 
bably the  same  date  may  be  assigned  those  from  the  Nean- 
derthal Cave  near  Diisseldorf.  A  complete  skeleton,  of  tall 
stature,  of  probable  but  not  unquestioned  Palaeolithic  age, 
has  also  been  discovered  in  the  Cave  of  Mentone  on  the 
Kiviera. 

These  positive  remains  yield  us  further  inferences  than 
can  be  drawn  from  the  mere  discovery  of  implements  or 
fragmentary  bones  associated  with  remains  of  extinct 
animals. 

The  Mentone  man,  according  to  M.  Kiviere,  had  a  rather 
long  but  large  head,  a  high  and  well-made  forehead,  and 
the  very  large  facial  angle  of  85°.  In  the  Liege  man  the 
cranium  was  high  and  short,  and  of  good  Caucasian  type ; 
"  a  fair  average  human  skull,"  according  to  Huxley. 

Other  remains,  such  as  the  jaw-bone  from  the  cave  of  the 
Naulette  in  Belgium,  and  the  Neanderthal  skeleton,  show 
marks  of  inferiority ;  but  even  in  the  latter,  which  was  the 
lowest  in  grade,  the  cranial  capacity  is  seventy-five  cubic 
inches  or  "  nearly  on  a  level  with  the  mean  between  the  two 
human  extremes." 

We  may,  therefore,  sum  up  by  saying  that  evidences  have 
been  accumulated  of  the  existence  of  man,  and  intelligent 
man,  from  a  period  which  even  the  most  conservative  among 
geologists  are  unable  to  place  at  less  than  thirty  thousand 


court  of  law  as  sound  and  satisfactory.     We  do  not  see  how  such  proof 
is  to  be  discarded  when  applied  to  the  antiquity  of  our  race. 

" '  There  is  satisfactory  evidence  that  man  lived  in  the  Champlain  epoch. 
But  the  Terrace  epoch,  or  the  greater  part  of  it,  intervenes  between  the 
Champlain  and  the  Delta  epochs,  thus  adding  to  my  100,000  years. 

" '  If  only  as  much  time  is  given  to  both  those  epochs  as  to  the  Delta 
period,  200,000  years  is  the  total  result.'  "—Popular  Science  Monthly, 
No.  91,  vol.  xvi.  No.  1,  p.  140,  November  1878. 

7   * 


100 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


years  ;  while  most  of  them  are  convinced  both  of  his  exist- 1 
ence  from  at  least  later  Pliocene  times,  and  of  the  long 
duration  of  ages  which  has  necessarily  elapsed  since  his> 
appearance — a  duration  to  be  numbered,  not  by  tens,  but  by 
hundreds  of  thousands  of  years. 


FIG.  21. — ENGRAVING  BY  PALAEOLITHIC  MAN  ON  REINDEER  ANTLER. 


101 


CHAPTEE  IV. 

THE    DELUGE    NOT    A   MYTH. 

IF  we  assume  that  the  antiquity  of  man  is  as  great,  or  even 
approximately  as  great,  as  Sir  Charles  Lyell  and  his  followers 
affirm,  the  question  naturally  arises,  what  has  he  been  doing 
during  those  countless  ages,  prior  to  historic  times  ?  what 
evidences  has  he  afforded  of  the  possession  of  an  intelligence 
superior  to  that  of  the  brute  creation  by  which  he  has  been 
surrounded  ?  what  great  monuments  of  his  fancy  and  skill 
remain  ?  or  has  the  sea  of  time  engulphed  any  that  he 
erected,  in  abysses  so  deep  that  not  even  the  bleached  masts 
project  from  the  surface,  to  testify  to  the  existence  of  the 
good  craft  buried  below  ? 

These  questions  have  been  only  partially  asked,  and  but 
slightly  answered.  They  will,  however,  assume  greater  pro- 
portions as  the  science  of  archaeology  extends  itself,  and 
perhaps  receive  more  definite  replies  when  fresh  fields  for 
investigation  are  thrown  open  in  those  portions  of  the  old 
world  which  Asiatic  reserve  has  hitherto  maintained  inviolable 
against  scientific  prospectors. 

If  man  has  existed  for  fifty  thousand  years,  as  some 
demand,  or  for  two  hundred  thousand,  as  others  imagine, 
has  his  intelligence  gone  on  increasing  thoughout  the  period  ? 
and  if  so,  in  what  ratio  ?  Are  the  terms  of  the  series  which 
involve  the  unknown  quantity  stated  with  sufficient  precision 
to  enable  us  to  determine  whether  his  development  has  been 
slow,  gradual,  and  more  or  less  uniform,  as  in  arithmetical, 
or  gaining  at  a  rapidly  increasing  rate,  as  in  geometric  pro- 
gression. Or,  to  pursue  the  simile,  could  it  be  more 


102  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

accurately  expressed  by  the  equation  to  a  curve  which  traces 
an  ascending  and  descending  path,  and,  though  controlled  in 
reality  by  an  absolute  law,  appears  to  exhibit  an  unaccount- 
able and  capricious  variety  of  positive  and  negative  phases, 
of  points  d'arret,  nodes,  and  cusps. 

These  questions  cannot  yet  be  definitely  answered ;  they 
may  be  proposed  and  argued  on,  but  for  a  time  the  result 
will  doubtless  be  a  variety  of  opinions,  without  the  possibility 
of  solution  by  a  competent  arbiter. 

For  example,  it  is  a  matter  of  opinion  whether  the  intelli- 
gence of  the  present  day  is  or  is  not  of  a  higher  order  than 
that  which  animated  the  savans  of  ancient  Greece.  It  is 
probable  that  most  would  answer  in  the  affirmative,  so  far  as 
the  question  pertains  to  the  culture  of  the  masses  only,  but 
how  will  scholars  decide,  who  are  competent  to  compare  the 
works  of  our  present  poets,  sculptors,  dramatists,  logicians, 
philosophers,  historians,  and  statesmen,  with  those  of  Homer, 
Pindar,  (Eschylus,  Euripides,  Herodotus,  Aristotle,  Euclid, 
Phidias,  Plato,  Solon,  and  the  like  ?  Will  they,  in  a  word, 
consider  the  champions  of  intellect  of  the  present  day  sa 
much  more  robust  than  their  competitors  of  three  thousand 
years  ago  as  to  render  them  easy  victors  ?  This  would 
demonstrate  a  decided  advance  in  human  intelligence  during  , 
that  period ;  but,  if  this  is  the  case,  how  is  it  that  all  the 
great  schools  and  universities  still  cling  to  the  reverential 
study  of  the  old  masters,  and  have,  until  quite  recently, 
almost  ignored  modern  arts,  sciences,  and  languages. 

We  must  remember  that  the  ravages  of  time  have  put  out 
of  court  many  of  the  witnesses  for  the  one  party  to  the  suit, 
and  that  natural  decay,  calamity,  and  wanton  destruction* 

*  Such  as  the  destruction-  of  the  Alexandrine  Library  on  three  distinct 
occasions,  (1)  upon  the  conquest  of  Alexandria  by  Julius  Csesar,  B.C.  48;    -» 
(2)  in  A.D.  390 ;  and,  (3)  by  Amrou,  the  general  of  the  Caliph  Omar,  in    I 
640,  who  ordered  it  to  be  burnt,  and  so  supplied  the  baths  with  fuel  for 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  103 


have  obliterated  the  bulk  of  the  philosophy  of  past  ages. 
With  the  exceptions  of  the  application  of  steam,  the  employ- 
ment of  moveable  type  in  printing,*  and  the  utilization  of 
electricity,  there  are  few  arts  and  inventions  which  have  not 
descended  to  us  from  remote  antiquity,  lost,  many  of  them, 
for  a  time,  some  of  them  for  ages,  and  then  re-discovered 
and  paraded  as  being,  really  and  truly,  something  new  under 
the  sun. 

Neither  must  we  forget  the  oratory  and  poetry,  the  master- 
pieces of  logical  argument,  the  unequalled  sculptures,  and 
the  exquisitely  proportioned  architecture  of  Greece,  or  the 
thorough  acquaintance  with  mechanical  principles  and  engi- 
neering skill  evinced  by  the  Egyptians,  in  the  construction 
of  the  pyramids,  vast  temples,  canalsf  and  hydraulic  works.J 

Notice,  also,  the  high  condition  of  civilization  possessed 


six  months.  Again,  the  destruction  of  all  Chinese  books  by  order 
of  Tsin  Shi  Hwang-ti,  the  founder  of  the  Imperial  branch  of  the  Tsin 
dynasty,  and  the  first  Emperor  of  United  China ;  the  only  exceptions 
allowed  being  those  relating  to  medicine,  divination,  and  husbandry. 
This  took  place  in  the  year  213  B.C. 

*  The  Chinese  have  used  composite  blocks  (wood  engraved  blocks 
with  many  characters,  analogous  to  our  stereotype  plates)  from  an  early 
period.  May  not  the  brick-clay  tablets  preserved  in  the  Imperial 
Library  at  Babylon  have  been  used  for  striking  off  impressions  on  some 
plastic  material,  just  as  rubbings  may  be  taken  from  the  stone  drums 
in  China  :  may  not  the  cylinders  with  inscribed  characters  have  been 
used  in  some  way  or  other  as  printing-rollers  for  propagating  knowledge 
or  proclamations  ? 

t  As,  for  example,  the  old  canal  from  the  Nile  to  the  Red  Sea,  in 
reference  to  which  Herodotus  says  (Euterpe,  158),  "  Neco  was  the  son 
of  Psammitichus,  and  became  King  of  Egypt :  he  first  set  about  the 
canal  that  leads  to  the  Red  Sea,  which  Darius  the  Persian  afterwards 
completed.  Its  length  is  a  voyage  of  four  days,  and  in  width  it  was 
dug  so  that  two  triremes  might  sail  rowed  abreast.  The  water  is  drawn 
into  it  from  the  Nile,  and  it  enters  it  a  little  above  the  city  Bubastis, 
passes  near  the  Arabian  city  Patumos,  and  reaches  to  the  Red  Sea."  In 
the  digging  of  which  one  hundred  and  twenty  thousand  Egyptians 
perished  in  the  reign  of  Neco. 

I  The  co-called  tanks  at  Aden,  reservoirs  constructed  one  below  the 


304 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


by  the  Chinese  four  thousand  years  ago,  their  enlightened 
and  humane  polity,  their  engineering  works,*  their  provision 
for  the  proper  administration  of  different  departments  of 
the  State,  and  their  clear  and  intelligent  documents.f 

In  looking  back  upon  these,  I  think  we  can  hardly  distin- 
guish any  such  deficiency  of  intellect,  in  comparison  with 
ours,  on  the  part  of  these  our  historical  predecessors  as  to 
indicate  so  rapid  a  change  of  intelligence  as  would,  if  we 
were  able  to  carry  our  comparison  back  for  another  similar 
period,  inevitably  land  us  among  a  lot  of  savages  similar  to 

other,  in  a  gorge  near  the  cantonments,  are  as  perfect  now  as  they 
were  when  they  left  the  hand  of  the  contractor  or  royal  engineer  in  the 
time  of  Moses. 

*  In  the  29th  year  of  the  Era- 
peror  Kwei  [B.C.  1559]  they  chiselled 
through  mountains  and  tunnelled 
hills,  according  to  the  Bamboo  Books, 
f  An  interesting  line  of  investi- 
gation might  be  opened  up  as  to 
the  origin  of  inventions  and  the 
date  of  their  migrations.  The 
Chinese  claim  the  priority  of  many 
discoveries,  such  as  chess,  printing, 
issue  of  bank-notes,  sinking  of  arte- 
sian wells,  gunpowder,  suspension 
bridges,  the  mariner's  compass,  &c. 
&c.  I  extract  two  remarkable 
wood-cuts  from  the  San  Li  Tu,  one 
appended  here  showing  the  origin 
of  our  college  cap ;  the  other,  in 
the  chapter  on  the  Unicorn,  ap- 
pearing to  illustrate  the  fable  of 
the  Sphynx. 

I  also  give  a  series  of  engravings, 
reduced  facsimiles  of  those  con- 
tained in  a  celebrated  Chinese  work 
on  antiquities,  showing  the  gradual 
evolution  of  the  so-called  Grecian 
pattern  or  scroll  ornamentation, 

Pie.22.-BoTALDiADH.or  THE  CHEN     J;nd    orig^tion    of    some    of    the 
DYNASTY.     (From  the  San  Li  T'u.)         Or  reek  forms  of  tripods. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH. 


105 


FIG.  23. — "VASE.  HAN  DYNASTY 

B.C.  206  to  A.D.  23. 
(From  the  Poh  Ku  1  'u.) 


FIG.  24. — CYATHUS  OR  COP  FOR 
LIBATIONS.     SHANG  DYNASTY, 

B.C.  1766  to  B.C.  1122. 
(From  the  Poh  Ku  T'tt.) 


106  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

those  who  fringe  the  civilization  of  the  present  period. 
Intellectually  measured,  the  civilized  men  of  eight  or  ten 
thousand  years  ago  must,  I  think,  have  been  but  little 
inferior  to  ourselves,  and  we  should  have  to  peer  very  far 
back  indeed  before  we  reached  a  status  or  condition  in  which 
the  highest  type  of  humanity  was  the  congener  of  the  cave 
lion,  disputing  with  him  a  miserable  existence,  shielded  only 
from  the  elements  by  an  overhanging  rock,  or  the  fortuitous 
discovery  of  some  convenient  cavern. 

If  this  be  so,  we  are  forced  back  again  to  the  consideration 
of  the  questions  with  which  this  section  opened ;  where  are 
the  evidences  of  man's  early  intellectual  superiority  ?  are  they 
limited  to  those  deduced  from  the  discovery  of  certain  stone 
implements  of  the  early  rude,  and  later  polished  ages  ?  and, 
if  so,  can  we  offer  any  feasible  explanation  either  of  their 
non-existence  or  disappearance  ? 

In  the  first  place,  it  may  be  considered  as  admitted  by 
archaeologists  that  no  exact  line  can  be  drawn  between  the 
later  of  the  two  stone-weapon  epochs,  the  polished  Neolithic 
stone  epoch,  and  the  succeeding  age  of  bronze.  They  are 
agreed  that  these  overlap  each  other,  and  that  the  rude 
hunters,  who  contented  themselves  with  stone  implements  of 
war  and  the  chase,  were  coeval  with  people  existing  in  other 
places,  acquainted  with  the  metallurgical  art,  and  therefore 
of  a  high  order  of  intelligence.  The  former  are,  in  fact, 
brought  within  the  limit  of  historic  times. 

A  similar  inference  might  not  unfairly  be  drawn  with 
regard  to  those  numerous  discoveries  of  proofs  of  the  exis- 
tence of  ruder  man,  at  still  earlier  periods.  The  flint-headed 
arrow  of  the  North  American  Indian,  and  the  stone  hatchet 
of  the  Australian  black-fellow  exist  to  the  present  day  ;  and 
but  a  century  or  two  back,  would  have  been  the  sole  repre- 
sentatives of  the  constructive  intelligence  of  humanity  over 
nearly  one  half  the  inhabited  surface  of  the  world.  No 
philosopher,  with  these  alone  to  reason  on,  could  have 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH. 


107 


FIG.  25.— INCENSE  BOKNEK  (?).    CHEN  DYNASTY,  B.C.  1122  to  B.C.  255. 
(From  the  Poh  Ku  7'«.) 


FIG.  26. — TKIFOD  OF  THE  SHANG  DYNASTY.     Probable  date,  u.c.  1649. 
(From  the  Poh  Ku  T'w.) 


108 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


FIG.  27.— TRIPOD  OF  Fu  Ym,  SHANG  DYNASTY.    (From  the  Poh  Ku  T'w.) 


FIG.  28.— TRIPOD  OF  KWAI  WAN,  CHEN  DYNASTY,  B.C.  1122  to  B.C.  255 
(From  the  Poh  Ku  T'u.) 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH. 


109 


imagined  the  settled  existence,  busy  industry,  and  superior 
intelligence  which  animated  the  other  half ;  and  a  parallel 
suggestive  argument  may  be  supported  by  the  discovery  of 
human  relics,  implements,  and  artistic  delineations  such  as 
those  of  the  hairy  mammoth  or  the  cave-bear.  These  may 
possibly  be  the  traces  of  an  outlying  savage  who  co -existed 
with  a  far  more  highly-organized  people  elsewhere,*  just  as 
at  the  present  day  the  Esquimaux,  who  are  by  some  geolo- 
gists considered  as  the  descendants  of  Palaeolithic  man, 
co-exist  with  ourselves.  They,  like  their  reputed  ancestors, 
have  great  ability  in  carving  on  bone,  &c.;  and  as  an  example 
of  their  capacity  not  only  to  conceive  in  their  own  minds  a 


ffejxHn 


ffo 


o 


I    pU-  sssMMUYILLf 

WAftiHWA 

-*:^V 

BOOTHIA  IP 


CHART 
DRAWN   BY  THE    NATIVES 

Tne SE  MAHH&  o  SHIW  WHtne  rne  BOOTHIAHS 
Isecr  Hun  to  SHIP  in  01  fun*  JOUKNAY  n 


FIG.  29.     (From,  Sir  John  Ross'  Second  Voyage  to  the  Arctic  Regions.) 

*  "  The  old  Troglodytes,  pile  villagers,  and  bog  people,  prove  to  be 
quite  a  respectable  society.  They  have  heads  so  large  that  many  a 
living  person  would  be  only  too  happy  to  possess  such." — A.  Mitchell, 
The  Past  in  the  Present,  Edinburgh,  1880. 


110  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

correct  notion  of  the  relative  bearings  of  localities,  but  also 
to  impart  the  idea  lucidly  to  others,  I  annex  a  wood-cut  of  a 
chart  drawn  by  them,  impromptu,  at  the  request  of  Sir  J. 
Ross,  who,  inferentially,  vouches  for  its  accuracy. 

There  is  but  a  little  step  between  carving  the  figure  of  a 
mammoth  or  horse,  and  using  them  as  symbols.  Multiply 
them,  and  you  have  the  early  hieroglyphic  written  language 
of  the  Chinese  and  Egyptians.  It  is  not  an  unfair  presump- 
tion that  at  no  great  distance,  in  time  or  space,  either  some 
generations  later  among  his  own  descendants,  or  so  many 
nations'  distance  among  his  coevals,  the  initiative  faculty  of 
the  Palaeolithic  savage  was  usefully  applied  to  the  communi- 
cation of  ideas,  just  as  at  a  much  later  date  the  Kououen 
symbolic  language  was  developed  or  made  use  of  among  the 
early  Chinese.* 

Such  is,  necessarily,  the  first  stage  of  any  written  lan- 
guage, and  it  may,  as  I  think,  perhaps  have  occurred,  been 
developed  into  higher  stages,  culminated,  and  perished  at  many 
successive  epochs  during  man's  existence,  presuming  it  to  have 
been  so  extended  as  the  progress  of  geology  tends  to  affirm. 

May  not  the  meandering  of  the  tide  of  civilization  west- 
ward during  the  last  three  thousand  years,  bearing  on  its 
crest  fortune  and  empire,  and  leaving  in  its  hollow  decay  and 
oblivion,  possibly  be  the  sequel  of  many  successive  waves 
which  have  preceded  it  in  the  past,  rising,  some  higher,  some 
lower,  as  waves  will. 

In  comparison  with  the  vast  epochs  of  which  we  treat  how 


*  I  have  given  in  the  annexed  plates  a  few  examples  of  the  early 
hieroglyphics  on  which  the  modern  Chinese  system  of  writing  is  based, 
selected  from  a  limited  number  collected  by  the  early  Jesuit  fathers  in 
China,  and  contained  in  the  Memoirs  concernant  I'Histoire,  &c.  des  Chinois, 
par  les  Missionaires  de  Pekin,  vol.  i.,  Paris,  1776.  The  modern  Chinese 
characters  conveying  the  same  idea  are  attached,  and  their  derivation 
from  the  pictorial  hieroglyphics,  by  modification  or  contraction,  is  in 
nearly  all  cases  obvious. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  Ill 


-H 


C- 


rnr 

JJU. 


CD 


30. — EARLY  CHINESE  HIEROGLYPHICS. 


112 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


flP 


FIG.  31. — EARLY  CHINESE  HIEROGLYPHICS. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  113 

near  to  us  are  Nineveh,  Babylon,  and  Carthage !  Yet  the  very 
sites  of  the  former  two  have  become  uncertain,  and  of  the 
last  we  only  know  by  the  presence  of  the  few  scattered  ruins 
on  the  shores  of  the  Mediterranean  Sea.  Tyre,  the  vast 
entrepot  of  commerce  in  the  days  of  Solomon,  was  stated, 
rightly  or  wrongly,  by  Benjamin  of  Tudela,  to  be  but  barely 
discernible  (in  1173)  in  ruins  beneath  the  waves;  and  the 
glory  of  the  world,  the.  temple  of  King  Solomon,  was  repre- 
sented at  the  same  date  by  two  copper  columns  which  had 
been  carried  off  and  preserved  in  Eome.  It  is  needless  to 
quote  the  cases  of  Persia,  Greece,  and  Rome,  and  of  many 
once  famous  cities,  which  have  dissolved  in  ruin  ;  except  as 
assisting  to  point  the  moral  that  conquest,  which  is  always 
recurring,  means  to  a  great  extent  obliteration,  the  victor 
having  no  sympathy  with  the  preservation  of  the  time- 
honoured  relics  of  the  vanquished. 

When  decay  and  neglect  are  once  initiated,  the  hand 
of  man  largely  assists  the  ravages  of  time.  The  peasant 
carts  the  marbles  of  an  emperor's  palace  to  his  lime-kiln,*  or 
an  Egyptian  monarch  strips  the  casing  of  a  pyramid!  to 
furnish  the  material  for  a  royal  residence. 

Nor  is  it  beyond  the  limits  of  possibility  that  the  arrogant 
caprice  of  some,  perhaps  Mongol,  invader  in  the  future,  may 
level  the  imperishable  pyramids  themselves  for  the  purpose 
of  constructing  some  defensive  work,  or  the  gratification 
of  an  inordinate  vanity. 


*  "  The  Porcelain  Tower  of  Nankin,  once  one  of  the  seven  wonders 
of  the  world,  can  now  only  be  found  piecemeal  in  walls  of  peasants' 
huts."— Gutzlaff,  Hist.  China,  vol.  i.  p.  372. 

f  The  outer  casing  of  the  pyramid  of  Cheops,  which  Herodotus 
(Euterpe,  125)  states  to  have  still  exhibited  in  his  time  an  inscription, 
telling  how  much  was  expended  (one  thousand  six  hundred  talents 
of  silver)  in  radishes,  onions,  and  garlic  for  the  workmen,  has  entirely 
disappeared  ;  as  also,  almost  completely,  the  marble  casing  of  the  adjacent 
pyramid  of  Sen-Saophis.  According  to  tradition  the  missing  marbles 
in  each  instance  were  taken  to  build  palaces  with  in  Cairo. 

8 


114  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

In  later  dates  how  many  comfortable  modern  residences 
have  been  erected  from  the  pillage  of  mediaeval  abbey,  keep, 
or  castle  ?  and  how  many  fair  cities*  must  have  fallen  to 
decay,  in  Central  and  Eastern  Asia,  and  how  many  numerous 
populations  dwindled  to  insignificance  since  the  days  when 
Grhenghis  and  Tirnour  led  forth  their  conquering  hordes,  and 
Nadun  could  raise  four  hundred  thousand  horsemen f  to 
contest  the  victory  with  Kublai  Khan. 

The  unconscious  ploughman  in  Britain  has  for  centuries 
guided  his  share  above  the  remains  of  Roman  villas,  and  the 
inhabitants  of  the  later  city  of  Hissarlik  were  probably  as 
ignorant  that  a  series  of  lost  and  buried  cities  lay  below 
them,  as  they  would  have  been  incredulous  that  within  a 
thousand  years  their  own  existence  would  have  passed  from 
the  memory  of  man,  and  their  re-discovery  been  due  only  to 
the  tentative  researches  of  an  enthusiastic  admirer  of  Homer. 
Men  live  by  books  and  bards  longer  than  by  the  works  of 
their  hands,  and  impalpable  tradition  often  survives  the 
material  vehicle  which  was  destined  to  perpetuate  it.  The 
name  of  Priam  was  still  a  household  word  when  the  site  of 
his  palace  had  been  long  forgotten. 

The  vaster  a  city  is,  the  more  likely  is  it  to  be  constructed 
upon  the  site  of  its  own  grave,  or,  in  other  words,  to  occupy 
the  broad  valley  of  some  important  river  beneath  whose 
gravels  it  is  destined  to  be  buried. 

Perched  on  an  eminence,  and  based  on  solid  rock,  it  may 
escape  entombment,  but  more  swiftly  and  more  certainly  will 


*  "  The  work  of  destruction  was  carried  on  methodically.  From  the 
Caspian  Sea  to  the  Indus,  the  Mongols  ruined,  within  four  years,  more 
than  four  centuries  of  continuous  labour  have  since  restored.  The  most 
flourishing  cities  became  a  mass  of  ruins  :  Samarkand,  Bokhara,  Niza- 
bour,  Balkh,  and  Kandahar  shared  in  the  same  destruction." — Gutzlaff, 
Hist.  China,  vol.  i.  p.  358. 

f  "  An  army  of  700,000  Mongols  met  half  the  number  of  Mahom- 
medaus." — Ibid.  p.  357. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  115 

it  be  destroyed  by  the  elements,*  and  by  the  decomposition 
of  its  own  material  furnish  the  shroud  for  its  envelopment.f 
It  is  not  altogether  surprising  then  that  no  older  discoveries 
than  those  already  quoted  have  yet  been  made,  for  these 
would  probably  never  have  resulted  if  tradition  had  not  both 
stimulated  and  guided  the  fortunate  explorer. 

It  is,  therefore,  no  unfair  inference  that  the  remains  of 
equally  important,  but  very  much  more  ancient  cities  and 
memorials  of  civilization  may  have  hitherto  entirely  escaped 
our  observation,  presuming  that  we  can  show  some  reason- 
able grounds  for  belief  that,  subsequent  to  their  completion, 
a  catastrophe  has  occurred  of  sufficiently  universal  a  character 
to  have  obliterated  entirely  the  annals  of  the  past,  and  to 
have  left  in  the  possession  of  its  few  survivors  but  meagre 
and  fragmentary  recollections  of  all  that  had  preceded  them. 

Now  this  is  precisely  what  the  history  and  traditions  of  all 
nations  affirm  to  have  occurred.  However,  as  a  variance  of 
opinion  exists  as  to  the  credence  which  should  be  attached  to 
these  traditions,  I  shall,  before  expressing  my  own  views  upon 
the  subject,  briefly  epitomize  those  entertained  by  two  authors 
of  sufficient  eminence  to  warrant  their  being  selected  as 
representatives  of  two  widely  opposite  schools. 

These  gentlemen,  to  whom  we  are  indebted  for  exhaustive 
papers,  J  embracing  the  pith  of  all  the  information  extant 

*  Those  interested  in  the  subject  may  read  with  great  advantage  the 
section  on  dynamical  geology  in  Dana's  valuable  manual.  He  points 
out  the  large  amount  of  wear  accomplished  by  wind  carrying  sand  in 
arid  regions,  by  seeds  falling  in  some  crevice,  and  bursting  rocks  open 
through  the  action  of  the  roots  developed  from  their  sprouting,  to  say 
nothing  of  the  more  ordinarily  recognized  destructive  agencies  of  frost 
and  rain,  carbonic  acid  resulting  from  vegetable  decomposition,  &c. 

t  Darwin,  in  Vegetable  Mould  and  Earth-worms,  has  shown  that  earth- 
worms  play  a  considerable  part  in  burying  old  buildings,  even  to  a  depth 
of  several  feet. 

|  Eev.  T.  K.  Cheyne,  Article  "  Deluge,"  Encyclopaedia  Britannica, 
1877.  Fra^ois  Lenormant,  "  The  Deluge,  its  Traditions  in  Ancient 
I  Histories,"  Contemporary  Review,  Nov.,  1879. 

8  * 


116  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


upon  the  subject,  have  tapped  the  same  sources  of  informa- 
tion, consulted  the  same  authorities,  ranged  their  information 
in  almost  identical  order,  argued  from  the  same  data,  and 
arrived  at  diametrically  opposite  conclusions. 

Mr.  Cheyne,  following  the  lead  of  Continental  mythologists, 
deduces  that  the  Deluge  stories  were  on  the  whole  propagated 
from  several  independent  centres,  and  adopts  the  theory  of 
Schirrer  and  Gerland  that  they  are  ether  myths,  without  any 
historical  foundation,  which  have  been  transferred  from  the 
sky  to  the  earth. 

M.  Lenorinant,  upon  the  other  hand,  eliminatiDg  from  the 
inquiry  the  great  inundation  of  China  in  the  reign  of  Yao, 
and  some  others,  as  purely  local  events,  concludes  as  the 
result  of  his  researches  that  the  story  of  the  Deluge  "is  a 
universal  tradition  among  all  branches  of  the  human  race," 
with  the  one  exception  of  the  black.  He  further  argues  : 
"  Now  a  recollection  thus  precise  and  concordant  cannot  be 
a  myth  voluntarily  invented.  No  religious  or  cosmogenic 
myth  presents  this  character  of  universality.  It  must  arise 
from  the  reminiscences  of  a  real  and  terrible  event,  so  power- 
fully impressing  the  imagination  of  the  first  ancestors  of  our 
race,  as  never  to  have  been  forgotten  by  their  descendants. 
This  cataclysm  must  have  occurred  near  the  first  cradle  of 
mankind  and  before  the  dispersion  of  families  from  which  the 
different  races  of  men  were  to  spring." 

Lord  Arundel  of  Wardour  adopts  a  similar  view  in  many 
respects  to  that  of  M.  Lenormant,  but  argues  for  the  exist- 
ence of  a  Deluge  tradition  in  Egypt,  and  the  identity  of  the 
Deluge  of  Yu  (in  China)  with  the  general  catastrophe  of 
which  the  tradition  is  current  in  other  countries. 

The  subject  is  in  itself  so  inviting,  and  has  so  direct  a 
bearing  upon  the  argument  of  this  work  that  I  propose  to 
re-examine  the  same  materials  and  endeavour  to  show  from 
them  that  the  possible  solutions  of  the  question  have  not 
yet  been  exhausted. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  117 


We  have  as  data  : — 

1.  The  Biblical  account. 

2.  That  of  Josephus. 

3.  The  Babylonian. 

4.  The  Hindu. 

5.  The  Chinese. 

6.  The   traditions   of  all  nations   in   the  northern 

hemisphere,  and  of  certain  in  the  southern. 

It  is  unnecessary  to  travel  in  detail  over  the  well-worn 
ground  of  the  myths  and  traditions  prevalent  among  Euro- 
pean nations,  the  presumed  identity  of  Noah  with  Saturn, 
Janus,  and  the  like,  or  the  Grecian  stories  of  Ogyges  and 
Deucalion.  Nor  is  anyone,  I  think,  disposed  to  dispute  the 
identity  of  the  cause  originating  the  Deluge  legends  in  Persia 
and  in  India.  How  far  these  may  have  descended  from 
independent  sources  it  is  now  difficult  to  determine,  though 
it  is  more  than  probable  that  their  vitality  is  due  to  the 
written  Semitic  records.  Nor  is  it  necessary  to  discuss  any 
unimportant  differences  which  may  exist  between  the  text  of 
Josephus  and  that  of  the  Bible,  which  agree  sufficiently 
closely,  but  are  mere  abstracts  (with  the  omission  of  many 
important  details)  in  comparison  with  the  Chaldaean  account. 
This  may  be  accounted  for  by  their  having  been  only  derived 
from  oral  tradition  through  the  hands  of  Abraham.  The 
Biblical  narrative  shows  us  that  Abraham  left  Chaldasa  on  a 
nomadic  enterprise,  just  as  a  squatter  leaves  the  settled  dis- 
tricts of  Australia  or  America  at  the  present  day,  and  strikes 
out  with  a  small  following  and  scanty  herd  to  search  for, 
discover,  and  occupy  new  country  ;  his  destiny  leading  him, 
may  be  for  a  few  hundred,  may  be  for  a  thousand  miles. 
In  such  a  train  there  is  no  room  for  heavy  baggage,  and  the 
stone  tablets  containing  the  detailed  history  of  the  Deluge 
would  equally  with  all  the  rest  of  such  heavy  literature  be 
left  behind. 


118  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

The  tradition,  however  reverenced  and  faithfully  preserved 
at  first,  would,  under  such  circumstances,  soon  get  mutilated 
and  dwarfed.  We  may,  therefore,  pass  at  once  to  the  much 
more  detailed  accounts  presented  in  the  text  of  Berosus, 
and  in  the  more  ancient  Chaldaean  tablets  deciphered  by 
the  late  Mr.  G.  Smith  from  the  collation  of  three  separate 
copies. 

The  account  by  Berosus  (see  Appendix)  was  taken  from 
the  sacred  books  of  Babylon,  and  is,  therefore,  of  less  value 
than  the  last-mentioned  as  being  second-hand.  The  leading 
incidents  in  his  narrative  are  similar  to  those  contained  in 
that  of  Genesis,  but  it  terminates  with  the  vanishing  of 
Xisuthros  (Noah)  with  his  wife,  daughter,  and  the  pilot, 
after  they  had  descended  from  the  vessel  and  sacrificed  to 
the  gods,  and  with  the  return  of  his  followers  to  Babylon. 
They  restored  it,  and  disinterred  the  writings  left  (by  the 
pious  obedience  of  Xisuthros)  in  Shurippak,  the  city  of  the 
Sun. 

The  great  majority  of  mythologists  appear  to  agree  in 
assigning  a  much  earlier  date  to  the  Deluge,  than  that  which 
has  hitherto  been  generally  accepted  as  the  soundest  interpre- 
tation of  the  chronological  evidence  afforded  by  the  Bible. 

I  have  never  had  the  advantage  of  finding  the  arguments 
on  which  this  opinion  is  based,  formulated  in  association, 
although,  as  incidentally  referred  to  by  various  authors,  they 
appear  to  be  mainly  deduced  from  the  references  made,  both 
by  sacred  and  profane  writers,  to  large  populations  and 
important  cities  existing  subsequently  to  the  Deluge,  but 
at  so  early  a  date,  as  to  imply  the  necessity  of  a  very  long 
interval  indeed  between  the  general  annihilation  caused  by 
the  catastrophe,  and  the  attainment  of  so  high  a  pitch  of 
civilization  and  so  numerous  a  population  as  their  existence 
implies. 

Philologists  at  the  same  time  declare  that  a  similar  inference 
may  be  drawn  from  the  vast  periods  requisite  for  the  diver- 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  119 

gence  of  different  languages  from  the  parent  stock,*  while  the 
testimony  of  the  monuments  and  sculptures  of  ancient  Egypt 
assures  us  that  race  distinction  of  as  marked  a  type  as  occurs 
at  the  present  day  existed  at  so  early  a  datef  as  to  preclude 
the  possibility  of  the  derivation  of  present  nations  from  the 
descendants  of  Noah  within  the  limited  period  usually 
allowed. 

These  difficulties  vanish,  if  we  consider  the  Biblical  and 
Chaldean  narratives  as  records  of  a  local  catastrophe,  of  vast 
extent  perhaps,  and  resulting  in  general  but  not  total  destruc- 
tion, whose  sphere  may  have  embraced  the  greater  portion 
of  Western  Asia,  and  perhaps  Europe  ;  but  which,  while 
wrecking  the  great  centres  of  northern  civilization,  did  not 
extend  southwards  to  Africa  and  Egypt.  $  The  Deluge  legends 
indigenous  in  Mexico  at  the  date  of  the  Spanish  conquest, 
combining  the  Biblical  incidents  of  the  despatch  of  birds 
from  a  vessel  with  the  conception  of  four  consecutive  ages 
terminating  in  general  destruction,  and  corresponding  with 
the  four  ages  or  Yugas  of  India,  supply  in  themselves  the 
testimony  of  their  probable  origin  from  Asia.  The  cataclysm 
which  caused  what  is  called  the  Deluge  may  or  may  not 
have  extended  to  America,  probably  not.  In  a  future  page 

*  Bunsen  estimates  that  20,000  years  were  requisite  for  the  formation 
of  the  Chinese  language.  This,  however,  is  not  conceded  by  other 
philologists. 

f  Eawlinson  quotes  the  African  type  on  the  Egyptian  sculptures  as 
being  identical  with  that  of  the  negro  of  the  present  day. 

J  "  While  the  tradition  of  the  Deluge  holds  so  considerable  a  place 
in  the  legendary  memories  of  all  branches  of  the  Aryan  race,  the  monu- 
ments and  original  texts  of  Egypt,  with  their  many  cosmogenic  specu- 
lations, have  not  afforded  one,  even  distant,  allusion  to  this  cataclysm. 
When  the  Greeks  told  the  Egyptian  priests  of  the  Deluge  of  Deucalion, 
their  reply  was  that  they  had  been  preserved  from  it  as  well  as  from  the 
conflagration  produced  by  Phaeton ;  they  even  added  that  the  Hellenes 
were  childish  in  attaching  so  much  importance  to  that  event,  as  there 
had  been  several  local  catastrophes  resembling  it." — Lenormant, 
Contemporary  Review,  November  1879. 


120  MYTHICAL  MONSTEKS. 

I  shall  enumerate  a  few  of  the  resemblances  between  the 
inhabitants  of  the  New  World  and  of  the  Old  indicative  of 
their  community  of  origin. 

I  refer  the  reader  to  M.  Lenormant's  valuable  essay*  for 
his  critical  notice  on  the  dual  composition  of  the  account  in 
Genesis,  derived  as  it  appears  to  be  from  two  documents,  one 
of  which  has  been  called  the  Elohistic  and  the  other  the 
Jehovistic  account,  and  for  his  comparison  of  it  with  the 
Chaldean  narrative  exhumed  by  the  late  Mr.  George  Smith 
from  the  Royal  Library  of  Nineveh,  the  original  of  which  is 
probably  of  anterior  date  to  Moses,  and  nearly  contempora- 
neous with  Abraham. 

I  transcribe  from  M.  Lenormant  the  text  of  the  Chaldean 
narrative,  because  there  are  points  in  it  which  have  not  yet 
been  commented  on,  and  which,  as  it  appears  to  me,  assist 
in  the  solution  of  the  Deluge  story : — 

I  will  reveal  to  thee,  0  Izdhubar,  the  history  of  my  preservation — 
and  tell  to  thee  the  decision  of  the  gods. 

The  town  of  Shurippak,  a  town  which  thou  knowest,  is  situated  on 
the  Euphrates.  It  was  ancient,  and  in  it  [men  did  not  honour]  the  gods. 
[I  alone,  I  was]  their  servant,  to  the  great  gods  —  [The  gods  took 
counsel  on  the  appeal  of]  Anu — [a  deluge  was  proposed  by]  Bel — [and 
approved  by  Nabon,  Nergal  and]  Adar. 

And  the  god  [fia,]  the  immutable  lord, — repeated  this  command  in  a 
dream. — I  listened  to  the  decree  of  fate  that  he  announced,  and  he  said 
to  me : — "  Man  of  Shurippak,  son  of  Ubaratutu — thou,  build  a  vessel 
and  finish  it  [quickly]  .—By  a  [deluge]  I  will  destroy  substance  and 
life. — Cause  thou  to  go  up  into  the  vessel  the  substance  of  all  that  has 
life.— The  vessel  thou  shalt  build— 600  cubits  shall  be  the  measure  of 
its  length — and  60  cubits  the  amount  of  its  breadth  and  of  its  height. — 
[Launch  it]  thus  on  the  ocean  and  cover  it  with  a  roof." — I  understood, 
and  I  said  to  fia,  my  lord  : — "  [The  vessel]  that  thou  commaudest  me 
to  build  thus, — [when]  I  shall  do  it — young  and  old  [shall  laugh  at 
me]." — [£la  opened  his  mouth  and]  spoke. — He  said  to  me,  his  servant : 
— "  [If  they  laugh  at  thee]  thou  shalt  say  to  them  :  [Shall  be  punished] 
he  who  has  insulted  me,  [for  the  protection  of  the  gods]  is  over  me. — 
....  like  to  caverns  ....  ....  I  will  exercise  my  judgment 


*  Fran9ois   Lenormant,   "  The   Deluge ;    its 
Histories,"  Contemporary  Review,  vol.  xxxvi.  p. 


Traditions   in   Ancient 
465. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  121 

on  that  which  is  on  high  and  that  which  is  below  ....  .... 

Close  the  vessel  ....  ....  At  a  given   moment   that   I  shall 

cause  thee  to  know, — enter  into  it,  and  draw  the  door  of  the  ship  towards 
thee. — Within  it,  thy  grains,  thy  furniture,  thy  provisions, — thy  riches, 
thy  men-servants,  and  thy  maid- servants,  and  thy  young  people — the 
cattle  of  the  field  and  the  wild  beasts  of  the  plain  that  I  will  assemble 
— and  that  I  will  send  thee,  shall  be  kept  behind  thy  door." — Khasis- 
atra  opened  his  mouth  and  spoke ; — he  said  to  £a,  his  lord  : — "  No  one 
has  made  [such  a]  ship. — On  the  prow  I  will  fix  ....  — I  shall  see 
....  and  the  vessel  ....  — the  vessel  thou  commandest  me  to  build 
[thus] — which  in  .  .  .  .* 

On  the  fifth  day  [the  two  sides  of  the  bark]  were  raised.— In  its 
covering  fourteen  in  all  were  its  rafters — fourteen  in  all  did  it  count 
above. — I  placed  its  roof  and  I  covered  it. — I  embarked  in  it  on  the 
sixth  day ;  I  divided  its  floors  on  the  seventh ; — I  divided  the  interior 
compartments  on  the  eighth.  I  stopped  up  the  chinks  through  which 
the  water  entered  in ; — I  visited  the  chinks  and  added  what  was  wanting. 
— I  poured  on  the  exterior  three  times  3,600  measures  of  asphalte, — 
and  three  times  3,600  measures  of  asphalte  within. — Three  times  3,600 
men,  porters,  brought  on  their  heads  the  chests  of  provisions. — I  kept 
3,600  chests  for  the  nourishment  of  my  family, — and  the  mariners 
divided  amongst  themselves  twice  3,600  chests.— For  [provisioning]  I 
had  oxen  slain  ; — I  instituted  [rations]  for  each  day. — In  [anticipation 
of  the  need  of]  drinks,  of  barrels  and  of  wine — [I  collected  in  quan- 
tity] like  to  the  waters  of  a  river,  [of  provisions]  in  quantity  like  to  the 
dust  of  the  earth. — [To  arrange  them  in]  the  chests  I  set  my  hand  to. — 
....  of  the  sun  ....  the  vessel  was  completed. —  ....  strong  and 
—I  had  carried  above  and  below  the  furniture  of  the  ship.— [This 
lading  filled  the  two-thirds.] 

All  that  I  possessed  I  gathered  together ;  all  I  possessed  of  silver  I 
gathered  together ;  all  that  I  possessed  of  gold  I  gathered — all  that 
I  possessed  of  the  substance  of  life  of  every  kind  I  gathered  together. 
—I  made  all  ascend  into  the  vessel ;  my  servants  male  and  female,— the 
cattle  of  the  fields,  the  wild  beasts  of  the  plains,  and  the  sons  of  the 
people,  I  made  them  all  ascend. 

Shamash  (the  sun)  made  the  moment  determined,  and— he  an- 
nounced it  in  these  terms : — "  In  the  evening  I  will  cause  it  to  rain 
abundantly  from  heaven  ;  enter  into  the  vessel  and  close  the  door." — 
The  fixed  moment  had  arrived,  which  he  announced  in  these  terms : 
"  In  the  evening  I  will  cause  it  to  rain  abundantly  from  heaven."- 
When  the  evening  of  that  day  arrived,  I  was  afraid,— I  entered  into 
the  vessel  and  shut  my  door.— In  shutting  the  vessel,  to  Buzurshadi- 
rabi,  the  pilot, — I  confided  this  dwelling  with  all  that  it  contained. 


*  Here  several  verses  are  wanting. 


122  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Mu-sheri-ina-namari* — rose  from  the  foundations  of  heaven  in  a 
black  cloud  ; — Eammanf  thundered  in  the  midst  of  the  cloud — and 
Nabon  and  Sharru  marched  before  ; — they  marched,  devastating  the 
mountain  and  the  plain ; — NergalJ  the  powerful,  dragged  chastisements 
after  him  ; — Adar§  advanced,  overthrowing  before  him  ; — the  archangels 
of  the  abyss  brought  destruction, — in  their  terrors  they  agitated  the 
earth. — The  inundation  of  Kamman  swelled  up  to  the  sky, — and  [the 
earth]  became  without  lustre,  was  changed  into  a  desert. 

They  broke  ....  of  the  surface  of  the  [earth  like  ....  ; — [they 
destroyed]  the  living  beings  of  the  surface  of  the  earth. — The  terrible 
[Deluge]  on  men  swelled  up  to  [heaven]. — The  brother  no  longer  saw  his 
brother ;  men  no  longer  knew  each  other.  In  heaven — the  gods  became 
afraid  of  the  waterspout,  and — sought  a  refuge ;  they  mounted  up  to 
the  heaven  of  Anu.|| — The  gods  were  stretched  out  motionless,  pi'essing 
one  against  another  like  dogs. — Ishtar  wailed  like  a  child, — the  great 
goddess  pronounced  her  discourse : — "  Here  is  humanity  returned  into 
mud,  and — this  is  the  misfortune  that  I  have  announced  in  the  presence 
of  the  gods.  So  I  announced  the  misfortune  in  the  presence  of  the 
gods, — for  the  evil  I  announced  the  terrible  [chastisement]  of  men  who 
are  mine. — I  am  the  mother  who  gave  birth  to  men,  and— like  to  the 
race  of  fishes,  there  they  are  filling  the  sea; — and  the  gods  by  reason  of 
that — which  the  archangels  of  the  abyss  are  doing,  weep  with  me." — 
The  gods  on  their  seats  were  seated  in  tears, — and  they  held  their  lips 
closed,  [revolving]  future  things. 

Six  days  and  as  many  nights  passed ;  the  wind,  the  waterspout,  and 
the  diluvian  rain  were  in  all  their  strength.  At  the  approach  of  the 
seventh  day  the  diluvian  rain  grew  weaker,  the  terrible  waterspout — 
which  had  assailed  after  the  fashion  of  an  earthquake — grew  calm,  the 
sea  inclined  to  dry  up,  and  the  wind  and  the  waterspout  came  to  an  end. 
I  looked  at  the  sea,  attentively  observing — and  the  whole  of  humanity 
had  returned  to  mud;  like  unto  sea- weeds  the  corpses  floated.  I 
opened  the  window,  and  the  light  smote  on  my  face.  I  was  seized  with 
sadness ;  I  sat  down  and  I  wept ; — and  my  tears  came  over  my  face. 

I  looked  at  the  regions  bounding  the  sea  ;  towards  the  twelve  points 
of  the  horizon ;  not  any  continent. — The  vessel  was  borne  above  the 
land  of  Nizir, — the  mountain  of  Nizir  arrested  the  vessel,  and  did  not 
permit  it  to  pass  over. — A  day  and  a  second  day  the  mountain  of  Nizir 
arrested  the  vessel,  and  did  not  permit  it  to  pass  over  ; — the  third  and 

*  "  The  water  of  the  twilight  at  break  of  day,"  one  of  the  personifi- 
cations of  rain. 

f  The  god  of  thunder. 

J  The  god  of  war  and  death. 

§  The  Chaldseo- Assyrian  Hercules. 

||  The  superior  heaven  of  the  fixed  stars. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  123 


fourth  day  the  mountain  of  Nizir  arrested  the  vessel,  and  did  not  permit 
it  to  pass  over ; — the  fifth  and  sixth  day  the  mountain  of  Nizir  arrested 
the  vessel,  and  did  not  permit  it  to  pass  over. — At  the  approach  of  the 
seventh  day,  I  sent  out  and  loosed  a  dove.  The  dove  went,  turned,  and 
— found  no  place  to  light  on,  and  it  came  back.  I  sent  out  and  loosed 
a  swallow ;  the  swallow  went,  turned,  and — found  no  place  to  light  on, 
and  it  came  back.  I  sent  out  and  loosed  a  raven  ;  the  raven  went,  and 
saw  the  corpses  on  the  waters ;  it  ate,  rested,  turned,  and  came  not  back. 

I  then  sent  out  (what  was  in  the  vessel)  towards  the  four  winds,  and 
I  offei'ed  a  sacrifice.  I  raised  the  pile  of  my  burnt-offering  on  the  peak 
of  the  mountain ;  seven  by  seven  I  disposed  the  measured  vases,* — and 
beneath  I  spread  rushes,  cedar,  and  juniper  wood.  The  gods  were  seized 
with  the  desire  of  it, — the  gods  were  seized  with  a  benevolent  desire  of 
it ; — and  the  gods  assembled  like  flies  above  the  master  of  the  sacrifice. 
From  afar,  in  approaching,  the  great  goddess  raised  the  great  zones  that 
Anu  has  made  for  their  glory  (the  gods').f  These  gods,  luminous 
crystal  before  me,  I  will  never  leave  them  ;  in  that  day  I  prayed  that  I 
might  never  leave  them.  "  Let  the  gods  come  to  my  sacrificial  pile ! — 
but  never  may  Bel  come  to  my  sacrificial  pile  !  for  he  did  not  master 
himself,  and  he  has  made  the  waterspout  for  the  Deluge,  and  he  has 
numbered  my  men  for  the  pit." 

From  far,  in  drawing  near,  Bel — saw  the  vessel,  and  Bel  stopped  ; — 
he  was  filled  with  anger  against  the  gods  and  the  celestial  archangels  : — 
"  No  one  shall  come  out  alive !  No  man  shall  be  preserved  from  the 
abyss !  " — Adar  opened  his  mouth  and  said ;  he  said  to  the  warrior 
Bel : — "  What  other  than  Ea  should  have  formed  this  resolution  ?— f or 
Ea  possesses  knowledge  and  [he  foresees]  all." — Ea  opened  his  mouth 
and  spake ;  he  said  to  the  warrior  Bel : — "  O  thou,  herald  of  the  gods, 
warrior, — as  thou  didst  not  master  thyself,  thou  hast  made  the  water- 
spout of  the  deluge. — Let  the  sinner  carry  the  weight  of  his  sins,  the 
blasphemer  the  weight  of  his  blasphemy. — Please  thyself  with  this 
good  pleasure,  and  it  shall  never  be  infringed ;  faith  in  it  never  [shall 
be  violated].— Instead  of  thy  making  a  new  deluge,  let  hyaenas  appear 
and  reduce  the  number  of  men ;  instead  of  thy  making  a  new  deluge, 
let  there  be  famine,  and  let  the  earth  be  [devastated] ;- instead  of  thy 
making  a  new  deluge,  let  DibbaraJ  appear,  and  let  men  be  [mown 
down]. — 1  have  not  revealed  the  decision  of  the  great  gods; — it  is 
Khasisatra  who  interpreted  a  dream  and  comprehended  what  tbe  gods 
had  decided." 

Then,  when  his  resolve  was  arrested,  Bel  entered  into  the  vessel.— He 

*  Vases  of  the  measure  called  in  Hebrew  betih.  This  relates  to  a 
detail  of  the  ritualistic  prescriptions  for  sacrifice. 

f  These  metaphorical  expressions  appear  to  designate  the  rainbow. 
J  The  god  of  epidemics. 


124  MYTHICAL  MON8TJEES. 

took  my  hand  and  made  me  rise. — He  made  my  wife  rise,  and  made  her 
place  herself  at  my  side. —  He  turned  around  us  and  stopped  short ;  he 
approached  our  group. — "  Until  now  Khasisatra  has  made  part  of 
perishable  humanity  ; — but  lo,  now,  Khasisatra  and  his  wife  are  going 
to  be  carried  away  to  live  like  the  gods, — and  Khasisatra  will  reside 
afar  at  the  mouth  of  the  rivers." — They  carried  me  away  and  established 
me  in  a  remote  place  at  the  mouth  of  the  streams. 

This  narrative  agrees  with  the  Biblical  one  in  ascribing 
the  inundation  to  a  deluge  of  rain ;  but  adds  further  details 
which  connect  it  with  intense  atmospheric  disturbance,  similar 
to  that  which  would  be  produced  by  a  series  of  cyclones,  or 
typhoons,  of  unusual  severity  and  duration. 

The  intense  gloom,  the  deluge  of  rain,  terrific  violence  of 
wind,  and  the  havoc  both  on  sea  and  land,  which  accompany 
the  normal  cyclones  occurring  annually  on  the  eastern  coast 
of  China,  and  elsewhere,  and  lasting  but  a  few  hours  in  any 
one  locality,  can  hardly  be  credited,  except  by  those  who 
have  experienced  them.  They  are,  however,  sufficient  to 
render  explicable  the  general  devastation  and  loss  of  life 
which  would  result  from  the  duration  of  typhoons,  or  analo- 
gous tempests,  of  abnormal  intensity,  for  even  the  limited 
period  of  six  days  and  nights  allotted  in  the  text  above,  and 
much  more  so  for  that  of  one  hundred  and  fifty  days  assigned 
to  it  in  the  Biblical  account. 

As  illustrating  this  I  may  refer  to  a  few  calamities  of  recent 
date,  which,  though  of  trivial  importance  in  comparison  with 
the  stupendous  event  under  our  consideration,  bring  home  to 
us  the  terribly  devastating  power  latent  in  the  elements. 

In  Bengal,  a  cyclone  on  October  31,  1876,  laid  under 
water  three  thousand  and  ninety-three  square  miles,  and 
destroyed  two  hundred  and  fifteen  thousand  lives. 

A  typhoon  which  raged  in  Canton,  Hongkong,  and  Macao 
on  September  22,  1874,  besides  much  other  destruction, 
destroyed  several  thousand  people  in  Macao  and  the  adjacent 
villages,  the  number  of  corpses  in  the  town  being  so  numerous 
that  they  had  to  be  gathered  in  heaps  and  burnt  with  kerosene, 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  125 

the  population,  without  the  Chinese  who  refused  to  lend 
assistance,  being  insufficient  to  bury  them. 

A  tornado  in  Canton,  on  April  11,  1878,  destroyed,  in  the 
course  of  a  few  minutes,  two  thousand  houses  and  ten  thou- 
sand lives. 

In  view  of  these  few  historical  facts,  which  might  be 
greatly  supplemented,  there  appears  to  my  mind  to  be  no 
difficulty  in  believing  that  the  continuance,  during  even  only 
six  days  and  six  nights,  of  extraordinarily  violent  circular 
storms  over  a  given  area,  would,  especially  if  accompanied  by 
so-called  tidal  or  earthquake  waves,  be  sufficient  to  wreck  all 
sea-going  and  coasting  craft,  all  river  boats,  inundate  every 
country  embraced  within  it  to  a  very  great  extent,  submerge 
each  metropolis,  city,  or  village,  situate  either  in  the  deltas 
of  rivers,  or  higher  up  their  course,  sap,  unroof,  batter  down, 
and  destroy  all  dwellings  on  the  highlands,  level  forests, 
destroy  all  domestic  animals,  sweep  away  all  cultivated  soil, 
or  bury  it  beneath  an  enormous  thickness  of  debris,  tear  away 
the  soil  from  the  declivities  of  hills  and  mountains,  destroy 
all  shelter,  and  hence,  by  exposure,  most  of  those  wretched 
human  beings  who  might  have  escaped  drowning  on  the 
lower  levels.  The  few  survivors  would  with  difficulty  escape 
starvation,  or  death  from  subsequent  exposure  to  the  deadly 
malaria  which  would  be  liberated  by  the  rooting  up  of  the 
accumulated  debris  of  centuries.  This  latter  supposition 
appears  to  me  to  be  directly  indicated  by  the  passage  towards 
the  end  of  the  extract  referring  to  famine,  and  to  the  devas- 
tation of  the  earth  by  Dibbara  (the  god  of  epidemics). 

It  is  noticeable  that  in  this  account  there  is  no  suggestion 
of  complete  immersion,  Khasisatra  simply  says  there  is  not 
any  continent  (i.e.  all  the  hill  ranges  within  sight  would 
stand  out  from  the  inundation  like  islands),  while  he  speaks 
of  his  vessel  being  arrested  by  the  mountain  of  Nizir,  which 
must  consequently  have  been  above  the  surface  of  the  water. 

Neither  is  there  any  such  close  limitation  of  the  number 


126  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

of  persons  preserved,  as  in  the  Biblical  story,  for  Khasisatra 
took  with  him  his  men-servants,  maid-servants,  and  his 
young  people,  while  the  version  transmitted  by  Berosus  (see 
Appendix  to  this  Chapter),  states  that  Xisuthros  embarked 
his  wife,  children,  and  his  intimate  friends,  and  that  these 
latter  subsequently  founded  numerous  cities,  built  temples, 
and  restored  Babylon. 

We  have  thus  a  fair  nucleus  for  starting  a  fresh  population 
in  the  Euphrates  valley,  which  may  have  received  accessions 
from  the  gradual  concentration  of  scattered  survivors,  and 
from  the  enterprise  of  maritime  adventurers  from  the  African 
coast  and  elsewhere,  possibly  also  nomads  from  the  north, 
east,  and  west  may  have  swelled  the  numbers,  and  a  polyglot 
community  have  been  established,  which  subsequently,  through 
race  distinctions,  jealousies,  and  incompatibility  of  language, 
became  again  dismembered,  as  recorded  in  the  history  of  the 
attempted  erection  of  the  Tower  of  Babel. 

Confining  our  attention  for  the  moment  to  this  one  locality, 
we  may  imagine  that  the  young  population  would  not  be 
deterred  by  any  apprehension  of  physical  danger  from  re- 
inhabiting  such  of  the  old  cities  as  remained  recognizable ; 
since  we  see  that  men  do  not  hesitate  to  recommence  the 
building  of  cities  overthrown  by  earthquake  shocks  almost 
before  the  last  tremblings  are  over ;  or,  as  in  the  case  of 
Herculaneum  and  Pompeii,  within  the  range  of  volcanoes 
which  may  have  already  repeatedly  vomited  destroying  floods 
of  lava.  Yet,  in  this  instance,  they  would  probably  invest 
the  calamity  with  a  supernatural  horror,  and  regard  it,  as  the 
text  expresses  it,  as  a  chastisement  from  the  gods  for  their 
impiety.  If  this  were  so,  the  very  memory  of  such  cities 
would  soon  be  lost,  and  with  it  all  the  treasures  of  art  and 
literature  which  they  contained.* 


*  It  is  probably  as  much   from  a  superstitious  sentiment  as  upon 
merely  physical  grounds  that  many  of  the  deserted  cities  in  Asia  have 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  127 

The  Hindu  account  is  taken  from  the  S'atapatha-Brdhmana, 
a  work  of  considerable  antiquity,  being  one  of  a  series  which 
Professor  Max  Miiller  believes  to  have  been  written  eight 
hundred  years  before  Christ.  A  literal  translation  of  the 
legend,  as  given  in  this  venerable  work,  is  as  follows  : — 

"  To  Manu  in  the  morning  they  brought  water  for  wash- 
ing, just  as  they  bring  it  for  washing  the  hands.  As  he  was 
using  the  water,  a  fish  came  into  his  hand.  This  (fish)  said 
to  him,  *  Preserve  me,  and  I  will  save  thee.'  (Manu  said), 
'  From  what  wilt  thou  preserve  me  ?  '  (The  fish  replied), 
'  A  flood  will  carry  away  all  these  creatures ;  from  that  I  will 
preserve  thee.'  (Manu  said),  '  How  is  thy  preservation  (to 
be  effected)  ?  '  (The  fish  replied),  '  As  long  as  we  are  small, 
there  is  great  danger  of  our  destruction  ;  fish  even  devours 
fish  :  at  first  preserve  me  in  a  jar.  When  I  grow  too  big  for 
that,  cut  a  trench,  and  preserve  me  in  that.  When  I  out- 
grow that,  carry  me  to  the  sea ;  then  I  shall  be  beyond  (the 
reach  of)  danger.'  Soon  it  became  a  great  fish ;  it  increased 
greatly.  (The  fish  said),  'In  so  many  years  the  flood  will 
come  ;  make  a  ship  and  worship  me.  On  the  rising  of  the 
flood  enter  the  ship,  then  I  will  preserve  thee.'  Having 
preserved  the  fish  he  brought  it  to  the  sea.  In  the  same 
year  indicated  by  the  fish  (Manu)  made  a  ship  and  wor- 
shipped the  fish.  When  the  flood  rose  he  entered  the  ship  ; 
the  fish  swam  near  him :  he  attached  the  cable  of  the  ship 
to  his  (the  fish's)  horn.  By  this  means  the  fish  carried  him 
over  the  northern  mountain  (Himalayas).  (The  fish  said), 

been  abandoned  ;  while,  as  a  noticeable  instance,  we  may  quote  Gour, 
the  ruined  capital  of  Bengal,  which  is  computed  to  have  extended  from 
fifteen  to  twenty  miles  along  the  bank  of  the  river,  and  three  in  depth. 
The  native  tradition  is  that  it  was  struck  by  the  wrath  of  the  gods  in 
the  form  of  an  epidemic  which  slew  the  whole  population.  Another 
case  is  the  reputed  presence  of  a  ruined  city,  in  the  vicinity  of  the 
populous  city  of  Nanking,  and  at  some  distance  from  the  right  bank  of 
the  river  Yangtsze,  of  which  the  walls  only  remain,  and  of  the  history 
of  which  those  in  the  vicinity  profess  to  have  lost  all  record. 


128  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

f  I  have  preserved  thee  :  fasten  the  ship  to  a  tree.  But  lest 
the  water  cut  thee  off  whilst  thou  art  on  the  mountain,  as 
fast  as  the  water  subsides  thou  wilt  descend  with  it.'  Ac- 
cordingly he  descended  (with  the  water) ;  hence  this  became 
'  Manu's  Descent '  from  the  northern  mountain.  The  flood 
had  carried  away  all  those  creatures,  Manu  alone  was  left. 
He  being  desirous  of  offspring  performed  a  sacred  rite ;  there 
also  he  offered  a  p&fcfl -sacrifice.  With  clarified  butter, 
coagulated  milk,  whey,  and  curds,  he  made  an  offering  to 
the  waters.  In  a  year  a  female  was  produced ;  and  she  arose 
unctuous  from  the  moisture,  with  clarified  butter  under  her 
feet.  Mitra  and  Varuna  came  to  her;  and  said  to  her, 
'Who  art  thou?'  (She  said),  'The  daughter  of  Manu.' 
(They  said),  '  Say  (thou  art)  our  (daughter).'  '  No,'  she 
replied,  '  I  am  verily  (the  daughter)  of  him  who  begot  me.' 
They  desired  a  share  in  her  ;  she  agreed  and  did  not  agree. 
She  went  on  and  came  to  Manu.  Manu  said  to  her,  '  Who 
art  thou  ?  '  '  Thy  daughter,'  she  replied.  '  How,  revered 
one,  art  thou  my  daughter  ?  '  (She  replied),  '  The  offerings 
which  thou  hast  cast  upon  the  waters, — clarified  butter,  coagu- 
lated milk,  whey,  and  curds, — from  them  thou  hast  generated 
me.  I  am  a  blessing.  Do  thou  introduce  me  into  the  sacrifice. 
If  thou  wilt  introduce  me  into  the  sacrifice,  thou  wilt  be 
(blessed)  with  abundance  of  offspring  and  cattle.  Whatever 
blessing  thou  shalt  ask  through  me,  will  all  be  given  to 
thee.'  Thus  he  introduced  her  in  the  middle  of  the  sacri- 
fice ;  for  the  middle  of  the  sacrifice  is  that  which  comes 
between  the  final  and  the  introductory  prayers.  He,  desirous 
of  offspring,  meditating  and  toiling,  went  with  her.  By  her 
he  begot  this  (offspring),  which  is  (called)  '  The  offspring  of 
Mauu.' " 

The  correspondence  of  this  legend  with  the  Biblical  and 
the  other  accounts  is  remarkable.  We  have  the  announce- 
ment of  the  Deluge,  the  construction  of  a  ship,  the  pre- 
servation therein  of  a  representative  man,  the  settlement  of 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  129 

the  vessel  on  a  mountain,  the  gradual  subsidence  of  the 
water,  and  the  subsequent  re-peopling  of  the  world  by  the 
man  thus  preserved.  The  very  scene  of  the  cataclysm  is  in 
singular  agreement  with  the  other  accounts  ;  for  the  flood  is 
said  to  carry  Manu  "  over  the  northern  mountain."  This 
places  the  scene  of  the  Deluge  in  Central  Asia,  beyond  the 
Himalaya  mountains,  and  it  proves  that  the  legend  embodies 
a  genuine  tradition  brought  by  the  progenitors  of  the  Hindus 
from  their  primasval  home,  whence  also  radiated  the  Semitic 
and  Sinitic  branches  of  mankind. 

There  has  been  much  discussion  as  to  whether  the  great 
inundation  which  occurred  in  China  during  the  reign  of  Yao 
is  identical  with  that  of  Genesis  or  not.  The  close  proximity 
of  date  lends  a  strong  support  to  the  assumption,  and  the 
supposition  that  the  scene  of  the  Biblical  Deluge  was  local  in 
its  origin,  but  possibly  widespread  in  its  results,  further 
favours  the  view. 

As  the  rise  of  the  Nile  at  Cairo  is  the  only  intimation 
which  the  inhabitants  of  Lower  Egypt  have  of  the  tropical 
rains  of  Central  Africa,  so  the  inundation  of  the  countries 
adjacent  to  the  head  waters  of  the  great  rivers  of  China  may 
alone  have  informed  the  inhabitants  of  that  country  of  serious 
elemental  disturbances,  only  reaching,  and  in  a  modified 
form,  their  western  frontier ;  and  it  may  well  have  been  that 
the  deluge  which  caused  a  national  annihilation  in  Western 
Asia  was  only  a  national  calamity  in  the  eastern  portion 
of  it. 

This  view  is  strengthened  if  we  consider  that  Chinese  his- 
tory has  no  record  of  any  deluge  prior  to  this,  which  could 
hardly  have  been  the  case  had  the  Chinese  migrated  from 
their  parent  stock  subsequent  to  an  event  of  such  importance ; 
assuming  that  it  had  occurred,  as  there  seems  valid  reason  to 
suppose,  within  the  limits  of  written  history.  The  anachronism 
between  the  two  dates  assigned  by  Chinese  authors  (2297  B.C.) 

9 


130  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

and  the  Jewish  historian's  calculation  (2104  B.C.)  is  only  one 
hundred  and  ninety-three  years,  and  this  is  not  so  great  but 
that  we  may  anticipate  its  being  explained  at  some  future 
date.  Strauchius'  computation  of  2293  B.C.  for  the  date  of 
the  Biblical  deluge  is  within  four  years,  and  Ussher's  (2349- 
2348)  within  fifty-one  of  the  Chinese  one.  The  reason  for 
supposing  the  deluge  of  Yao  to  be  historically  true,  will  be 
inferred  from  the  arguments  borrowed  from  Mr.  Legge  on 
the  subject  of  the  Shu-king,  in  another  portion  of  this 
volume.  It  is  detailed  in  the  great  Chinese  work  on  history, 
the  T'ung-keen-kang-muh,  by  Choo  He,  of  which  De  Mailla's 
History  of  China  professes  to  be  a  translation. 

This  states  that  the  inundation  happened  in  the  sixty-first 
year  of  the  reign  of  Yao  (2297  B.C.),  and  that  the  waters  of 
the  Yellow  Eiver  mingled  with  those  of  the  Ho-hi-ho  and 
the  Yangtsze,  ruining  all  the  agricultural  country,  which  was 
converted  into  one  vast  sea. 

But  neither  in  the  Bamboo  Books  nor  in  the  Shu-king  do 
we  find  that  any  local  phenomena  of  importance  occurred, 
with  the  exception  of  the  inundation.  In  fact,  the  first  work 
is  singularly  silent  on  the  subject,  and  simply  says  that  in 
his  sixty-first  year  Yao  ordered  K'wan  of  Ts'ung  to  regulate 
the  Ho,  and  degraded  him  in  his  sixty-ninth  for  being  unable 
to  effect  it,  as  we  learn  elsewhere. 

The  Shu  is  more  explicit.  The  Emperor,  consulting  one 
of  his  chief  officials  on  the  calamity,  says:  "0  chief  of 
the  four  mountains,  destructive  in  their  overflow  are  the 
waters  of  the  inundation.  In  their  vast  extent  they  embrace 
the  mountains  and  overtop  the  hills,  threatening  the  heavens 
with  their  floods,  so  that  the  inferior  people  groan  and 
murmur." 

According  to  De  Mailla's  translation,  K'wan  laboured  use- 
lessly for  nine  years,  the  whole  country  was  overrun  with 
briars  and  brushwood,  the  people  had  almost  forgotten  the 
art  of  cultivating  the  ground — they  were  without  the  neces- 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  131 

sary  seeds — and  wild  animals  and  birds  destroyed  all  their 
attempts  at  agriculture. 

In  this  extremity  Yao  consulted  Shun,  his  subsequent 
successor,  who  recommended  the  appointment  of  Yu,  the 
son  of  K'wan,  in  his  father's  place. 

Yu  was  more  successful,  and  describes  his  labours  as  fol- 
lows : — 

"  The  inundating  waters  seemed  to  assail  the  heavens, 
and  in  their  vast  extent  embraced  the  mountains  and  over- 
topped the  hills,  so  that  people  were  bewildered  and  over- 
whelmed. I  mounted  my  four  conveyances,*  and  all  along 
the  hills  hewed  down  the  woods,  at  the  same  time, 
along  with  Yih,  showing  the  multitudes  how  to  get  flesh 
to  eat. 

"  I  also  opened  passages  for  the  streams  throughout  the 
nine  provinces,  and  conducted  them  to  the  sea.  I  deepened, 
moreover,  the  channels  and  canals,  and  conducted  them  to 
the  streams,  at  the  same  time,  along  with  Tseih,  sowing 
grain,  and  showing  the  multitudes  how  to  procure  the  food 
of  toil  in  addition  to  flesh  meat." 

Yu's  success  is  simply  chronicled  in  the  Bamboo  Books  as, 
"  In  his  seventy-fifth  year  Yu,  the  Superintendent  of  Works, 
regulated  the  Ho." 

There  was  a  legend  extant  in  China  in  the  times  of  Pinto, 
which  he  gives  in  his  book,  of  the  original  Chinese  having 
migrated  from  a  region  in  the  West,  and,  following  the 
course  of  the  Ho  in  boats,  finally  settling  in  the  country 
adjacent  to  Pekin.  That  some  such  event  took  place  is 
not  unlikely.  Its  acceptance  would  explain  much  that  is 
difficult. 

The  pioneers,  pushing  through  a  country  infested  with 


*  i.e.  (according  to  the  Historical  Records)  a  carriage  to  travel  along 
the  dry  land,  a  boat  to  travel  along  the  water,  a  sledge  to  travel  through 
miry  places,  and,  by  using  spikes,  to  travel  on  the  hills. 

9  * 


132  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

hostile  aborigines,  who  would  immediately  after  their  passage 
close  up  the  road  of  communication  behind  them — pioneers  who 
may  have  been  fugitives  from  their  kindred  through  political 
commotions,  or  expelled  by  successful  enemies — would  have 
a  further  barrier  against  return,  even  were  they  disposed  to 
attempt  it,  in  the  strong  opposing  current  which  had  borne 
them  safely  to  their  new  homes. 

It  is  probable  that  such  a  journey  would  form  an  entirely 
new  departure  for  their  history,  and  that  a  few  generations 
later  it  would  resemble  a  nebulous  chronological  zone,  on 
the  far  side  of  which  could  be  dimly  seen  myths  of  persons 
and  events  representing  in  reality  the  history  of  the  not  very 
remote  ancestors  from  whom  they  had  become  separated. 
The  early  arrivals  would  have  been  too  much  occupied  with 
establishing  themselves  in  their  new  dominions  to  be  able  to 
give  much  attention  to  keeping  records  or  preserving  other 
than  the  most  utilitarian  branches  of  knowledge  which  they 
had  brought  with  them.  The  volumes  of  their  ancestors 
were  probably,  like  the  clay  tablets  of  the  royal  library  of 
Babylon,  not  of  a  portable  nature,  at  all  events  to  fugi- 
tives, whose  knowledge  would,  therefore,  be  rather  of  a 
practical  than  of  a  cultivated  nature,  and  this  would 
soon  become  limited  for  a  while  to  their  chiefs  and  reli- 
gious instructors,  the  exigencies  of  a  colony  menaced  with 
danger  prohibiting  any  general  acquisition  or  extension  of 
learning. 

In  this  way  we  can  account  for  the  community  of  the 
fables  relating  rto  the  remote  antiquity  of  the  Chinese 
with  those  of  Chaldean  and  Indian  mythology,  and 
with  the  highly  civilized  administration  and  astrological 
knowledge  possessed  by  Yao  and  Shun  as  herediton  of 
Fuh  Hi,  &c. 

We  can  account  for  their  possession  of  accurate  delinea- 
tions of  the  dragon,  which  would  form  an  important  decora- 
tion of  the  standards  and  robes  of  ceremony  which  were 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH. 


companions  of  their  flight,  while  their  descriptions  of  the 
animal  and  its  qualities  would  have  already  entered  into  the 
realms  of  fanciful  exaggeration  and  myth. 

The  dragon  of  Yao  and  Shun's  time,  and  of  Yu's  time 
was,  in  my  opinion,  an  aquatic  creature,  an  alligator  ;  but 
the  dragon  of  their  ancestors  was  a  land  lizard,  which  may 
even  have  existed  down  to  the  time  of  the  great  cataclysm 
which  we  call  the  Deluge,  and  the  memory  of  which  is  best 
preserved  in  the  Chinese  drawings  which  have  been  handed 
down  from  remote  antiquity,  and  have  travelled  from  the 
great  Central  Asian  centre,  which  was  once  alike  its  habitat 
and  that  of  their  ancestors.  Its  history  may  perhaps  become 
evolved  when  the  great  store  of  book  knowledge  contained 
in  the  cuneiform  tablets,  representing  the  culture  of  the 
other  branch  of  their  great  ethnological  family,  has  been 
more  extensively  explored. 

Geologists  of  the  present  day  have  a  great  objection  to  the 
bringing  in  of  cataclysms  to  account  for  any  considerable 
natural  changes,  but  this  one  I  conceive  to  have  been  of  so 
stupendous  a  nature  as  to  have  been  quite  capable  of 
both  extinguishing  a  species  and  confusing  the  recollection 
of  it.  The  mere  fact  of  the  story  of  the  dragon  having 
survived  such  a  period  argues  greatly,  in  my  mind,  for  the 
reality  of  its  previous  existence. 

Extending  our  consideration,  we  are  brought  face  to  face 
with  another  very  important  fact,  namely,  that  a  large  pro- 
portion of  the  human  race  content  themselves  with  ephemeral 
structures.  Thus,  for  example,  the  Chinese  neither  have 
now,  nor  at  any  time  have  had,  any  great  architectural  works. 
"  The  finest  building  in  China  is  a  reproduction,  on  a  large 
scale,  of  the  tent  ;  and  the  wooden  construction  is  always 
imitated  where  the  materials  are  stone  or  marble.  The  sup- 
ports, often  magnificent  logs,  brought,  at  great  expense, 
specially  from  the  Straits,  represent  tent-poles  ;  and  the  roof 
has  always  the  peaked  ends  and  the  curves  that  recall  the 


134  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

drooping  canvas  of  the  marquee.  Architecture  evidently 
died  early ;  it  never  had  life  enough  to  assimilate  the  new 
material  which  it  found  when  it  migrated  into  China  Proper. 
The  yamen  is  a  slightly  glorified  cottage  ;  the  temple  is  an 
improved  yamen.  Sculpture  is  equally  neglected  in  this 
(aesthetically)  benighted  country.  The  human  form  is  as 
dignified  and  sightly,  to  Chinese  eyes  at  least,  in  China  as  in 
the  West ;  but  it  never  seems  to  have  occurred,  throughout 
so  many  hundreds  of  years,  to  any  Chinaman  to  perpetuate 
it  in  marble  or  bronze,  or  to  beautify  a  city  with  statues  of 
its  deities  or  great  men."* 

What  holds  good  of  the  Chinese  now,  probably  holds  good 
of  their  ancestors  and  the  race  from  which  they  parted  com- 
pany in  Central  Asia  five  thousand  years  ago,  when  they 
pierced  their  way  eastwards  through  the  savage  aborigines 
of  Thibet  and  Mongolia,  pushing  aside  tribes  which  closed 
in  again  behind  them,  so  as  to  intercept  their  return  or  com- 
munication with  their  mother  country — a  country  which  may 
have  been  equally  careless  of  elaborating  stupendous  and 
permanent  works  of  architecture  such  as  other  nations  glory 
in  possessing,  and  which,  like  the  pyramids  of  Egypt  and  of 
Central  America,  stand  forth  for  thousands  of  years  as  land- 
marks of  the  past. 

We  must,  therefore,  not  be  surprised  if  we  do  not  imme- 
diately discover  the  vestiges  of  the  people  of  ten,  fifteen,  or 
twenty  thousand  years  ago.  With  an  ephemeral  architecture 
(which,  as  we  have  seen,  is  all  that  a  highly  populous  and 
long  civilized  race  actually  possess),  the  sites  of  vast  cities 
may  have  become  entirely  lost  to  recollection  in  a  few  thou- 
sands of  years  from  natural  decay,  and  how  much  more  so 
would  this  be  the  case  if,  as  we  may  reasonably  argue,  minor 
cataclysms  have  intervened,  such  as  local  inundations,  earth- 
quakes, deposition  of  volcanic  ashes  from  even  distant 

— — — — — , .  \ 

*  Balfour,  North  China  Daily  News,  Feb.  11,  1881. 


THE  DELUGE  NOT  A  MYTH.  135 

sources,  the  spread  of  sandy  deserts,  destruction  of  life  by 
exceptionally  deadly  pestilence,  by  miasma,  or  by  the  outpour 
of  sulphurous  fumes. 

We  have  shown  in  another  chapter  how  the  process  of 
extinction  of  species  continues  to  the  present  day,  and  from 
the  nature  of  this  process  we  may  deduce  that  the  number 
of  species  which  became  extinct  during  the  four  or  five 
thousand  years  preceding  the  era  of  exact  history  must  have 
been  considerable. 

The  less  remarkable  of  these  would  expire  unnoticed  ; 
and  only  those  distinguished  by  their  size,  ferocity,  and 
dangerous  qualities,  or  by  some  striking  peculiarity,  would 
leave  their  impress  on  the  mythology  of  their  habitat.  Their 
exact  history  would  be  lost  as  the  cities  of  their  epoch 
crumbled  away,  and  during  the  passage  through  dark  ages 
of  the  people  of  their  period  and  their  descendants,  and  by 
conquest  or  catastrophes  such  as  we  have  referred  to  else- 
where ;  while  the  slow  dispersion  which  appears  to  have 
obtained  among  all  nations  would  render  the  record  of  their 
qualities  the  more  confused  as  the  myth  which  embalmed 
it  spread  in  circling  waves  farther  and  farther  from  its 
original  centre. 

Amongst  the  most  fell  destroyer  both  of  species  and  of 
their  history  must  have  been  the  widespread,  although  not 
universal,  inundation  known  as  the  Biblical  Deluge  ;  a  deluge 
which  we  think  the  evidence  given  in  the  foregoing  pages, 
and  gathered  from  divers  nations,  justifies  us  in  believing  to 
have  really  taken  place,  and  not  to  be,  as  mythologists  claim,  a 
mere  ether  myth.  As  to  its  date,  allowance  being  made  for 
trifling  errors,  there  is  no  reason  for  disputing  the  computa- 
tion of  Jewish  chronology,  especially  as  that  is  closely 
confirmed  by  the  entirely  independent  testimony  of  Chinese 
history. 

This  interposes  a  vast  barrier  between  us  and  the  know- 
ledge of  the  past,  a  barrier  round  which  we  pass  for  a  short 


136  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

distance  at  either  end  when  we  study  the  history  of  the  two 
great  streams  of  nations  which  have  diverged  from  a  common 
centre,  the  Chinese  towards  the  East,  the  Accadian  Chal- 
dseans  and  Semites  towards  the  West ;  a  barrier  which  we 
may  hope  to  surmount  when  we  are  able  to  discover  and 
explore  the  lost  cities  of  that  common  centre,  with  the 
treasures  of  art  and  literature  which  they  must  undoubtedly 
possess. 


137 


CHAPTER  V. 

ON  THE  TRANSLATION  OP  MYTHS  BETWEEN  THE  OLD  AND 
THE  NEW  WORLD. 

INTERCOURSE  between  various  parts  of  the  old  world  and  the 
new  was  probably  much  more  intimate  even  three  or  four 
thousand  years  ago  than  we,  or  at  all  events  our  immediate 
ancestors,  have  credited.  The  Deluge  Tablets  referred  to  in 
another  chapter  contain  items  from  which  we  gather  that 
sea-going  vessels,  well  equipped  and  with  skilled  pilots,  were 
in  vogue  in  the  time  of  Noah,  and  there  is  wanting  no  better 
proof  of  their  seaworthiness  than  the  fact  that  his  particular 
craft  was  able  to  weather  a  long-continued  tempest  which 
would  probably  have  sunk  the  greater  part  of  those  which 
keep  the  seas  at  the  present  time.  The  older  Chinese 
classics  make  constant  allusions  to  maritime  adventure,  and 
the  discovery  by  Schliemann  in  ancient  Troy*  of  vases  with 

*  Dr.  Schliemann  found  a  vase  in  the  lowest  strata  of  his  excavations 
at  Hissarlik  with  an  inscription  in  an  unknown  language. 

Six  years  ago  the  Orientalist  E.  Burnouf  declared  it  to  be  in  Chinese, 
for  which  he  was  generally  laughed  at  at  the  time. 

The  Chinese  ambassador  at  Berlin,  Li  Fang-pau,  has  read  and  trans- 
lated the  inscription,  which  states  that  three  pieces  of  linen  gauze  are 
packed  in  the  vase  for  inspection. 

The  Chinese  ambassador  fixes  the  date  of  the  inscription  at  about 
1200  B.C.,  and  further  states  that  the  unknown  characters  so  frequently 
occurring  on  the  terra  cotta  are  also  in  the  Chinese  language,  which 
would  show  that  at  this  remote  period  commercial  intercourse  existed 
between  China  and  the  eastern  shores  of  Asia  Minor  and  Greece. — 
Pop.  ScL  Monthly,  No.  98,  p.  176,  June  1880. 


138  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Chinese  inscriptions  confirms  the  notion  that,  at  that  date  at 
least,  commercial  exchange  was  effected  between  these  two 
widely-distant  countries,  either  directly  or  by  transfer  through 
different  entrepots. 

A  more  striking  example,  and  one  which  carries  us  back 
to  a  still  earlier  epoch,  will  be  afforded  if  the  reported  dis- 
covery of  Chinese  vestigia  in  Egyptian  tombs  is  confirmed 
by  further  investigation. 

The  fleets  of  King  Solomon  penetrated  at  least  to  India, 
and  detached  squadrons*  probably  coasted  from  island  to 
island  along  the  Malay  archipelago  ;  while  to  descend  by 
gradation  to  modern  times,  we  may  quote  the  circumnaviga- 
tion of  Africa  by  Hanno  the  Carthaginian,  f  the  discovery 


*  Pierre  Bergeron  suggests  that  Solomon's  fleets,  starting  from 
Ezion-geber  (subsequently  Berenice  and  now  Alcacu),  arrived  at  Babel- 
mandeb,  and  then  divided,  one  portion  going  to  Malacca,  Sumatra,  or 
Java,  the  other  to  Sofala,  round  Africa,  and  returning  by  way  of  Cadiz 
and  the  Mediterranean  to  Joppa. 

f  There  are  various  accounts  of  the  circumnavigation  of  Africa  in 
old  times.  For  example,  Herodotus  (Melpomene,  42) :  "  Libya  shows 
itself  to  be  surrounded  by  water,  except  so  much  of  it  as  borders  upon 
Asia.  Neco,  King  of  Egypt,  was  the  first  whom  we  know  of  that  proved 
this;  he,  when  he  had  ceased  digging  the  canal  leading  from  the  Nile 
to  the  Arabian  gulf,  sent  certain  Phoenicians  in  ships  with  orders  to 
sail  back  through  the  pillars  of  Hercules  into  the  Northern  Sea,  and  so 
to  return  to  Egypt.  The  Phoenicians  accordingly,  setting  out  from  the 
Red  Sea,  navigated  the  Southern  Sea ;  when  autumn  came  they  went 
ashore,  and  sowed  the  land,  by  whatever  part  of  Libya  they  happened 
to  be  sailing,  and  waited  for  harvest ;  then,  having  reaped  the  corn, 
they  put  to  sea  again.  When  two  years  had  thus  passed,  in  the  third, 
having  doubled  the  pillars  of  Hercules,  they  arrived  in  Egypt,  and 
related  what  to  me  does  not  seem  credible,  but  may  to  others,  that  as 
they  sailed  round  Libya,  they  had  the  sun  on  the  right  hand."  Again, 
Pliny  tells  us  (Book  ii.  chap.  Ixvii,  Translation  by  Bostock  and  Riley), 
"  While  the  power  of  Carthage  was  at  its  height,  Hanno  published  an 
account  of  a  voyage  which  he  made  from  Grades  to  the  extremity  of 
Arabia :  besides,  we  learn  from  Cornelius  Nepos,  that  one  Eudoxus,  a 
contemporary  of  his,  when  he  was  flying  from  King  Lathyrus,  set  out 
from  the  Arabian  Grulf,  and  was  carried  as  far  as  Grades.  And  long 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  139 

of  America  prior  to  Columbus  by  the  Chinese  in  the  fifth 
century,  from  the  Asiatic  side,  and  by  the  Norsemen  under 
Leif  Ericsson  in  the  year  1001,  from  the  European ;  and  the 
anticipation  of  the  so-called  discoveries  of  Van  Dieinen  and 
Tasman  by  the  voyages  of  Arab  and  other  navigators,  from 
whose  records  El  Edrisi,*  in  the  twelfth  century,  was  enabled 
to  indicate  the  existence  of  New  Guinea,  and,  I  think,  of  the 
northern  coast  of  Australia.  For  although  the  identity  with 
Mexico  of  the  country  called  Fu-sang,  visited  prior  to  A.D.  499 


before  him,  Ccelius  Antipater  informs  us,  that  he  had  seen  a  person 
who  had  sailed  from  Spain  to  Ethiopia  for  the  purposes  of  trade. 
The  same  Cornelius  Nepos,  when  speaking  of  the  northern  circum- 
navigation, tells  us  that  Q.  Metellus  Celer,  the  colleague  of  L.  Afranius 
in  the  consulship,  but  then  proconsul  in  Gaul,  had  a  present  made  to 
him  by  the  King  of  the  Suevi,  of  certain  Indians,  who,  sailing  from 
India  for  the  purposes  of  commerce,  had  been  driven  by  tempests 
into  Germany." 

Ptolemy  Lathyrus  commenced  his  reign  117  B.C.  and  reigned  for 
thirty-six  years.  Cornelius  Nepos  is  supposed  to  have  lived  in  the 
century  previous  to  the  Christian  era,  and  Coalius  Antipater  to  have  been 
born  in  the  middle  of  the  second  century  B.C. 

*  Edrisi  compiled,  under  the  instruction  of  Roger,  King  of  Sicily, 
Italy,  Lombardy,  and  Calabria,  an  exhaustive  geographical  treatise 
comprising  information  derived  from  numerous  preceding  works, 
principally  Arabic,  and  from  the  testimony  of  all  the  geographers  of 
the  day. 

Vide  the  Translation  into  French  by  M.  Ame'dee  Jaubert,  2  vols.  4to, 
Paris,  1836,  included  in  the  Becueil  de  Voyages  et  de  Memoires  public  par 
la  Societe  de  Geographic. 

"  Ce  pays  touch  celui  de  Wac  Wac  ou  sont  deux  villes  miserables  et 
mal  peuplees  a  cause  de  la  rarete  des  subsistances  et  du  peu  de  ressource 
en  tout  genre ;  1'une  se  nomme  Derou  et  1'autre  Nebhena ;  dans  son 
voisinage  est  un  grand  bourg  nomme  Da'rgha.  Les  naturels  sont  noirs, 
de  figure  hideuse,  de  complexion  difforme  ;  leur  langage  est  une  espece 
de  sifflement.  Us  sont  absolument  nus  et  sont  peu  visite's  (par  les 
etrangers).  Us  vivent  de  poissons,  de  coquillages,  et  de  tortues.  Us 
sont  (comme  il  vient^d'etre  dit)  voisins  de  1'ile  de  Wac  Wac  dont  nous 
reparlerons,  s'il  plait  a  Dieu.  Chacun  de  ces  pays  et  de  ces  iles  est  situc 
sur  un  grand  golfe,  on  n'y  trouve  ni  or,  ni  commerce,  ni  navire,  ni  betes 
de  somme." — El  Edrisi,  vol.  i.  p.  79. 


140  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


by  the  Buddhist  priest  Hoei-shiu,  has  been  disputed,  yet  the 
arguments  in  favour  of  it  seem  to  preponderate.  These 
were  adduced  primarily  by  Deguignes,  and  subsequently  by 
C.  F.  Neumann,  Leland  and  others,  and  are  based  on  the 
facts  stated  in  the  short  narrative  in  regard  to  distance, 
description  of  the  Maguey  plant,  or  great  aloe,*  the  absence 
of  iron,  and  abundance  of  copper,  gold,  and  silver. 

While  there  can  be  little  question  that  the  islands  and 
land  of  Wak  Wak  are  respectively  some  of  the  Sunda 
islands,  New  Guinea,  and  the  adjacent  portion  of  Australia, 
it  does  not  appear  to  have  struck  any  of  the  commentators 
on  this  question  that  the  name  "  islands  of  Wak  Wak  "  may 
be  assumed  to  signify  simply  "  Bird  of  Paradise  islands." 
Wallace,  in  his  Malay  Archipelago,  emphatically  remarks  that 
in  the  interior  of  the  forests  of  New  Guinea  the  most  striking 
sound  is  the  cry  "  Wok  Wok  "  of  the  great  Bird  of  Paradise, 
and  we  may  therefore  reasonably  speculate  on  the  bird 
having  been  known  as  the  Wok  Wok,  and  the  islands  as  the 
Wok  Wok  islands,  just  as  we  ourselves  use  the  imitative 
names  of  Cuckoo,  Morepork,  or  Hoopoe  for  birds,  or  Snake 
islands,  Ape  Hill,  &c.  for  places. 

This  view  is  to  an  extent  strengthened  by  Wak  Wak  being 
the  home  of  the  lovely  maiden  captured  by  Hasan  (in  the 
charming  story  of  Hasan  of  El  Basrah  in  the  Arabian  Nights), 
after  she  had  divested  herself  of  her  bird  skin,  and  to  which 
he  had  to  make  so  weary  a  pilgrimage  from  island  to  island, 
and  sea  to  sea,  in  search  of  her  after  her  escape  from  him. 
It  is  evident  that  among  the  wonders  related  by  navigators 
of  islands  so  remote  and  unfrequented,  not  the  least  would 
be  the  superavian  loveliness  of  the  Birds  of  Paradise,  and 
from  the  exaggerated  narratives  of  travellers  may  have 


*  The  Agave  Americane,  which  substance  has  as  many  uses  among 
the  Mexicans  as  the  bamboo  (the  iron  of  China)  among  the  Chinese,  or 
the  camel  among  nomads. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  141 

arisen  the  beautiful  fable  incorporated  in  the  Arabian  Nights, 
as  well  as  that  other  recorded  by  Eesa  or  Moosa  the  son  of 
El  Mubarak  Es  Serafee.*  "Here,  too,  is  a  tree  that  bears 
fruit  like  women  with  bodies,  eyes,  limbs,  &c.  like  those  of 
women ;  they  have  beautiful  faces,  and  are  suspended  by  the 
hair  ;  they  come  forth  from  integuments  like  large  leathern 
bags  ;  and  when  they  feel  the  air  and  the  sun  they  cry  out 
*  Wak  Wak  '  until  their  hair  is  cut,  and  when  it  is  cut  they 
die ;  and  the  people  of  these  islands  understand  their  cry, 
and  augur  ill  from  it."  This,  after  all,  is  not  more  absurd 
than  the  story  of  the  origin  of  the  barnacle  duck,  extant  and 
believed  in  Europe  until  within  the  last  century  or  so. 

El  Edrisi,  who,  in  common  with  the  geographers  of  the 
period,  believed  in  a  great  antarctic  continent,  after  describing 
Sofala  with  its  mines  of  gold,  abundance  of  iron,  &c.,  jumps 
at  once  to  the  mainland  of  Wak  Wak,  which  he  describes  as 
possessing  two  towns  situated  on  a  great  gulf  (Carpentaria  ?), 
and  a  savage  population.f 

The  two  small  towns  may  very  well  have  been  encamp- 
ments of  the  aborigines,  or  trading  stations  of  Malay 
merchants. 

It  may  be  noted  that  this  identification  of  Wak  Wak  is  in 
opposition  to  the  view  entertained  by  some  commentators  ; 
for  example,  Professor  de  Goeje  of  Leyden  has  recently 
identified  the  Sila  islands  (which  had  previously  been  consi- 


*  The  Thousand  and  One  Nights,  vol.  iii.  chap.  xxv.  p.  480,  Note  32, 
E.  W.  Lane,  London,  1 877. 

A  similar  account  is  given  by  Quazvini.  See  Scriptorum  Arabum  de 
Rebus  Indicis,  J.  Gilderneister,  Bonn,  1838. 

f  The  diggings  are  seventy  to  one  hundred  and  fifty  miles  from  Port 
Darwin.  There  is  gold  on  Victoria  River. 

Jacks,  in  his  report  to  the  Queensland  Government,  published  March 
or  April  of  1880,  reports  no  paying  gold  in  Yorke's  peninsula. 

One  hundred  miles  from  Port  Darwin  and  twenty-six  miles  from  the 
Adelaide  River  a  new  rush  occurred  in  July  1880 :  nuggets  from  70  to 
80  oz.  of  common  occurrence ;  one  found  weighed  187  oz. 


142  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

dered  as  being  Japan)  with  Corea,  and  Wak  Wak  with 
Japan ;  but  this  does  not  agree  with  El  Edrisi's  account  of 
the  people 'being  black,  unclothed,  and  living  on  fish,  shell, 
and  tortoises  (turtles),  without  gold,  commerce,  ships,  or 
beasts  of  burden.  Elsewhere  El  Edrisi  says  the  women  are 
entirely  naked,  and  only  wear  combs  of  ivory  ornamented 
with  mother  of  pearl. 

Lane  thinks  the  Arabs  applied  the  name  of  Wak  Wak  to 
all  the  islands  with  which  they  were  acquainted  on  the  east 
and  south-east  of  Borneo.  Es  Serafee,  beside  the  details 
given  in  a  previous  note,  also  says,  "  From  one  of  these 
islands  of  Wak  Wak  there  issueth  a  great  torrent  like  pitch, 
which  floweth  into  the  sea,  and  the  fish  are  burnt  thereby, 
and  float  upon  the  water."  And  Hasan,  in  the  story  quoted 
above,  has,  in  order  to  reach  the  last  of  the  seven  islands  of 
Wak  Wak,  to  pass  over  the  third  island,  the  land  of  the 
Jinn,  "  where  by  reason  of  the  vehemence  of  the  cries  of 
the  Jann,  and  the  rising  of  the  flames  about,  of  the  sparks 
and  the  smoke  from  their  mouths,  and  the  harsh  sounds 
from  their  throats,  and  their  insolence,  they  will  obstruct  the 
way  before  us,"  &c.  &c.  I  think  that  in  each  of  these  latter 
instances,  the  volcanic  islands  of  Java,  and  other  of  the 
Sunda  islands  are  indicated. 

The  information  in  our  possession  is  as  yet  too  meagre 
to  permit  of  our  indulging  in  any  profitable  consideration  of 
the  sources  from  which  originated  those  nations  which 
peopled  America  during  the  very  early  pre-traditional  ages, 
of  which  geological  evidence  is  accumulating  daily.  In  fact, 
the  theories  on  this  point  have  advanced  so  little  beyond  the 
limits  of  speculation  that  I  feel  it  unnecessary  to  do  more 
than  quote  one  of  them,  as  summarized  in  the  ensuing 
extract.  "  Professor  Flowers,  in  remarking  upon  recent 
palseontological  investigations,  which  prove  that  an  immense 
number  of  forms  of  terrestrial  animals  that  were  formerly 
supposed  to  be  peculiar  to  the  Old  World  are  abundant  in 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  143 

the  New  ;  and  that  many,  such  as  the  horse,  rhinoceros, 
and  the  camel,  are  more  numerous  in  species  and  varieties  in 
the  latter,  infers  that  the  means  of  land  communication  must 
have  been  very  different  to  what  it  is  now,  and  that  it  is 
quite  as  likely  that  Asiatic  man  may  have  been  derived  from 
America  as  the  reverse,  or  both  may  have  had  their  source 
in  a  common  centre,  in  some  region  of  the  earth  now 
covered  with  sea."* 

The  most  commonly  accepted  theory  with  regard  to  the 
origin  of  those  who  have  peopled  the  American  continent, 
within  the  limits  of  tradition,  is  that  they  are  of  Asiatic 
descent,  and  that  the  migration  has  been  effected  in  compara- 
tively recent  times  by  way  of  Behring  Straits,  and  supple- 
mented by  chance  passages  from  Southern  Asia  by  way  of 
the  Polynesian  islands,  or  from  the  north  of  Africa,  across 
the  Atlantic.  There  are,  however,  some  who  elaborate 
Professor  Flowers'  suggestion,  and  contend,  in  opposition  to 
the  more  generally  received  opinion,  that  the  peopling  of  the 
present  countries  of  the  Old  Wofld  has  in  fact  been  effected 
from  the  New. 

For  instance,  a  proficient  Aztec  scholar,  Senor  Altamiranof 
of  Mexico,  argues  that  the  Aztecs  were  a  race,  originating 
in  the  unsubmerged  parts  of  America,  as  old  as  the  Asiatics 
themselves,  and  that  Asia  may  in  fact  have  been  peopled  from 
Mexico ;  while  Mr.  E.  J.  Elliott,  in  quoting  him,  says : 
"  From  the  ruins  recently  found,  the  most  northern  of  any 
yet  discovered,  the  indications  of  improved  architecture,  the 
work  of  different  ages,  can  be  traced  in  a  continual  chain  to 
Mexico,  when  they  culminate  in  massive  and  imposing  struc- 
tures, thus  giving  some  proof  by  circumstantial  evidence  to 
Altamirano's  reasoning." 


*  Scientific  American,  Aug.  14,  1880. 

f  E.  J.  Elliott,  "  The  Age  of  Cave  Dwellers  in  America,"  Pop.  Sci, 
Monthly,  vol.  xv.  p.  488. 


144  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Again,  "  Dr.  Rudolf  Falb*  discovers  that  the  language 
spoken  by  the  Indians  in  Peru  and  Bolivia,  especially  in 
Quichua  and  Aymara,  exhibits  the  most  astounding  affinities 
with  the  Semitic  languages,  and  particularly  with  the  Arabic 
— in  which  tongue  Dr.  Falb  himself  has  been  skilled  from 
his  boyhood.  Following  up  the  links  of  this  discovery,  he 
has  first  found  a  connecting  link  with  the  Aryan  roots,  and, 
secondly,  has  arrived  face  to  face  with  the  surprising  revela- 
tion that  the  Semitic  roots  are  universally  Aryan.  The 
common  stems  of  all  the  variants  are  found  in  their  purest 
condition  in  Quichua  and  Aymara,  from  which  fact  Dr.  Falb 
derives  the  conclusion  that  the  high  plains  of  Peru  and 
Bolivia  must  be  regarded  as  the  point  of  exit  of  the  present 
human  race." 

On  the  other  hand,  Mr.  E.  B.  Tylor,  in  the  course  of  an 
article  upon  Backgammon  among  the  Aztecs, f  which  he 
argues  must  have  reached  them  from  Asia,  and  very  likely 
through  Mexico,  points  out  that  the  myths  and  religion  of 
the  North  American  tribes  contain  many  fancies  well  known 
to  Asia,  which  they  were  hardly  likely  to  have  hit  upon  inde- 
pendently, and  which  they  had  not  learned  from  white  men  : 
"  Such  as  the  quaint  belief  that  the  world  is  a  monstrous 
tortoise  floating  on  the  waters ;  and  an  idea  which  the  Sioux 
have  in  common  with  the  Tartars,  that  it  is  sinful  to  chop  or 
poke  with  a  sharp  instrument  the  burning  log  on  the  fire." 
He  quotes  Alexander  von  Humboldt  as  having  "  argued  years 
ago  that  the  Mexicans  did  and  believed  things  which  were  at 
once  so  fanciful  and  so  like  the  fancies  of  the  Asiatics  that 
there  must  have  been  communication.  Would  two  nations," 
he  asks,  "  have  taken  independently  to  forming  calendars  of 
days  and  years  by  repeating  and  combining  cycles  of  animals, 
such  as  tiger,  dog,  ape,  hare,  &c.  ?  Would  they  have  deve- 


*  Scientific  American,  Jan.  24,  1880. 

f  Macmillan's  Magazine,  quoted  in  Pop.  Sci.  Monthly,  No.  82. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  145 

loped  independently  similar  astrological  fancies  about  these 
signs  governing  the  periods  they  began,  and  being  influential 
each  over  a  particular  limb  or  organ  of  men's  bodies  ? 
Would  they,  again,  have  evolved  separately  out  of  this  con- 
sciousness the  myths  of  the  world  and  its  inhabitants  having, 
at  the  end  of  several  successive  periods,  been  destroyed  by 
elemental  catastrophes  ?  " 

He  adds,  "  It  may  very  well  have  been  the  same  agency 
which  transported  to  Mexico  the  art  of  bronze-making,  the 
computation  of  time  by  periods  of  dogs  and  apes,  the  casting 
of  nativity,  and  the  playing  of  backgammon." 

Then,  again,  we  have  the  theory  of  those,  now  indeed  few 
in  number,  who  hold  that  the  present  Indian  inhabitants  of 
America  were  a  distinctly  indigenous  race.  Lord  Kaimes,  in 
his  Sketches  of  the  History  of  Man,  says,  "  I  venture  still 
further,  which  is  to  conjecture  that  America  has  not  been 
peopled  from  any  part  of  the  Old  World."  Voltaire  had 
preceded  him  in  this  line  of  argument,  relying  on  ridicule 
rather  than  on  reason.  "  The  same  persons  that  readily 
admit  that  the  beavers  of  Canada  are  of  Canadian  origin, 
assert  that  the  men  must  have  come  there  in  boats,  and  that 
Mexico  must  have  been  peopled  by  some  of  the  descendants 
of  Magog."* 

Missionaries  of  various  sects  have  endeavoured  to  identify 
the  Ked  man  with  the  lost  ten  tribes.  Adair  conceived  the 
language  of  the  Southern  Indians  to  be  a  corruption  of 
Hebrew,  and  the  Jesuit  Lafitan,  in  his  history  of  the  savages 
of  America,  maintained  that  the  Caribee  language  was  radi- 
cally Hebrew. 

Mr.  John  Josselyn,t  in  an  account  of  the  Mohawks,  states 
that  their  language  is  a  dialect  of  the  Tartars,  and  Dr. 
Williamson,  in  his  history  of  North  Carolina,  considers  it 


*  (Euvres,  I.  7,  pp.  197, 198. 

f  Two  Voyages  to  New  England,  p.  124  ;    London,  1673. 

10 


146  MYTHICAL  MONSTEES. 

can  hardly  be  questioned  that  the  Indians  of  South  America 
are  descended  from  a  class  of  the  Hindoos  in  the  southern 
part  of  Asia. 

Amongst  others,  Captain  Don  Antonio  del  Rio,  who 
described  the  ruins  of  an  ancient  city  in  Guatemala,  believed 
that  they  were  the  relics  of  a  civilization  founded  by  Phoeni- 
cian colonists  who  had  crossed  the  Atlantic  ocean  ;  and  yet 
another  theory  is  propounded  by  Mr.  Knox,*  who  considers 
the  extinct  Guanches,  formerly  inhabiting  the  Canary  and 
Cape  de  Verde  islands,  to  have  closely  resembled  the  Egyp- 
tians in  certain  particulars.  He  goes  on  to  observe,  "  Now 
cross  the  Atlantic,  and  in  a  nearly  parallel  zone  of  the  earth, 
or  at  least  in  one  not  far  removed,  we  stumble  all  at  once 
upon  the  ruined  cities  of  Copan  and  Central  America.  To 
our  astonishment,  notwithstanding  the  breadth  of  the 
Atlantic,  vestiges,  of  a  nature  not  to  be  doubted,  of  a 
thoroughly  Egyptian  character  reappear  —  hieroglyphics, 
monolithic  temples,  pyramids  ;  who  erected  these  monuments 
on  the  American  continent  ?  Perhaps  at  some  remote  period 
the  continents  were  not  so  far  apart,  they  might  have  been 
united,  thus  forming  a  zone  or  circle  of  the  earth  occupied 
by  a  pyramid -building  people." 

It  is  not  impossible  that  all  of  these  theories  may  be 
correct,  and  that  numerous  migrations  may  have  been  made 
at  various  periods  by  different  nations,  the  most  facile  would 
of  course  be  that  from  North-Eastern  Asia  by  way  of  the 
Aleutian  islands,  for,  as  the  author  of  Fu-sang  well  remarks, 
a  sailor  in  an  open  boat  might  cross  from  Asia  to  America 
by  that  route  in  summer  time,  and  hardly  ever  be  out  of 
sight  of  land ;  and  this  in  a  part  of  the  sea  generally 
abounding  in  fish,  as  is  proved  by  the  fishermen  who  inhabit 
many  of  these  islands,  on  which  fresh  water  is  always  to  be 
found.  But  it  is  more  than  likely  that  the  direct  route, 

*  Robert  Knox,  The  Races  of  Men ;  London,  1850. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  147 

from  the  islands  of  Japan  to  the  coast  of  California  or 
Mexico,  was  also  occasionally  followed,  voluntarily  or  in- 
voluntarily, by  mariners  impelled  by  enterprise,  religious 
motives,  or  stress  of  weather. 

Colonel  B.  Kennon,  as  an  evidence  of  the  possibility  of 
junks  performing  long  ocean  voyages,  adduces  the  instance 
of  a  Japanese  junk  picked  up  by  an  American  whaler  two 
thousand  three  hundred  miles  south-east  of  Japan,  and  of 
others  which  had  drifted  among  the  Aleutian  islands  nearly 
half-way  over  to  San  Francisco  ;  and  in  noting  the  resem- 
blance and  probable  co-origin  of  the  Sandwich  Islanders  with 
the  Japanese,  he  adverts  to  the  "  ancient  and  confirmed 
habit  of  both  Japanese  and  Chinese  of  taking  women  to  sea 
with  them,  or  of  traders  keeping  their  families  on  board, 
which  would  fully  account  for  the  population  of  those 
islands,"  or,  to  extend  the  argument,  of  points  on  the 
American  continent.  The  Jewish  element  might  easily  be 
introduced  through  this  channel,  for  the  occasional  admixture 
of  Jewish  blood  both  among  the  Chinese  and  Japanese  is 
so  strongly  marked,  as  to  have  induced  some  authors  to 
contend  for  the  absolute  descent  of  the  latter  people  at  least 
from  Jewish  parentage. 

It  must  also  be  remembered  that  the  waters  of  both  the 
North  and  South  Pacific  are  peculiarly  favourable  to  the 
navigation  of  small  craft,  and'  that  Captain  Bligh,  after 
the  mutiny  on  board  the  Bounty,  was  able  to  safely  perform 
a  journey  of  two  thousand  miles  in  an  open  boat;  while  all 
the  islands  both  in  North  and  South  Polynesia  must  neces- 
sarily have  been  gradually  peopled  by  the  drifting  over  the 
ocean  of  stray  canoes. 

Again,  as  the  tradition  of  the  existence  of  a  large  conti- 
nent west  of  the  African  coast  was  extant  amongst  the 
Egyptian  priests  long  before  the  days  of  Solon,  and,  as  I 
shall  show  hereafter,  among  the  Carthaginians  and  Tyrrhe- 
nians, it  is,  I  think,  more  than  probable  that  both  Phoenician 

10  * 


148  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

and  Egyptian  mariners,  either  acting  under  a  Koyal  Com- 
mission, or  influenced  by  mercantile  considerations,  would 
endeavour  to  discover  it,  and,  as  in  the  case  of  Columbus, 
would  have  no  difficulty  in  stretching  across  the  Atlantic 
before  a  fair  trade  wind,  though  they  might  be  less  successful 
than  him  on  their  return. 

The  possibility  of  the  existence  of  a  large  island  or  conti- 
nent, midway  between  the  Old  and  New  World,  within  the 
traditional  period,  is  included  in  the  important  question, 
which  is  still  sub  judice  amongst  geologists,  whether  the 
general  disposition  of  land  and  water  has  or  has  not  been 
variable  during  past  ages.  Sir  Charles  Lyell  held  the  first 
view,  and  was  of  opinion*  that  complete  alternations  of  the 
positions  of  continent  and  ocean  had  repeatedly  occurred  in 
geological  time. 

The  opposite  idea  has  been  suggested  at  various  dates  by 
eminent  authorities,  suggested  rather  than  sustained  by 
elaborate  arguments,  until  recently,  when  the  question  has 
been  re-examined  by  Mr.  Wallace  and  Dr.  Carpenter. 

The  former,  in  that  chapter  of  island  life  devoted  to  the 
permanence  of  continents,  dwells  forcibly  upon  Dr.  Darwin's 
inference  from  the  paucity  of  oceanic  islands  affording  frag- 
ments of  either  Palaeozoic  or  Secondary  formations  "that 
perhaps  during  the  Palaeozoic  and  Secondary  periods  neither 
continents  nor  continental  islands  existed  where  our  oceans 
now  extend  ;  for,  had  they  existed,  Palaeozoic  and  Secondary 
formations  would  in  all  probability  have  been  accumulated 
from  sediment  derived  from  their  wear  and  tear ;  and  these 
would  have  been  at  least  partially  upheaved  by  the  oscillations 
of  level  which  must  have  intervened  during  these  enor- 
mously long  periods.  If,  then,  we  may  infer  anything  from 
these  facts,  we  may  infer  that,  where  our  oceans  now  extend, 
oceans  have  extended  from  the  remotest  period  of  which  we 

*  Principles  of  Geology,  chap.  xij. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  149 

have  any  record  ;  and,  on  the  other  hand,  that  where  conti- 
nents now  exist,  large  tracts  of  land  have  existed,  subjected 
no  doubt  to  great  oscillations  of  level,  since  the  Cambrian 
period." 

I  am  not  aware  whether  Dr.  Darwin  has  expressed  himself 
more  authoritatively  on  this  point  in  later  works,  or  whether 
the  whole  question  has  been  discussed  in  detail  otherwise 
than  by  Mr.  Wallace  in  the  chapter  referred  to,  in  which  he 
quotes  what  must,  I  think,  after  all,  only  be  taken  in  the 
light  of  a  suggestion  as  an  auxiliary  to  the  powerful  argu- 
ments which  he  himself  has  enunciated  in  favour  of  a 
similar  conclusion.  There  is  no  doubt  that  the  paucity  of 
any  but  volcanic  or  coralline  islands  throughout  the  greatest 
extent  of  existing  oceans  has  a  certain  but  not  absolute 
significance,  so  far  as  recent  geological  epochs  are  concerned. 

There  is  another  line  of  reasoning,  debated  by  Mr.  Wal- 
lace, based  on  the  formation  of  the  Palaeozoic  and  Secondary 
strata  from  the  waste  of  broken  continents  and  islands  occu- 
pying generally  the  site  of  the  existing  continents,  and 
separated  by  insignificant  distances  of  inland  sea  or  exten- 
sions from  the  adjacent  oceans.  It  is  soundly  based  on  their 
lithological  structure,  as  generally  indicative  of  a  littoral  and 
shallow  water  origin,  but  it  seems  to  me  to  be  only  positive 
so  far  as  it  shows  that,  throughout  geological  time,  some  land 
has  existed  somewhere  within  the  limits  of  the  present  up- 
heaval, and  simply  negative  as  to  what  may  or  may  not  have 
been  the  condition  of  what  are  now  the  great  ocean  spaces 
of  the  world.  Indeed,  it  would  at  first  sight  seem  only 
reasonable  to  infer,  that  the  very  depressions  which  caused 
the  inundations  of  Europe  and  Asia,  during  the  deposition  of 
any  important  formation,  would  imply  a  corresponding  eleva- 
tion elsewhere,  in  order  that  the  same  relative  areas  of  land 
and  water  might  be  maintained. 

This  view  has,  however,  been  reduced  in  its  proportions  by 
Dr.  Carpenter,  who  has  levelled  the  results  of  the  recent 


ISO  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

researches  by  the  Challenger  expedition  against  the  advocates 
of  the  intermutations  of  land  and  ocean,  and,  in  pursuing 
another  line  of  reasoning  from  Mr.  Wallace,  has  estimated 
the  solid  contents  of  ocean  and  land  above  the  sea-level 
respectively,  as  bearing  the  proportion  of  thirty-six  to  one. 
So  that,  supposing  all  the  existing  land  of  the  globe  to  sink 
down  to  the  sea-level,  this  subsidence  would  be  balanced  by 
the  elevation  of  only  one  thirty-sixth  part  of  the  existing 
ocean  floor  from  its  present  depth  to  the  same  level. 

It  must  be  admitted  that  the  balance  of  argument  was 
until  lately  considerably  against  the  former  existence  of  the 
country  of  Atlantis,  whose  ghostly  outlines,  however,  we 
could  almost  imagine  to  be  sketched  out  by  faint  contours  in 
the  chart  illustrative  of  the  North  Atlantic  portion  of  the 
Challenger  investigations.  But  it  was  not  so  overwhelming  as 
to  entitle  us  to  ignore  the  story  entirely  as  a  fable.  I  do  not 
conceive  it  impossible  that  some  centrally  situated  and 
perhaps  volcanic  island  may  once  have  existed,  sufficiently 
important  to  have  served  as  the  basis  of  simple  legends, 
which,  under  the  enchantment  of  distance  and  time  became 
metamorphosed  and  enriched. 

Mr.  A.  R.  Grote  suggests  that  it  is  simply  a  myth  founded 
on  the  observation  of  low-lying  clouds  in  a  sun-flushed  sky, 
which  gave  the  appearance  like  islands  on  a  golden  sea. 

Mr.  Donelly,  on  the  other  hand,  in  a  very  exhaustive  and 
able  volume,  contends  first,  that  Atlantis  actually  existed,  and 
secondly,  that  it  was  the  origin  of  our  present  civilization, 
that  its  kings  are  represented  by  the  gods  of  Greek  mytho- 
logy, and  that  its  destruction  originated  our  Deluge  story. 

The  well-known  story  is  contained  in  an  epic  of  Plato,  of 
which  two  fragments  only  remain,  found  in  two  dialogues 
(the  Timaeus  and  the  Critias).  Critias  is  represented  as 
telling  an  old-world  story,  handed  down  in  his  family  from 

*  Atlantis,  by  Ignatius  Donelly  ;  New  York,  1882. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  151 

his  great-grandfather  Dropidas,  who  had  heard  it  from  Solon, 
who  had  it  from  the  Egyptian  priests  of  Sais.* 

Julian,  again,  contains  an  extract  from  Theophrastus,  who 
wrote  in  the  time  of  Alexander  the  Great,  which  can  hardly 
imply  anything  else  than  an  acquaintance  with  America.  It 
is  in  the  form  of  a  dialogue  between  Midas  the  Phrygian  and 
Silenus. 

The  latter  informs  Midas  that  Europe,  Asia,  and  Africa 
were  but  islands  surrounded  on  all  sides  by  sea,  but  that 
there  was  a  continent  situated  beyond  these  which  was  of 
immense  dimensions,  even  without  limits,  and  that  it  was  so 
luxuriant  as  to  produce  animals  of  prodigious  magnitude. 
That  there  men  grew  to  double  the  size  of  themselves,  and 
that  they  lived  to  a  far  greater  age,  that  they  had  many 
cities,  and  their  usages  and  laws  were  different  from  their 
own ;  that  in  one  city  there  was  more  than  a  million  of 
inhabitants,  and  that  gold  and  silver  were  there  in  vast 
quantities. 

Diodorus  Siculus  gives  an  account  of  what  could  only  have 
been  the  mainland  of  America,  or  one  of  the  West  Indian 
islands ;  it  is  as  follows. 

"  After  cursorily  mentioning  the  islands  within  the  Pillars 
of  Hercules,  let  us  treat  of  those  further  ones  in  the  open 
ocean,  for  towards  Africa  there  is  a  very  large  island  in  the 
great  ocean  sea,  situated  many  days'  sail  from  Libya  towards 
the  west. 

a  Its  soil  is  fruitful,  a  great  part  rising  in  mountains,  but 
still  with  no  scarcity  of  level  expanse,  which  excels  in  plea- 
santness, for  navigable  rivers  flow  through  and  irrigate  it. 
Gardens  abound,  stored  with  various  trees  and  numerous 
orchards,  intersected  by  pleasant  streams. 

"  The  towns  are  adorned  with  sumptuous  edifices,  and 


*  It  is  given  in  great  detail  by  Mr.  Donelly  ;  want  of  space  forbids 
my  including  it. 


152  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

drinking  taverns,  beautifully  situated  in  gardens,  are  every- 
where met  with  ;  as  the  convenient  situation  of  these  largely 
invites  to  pleasure,  they  are  frequented  during  the  summer 
season, 

"  The  mountain  region  possesses  numerous  and  large 
forests,  and  various  kinds  of  fruitful  trees.  It  everywhere 
presents  deep  valleys  and  springs  suitable  for  mountain 
recreations. 

"  Indeed  the  whole  of  this  island  is  watered  with  springs 
of  sweet  water,  which  gives  rise  not  merely  to  the  pleasure 
of  its  inhabitants,  but  also  to  an  accession  of  their  health 
and  strength. 

"  Hunting  furnishes  all  kinds  of  game,  the  abundance  of 
which  in  their  banquets  leaves  nothing  to  be  desired. 

"Moreover,  the  sea  which  washes  against  this  island 
abounds  with  fish,  since  the  ocean,  from  its  nature  every- 
where, affords  a  variety  of  fish. 

"  Finally,  the  temperature  is  very  genial,  from  which  it 
results  that  the  trees  bear  fruit  throughout  the  greater  part 
of  the  year. 

"  Lastly,  it  excels  so  much  in  felicity  as  to  resemble  the 
habitations  of  the  gods  rather  than  of  men. 

"  Formerly  it  was  unknown,  on  account  of  the  remoteness 
of  its  situation  from  the  rest  of  the  world,  but  accident  dis- 
closed its  position.  The  Phoenicians  have  been  in  the  habit 
of  making  frequent  passages,  for  the  sake  of  commerce,  from 
the  very  oldest  dates,  from  whence  it  resulted  that  they  were 
the  founders  of  many  of  the  African  colonies,  and  of  not  a 
few  of  those  European  ones  situated  to  the  west ;  and  when 
they  had  yielded  to  the  idea  which  had  entered  their  minds, 
of  enriching  themselves  greatly,  they  passed  out  beyond  the 
Pillars  of  Hercules  into  the  sea  which  is  called  the  Ocean, 
and  they  first  founded  a  city  called  Gades,  on  the  European 
peninsula,  and  near  the  straits  of  the  Pillars  [of  Hercules] 
in  which,  when  others  had  flocked  to  it,  they  instituted  a 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  153 

sumptuous  temple  to  Hercules.  This  temple  has  been  held 
in  the  utmost  veneration  both  in  ancient  times  and  during 
later  periods  up  to  the  present  day ;  therefore  many  Romans 
of  illustrious  nobility  and  reputation  pronounce  their  vows  to 
that  god,  and  happily  discharge  their  obligations. 

"  The  Phoenicians  for  this  reason  continued  their  explora- 
tion beyond  the  Pillars,  and  when  they  were  sailing  along  the 
African  coast,  being  carried  off  by  a  tempest  to  a  distant  part  of 
the  ocean,  were  driven  by  the  violence  of  the  storm,  after  a 
period  of  many  days,  to  the  island  of  which  I  have  spoken, 
and  having  first  acquainted  themselves  with  its  nature  and 
pleasing  characters,  introduced  it  to  the  notice  of  others. 
On  that  account,  the  Tyrrhenians,  also  obtaining  the  empire 
of  the  sea,  determined  on  a  colony  there,  but  the  Carthagi- 
nians prevented  them,  both  because  they  feared  lest  many  of 
their  citizens,  being  allured  by  the  advantages  of  the  island, 
might  migrate  there,  and  because  they  wished  to  have  a 
refuge  prepared  for  themselves  against  a  sudden  stroke  of 
fortune,  if  by  chance  the  Carthaginian  Republic  should 
receive  any  deadly  blow,  for  they  contemplated  that  they 
would  be  able,  while  yet  powerful  at  sea,  to  transport  them- 
selves and  their  families  to  the  island  unknown  to  the 
victors."* 

Among  the  many  proofs  which  may  be  cited  of  community 
of  origin  between  the  Asiatics  and  certainly  a  large  propor- 
tion of  the  American  population  is  the  practice  of  scalping 
enemies,  quoted  by  Herodotus  as  prevalent  amongst  the 
Scythians,  and  universally  existing  amongst  all  tribes  of 
North  American  Indians  ;  the  discovery  of  jade  ornaments 
amongst  Mexican  remains,  and  the  general  esteem  in  which 
that  material  is  held  by  the  Chinese  ;  the  use  of  the  Quipos 
among  the  Peruvians,  and  the  assertion  in  the  I-king,  or  Book 


*  I  use  the  text  of  the  edition  of  Diodorus  Siculus  of  L.   Ehodo- 
inanus,  Amsterdam,  1746. 


154  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

of  Change,  one  of  the  oldest  of  the  Chinese  Classics,  that 
"  The  ancients  knotted  cords  to  express  their  meaning,  but 
in  the  next  age  the  sages  renounced  the  custom  and  adopted 
a  system  of  written  characters ;  "*  the  discovery  of  the 
meander  pattern  among  Peruvian  relics,  and  the  common  use 
of  this  ornamentation  on  Chinese  vases  and  tripods,  at  dates 
long  preceding  the  Trojan  era,  in  which  it  is  commonly  sup- 
posed to  have  originated ;  the  similarity  of  the  features  of 
Chinese,  and  other  Mongols,  with  those  of  various  Indian 
tribes  ;  the  resemblance  of  masks  and  various  other  remains 
to  Chinese  patterns  discovered  recently  by  Desiree  de  Charnay 
in  Central  America ;  and  the  reserve  and  stolid  demeanour 
of  both  races.  A  good  illustration  of  this  is  afforded  by  the 
story  told  of  the  celebrated  statesman  Sieh  Ngan  (A.D.  320- 
385),  in  Mayer's  Chinese  Reader's  Manual ;  it  could  be  imagined 
to  apply  to  any  Indian  sachem. 

It  is  related  of  Sieh  Ngan  that,  at  the  time  when  the 
capital  was  menaced  by  the  advancing  forces  of  Fukien,  he 
sat  one  day  over  a  game  of  chess  with  a  friend,  when  a 
despatch  was  handed  to  him,  which  he  calmly  read  and  then 
continued  the  game.  On  being  asked  what  the  news  was, 
he  replied  :  "  It  is  merely  an  announcement  that  my  young 
people  have  beaten  the  enemy."  The  intelligence  was,  in 
fact,  of  the  decisive  rout  of  the  invaders  by  the  army  under 
his  brother  Sieh  She  and  his  nephew  Sieh  Hiian.  Only 
when  retired  within  the  seclusion  of  his  private  apartments 
did  he  give  himself  up  to  an  outburst  of  joy.  The  very  ex- 
pression "my  young  people"  is  the  equivalent  of  "my 
young  men  "  which  the  Indian  chief  would  have  employed. 

A  singular  custom  prevails  among  the  Petivaces,  an  Indian 


f  "  Professor  Virchow  considers  this  an  example  how  certain  artistical 
or  technical  forms  are  developed  simultaneously,  without  any  connection 
or  relation  between  the  artists  or  craftsmen." — Preface  to  Ilios,  Schlie- 
mann.  Murray,  1880. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WORLD  MYTHS.  155 

tribe  of  Brazil.*  "  When  they  are  delivered  of  a  child,  and 
ought  to  have  all  the  ceremony  and  attendance  proper  to  a 
lying-in  woman,  the  husband  presently  lies  down  in  his  ham- 
mock (as  if  he  had  been  brought  to  bed  himself),  and  all  his 
wives  and  neighbours  come  about  and  serve  him.  This  is  a 
pleasant  fancy  indeed,  that  the  woman  must  take  all  the  pains 
to  bring  the  child  into  the  world,  and  then  the  man  lie  down 
and  gruntle  upon  it." 

Compare  with  this  the  account  given  by  Marco  Polo  of  the 
same  custom  prevalent  among  the  Miau-tze,  or  aborigines  of 
China,  as  distinguished  from  their  present  occupants.  Their 
reduction  to  submission  is  recorded  in  the  early  works  on  the 
country. 

"  Proceeding  five  days'  journey,  in  a  westerly  direction 
from  Karazan,  you  enter  the  province  of  Kardandan  belong- 
ing to  the  dominion  of  the  great  Khan,  and  of  which  the 
principal  city  is  named  Vochang  (probably  Yung-chang  in 
the  western  part  of  Yunnan).  These  people  have  the  fol- 
lowing singular  usage.  As  soon  as  a  woman  has  been  deli- 
vered of  a  child,  and  rising  from  her  bed,  has  washed  and 
swathed  the  infant,  her  husband  immediately  takes  the  place 
she  has  left,  has  the  child  beside  him,  and  nurses  it  for  forty 
days.  In  the  meantime  the  friends  and  relations  of  the 
family  pay  to  him  their  visits  of  congratulation ;  whilst  the 
woman  attends  to  the  business  of  the  house,  carries  victuals 
and  drink  to  the  husband  in  his  bed,  and  suckles  the  infant 
at  his  side."f 

We  find  a  reference  in  Hudibras  to  this  grotesque  practice, 
in  which  it  is  imputed,  but  erroneously,  to  the  Chinese  them- 
selves, and  it  reappears  on  the  western  side  of  Europe, 
among  those  singular  people  the  Basques,  who  have  their 


*  Knivet's  description  of  the  West  Indies,  Harris'   Voyages,  vol.  i. 
p.  705. 

f  T.  Wright,  Marco  Polo,  p.  267.     Bohn,  1854. 


156  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

own  especial  Deluge  tradition,  and  use  a  language  which, 
according  to  Huinboldt,  approaches  some  of  the  dialects  of 
the  North  American  Indians  more  nearly  than  any  other. 
They  profess  to  trace  the  custom  up  to  Aitor  or  Noah,  whose 
wife  bore  a  son  to  him  when  they  were  in  exile,  and,  being 
afraid  to  stay  by  herself  for  fear  of  being  discovered  and 
murdered,  bade  her  husband  take  care  of  the  child,  while 
she  went  out  to  search  for  food  and  firing. 

The  change  of  name  which  prevails  among  the  Chinese 
and  Japanese  in  both  sexes,  at  different  periods  of  life,  is 
also  found  upon  the  other  continent,*  where  males  and 
females  when  they  come  to  years  of  discretion  do  not 
retain  the  names  they  had  when  young,  and,  if  they  do  any 
remarkable  deed,  assume  a  new  name  upon  it. 

Less  importance  is  to  be  attached  to  the  coincidence  of 
sun  worship,  Deluge  tradition,  and  the  preservation  of  ances- 
tral ashes. f  These,  though  probably  not,  might  have  been 
indigenous ;  but  we  can  hardly  conceive  this  of  serpent 
worship,  which  Mr.  Fergusson  suggests  arose  among  a  people 
of  Turanian  origin,  from  which  it  spread  to  every  country  or 
land  of  the  Old  World  in  which  a  Turanian  settled.  The 
coincidence  between  the  serpent  mounds  of  North  America 
and  such  an  one  as  is  described  by  M.  Phene  in  Argyllshire! 
is  remarkable  ;  and  still  more  so  is  that  between  the  Mexican 
myth  of  the  fourfold  destruction  of  the  world  by  fire  and 
water,  with  those  current  among  the  Egyptians  and  that  of 
the  four  ages  in  the  Hindu  mythology. 

Another  coincidence,  although  perhaps  of  minor  value, 
will  be  seen  in  the  dresses  of  the  soldiers  of  China  and 
Mexico,  as  noted  in  the  passages  annexed.  "  Thus,  in  our 

*  Harris'  Voyages,  vol.  i.  p.  859. 

f  Dr.  J.  le  Conte  describes  a  ceremonial  of  cremation  among  the 
Cocopa  Indians  of  California,  and  it  is  an  ancient  practice  among  the 
Chinese,  dating  back  beyond  the  Greek  and  Roman  historical  periods. 

J  British  Association,  1871. 


OLD  AND  NEW  WOULD  MYTHS.  157 

own  time,  the  Chinese  soldiers  wear  a  dress  resembling  the 
tiger  skin,  and  the  cap,  which  nearly  covers  the  face,  is 
formed  to  represent  the  head  of  a  tiger  "  ;*  while  the  Mexi- 
can warriors,  according  to  Spanish  historians,  "  wore  enor- 
mous wooden  helmets  in  the  form  of  a  tiger's  head,  the  jaws 
of  which  were  armed  with  the  teeth  of  this  animal. "f 

Mr.  C.  Wolcott -Brooks,  in  an  address  to  the  California 
Academy  of  Science,  has  pointed  out  that,  according  to  Chi- 
nese annals,  Tai  Ko  Fo  Kee,  the  great  stranger-king,  ruled 
the  kingdom  of  China,  aad  that  he  is  always  represented  in 
pictures  with  two  small  horns  like  those  associated  with  the 
representation  of  Moses.  He  and  his  successors  are  said  to 
have  introduced  into  China  "  picture  writing  "  like  that  in 
use  in  Central  America  at  the  time  of  the  Spanish  conquest. 
Now  there  has  been  found  at  Copan,  in  Central  America,  a 
figure  strikingly  like  the  Chinese  symbol  of  Fo  Kee,  with  his 
two  horns.  "  Either,"  says  Mr.  Brooks,  "  one  people  learned 
from  the  other,  or  both  acquired  their  forms  from  a  common 
source." 

In  reviewing  all  these  cases  we  cannot  fail  to  perceive  that 
early  and  frequent  communication  must  have  taken  place 
between  the  two  worlds,  and  that  the  myths  of  one  have 
probably  been  carried  with  them  by  the  migrants  to  the 
other. 


*  Staunton,  China,  vol.  ii.  p.  455. 

f  Humboldt,  Researches  in  America,  English  Translation,  vol.  i.  p.  133. 


158 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


159 


CHAPTER   VI. 


THE    DRAGON. 


FIG.  33.—  Draco,  OR  FLYING  LIZARD  FROM 
SINGAPORE.     (After  N.  B.  Dennys.) 


THE  dragon  is  denned  in 
the  Encyclopedia  Britannica 
for  1877  as  "  the  name  given 
by  the  ancients  to  a  huge 
winged  lizard  or  serpent  (fa- 
bulous)." 

The  text  also  goes  on  to 
state  that  "they  (the  an- 
cients) regarded  it  as  the 
enemy  of  mankind,  and  its 
overthrow  is  made  to  figure 
among  the  greatest  exploits 
of  the  gods  and  heroes  of 
heathen  mythology.  A  dra- 
gon watched  the  gardens  of 
the  Hesperides,  and  its  de-  [ 
struction  formed  one  of  the  ; 
seven  labours  of  Hercules. 
Its  existence  does  not  seem  to 
have  been  called  in  question 
by  the  older  naturalists  ; 
figures  of  the  dragon  appear- 
ing in  the  works  of  Gesner 
and  Aldrovandus,  and  even 
specimens  of  the  monster, 
evidently  formed  artificially  of 

___+:-.„.-.  ^f  /JifFovonf  animale 
portions  Ol  CUflerent  animals, 


160  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

have  been  exhibited."  A  reference  is  also  made  to  the 
genus  Draco,  comprising  eighteen  specimens  of  winged 
lizards,  all  small,  and  peculiar  to  India  and  the  islands  of 
the  Malay  archipelago. 

Such  is  the  meagre  account  of  a  creature  which  figures  in 
the  history  and  mythology  of  all  nations,  which  in  its  diffe- 
rent forms  has  been  worshipped  as  a  god,  endowed  with 
beneficent  and  malevolent  attributes,  combatted  as  a  monster, 
or  supposed  to  have  possessed  supernatural  power,  exercised 
alternately  for  the  benefit  or  chastisement  of  mankind. 

Its  existence  is  inseparably  wedded  to  the  history,  from 
the  most  remote  antiquity,  of  a  nation  which  possesses  con- 
nected and  authentic  memoirs  stretching  uninterruptedly 
from  the  present  day  far  into  the  remote  past ;  on  which 
the  belief  in  its  existence  has  been  so  strongly  impressed, 
that  it  retains  its  emblem  in  its  insignia  of  office,  in  its  orna- 
mentation of  furniture,  utensils,  and  dwellings,  and  com- 
memorates it  annually  in  .the  competition  of  dragon  boats, 
and  the  processions  of  dragon  images  ;  which  believes,  or 
affects  to  believe,  in  its  continued  existence  in  the  pools  of 
the  deep,  and  the  clouds  of  the  sky ;  which  propitiates  it 
with  sacrifices  and  ceremonies,  builds  temples  in  its  honour, 
and  cultivates  its  worship  ;  whose  legends  and  traditions 
teem  with  anecdotes  of  its  interposition  in  the  affairs  of  man, 
and  whose  scientific  works,  of  antiquity  rivalling  that  of  our 
oldest  Western  Classics,  treat  of  its  existence  as  a  sober  and 
accepted  fact,  and  differentiate  its  species  with  some  exact- 
ness. It  is,  moreover,  though  not  very  frequently,  occasion- 
ally referred  to  in  the  Biblical  history  of  that  other  ancient, 
and  almost  equally  conservative  branch  of  the  human  race, 
the  Jews,  not  as  a  myth,  or  doubtfully  existent  supernatural 
monster,  but  as  a  tangible  reality,  an  exact  terrible  creature. 

Equally  do  we  find  it  noticed  in  those  other  valuable 
records  of  the  past  which  throw  cross  lights  upon  the  Bible 
narrative,  and  confirm  by  collateral  facts  the  value  of  its 


THE  DRAGON. 


161 


162  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


historic  truth ;  such  as  the  fragments  of  Chaldsean  history 
handed  down  by  the  reverent  care  of  later  historians,  the 
careful  narrative  of  Josephus,  and  the  grand  resurrection  of 
Chaldsean  and  Assyrian  lore  effected  by  the  marvellously  well 
directed  and  fortunate  labour  of  GK  H.  Smith  and  those  who 
follow  in  his  train. 

Among  the  earliest  classics  of  Europe,  its  existence  is 
asserted  as  a  scientific  fact,  and  accepted  by  poets  as  a  sound 
basis  for  analogies,  comparisons,  allegories,  and  fable  ;  it 
appears  in  the  mythology  of  the  Goth,  and  is  continued 
through  the  tradition  and  fable  of  every  country  of  Europe  ; 
nor  does  it  fail  to  appear  even  in  the  imperfect  traditions  of 
the  New  World,*  where  its  presence  may  be  considered  as 
comparatively  indigenous,  and  undetermined  by  the  commu- 
nications dependent  on  the  so-called  discovery  of  later  days. 

Turning  to  other  popular  accounts,  we  find  equally  limited 
and  incredible  versions  of  it.  All  consider  it  sufficiently 
disposed  of  by  calling  it  fabulous,!  and  that  a  sufficient 
explanation  of  any  possible  belief  in  it  is  afforded  by  a  refe- 
rence]: to  the  harmless  genus  of  existing  flying  lizards  referred 
to  above. 


*  "  In  turning  to  the  consideration  of  the  primitive  works  of  art  of 
the  American  continent  .  .  .  when  in  the  bronze  work  of  the  later  iron 
period,  imitative  forms  at  length  appear,  they  are  chiefly  the  snake  and 
dragon  shapes  and  patterns,  borrowed  seemingly  by  Celtic  and  Teutonic 
wanderers,  with  the  wild  fancies  of  their  mythology,  from  the  far  eastern 
land  of  their  birth."— D.  Wilson,  Prehistoric  Man,  1862. 

"  He  had  remarked  that  the  Indians  of  the  north-west  coast  fre- 
quently repeat  in  their  well-known  blackstone  carvings  the  dragon,  the 
lotus  flower,  and  the  alligator." — 0.  GT.  Leland,  Fusang,  London,  1875. 

f  "  Dragon,  an  imaginary  animal  something  like  a  crocodile." — Eev. 
Dr.  Brewer,  Dictionary  of  Phrase  and  Fable,  p.  243. 

J  "  In  the  woods  of  Java  are  certain  flying  snakes,  or  rather  drakes  ; 
they  have  four  legs,  a  long  tail,  and  their  skin  speckled  with  many 
spots,  their  wings  are  not  unlike  those  of  a  bat,  which  they  move  in 
flying,  but  otherwise  keep  them  almost  unperceived  close  to  the  body. 
They  fly  nimbly,  but  cannot  hold  it  long,  so  that  they  fly  from  tree  to 


THE  DRAGON.  163 


Some  consider  it  an  evolution  of  the  fancy,  typifying 
noxious  principles ;  thus,  Chambers*  says,  "  The  dragon 
appears  in  the  mythical  history  and  legendary  poetry  of 
almost  every  nation  as  the  emblem  of  the  destructive  and 
anarchical  principle ;  ...  as  misdirected  physical  force 
and  untamable  animal  passions.  .  .  .  The  dragon  proceeds 
openly  to  work,  running  on  its  feet  with  expanded  wings, 
and  head  and  tail  erect,  violently  and  ruthlessly  outraging 
decency  and  propriety,  spouting  fire  and  fury  both  from 
mouth  and  tail,  and  wasting  and  devastating  the  whole 
land." 

The  point  which  strikes  me  as  most  interesting  in  this 
passage  is  the  reference  to  the  legendary  theory  of  the  mode 
of  the  dragon's  progress,  which  curiously  calls  to  mind  the 
semi-erect  attitude  of  the  existing  small  Australian  frilled 
lizard  (Chlamydosaurus).  This  attitude  is  also  ascribed  to 
some  of  the  extinct  American  Dinosaurs,  such  as  the  Stego- 
saurus. 

No  one,  so  far  as  I  am  aware,  in  late  days  has  hitherto 
ventured  to  uphold  the  claims  of  this  terrible  monster  to  be 
accepted  as  a  real  contemporary  of  primitive  man,f  which 


tree  at  about  twenty  or  thirty  paces'  distance.  On  the  outside  of  the 
throat  are  two  bladders,  which,  being  extended  when  they  fly,  serve  them 
instead  of  a  sail.  They  feed  upon  flies  and  other  insects." — Mr.  John 
Nieuhoff's  Voyage  and  Travels  to  the  East  Indies, contained  in  a  collection 
of  Voyages  and  Travels,  in  6  vols.,  vol.  ii.  p.  317  ;  Churchill,  London, 
1732. 

*  Chambers'  Encyclopaedia,  vol.  iii.  p.  635. 

f  The  following  is  the  nearest  approach  to  such  an  assertion  I  have 
met  with,  but  appears  from  the  context  to  apply  to  geologic  time  prior 
to  the  advent  of  man.  "  When  all  those  large  and  monstrous  amphibia 
since  regarded  as  fabulous  still  in  reality  existed,  when  the  confines  of 
the  water  and  the  land  teemed  with  gigantic  saurians,  with  lizards  of 
dimensions  much  exceeding  those  of  the  largest  crocodiles  of  the  present 
day  :  who  to  the  scaly  bodies  of  fish,  added  the  claws  of  beasts,  and  the 
neck  and  wings  of  birds :  who  to  the  faculty  of  swimming  in  water, 
added  not  only  that  of  moving  on  the  earth  but  that  of  sailing  in  air : 

11  * 


164  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

may  even  have  been  co- existent  with  him  to  a  comparatively 
recent  date,  and  but  lately  passed  away  into  the  cohort  of 
extinct  species,  leaving  behind  it  only  the  traditions  of  its 
ferocity  and  terrors,  to  stamp  their  impression  on  the  tongues 
of  all  countries. 

No  one  has  endeavoured  to  collate  the  vast  bulk  of  mate- 
rials shrouded  in  the  stories  of  all  lands.  If  this  were  per- 
fectly effected,  a  diagnosis  of  the  real  nature  of  the  dragon 
might  perhaps  be  made,  and  the  chapter  of  its  characteristics, 
alliances,  and  habits  completed  like  that  of  any  other  well- 
established  species. 

The  following  sketch  purposes  only  to  initiate  the  task 
here  propounded,  the  author's  access  to  materials  being 
limited,  and  only  sufficient  to  enable  him,  as  he  thinks,  to 
establish  generally  the  proposition  which  it  involves,  to  grasp 
as  it  were  some  of  the  broader  and  salient  features  of  the 
investigation,  while  leaving  a  rich  gleaning  of  corroborative 
information  for  the  hand  of  any  other  who  may  please  to 
continue  and  extend  his  observations. 

At  the  outset  it  will  be  necessary  to  assign  a  much  more 
extended  signification  to  the  word  dragon  than  that  which  is 
contained  in  the  definition  at  the  head  of  this  chapter.  The 
popular  mind  of  the  present  day  doubtless  associates  it 
always  with  the  idea  of  a  creature  possessing  wings  ;  but 
the  Lung  of  the  Chinese,  the  SpdKw  of  the  Greeks,  the 

and  who  had  all  the  characteristics  of  what  we  now  call  chimeras  and 
dragons,  and  perhaps  of  such  monsters  the  remains,  found  among  the 
bones  and  skeletons  of  other  animals  more  resembling  those  that  still 
exist  and  propagate,  in  the  grottos  and  caverns  in  which  they  sought 
shelter  during  the  deluges  that  affected  the  infancy  of  the  globe,  gave 
first  rise  to  the  idea  that  these  dens  and  caves  were  once  retreats  whence 
such  monsters  watched  and  in  which  they  devoured  other  animals."- 
Thomas  Hope,  On  the  Origin  and  Prospects  of  Man,  vol.  ii.  p.  346 ; 
London,  1831. 

Southey,  in  his  Commonplace  Book,  pityingly  alludes  to  this  passage, 
saying,  "He  believes  in  dragons  and  grifiins  as  having  heretofore 
existed/' 


THE  DRAGON.  165 


Draco  of  the  Romans,  the  Egyptian  dragon,  and  the  Ndga  of 
the  Sanscrit  have  no  such  limited  signification,  and  appear  to 
have  been  sometimes  applied  to  any  serpent,  lacertian,  or 
saurian,  of  extraordinary  dimensions,  nor  is  it  always  easy 
to  determine  from  the  passages  in  which  these  several  terms 
occur  what  kind  of  monster  is  specially  indicated. 

Thus  the  dragon  referred  to  by  Propertius  in  the  quotation 
annexed  may  have  been  a  large  python.  "  Lanuvium*  is, 
of  old,  protected  by  an  aged  dragon ;  here,  where  the  occa- 
sion of  an  amusement  so  seldom  occurring  is  not  lost,  where 
is  the  abrupt  descent  into  a  dark  and  hollowed  cave  ;  where 
is  let  down — maiden,  beware  of  every  such  journey — the 
honorary  tribute  to  the  fasting  snake,  when  he  demands  his 
yearly  food,  and  hisses  and  twists  deep  down  in  the  earth. 
Maidens,  let  down  for  such  a  rite,  grow  pale,  when  their 
hand  is  unprotectedly  trusted  in  the  snake's  mouth.  He 
snatches  at  the  delicacies  if  offered  by  a  maid;  the  very 
baskets  tremble  in  the  virgin's  hands  ;  if  they  are  chaste, 
they  return  and  fall  on  the  necks  of  their  parents,  and  the 
farmers  cry  '  We  shall  have  a  fruitful  year.'  "f 

To  the  same  class  may  probably  be  ascribed  the  dragon 
referred  to  by  Aristotle 4  "The  eagle  and  the  dragon  are 
enemies,  for  the  eagle  feeds  on  serpents  ";  and  again,§  "  the 
Glanis  in  shallow  water  is  often  destroyed  by  the  dragon 
serpent."  It  might  perhaps  be  supposed  that  the  crocodile 
is  here  referred  to,  but  this  is  specially  spoken  of  in  another 
passage,  as  follows || :  "But  there  are  others  which,  though 
they  live  and  feed  in  the  water,  do  not  take  in  water  but  air, 
and  produce  their  young  out  of  the  water;  many  of  these 

*  Prom  the  context,  Lanuvium  appears  to  have  been  on  the  Appian 
Koad,  in  Latium,  about  twenty-fives  miles  from  Eome. 
f  Propertius,  Elegy  VIII. ;  Bohn,  1854. 
J  History  of  Animals,  Book  ix.,  chap.  ii.  §  3  ;  Bohn. 
§  Ibid.,  Book  vi.,  chap.  xx.  §  12. 
||  lUd.,  Book  i.,  §  6. 


166  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

animals  are  furnished  with  feet,  as  the  otter  and  crocodile, 
and  others  are  without  feet,  as  the  water-serpent." 

A  somewhat  inexplicable  habit  is  ascribed  to  the  dragon  in 
Book  ix.*  :  "  When  the  draco  has  eaten  much  fruit,  it  seeks 
the  juice  of  the  bitter  lettuce  ;  it  has  been  seen  to  do  this." 

Pliny,  probably  quoting  Aristotle, f  also  states  that  the 
dragon  relieves  the  nausea  which  affects  it  in  spring  with 
the  juices  of  the  lettuce  ;  and  .ZElianJ  repeats  the  story. 

It  is  also  probable  that  some  large  serpent  is  intended  by 
Pliny  in  the  story  which  he  relates, §  after  Democritus,  that 
a  man  called  Thoas  was  preserved  in  Arcadia  by  a  dragon. 
When  a  boy,  he  had  become  attached  to  it  and  had  reared  it 
very  tenderly ;  but  his  father,  being  alarmed  at  the  nature 
and  monstrous  size  of  the  reptile,  had  taken  and  left  it  in  the 
desert.  Thoas  being  here  attacked  by  robbers  who  lay  in 
ambush,  he  was  delivered  from  them  by  the  dragon,  which 
recognized  his  voice  and  came  to  his  assistance.  It  may  be 
noted  in  regard  to  this  that  there  are  many  authenticated 
instances  of  snakes  evidencing  considerable  affection  for  those 
who  have  treated  them  with  kindness.  || 

The  impression  that  Pliny's  dragon  was  intended  to  repre- 


*  History  of  Animals,  Book  ix.,  chap.  vii.  §  4. 

f  Natural  History  of  Pliny,  Book  viii.,  chap,  xli.,  translated  by  J.  Bos- 
tock  and  H.  T.  Eiley  ;  London,  1855. 

£  Anim.  Nat.,  Book  vi.,  chap.  iv. 
t  §  Natural  History,  Book  viii.,  chap.  xxh. 

||  "  On  the  contrary,  towards  ourselves  they  were  disappointingly  un- 
demonstrative, and  only  evinced  their  consciousness  of  the  presence  of 
strangers  by  entwining  themselves  about  the  members  of  the  family  as 
if  soliciting  their  protection.  .  .  .  They  were  very  jealous  of  each  other, 
Mr.  Mann  said ;  jealous  also  of  other  company,  as  if  unwilling  to  lose  their 
share  of  attention.  .  .  .  Two  sweet  little  children  were  equally  familiar 
with  the  other  boas,  that  seemed  quite  to  know  who  were  their  friends 
and  playfellows,  for  the  children  handled  them  and  petted  them  and 
talked  to  them  as  we  talk  to  pet  birds  and  cats." — Account  of  Snakes 
kept  by  Mr.  and  Mrs.  Mann,  of  Cheyne  Walk,  Chelsea,  in  Snakes,  by 
G.  C.  Hopley ;  London,  1882. 


THE  DRAGON.  167 


sent  some  large  boa  or  python  is  strengthened  by  his  state- 
ment :*  "  The  dragon  is  a  serpent  destitute  of  venom ;  its 
head  placed  beneath  the  threshold  of  a  door,  the  gods  being 
duly  propitiated  by  prayers,  will  ensure  good  fortune  to  the 
house,  it  is  said." 

It  is  remarkable  that  he  attributes  to  the  dragon  the  same 
desire  and  capacity  to  attack  the  elephant  as  is  attributed  to  v 
the  Pa  snake  in  Western  China,  and  by  the   old  Arabian 
voyagers  to  serpents  in  Borneo. 

The  Shan-hai-king,  a  Chinese  work  of  extreme  antiquity, 
of  which  special  mention  will  be  made  hereafter,  says  :  "  The 
Pa  snake  swallows  elephants,  after  three  years  it  ejects  the 
bones ;  well-to-do  people,  eating  it,  are  cured  of  consump- 
tion." 

Diodorus  Siculus,  in  speaking  of  the  region  of  the  Nile  in 
Libya,  says  that,  according  to  report,  very  large  serpents  are 
produced  there  and  in  great  numbers,  and  that  these  attack 
elephants  when  they  gather  around  the  watering  places, 
involve  them  in  their  folds  till  they  fall  exhausted,  and  then 
devour  them. 

Diodorus,  in  another  passage  referring  to  the  crocodiles 
and  hippopotami  of  Egypt,  speaking  of  Ethiopia  and  Libya, 
mentions  a  variety  of  serpents  as  well  as  of  other  wild  beasts, 
including  dragons  of  unusual  size  and  ferocity. 

While  El  Edrisi  says  :  "  On  peut  encore  citer  le  serpent 
de  Zaledj  dont  parlent  Ben  Khordadebe,  1'auteur  du  Livre  des 
Merveilles,  et  divers  autres  ecrivains  qui  s'accordent  a  dire 
qu'il  existe  dans  les  montagnes  de  1'ile  de  Zaledj  une  espece 
de  serpent  qui  attaque  1' elephant  et  le  buffle,  et  qui  ne  les 
abandonnent  qu'apres  les  avoir  vaincu."t 


—  *  Natural  History,  Book  xxix.,  chap.  xx. 

t  "  It  is  probable  that  the  island  of  Zanig  described  by  Qazvinius,  iii 
his  geographical  work  (for  extracts  from  which  vide  Scriptorum  Arabum 
de  Rebus  Indicis  loci  et  opuscula  inedita,  by  I.  Gildemeister,  Bonnse, 


168  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Artemidorus,  also,  according  to  Strabo,*  "mentions  ser- 
pents of  thirty  cubits  in  length,  which  can  master  elephants 
and  bulls.  In  this  he  does  not  exaggerate ;  but  the  Indian 
and  African  serpents  are  of  a  more  fabulous  size,  and  are 
said  to  have  grass  growing  on  their  backs." 

Iphicrates,  according  to  .Bryant,  "  related  that  in  Mauri- 
tania there  were  dragons  of  such  extent  that  grass  grew  upon 
their  backs." 

It  is  doubtful  whether  large  serpents,  or  real  dragons,  are 
referred  to  by  Pliny  in  the  Allowing  interesting  passages 
which  I  give  at  length*:  the  surprise  which  he  expresses  at 
Juba's  believing  that  they  had  crests,  leads  me  to  suspect 
that  there  was  possibly  some  confusion  of  species  involved  ; 
that  Juba  might  have  been  perfectly  accurate  so  far  as  the 
crests  are  concerned,  and  that  the  beasts  in  question,  in  place 
of  being  pythons  of  magnitude,  were  rather  some  gigantic 
lizard-like  creature,  of  great  length  and  little  bulk,  corre- 
sponding with  the  Chinese  idea  of  the  dragon,  and,  therefore, 
naturally  bearing  horny  crests,  similar  to  those  with  which  the 
monster  is  usually  represented  by  the  latter  people. 

It  must  be  noticed  here,  that  if  we  postulate  the  existence 
of  the  dragon,  we  are  not  bound  to  limit  ourselves  to  a  single 
species,  or  even  two,  as  the  same  causes  which  effected  the 
gradual  destruction  of  one  would  be  exceedingly  likely  to 
effect  that  of  another ;  we  must  not,  therefore,  be  too  critical 
in  comparing  descriptions  of  different  authors  in  different 


1838),  as  the  seat  of  the  empire  of  the  Mahraj,  is  identical  with  Zaledj. 
He  says  that  it  is  a  large  island  on  the  confines  of  China  towards  India, 
and  that  among  other  remarkable  features  is  a  mountain  called  Nacan 
(Kini  Balu  ?),  on  which  are  serpents  of  such  magnitude  as  to  be  able  to 
swallow  oxen,  buffaloes,  and  even  elephants.  Masudi  includes  Zanig, 
Kalah,  and  Taprobana  among  the  islands  constituting  the  territory  of 
the  Mahraj." — P.  Amede'e  Jaubert,  Geographie  d'Edrisi,  vol.  i.  p.  104  ; 
Paris,  1836. 

*  Book  vi.,  chap.  iv.  §  16. 

t  Serpent  Worship,  p.  35  ;  Welder,  New  York,  1877. 


THE  DRAGON.  169 


countries  and  epochs,  since  they  may  refer  only  to  allied,  but 
not  identical,  animals. 

"  Africa  produces  elephants,  but  it  is  India  that  produces 
the  largest,  as  well  as  the  dragon,  who  is  perpetually  at  war 
with  the  elephant,  and  is  itself  of  so  enormous  a  size,  as 
easily  to  envelop  the  elephants  .with  its  folds,  and  encircle 
them  in  its  coils.  The  contest  is  equally  fatal  to  both  ;  the 
elephant,  vanquished,  falls  to  the.  earth,  and-  by  its  weight 
crushes  the  dragon  which  is  entwined  around  it.* 

"  The  sagacity  which  every  animal  exhibits  in  its  own 
behalf  is  wonderful,  but  in  these  it  is  remarkably  so.  The 
dragon  has  much  difficulty  in  climbing  up  to  so  great  a 
height,  and  therefore,  watching  the  road,  which  bears  marks 
of  their  footsteps,  when  going  to  feed,  it  darts  down  upon 
them  from  a  lofty  tree.  The  elephant  knows  that  it  is 
quite  unable  to  struggle  against  the  folds  of  the  serpent,  and 
so  seeks  for  trees  or  rocks  against  which  to  rub  itself. 

"  The  dragon  is  on  its  guard  against  this,  and  tries  to 
prevent  it,  by  first  of  all  confining  the  legs  of  the  elephant 
with  the  folds  of  its  tail ;  while  the  elephant,  on  the  other 
hand,  tries  to  disengage  itself  with  its  trunk.  The  dragon, 
however,  thrusts  its  head  into  its  nostrils,  and  thus,  at  the 
same  moment,  stops  the  breath,  and  wounds  the  most  tender 
parts.  When  it  is  met  unexpectedly,  the  dragon  raises  itself 
up,  faces  its  opponent,  and  flies  more  especially  at  the  eyes  ; 
this  is  the  reason  why  elephants  are  so  often  found  blind, 
and  worn  to  a  skeleton  with  hunger  and  misery. 

"  There  is  another  story,  too,  told  in  relation  to  these 
combats.  The  blood  of  the  elephant,  it  is  said,  is  remark- 
ably cold ;  for  which  reason,  in  the  parching  heats  of  summer, 
it  is  sought  by  the  dragon  with  remarkable  avidity.  It  lies, 
therefore,  coiled  up  and  concealed  in  the  river,  in  wait  for 


*  Pliny's  Natural  History>  Book  viii.,  chap,  xi,,  translated  by  J.  Bos- 
lock  and  H.  T.  Eiley ;  Bohn,  London,  1855. 


170  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


the  elephants  when  they  come  to  drink ;  upon  which  it  darts 
out,  fastens  itself  around  the  trunk,  and  then  fixes  its  teeth 
behind  the  ear,  that  being  the  only  place  which  the  elephant 
cannot  protect  with  the  trunk.  The  dragons,  it  is  said,  are 
of  such  vast  size  that  they  can  swallow  the  whole  of  the 
blood;  consequently  the  elephant,  being  drained  of  its  blood, 
falls  to  the  earth  exhausted  ;  while  the  dragon,  intoxicated 
with  the  draught,  is  crushed  beneath  it,  and  so  shares  its  fate.* 

"  ^Ethiopia  produces  dragons,  not  so  large  as  those  of 
India,  but  still  twenty  cubits  in  length.  The  only  thing  that 
surprises  me  is,  how  Juba  came  to  believe  that  they  have 
crests.  The  Ethiopians  are  known  as  the  Asachaei,  among 
whom  they  most  abound  ;  and  we  are  told  that  on  those 
coasts  four  or  five  of  them  are  found  twisted  and  interlaced 
together  like  so  many  osiers  in  a  hurdle,  and  thus  setting 
sail,  with  their  heads  erect,  they  are  borne  along  upon  the 
waves  to  find  better  sources  of  nourishment  in  Arabia,  "f 

Pliny  then  goes  on  to  describe,  as  separate  from  dragons, 
large  serpents  in  India,  as  follows. 

"  MegasthenesJ  informs  us  that  in  India  serpents  grow  to 
such  an  immense  size  as  to  swallow  stags  and  bulls  ;  while 
Metrodorus  says  that  about  the  river  Khyndacus,  in  Pontus, 
they  seize  and  swallow  the  birds  that  are  flying  above  them, 
however  high  and  however  rapid  their  flight. 

' '  It  is  a  well-known  fact  that  during  the  Punic  war,  at  the 
river  Bagrada,  a  serpent  one  hundred  and  twenty  feet  in 
length  was  taken  by  the  Roman  army  under  Regulus,  being 
besieged,  like  a  fortress,  by  means  of  balistse  and  other 
engines  of  war.  Its  skin  and  jaws  were  preserved  in  a  temple 
at  Rome  down  to  the  time  of  the  Numantine  war. 

"  The  serpents,  which  in  Italy  are  known  by  the  name  of 


*  Pliny's  Natural  History,  Book  viii.,  chap.  xii. 
t  Ibid.,  Book  viii.,  chap.  xiii. 
£  Ibid.,  Book  viii.,  chap.  xiv. 


THE  DRAGON.  171 


boa,  render  these  accounts  far  from  incredible,  for  they  grow 
to  such  vast  size  that  a  child  was  found  entire  in  the  stomach 
of  one  of  them  which  was  killed  on  the  Vaticanian  Hill 
during  the  reign  of  Emperor  Claudius."* 

Aristotle  tells  us  that  "in  Libya,  the  serpents,  as  it  has 
been  already  remarked,  are  very  large.  For  some  persons 
say  that  as  they  sailed  along  the  coast,  they  saw  the  bones  of 
many  oxen,  and  that  it  was  evident  to  them  that  they  had 
been  devoured  by  serpents.  And,  as  the  ships  passed  on,  the 
serpents  attacked  the  triremes,  and  some  of  them  threw 
themselves  upon  one  of  the  triremes  and  overturned  it."f 

It  is  doubtful  whether  the  dragons  described  by  Benjamin 
of  Tudela,  who  travelled  through  Europe  and  the  East  and 
returned  to  Castille  in  1173,$  as  infesting  the  ruins  of  the 
palace  of  Nebuchodonosor  at  Babylon,  so  as  to  render  them 
inaccessible,  were  creatures  of  the  imagination  such  as  the 
mediaeval  mind  seems  to  have  loved  to  dress  up,  or  venomous 
serpents.  But  there  is  little  doubt  that  the  so-called  dragons 
of  later  voyages  were  simply  boas,  pythons,  or  other  large 
serpents,  such  as  those  described  by  John  Leo,  in  his  descrip- 


*  "  At  the  present  day  the  longest  Italian  serpents  are  the  JUsculapian 
serpent  (a  harmless  animal)  and  the  Colubes  quadrilineatus,  neither  of 
which  exceeds  ten  feet  in  length." — Nat.  Hist.,  Book  viii.,  chap.  xiv. 

t  Aristotle's  History  of  Animals,  Book  viii.,  chap,  xxvii.  §  6,  by  E. 
Cresswell,  Bonn's  Series  ;  Bell,  London,  1878. 

£  An  abridgment  of  these  travels  is  contained  in  Voyages  par  Pierre 
Bergeron,  a  la  Haye,  1735.  They  were  originally  written  in  Hebrew, 
translated  into  Latin  by  Benoit  Arian  Montare,  and  subsequently  into 
French.  [The  introduction  refers  to  his  return  to  Castille  in  1173, 
presumably  after  the  termination  of  his  voyages ;  but  in  the  opening 
paragraph  there  is  a  marginal  note  giving  the  same  date  to  his  setting 
out  from  Sarragossa.]  Sir  John  Mandeville  gives  a  similar  account  in 
speaking  of  the  tower  of  Babylon ;  he  says,  "  but  it  is  full  long  sithe 
that  any  man  durste  neyhe  to  the  Tour :  for  it  is  all  deserte  and  f ulle  of 
Dragouns  and  grete  serpents,  and  fulle  of  dyverse  venemous  Bestes  alle 
about  he."— The  Voyages  of  Sir  John  Mandeville,  Kt.y  p.  40 ;  J.  0.  Halli- 
well,  London,  1839. 


172  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

tion  of  a  voyage  to  Africa,  as  existing  in  the  caverns  of 
Atlas.  He  says,  "  There  are  many  monstrous  dragons  which 
are  thick  about  the  middle,  but  have  slender  necks  and  tails, 
so  that  their  motion  is  but  slow.*  They  are  so  venomous, 
that  whatever  they  bite  or  touch,  certain  death  ensues."  There 
is  also  the  statement  of  Job  Ludolphus  that  (in  Ethiopia) 
"  the  dragons  are  of  the  largest  size,  very  voracious,  but  not 
venomous. "f 

I  fancy  that  at  the  present  day  the  numbers,  magnitude, 
and  terrifying  nature  of  serpents  but  feebly  represent  the 
power  which  they  asserted  in  the  early  days  of  man's  exis- 
tence, or  the  terror  which  they  then  inspired.  This  subject 
has  been  so  ably  dealt  with  by  a  writer  of  the  last  century { 
that  I  feel  no  hesitation  in  transcribing  his  remarks  at  length. 

"  It  is  probable,  in  early  times,  when  the  arts  were  little 
known  and  mankind  were  but  thinly  scattered  over  the  earth, 
that  serpents,  continuing  undisturbed  possessors  of  the  forest, 
grew  to  an  amazing  magnitude,  and  every  other  tribe  of 
animals  fell  before  them.  It  then  might  have  happened  that 
the  serpents  reigned  tyrants  of  the  district  for  centuries 
together.  To  animals  of  this  kind,  grown  by  time  and  rapa- 
city to  one  hundred  or  one  hundred  and  fifty  feet  long,  the 
lion,  the  tiger,  and  even  the  elephant  itself  were  but  feeble 
opponents.  That  horrible  fetor,  which  even  the  commonest 
and  the  most  harmless  snakes  are  still  found  to  diffuse,  might 
in  these  larger  ones  become  too  powerful  for  any  living  being 
to  withstand,  and  while  they  preyed  without  distinction,  they 
might  also  have  poisoned  the  atmosphere  round  them.  In 
this  manner,  having  for  ages  lived  in  the  hidden  and  un- 
peopled forest,  and  finding,  as  their  appetites  were  more 
powerful,  the  quantity  of  their  prey  decreasing,  it  is  possible 


*  Harris's  Voyages,  vol.  i.  p.  360. 
f  Ibid.,  vol.  i.  p.  392. 

J  Encyclopaedia  of  Arts  and  Sciences,  first  American  edition,  Philadel- 
phia, 1798. 


THE  DRAGON.  173 


they  might  venture  boldly  from  their  retreats  into  the  more 
cultivated  parts  of  the  country,  and  carry  consternation 
among  mankind,  as  they  had  before  desolation  among  the 
lower  ranks  of  nature. 

"  We  have  many  histories  of  antiquity  presenting  us  such 
a  picture,  and  exhibiting  a  whole  nation  sinking  under  the 
ravages  of  a  single  serpent.  At  that  time  man  had  not 
learned  the  art  of  uniting  the  efforts  of  many  to  effect  one 
great  purpose.  Opposing  multitudes  only  added  new  victims 
to  the  general  calamity,  and  increased  mutual  embarrassment 
and  terror.  The  animal,  therefore,  was  to  be  singly  opposed 
by  him  who  had  the  greatest  strength,  the  best  armour,  and 
the  most  undaunted  courage.  In  such  an  encounter  hun- 
dreds must  have  fallen,  till  one  more  lucky  than  the  rest,  by 
a  fortunate  blow,  or  by  taking  the  monster  in  its  torpid 
interval  and  surcharged  with  spoil,  might  kill  and  thus  rid 
his  country  of  the  destroyer.  Such  was  the  original  occu- 
pation of  heroes. 

"But  as  we  descend  into  more  enlightened  antiquity  we 
find  these  animals  less  formidable,  as  being  attacked  in  a 
more  successful  manner. 

"  We  are  told  that  while  Eegulus  led  his  army  along  the 
banks  of  the  river  Bagrada  in  Africa,  an  enormous  serpent 
disputed  his  passage  over.  We  are  assured  by  Pliny  that  it 
was  one  hundred  and  twenty  feet  long,  and  that  it  had 
destroyed  many  of  the  army.  At  last,  however,  the  battering 
engines  were  brought  out  against  it,  and  then,  assailing  it  at 
a  distance,  it  was  destroyed.  Its  spoils  were  carried  to  Eome, 
and  the  general  was  decreed  an  ovation  for  his  success. 

"  There  are,  perhaps,  few  facts  better  ascertained  in  his- 
tory than  this  :  an  ovation  was  a  remarkable  honour,  and 
was  only  given  for  some  signal  exploit  that  did  not  deserve  a 
triumph.  No  historian  would  offer  to  invent  that  part  of 
the  story,  at  least,  without  being  subject  to  the  most  shameful 
detection. 


174  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


"  The  skin  was  kept  for  several  years  after,  in  the  Capitol, 
and  Pliny  says  he  saw  it  there. 

"  This  tribe  of  animals,  like  that  of  fishes,  seem  to  have 
no  bounds  put  to  their  growth  ;  their  bones  are  in  a  great 
measure  cartilaginous,  and  they  are  consequently  capable  of 
great  extension. 

"  The  older,  therefore,  a  serpent  becomes,  the  larger  it 
grows,  and,  as  they  live  to  a  great  age,  they  arrive  at  an 
enormous  size.  Leguat  assures  us  that  he  saw  one  in  Java 
that  was  fifty  feet  long.*  Carli  mentions  their  growing  to 
above  forty  feet,  and  there  is  now  in  the  British  Museum  one 
that  measures  thirty-two  feet. 

"  Mr.  Wentworth,  who  had  large  concerns  in  the  Berbice 
in  America,  assures  us  that  in  that  country  they  grow  to  an 
enormous  length.  He  describes  an  Indian  mistaking  one  for 
a  log,  and  proceeding  to  sit  down  on  it,  when  it  began  to 
move.  A  soldier  with  him  shot  the  snake,  but  the  Indian 
died  of  fright.  It  measured  thirty-six  feet.  It  was  sent  to 
the  Hague. 

"  A  life  of  savage  hostility  in  the  forest  offers  the  imagina- 
tion one  of  the  most  tremendous  pictures  in  nature.  In 
those  burning  countries  where  the  sun  dries  up  every  brook 
for  hundreds  of  miles  round  :  where  what  had  the  appearance 
of  a  great  river  in  the  rainy  season  becomes  in  summer  one 
dreary  bed  of  sand  ;  in  those  countries  a  lake  that  is  never 
dry,  or  a  brook  that  is  perennial,  is  considered  by  every 
animal  as  the  greatest  convenience  of  nature.  When  they 
have  discovered  this,  no  dangers  can  deter  them  from  attempt- 
ing to  slake  their  thirst.  Thus  the  neighbourhood  of  a 
rivulet,  in  the  heart  of  the  tropical  continents,  is  generally 


*  See  Voyage  to  the  East  Indies,  by  Francis  Leguat ;  London,  1708. 
Leguat  hardly  makes  the  positive  affirmation  stated  in  the  text.  In 
describing  Batavia  he  says  there  is  another  sort  of  serpents  which 
are  at  least  fifty  feet  long. 


THE  DRAGON.  175 


the  place  where  all  the  hostile  tribes  of  nature  draw  up  for 
the  engagement. 

"  On  the  banks  of  this  little  envied  spot,  thousands  of 
animals  of  various  kinds  are  seen  venturing  to  quench  their 
thirst,  or  preparing  to  seize  their  prey.  The  elephants  are 
perceived  in  a  long  line,  marching  from  the  darker  parts  of 
the  forest.  The  buffaloes  are  there,  depending  upon  numbers 
for  security  ;  the  gazelles  relying  solely  upon  their  swiftness  ; 
the  lion  and  tiger  waiting  a  proper  opportunity  to  seize. 

"  But  chiefly  the  larger  serpents  are  upon  guard  there,  and 
defend  the  accesses  of  the  lake.  Not  an  hour  passes  without 
some  dreadful  combat,  but  the  serpent,  defended  by  its  scales, 
and  naturally  capable  of  sustaining  a  multitude  of  wounds, 
is  of  all  others  the  most  formidable.  It  is  the  most  wakeful 
also,  for  the  whole  tribe  sleep  with  their  eyes  open,  and  are 
consequently  for  ever  upon  the  watch  ;  so  that,  till  their 
rapacity  is  satisfied,  few  other  animals  will  venture  to 
approach  their  station." 

We  read  of  a  serpent  exhibited  in  the  time  of  Augustus 
at  Rome,  which,  Suetonius  tells  us,  "  was  fifty  cubits  in 
length."*  But  at  the  present  day  there  are  few  authentic 
accounts  of  snakes  exceeding  thirty  feet  in  length ;  and  there 
are  some  people  who  discredit  any  which  profess  to  speak  of 
snakes  of  greater  dimensions  than  this.  There  are  some, 
however,  among  the  annexed  stories,  which  I  think  demand 
belief,  and  apparently  we  may  conclude  that  the  python  and 
boa  exceptionally  attain  as  much  as  forty  feet  in  length,  or 
even  more. 

Wallacef  merely  reports  by  hearsay  that  the  pythons  in 
the  Phillipines,  which  destroy  young  cattle,  are  said  to  reach 
more  than  forty  feet. 

Captain  Sherard  Osborn,]:  in  his  description  of  Quedah  in 


*  Broderip,  Leaves  from  the  Note  Book  of  a  Naturalist,  p.  357. 

t  Australasia,  p.  273. 

t   Quedah;   London,  1857. 


176  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

the  Malay  peninsula,  says,  also,  as  a  matter  of  popular 
belief:  "  The  natives  of  Tamelan  declared  most  of  them  to 
be  of  the  boa-constrictor  [species,  but  spoke  of  monsters  in 
the  deep  forests,  which  might,  if  they  came  out,  clear  off  the 
whole  village.  A  pleasant  feat,  for  which  Jadie,  with  a  wag 
of  his  sagacious  head,  assured  me  that  an  '  oular  Bessar '  or 
big  snake  was  quite  competent. 

"  It  was  strange  but  interesting  to  find  amongst  all  Malays 
a  strong  belief  in  the  extraordinary  size  to  which  the  boa- 
constrictors  or  pythons  would  grow ;  they  all  maintained  that 
in  the  secluded  forests  of  Sumatra  or  Borneo,  as  well  as  on 
some  of  the  smaller  islands  which  were  not  inhabited,  these 
snakes  were  occasionally  found  of  forty  or  fifty  feet  in 
length." 

Major  McNair  says*  :  "  One  of  the  keenest  sportsmen  in 
Singapore  gives  an  account  of  a  monster  that  he  encountered. 
He  had  wounded  a  boar  in  the  jungle,  and  was  following  its 
tracks  with  his  dogs,  when,  in  penetrating  further  into  the 
forest,  he  found  the  dogs  at  bay,  and,  advancing  cautiously, 
prepared  for  another  shot  at  the  boar ;  to  his  surprise,  how- 
ever, he  found  that  the  dogs  were  baying  a  huge  python, 
which  had  seized  the  boar,  thrown  its  coils  round  the  unfor- 
tunate beast,  and  was  crushing  it  to  death.  A  well-directed 
shot  laid  the  reptile  writhing  on  the  ground,  and  it  proved  to 
be  about  thirty  feet  long.  But  such  instances  of  extreme 
length  are  rare." 

Unfortunately  the  exciting  story  of  a  serpent,  between 
forty  and  fifty  feet  in  length,  which  I  extract  from  the  North 
China  Daily  News  of  November  10th,  1880,  the  scene  of 
which  is  also  laid  in  the  Malay  peninsula,  lacks  the  authen- 
ticity of  the  narrator's  name.  It  is  as  follows  : — 

"  The  Straits  Times  tells  the  following  exciting  python 
story :  '  A  sportsman,  who  a  few  days  ago  penetrated  into  the 

*  Perak  and  the  Malays,  p.  77, 


THE  DRAGON.  177 


jungle  lying  between  Buddoh  and  Sirangoon,  came  upon  a 
lone  hut  in  a  district  called  Campong  Batta,  upon  the  roof  of 
which  the  skin  of  an  enormous  boa  or  python  (whichever 
may  be  the  correct  name)  was  spread  out.  The  hut  was 
occupied  by  a  Malay  and  his  wife,  from  whom  our  informant 
gathered  the  following  extraordinary  account.  One  night, 
about  a  week  previously,  the  Malay  was  awakened  by  the 
cries  of  his  wife  for  assistance.  Being  in  perfect  darkness, 
and  supposing  the  alarm  to  be  on  account  of  thieves,  he 
seized  his  sharp  parang,  and  groped  his  way  to  her  sleep- 
ing place,  where  his  hand  fell  upon  a  slimy  reptile.  It  was 
fully  a  minute  before  he  could  comprehend  the  entire  situa- 
tion, and  when  he  did,  he  discovered  that  the  whole  of  his 
wife's  arm  had  been  drawn  down  the  monster's  throat, 
whither  the  upper  part  of  her  body  was  slowly  but  surely 
following.  Not  daring  to  attack  the  monster  at  once  for  fear 
of  causing  his  wife's  death,  the  husband,  with  great  presence 
of  mind,  seized  two  bags  within  reach,  and  commenced  stuff- 
ing them  into  the  corner  of  the  snake's  jaws,  by  means  of 
which  he  succeeded  in  forcing  them  wider  open  and  releasing 
his  wife's  arm.  No  sooner  had  the  boa  lost  his  prey  than  he 
attacked  the  husband,  whom  he  began  encircling  in  his  fatal 
coils ;  but  holding  out  both  arms,  and  watching  his  oppor- 
tunity, he  attacked  the  monster  so  vigorously  with  his  parang 
that  it  suddenly  unwound  itself  and  vanished  through  an 
opening  beneath  the  attap  sides  of  the  hut.  His  clothes 
were  covered  with  blood,  as  was  also  the  floor  of  the  hut,  and 
his  wife's  arm  was  blue  with  the  squeezing  it  received  between 
the  boa's  jaws.  At  daylight  the  husband  discovered  his 
patch  of  plaintain  trees  nearly  ruined,  where  the  boa,  writh- 
ing in  agony,  had  broken  off  the  trees  at  the  roots,  and  in  the 
midst  of  the  debris  lay  the  monster  itself,  dead.  The  Malay 
assured  our  informant  that  he  had  received  no  less  than  sixty 
dollars  from  Chinese,  who  came  from  long  distances  to  pur- 
chase pieces  of  the  flesh  on  account  of  its  supposed  medical 


178  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

properties,  and  that  he  had  refused  six  dollars  for  the  skin, 
which  he  preferred  to  retain  as  a  trophy.  It  was  greatly 
decomposed,  having  been  some  days  exposed  in  the  open 
air,  and  useless  for  curing.  There  is  no  telling  what  may 
have  been  the  measurement  of  this  large  reptile,  but  the 
skin,  probably  greatly  stretched  by  unskilful  removal,  mea- 
sured between  seven  and  eight  fathoms." 

Bontius  speaks  of  serpents  in  the  Asiatic  Isles.  "  The 
great  ones,"  he  says,  "  sometimes  exceed  thirty-six  feet ;  and 
have  such  capacity  of  throat  and  stomach  that  they  swallow 
whole  boars." 

Mr.  McLeod,  in  the  Voyage  of  the  Alceste,  states  that  during 
a  captivity  of  some  months  at  Whidah,  on  the  coast  of 
Africa,  he  had  opportunities  of  observing  serpents  double 
this  length.* 

Broderip,  in  his  Leaves  from  the  Note-book  of  a  'Naturalist 
(Parker,  1852),  speaks  of  a  serpent  thirty  feet  in  length, 
which  attacked  the  crew  of  a  Malay  proa  anchored  for  the 
night  close  to  the  island  of  Celebes. 

Mr.  C.  Colling  wood  in  Rambles  of  a  Naturalist,  states  that 
"  Mr.  Low  assured  me  that  he  had  seen  one  [python]  killed 
measuring  twenty-six  feet,  and  I  heard  on  good  authority  of  one 
of  twenty-nine  feet  having  been  killed  there.  In  Borneo  they 
were  said  to  attain  forty  feet,  but  for  this  I  cannot  vouch." 

That  large  pythons  still  exist  in  South  and  Western  China, 
although  of  very  reduced  dimensions  as  compared  with  those 
described  in  ancient  works,  is  affirmed  by  many  writers,  from 
whom  I  think  it  is  sufficient  to  extract  a  notice  by  one  of 
the  early  missionaries  who  explored  that  country. 

"  Pour  ce  qui  est  des  serpens  qu'on  trouve  dans  Chine 
1'Atlas  raconte  que  la  Province  de  Quansi,  en  produit  de  si 
grands  et  d'une  longueur  si  extreme,  qu'il  est  presque  incroy- 
able  ;  et  il  nous  assure,  qu'il  s'en  est  trouve,  qui  etaient  plus 

*  Figuier,  Reptiles  and  Birds,  p.  51. 


THE  DEAGON.  179 


longs  que  ne  seraient  pas  dix  perches  attachees  les  unes  avec 
les  autres,  c'est-a-dire,  qu'ils  avaient  plus  de  trente  pieds 
geometriques.  Flore  Sienois  dit,  '  Gento  est  le  plus  grand 
de  tous  ceux  qui  sont  dans  les  provinces  de  Quansi,  de 
Haynan,  et  de  Quantun  .  .  .  il  devore  les  cerfs.  ...  II 
s'eleve  droit  sur  sa  queue,  et  combat  vigoureuseinent,  en  cette 
posture,  centre  les  hommes  et  les  betes  farouches.'  "* 

We  have  unfortunately  no  clue  to  the  actual  length  of  the 
serpent  Bomma,  described  by  J.  M.  da  Sorrento  in  A  Voyage 
to  Congo  in  1682,  contained  in  Churchill's  collection  of 
voyages  published  in  1732. f  "  The  flesh  they  eat  is  gene- 
rally that  of  wild  creatures,  and  especially  of  a  sort  of  serpent 
called  Bomma.  At  a  certain  feast  in  Baia,  I  observed  the 
windows,  instead  of  tapestry  and  arras,  adorned  with  the  skin 
of  these  serpents  as  wide  as  that  of  a  large  ox,  and  long  in 
proportion." 

That  harmless  snakes  of  from  twelve  to  fourteen  feet  in 
length  occur  abundantly  in  Northern  Australia  is  generally 
known  ;  but  it  is  only  of  late  years  that  I  have  been  made 
acquainted  with  a  firm  belief,  entertained  by  the  natives  in 
the  interior,  of  the  existence  near  the  junction  of  the  Darling 
and  Murray,  south  of  the  centre  of  the  continent,  of  a  serpent 
of  great  magnitude. 

1  learn  from  Mr.  G.  R.  Moffat  that  on  the  Lower  Murray, 
between  Swan  Hill  and  the  Darling  junction — at  the  time  of 
his  acquaintance  with  the  district  (about  1857  to  1867) — 
the  black  fellows  had  numerous  stories  of  the  existence  of  a 
large  serpent  in  the  Mallee  scrub.  It  was  conspicuous  for  its 
size,  thirty  to  forty  feet  in  length,  and  especially  for  its  great 
girth,  swiftness,  and  intensely  disgusting  odour ;  this  latter, 
in  fact,  constituted  the  great  protection  from  it,  insomuch 


*  La  Chine  Illustre,  d'Athase  Keichere,  chap.  x.  p.  272.     Amsterdam, 
do  Ico  LXX. 
t  Vol.  i.  p.  601. 

12  * 


180  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


as  it  would  be  impossible  to  approach  without  recognising  its 
presence. 

Mr.  Moffatt  learnt  personally  from  a  Mr.  Beveridge,  son 
of  Mr.  Peter  Beveridge,  of  Swan  Hill  station,  that  he 
had  actually  seen  one,  and  that  his  account  quite  tallied 
with  those  of  the  blacks.  In  answer  to  an  inquiry  which 
I  addressed  to  Australia,  I  received  the  note  attached 
below.* 

Mr.  Henry  Liddell,  who  was  resident  on  the  Darling  River 
in  1871-72,  informs  me  that  he  has  heard  from  stock-riders 
and  ration-carriers  similar  accounts  to  that  of  Mr.  Moffatt, 
with  reference  to  the  existence  of  large  serpents  of  the  boa 
species  in  an  adjacent  locality,  viz.  the  tract  of  country  lying 
to  the  east  of  Darling  and  Murray  junction,  in  the  back 
country  belonging  to  Pooncaira  station. 

They  described  them  as  being  numerous,  in  barren  and 
rocky  places,  among  big  boulders  ;  fully  forty  feet  long ;  as 
thick  as  a  man's  thigh  ;  and  as  having  the  same  remarkable 
odour  described  by  Mr.  Moffatt.  They  spoke  of  them  as 
quite  common,  and  not  at  all  phenomenal,  between  Went- 
worth  and  Pooncaira. 

The  Anaconda,  in  regard  to  which  so  much  myth  and 
superstition  prevails  among  the  Indians  of  Brazil,  is  thus 
spoken  of  by  Condamine,  in  his  Travels  in  South  America. 
"  The  most  rare  and  singular  of  all  is  a  large  amphibious 
serpent  from  twenty-five  to  thirty  feet  long  and  more  than  a 
foot  thick,  according  to  report.  It  is  called  Jacumama,  or 
*  the  mother  of  the  waters,'  by  the  Americans  of  Maynas, 


*  See  Proceedings  of  Eoyal  Society  of  Tasmania,  September  13,  1880. 
Mr.  C.  M.  Officer  states—"  With  reference  to  the  Hindi  or  Mallee  snake, 
it  has  often  been  described  to  me  as  a  formidable  creature  of  at  least 
thirty  feet  in  length,  which  confined  itself  to  the  Mallee  scrub.  No  one, 
however,  has  ever  seen  one,  for  the  simple  reason  that  to  see  it  is  to  die, 
so  fierce  it  is,  and  so  great  its  power  of  destruction.  Like  the  Bunyip, 
I  believe  the  Mindi  to  be  a  myth,  a  mere  tradition." 


THE  DRAGON.  181 


and  commonly  inhabits  the  large  lakes  formed  by  the  river- 
water  after  flood."  * 

Ulloa,  also,  in  his  Voyage  to  South  America,^  says :  "In 
the  countries  watered  by  that  vast  river  (the  Maranon)  is 
bred  a  serpent  of  a  frightful  magnitude,  and  of  a  most  dele- 
terious nature.  Some,  in  order  to  give  an  idea  of  its  large- 
ness, affirm  that  it  will  swallow  any  beast  whole,  and  that 
this  has  been  the  miserable  end  of  many  a  man.  But  what 
seems  still  a  greater  wonder  is  the  attractive  quality  attri- 
buted to  its  breath, {  which  irresistibly  draws  any  creature 
to  it  which  happens  to  be  within  the  sphere  of  its  attraction. 
The  Indians  call  it  Jacumama,  i.e.  'mother  of  water';  for,  as 
it  delights  in  lakes  and  marshy  places,  it  may  in  some  sense 
be  considered  as  amphibious.  I  have  taken  a  great  deal  of 
pains  to  inquire  into  this  particular,  and  all  I  can  say  is  that 
the  reptile's  magnitude  is  really  surprising." 

John  Nieuhoff,  in  his  Voyages  to  Brazil^  speaking  of  the 
serpent  G-uaku  or  Liboya,  says:  "It  is  questionless  the 
biggest  of  all  serpents,  some  being  eighteen,  twenty-four,  nay 
thirty  feet  long,  and  of  the  thickness  of  a  man  in  his  middle. 
The  Portuguese  call  it  Kobra  Detrado,  or  the  roebuck 
serpent,  because  it  will  swallow  a  whole  roebuck,  or  any  other 
deer  it  meets  with  ;  after  they  have  swallowed  such  a  deer, 
they  fall  asleep,  and  so  are  catched.  Such  a  one  I  saw  at 
Paraiba,  which  was  thirty  feet  long,  and  as  big  as  a  barrel. 
This  serpent,  being  a  very  devouring  creature,  greedy  of  prey, 
leaps  from  amongst  the  hedges  and  woods,  and  standing 
upright  upon  its  tail,  wrestles  both  with  men  and  wild 


*   Pinkerton's  Voyages,  vol.  xiv.  p.  '247. 

t  Ibid.,  vol.  xiv.  p.  514. 

J  It  is  interesting  to  compare  this  belief  with  stories  given  else- 
where, by  Pliny,  Book  viii.  chap,  xiv.,  and  JDlian,  Book  ii.  chap,  xxi.,  of 
the  power  of  the  serpents  or  dragons  of  the  river  Ehyndacus  to  attract 
birds  by  inhalation. 

§  Pinkerton's  Voyages,  vol.  xiv.  p.  713. 


182  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

beasts ;  sometimes  it  leaps  from  the  trees  upon  the  traveller, 
whom  it  fastens  upon,  and  beats  the  breath  out  of  his  body 
with  its  tail." 

The  largest  (water  boa)  ever  met  with  by  a  European 
appears  to  be  that  described  by  a  botanist,  Dr.  Gardiner,  in 
his  Travels  in  Brazil.  It  had  devoured  a  horse,  and  was 
found  dead,  entangled  in  the  branches  of  a  tree  overhanging 
a  river,  into  which  it  had  been  carried  by  a  flood ;  it  was 
nearly  forty  feet  long. 


FIG.  35. — EGYPTIAN  FOUR-WINGED  SERPENT,  CHANUPHIS,  OR  BAIT.    (From  "  Serpent 
Myths  of  Ancient  Egypt,"  by  W.  R.  Cooper.) 


Winged  Serpents. 

The  next  section  relates  to  winged  serpents,  a  belief  in 
which  was  prevalent  in  early  ages,  and  is  strongly  supported 
by  several  independent  works. 

To  my  mind,  Herodotus  speaks  without  the  slightest  doubt 
upon  the  subject  in  the  following  passages.  "Arabia*  is 
the  last  of  inhabited  lands  towards  the  south,  and  it  is  the 
only  country  which  produces  frankincense,  myrrh,  cassia, 
cinnamon,  and  ledanum."  "  The  frankincense  they  procure 
by  means  of  the  gum  styrax,  which  the  Greeks  get  from  the 
Phoenicians.  This  they  burn,  and  thereby  obtain  the  spice  ; 
for  the  trees  which  bear  the  frankincense  are  guarded  by 


Herodotus,  Book  iii.  chap,  cvii.,  cviii. 


THE  DRAGON.  183 


winged  serpents,  small  in  size,  and  of  various  colours, 
whereof  vast  numbers  hang  about  every  tree.  They  are  of 
the  same  kind  as  the  serpents  that  invade  Egypt,  and  there 
is  nothing  but  the  smoke  of  the  styrax  which  will  drive  them 
from  the  trees." 


FIG.  36.— THE  SYMBOLIC  WINGED  SERPENT  OF  THE  GODDESS  MERSOKAK  OR 
MELSOKAR.    (After  W.  R.  Cooper.) 

Again/  "  the  Arabians  say  that  the  whole  world  would 
swarm  with  these  serpents,  if  they  were  not  kept  in  check, 
in  the  way  in  which  I  know  that  vipers  are."  "  Now,  with 
respect  to  the  vipers  and  the  winged  snakes  of  Arabia,  if  they 
increased  as  fast  as  their  nature  would  allow,  impossible 
were  it  for  man  to  maintain  himself  upon  the  earth. 
Accordingly,  it  is  found  that  when  the  male  and  female  come 
together,  at  the  very  moment  of  impregnation,  the  female 
seizes  the  male  by  the  neck,  and  having  once  fastened  cannot 
be  brought  to  leave  go  till  she  has  bit  the  neck  entirely 
through,  and  so  the  male  perishes ;  but  after  a  while  he  is 
avenged  upon  the  female  by  means  of  the  young,  which, 
while  still  unborn,  gnaw  a  passage  through  the  womb  and 
then  through  the  belly  of  their  mother.  Contrariwise,  other 
snakes,  which  are  harmless,  lay  eggs  and  hatch  a  vast 
number  of  young.  Vipers  are  found  in  all  parts  of  the 
world,  but  the  winged  serpents  are  nowhere  seen  except  in 
Arabia,  where  they  are  all  congregated  together ;  this  makes 
them  appear  so  numerous." 

*  Herodotus,  Book  iii.  chap,  cviii. 


184  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Herodotus  had  so  far  interested  himself  in  ascertaining  the 
probability  of  their  existence  as  to  visit  Arabia  for  the 
purpose  of  inquiry  ;  he  says,*  "  I  went  once  to  a  certain  place 
in  Arabia,  almost  exactly  opposite  the  city  of  Buto,  to  make 
inquiries  concerning  the  winged  serpents.  On  my  arrival  I 
saw  the  back-bones  and  ribs  of  serpents  in  such  numbers  as 
it  is  impossible  to  describe  ;  of  the  ribs  there  were  a  multi- 
tude of  heaps,  some  great,  some  small,  some  middle-sized. 
The  place  where  the  bones  lie  is  at  the  entrance  of  a  narrow 
gorge  between  steep  mountains,  which  there  open  upon  a 
spacious  plain  communicating  with  the  great  plains  of 
Egypt.  The  story  goes,  that  with  the  spring  the  snakes 
come  flying  from  Arabia  towards  Egypt,  but  are  met  in  this 
gorge  by  the  birds  called  ibises,  who  forbid  their  entrance 
and  destroy  them  all.  The  Arabians  assert,  and  the  Egyp- 
tians also  admit,  that  it  is  on  account  of  the  service  thus 
rendered  that  the  Egyptians  hold  the  ibis  in  so  much  reve- 
rence." He  further!  describes  the  winged  serpent  as  being 
shaped  like  the  water-snake,  and  states  that  its  wings  are  not 
feathered,  but  resemble  very  closely  those  of  the  bat. 


FIG.  37. — THE  SYMBOLIC  WINGED  SERPENT  OF  THE  GODDESS  EILEITHTA. 
(After  W.  R.  Cooper.) 

Aristotle  briefly  states,  as  a  matter  of  common  report,  that 
there  were  in  his  time  winged  serpents  in  Ethiopia.  J  Both 
two  and  four  winged  snakes  are  depicted  among  the  Egyptian 

*  Herodotus,  Book  ii.,  chap.  Ixxv. 
t  Ibid.,  Book  ii.,  chap.  Ixxvi. 
J  Ibid.,  Book  i.,  chap.  v. 


THE  DRAGON.  185 


sculptures,  considered  by  Mr.  Cooper  to  be  emblematic  of 
deities,  and  to  signify  that  the  four  corners  of  the  earth  are 
embraced  and  sheltered  by  the  supreme  Providence. 

Josephus*  unmistakably  affirms  his  belief  in  the  existence 
of  flying  serpents,  in  his  account  of  the  stratagem  which 
Moses  adopted  in  attacking  the  Ethiopians,  who  had  invaded 
Egypt  and  penetrated  as  far  as  Memphis.  From  this  we 
may  infer  that  in  his  time  flying  serpents  were  by  no  means 
peculiar  to  Arabia,  but,  as  might  have  been  expected,  equally 
infested  the  desert  lands  bordering  the  fertile  strip  of  the  Nile. 

In  Whiston's  translation  we  read  that  "  Moses  prevented 
the  enemies,  and  took  and  led  his  army  before  those  ene- 
mies were  apprised  of  his  attacking  them ;  for  he  did  not 
march  by  the  river,  but  by  land,  where  he  gave  a  wonderful 
demonstration  of  his  sagacity ;  for  when  the  ground  was 
difficult  to  be  passed  over,  because  of  the  multitude  of  ser- 
pents (which  it  produces  in  vast  numbers,  and  indeed  is 
singular  in  some  of  those  productions,  which  other  countries 
do  not  breed,  and  yet  such  as  are  worse  than  others  in  power 
and  mischief,  and  an  unusual  fierceness  of  sight,  some  of 
which  ascend  out  of  the  ground  unseen,  and  also  fly  in  the 
air,  and  so  come  upon  men  at  unawares,  and  do  them  a 
mischief),  Moses  invented  a  wonderful  stratagem  to  preserve 
the  army  safe  and  without  hurt;  for  he  made  baskets,  like 
unto  arks,  of  sedge,  and  filled  them  with  ibes,  and  carried 
them  along  with  them  ;  which  animal  is  the  greatest  enemy 
to  serpents  imaginable,  for  they  fly  from  them  when  they 
come  near  them  ;  and  as  they  fly  they  are  caught  and  de- 
voured by  them,  as  if  it  were  done  by  the  harts ;  but  the 
ibes  are  tame  creatures,  and  only  enemies  to  the  serpentine 
kind  ;  but  about  these  ibes  I  say  no  more  at  present,  since 
the  Greeks  themselves  are  not  unacquainted  with  this  sort 
of  bird.  As  soon,  therefore,  as  Moses  was  come  to  the  land, 

*  Autiquitiea  of  the  Jews,  Book  ii.,  chap.  x. 


186  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


which  was  the  breeder  of  these  serpents,  he  let  loose  the  ibes, 
and  by  their  means  repelled  the  serpentine  kind,  and  used  them 
for  his  assistants  before  the  army  came  upon  that  ground." 

These  statements  of  Herodotus  and  Josephus  are  both  too 
precise  to  be  explicable  on  the  theory  that  they  refer  to 
the  darting  or  jumping  serpents  which  Nieuhoff  describes, 
in  his  day,  as  infesting  the  palm  trees  of  Arabia  and 
springing  from  tree  to  tree;  or  to  the  jaculus  of  Pliny,* 
which  darts  from  the  branches  of  trees,  and  flies  through  the 
air  as  though  it  were  hurled  by  an  engine,  and  which  is 
described  by  JBlian  and  graphically  figured  by  Lucanf  in 
the  passage — "Behold!  afar,  around  the  trunk  of  a  barren 
tree,  a  fierce  serpent — Africa  calls  it  the  jaculus — wreathes 
itself,  and  then  darts  forth,  and  through  the  head  and  pierced 
temples  of  Paulus  it  takes  its  flight :  nothing  does  venom 
there  effect,  death  seizes  him  through  the  wound.  It  wae; 
then  understood  how  slowly  fly  the  stones  which  the  sling 
hurls,  how  sluggishly  whizzes  the  flight  of  the  Scythian 
arrow." 

Solinus,  whose  work,  Polyhistor,  is  mainly  a  compilation 
from  Pliny's  Natural  History,  gives  a  similar  account  of  the 
swarms  of  winged  serpents  about  the  Arabian  marshes,  and 
states  that  their  bite  was  so  deadly  that  death  followed  the 
bite  before  pain  could  be  felt;  he  also  refers  to  their  destruc- 
tion by  the  ibises,  and  is  probably  only  quoting  other  authors 
rather  than  speaking  of  his  own  knowledge. 

Cicero,  again,  speaks  of  the  ibis  as  being  a  very  large  bird, 
with  strong  legs,  and  a  horny  long  beak,  which  destroys  a 
great  number  of  serpents,  and  keeps  Egypt  free  from 
pestilential  diseases,  by  killing  and  devouring  the  flying 
serpents,  brought  from  the  deserts  of  Lybia  by  the  south- 
west wind,  and  so  preventing  the  mischief  which  might 


*  Book  viii.  chap.  xxxv. 
f  Pharsalia,  Book  ix. 


THE  DRAGON.  187 


attend  their  biting  while  alive,  or  from  any  infection  when 
dead. 

There  are  not  unfrequent  allusions  in  ancient  history  to 
serpents  having  become  so  numerous  as  to  constitute  a 
perfect  plague  ;  the  dreadful  mortality  caused  among  the 
Israelites  by  the  fiery  serpents  spoken  of  in  Numbers  is  a 
case  in  point,  and  another  *  is  the  migration  of  the  Neuri 
from  their  own  country  into  that  of  the  Budini,  one  gene- 
ration before  the  attack  of  Darius,  in  consequence  of  the 
incursion  of  a  huge  multitude  of  serpents.  It  is  stated  that 
some  of  these  were  produced  in  their  own  country,  but  for 
the  most  part  they  came  in  from  the  deserts  of  the  north. 
The  home  of  the  Neuri  appears  to  have  been  to  the  north- 
west of  the  Pontus  Euxinus,  pretty  much  in  the  position  of 
Poland,  and  I  believe  that  at  the  present  day  the  only  harm- 
ful reptile  occurring  in  it  is  the  viper  common  to  the  rest 
of  Europe.  Diodorus  Siculusf  mentions  a  tradition  that 
the  Cerastes  had  once  made  an  irruption  into  Egypt  in 
such  numbers  as  to  have  depopulated  a  great  portion  of  the 
inhabited  districts. 

These  stories  are  interesting  as  showing  a  migratory  in- 
stinct occurring  in  certain  serpents,  either  periodically  or 
occasionally,  and  are  thus  to  some  extent  corroborative  of 
the  account  of  the  annual  invasion  of  Egypt  by  serpents, 
referred  to  in  a  previous  page.  They  also,  I  think,  con- 
firm the  impression  that  serpents  were  more  numerous  in 
the  days  of  early  history,  and  had  a  larger  area  of  distri- 
bution than  they  have  now,  and  that  possibly  some  species, 
such  as  the  Arabian  and  flying  serpents,  which  have  since 
become  extinct,  then  existed.  Thus  the  boa  is  spoken  of  by 
Pliny  as  occurring  commonly  in  Italy,  and  growing  to  such 
a  vast  size  that  a  child  was  found  entire  in  one  of  them, 
which  was  killed  on  the  Vatican  Hill  during  the  reign  of  the 

*  Herodotus,  Book  iv.  chap.  cv.  f  Book  iii.  chap.  xx. 


188  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Emperor  Claudius.  Yet  at  the  present  day  there  are  no  snakes 
existing  there  at  all  corresponding  to  this  description. 

Parallel  instances  of  invasions  of  animals  materially  affect- 
ing the  prosperity  of  man  are  douhtless  familiar  to  my  readers, 
such  as  the  occasional  migration  of  lemmings,  passage  of 
rats,  flights  of  locusts,  or  the  ravages  caused  by  the  Colo- 
rado beetle ;  but  many  are  perhaps  quite  unaware  what  a 
terrible  plague  can  be  established,  in  the  course  of  a  very 
few  years,  by  the  prolific  unchecked  multiplication  of  even  so 
harmless,  innocent,  and  useful  an  animal  as  the  common 
rabbit.  The  descendants  of  a  few  imported  pairs  have  laid 
waste  extensive  districts  of  Australia  and  New  Zealand,  neces- 
sitated an  enormous  expenditure  for  their  extirpation,  and 
have  at  the  present  day*  caused  such  a  widespread  destruc- 


*  "  It  may  be  some  comfort  to  graziers  and  selectors  who  are  strug- 
gling, under  many  discouragements,  to  suppress  the  rabbit  plague  in 
Victoria,  to  learn  that  our  condition,  bad  as  it  is,  is  certainly  less  serious 
than  that  of  New  Zealand.  There,  not  only  is  an  immense  area  of  good 
country  being  abandoned  in  consequence  of  the  inability  of  lessees  to 
bear  the  great  expense  of  clearing  the  land  of  rabbits,  but,  owing  to 
the  increase  of  the  pest,  the  number  of  sheep  depastured  is  decreasing 
at  a  serious  rate.  Three  years  ago  the  number  exceeded  thirteen  mil- 
lions ;  but  it  is  estimated  that  they  have  since  been  diminished  by  two 
millions,  while  the  exports  of  the  colony  have,  in  consequence,  fallen 
off  to  the  extent  of  .£500,000  per  annum.  A  Babbit  Nuisance  Act  has 
been  in  existence  for  some  time,  but  it  is  obviously  inefficient,  and  it  is 
now  proposed  to  make  its  provisions  more  stringent,  and  applicable 
alike  to  the  Government  as  well  as  to  private  landowners.  A  select 
committee  of  both  Houses  of  the  Legislature,  which  has  recently  taken 
a  large  amount  of  evidence  upon  this  subject,  reports  in  the  most 
emphatic  terms  its  conviction  that  unless  immediate  and  energetic 
action  is  taken  to  arrest  the  further  extension  of,  and  to  suppress  the 
plague,  the  result  will  be  ruinous  to  the  colony.  A  perusal  of  the 
evidence  adduced  decidedly  supports  this  opinion.  Many  of  the 
squatters  cannot  be  accused  of  apathy.  Some  of  them  have  employed 
scores  of  men,  and  spent  thousands  of  pounds  a  year  in  ineffectual 
efforts  to  eradicate  the  rabbits  from  their  runs.  One  firm  last  year  is 
believed  to  have  killed  no  less  than  500,000 ;  but  the  following  spring 
their  run  was  in  as  bad  a  state  as  if  they  had  never  put  any  poison  down. 


THE  DRAGON.  189 


tion  of  property  in]  the  latter  country,  that  large  areas  of 
ground  have  actually  had  to  be  abandoned  and  entirely 
surrendered  to  them. 

It  is  interesting  to  find  in  the  work  of  the  Arabic  geo- 
grapher El  Edrisi  a  tradition  of  an  island  in  the  Atlantic, 
called  Laca,  off  the  north-west  coast  of  Africa,  having  been 
formerly  inhabited,  but  abandoned  on  account  of  the  excessive 
multiplication  of  serpents  on  it.  According  to  Scaligerus, 
the  mountains  dividing  the  kingdom  of  Narsinga  from 
Malabar  produce  many  wild  beasts,  among  which  may  be 
enumerated  winged  dragons,  who  are  able  to  destroy  any 
one  approaching  their  breath. 

Megasthenes  (tradente  jEliano)  relates  that  winged  ser- 
pents are  found  in  India ;  where  it  is  stated  that  they  are 
noxious,  fly  only  by  night,  and  that  contact  with  their  urine 
destroys  portions  of  animals. 

Similar  instances  of  failure  could  be  easily  multiplied.  It  is  found, 
as  with  us,  that  one  of  the  chief  causes  of  non-success  is  the  fact  that 
the  Government  do  not  take  sufficient  steps  to  destroy  the  rabbits  on 
unoccupied  Crown  lands.  This  foolish  policy,  of  course,  at  once 
diminishes  the  letting  value  of  the  adjacent  pastoral  country — to  such 
an  extent,  indeed,  that  instances  have  occurred  in  which  34,000  acres 
have  been  leased  for  ,£10  a  year.  Poison  is  regarded  as  the  most 
destructive  agent  that  can  be  employed,  and  it  is  especially  effective 
when  mixed  with  oats  and  wheat,  a  striking  testimony  to  the  value  of 
Captain  Raymond's  discovery.  Most  of  the  witnesses  examined  were 
strongly  of  opinion  that  the  Administration  of  the  Babbit  Suppression 
Act  should  not  be  left  to  private  and,  perhaps,  interested  persons,  as 
at  present,  but  should  be  conducted  by  officers  of  the  Government, 
probably  the  sheep  inspectors,  on  a  principle  similar  to  that  by  which 
the  scab  was  eradicated  from  the  flocks  of  the  colony.  The  joint  com- 
mittee adopted  this  view,  and  also  recommended  the  Legislature  to  enact 
that  all  unoccupied  Crown  land,  as  well  as  all  native,  reserved,  or  private 
land,  should  bear  a  proportionate  shai'e  of  the  cost  of  destroying  the 
rabbits,  and  of  administering  the  act.  It  is  to  be  hoped  that,  in  the 
midst  of  the  party  conflicts  which  have  so  impeded  practical  legislation 
this  session,  the  Parliament  will  yet  find  time  to  give  effect  to  the 
useful  recommendations  of  the  Eabbit  Nuisance  Committee." — Austra- 
lasia.n,  10th  September  1881. 


190  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Ammianus  Marcellinus  (who  wrote  about  the  fourth  cen- 
tury A.D.)  states  that  the  ibis  is  one  among  the  countless 
varieties  of  the  birds  of  Egypt,  sacred,  amiable,  and  valuable 
as  storing  up  the  eggs  of  serpents  in  his  nest  for 
food  and  so  diminishing  their  number.  He  also  refers 
to  their  encountering  flocks  of  winged  snakes,  coming 
laden  with  poison  from  the  marshes  of  Arabia,  and  over- 
coming them  in  the  air,  and  devouring  them  before  they  quit 
their  own  region.  And  Strabo,*  in  his  geographical  de- 
scription of  India,  speaks  of  serpents  of  two  cubits  in 
length,  with  membraneous  wings  like  bats  :  "  They  fly  at 
night,  and  let  fall  drops  of  urine  or  sweat,  which  occasions 
the  skins  of  persons  who  are  not  on  their  guard  to  putrefy." 
Isaiah  speaks  of  fiery  flying  serpents,  the  term  "  fiery"  being 
otherwise  rendered  in  the  Alexandrine  edition  of  the  Septua- 
gint  by  flavorowTcs " deadly,"  while  the  term  "fiery  "  is  explained 
by  other  authorities  as  referring  to  the  burning  sensation  pro- 
duced by  the  bite,  and  to  the  bright  colour  of  the  serpents,  f 
Collateral  evidence  of  the  belief  in  winged  serpents  is 
afforded  by  incidental  allusions  to  them  in  the  classics. 
Thus  Virgil  alludes  to  snakes  with  strident  wings  in  the  line 
Ilia  autem  attolit  stridentis  anguibus  alis.J 

Lucan§  refers  to  the  winged  serpents  of  Arabia  as  forming 
one  of  the  ingredients  of  an  incantation  broth  brewed  by  a 
Thessalian  witch,  Erictho,  with  the  object  of  resuscitating  a 
corpse,  and  procuring  replies  to  the  queries  of  Sextus,  son  of 
Pompey.  There  are  other  passages  in  Ovid  and  other  poets, 
in  which  the  words  "  winged  serpents"  are  made  use  of,  but 


*  Book  xv.  chap.  i.  §  37. 

f  See  Smith's  Dictionary  of  the  Bible,  p.  145-47.     Murray,  1863. 

I  JEneid,  Book  vii.  561. 

§  Non  Arabum  volucer  serpens,  innataque  rubris 
JEquoribus  custos  pretiosse  vipera  concb.se 
Aut  viventis  adhuc  Lybici  membrana  cerastse. — 

Pharsalia,  Book  vi.  677. 


THE  DRAGON.  191 


which  I  omit  to  render  here,  since  from  the  context  it  seems 
doubtful  whether  they  were  not  intended  as  poetic  appella- 
tions of  the  monster  to  which,  by  popular  consent,  the  term 
dragon  has  been  generally  restricted. 

I  feel  bound  to  refer,  although  of  course  without  attaching 
any  very  great  weight  of  evidence  to  them,  to  the  numerous 
stories  popular  in  the  East,  in  which  flying  serpents  play  a 
conspicuous  part,  the  serpents  always  having  something 
magical  or  supernatural  in  their  nature.  Such  tales  are 
found  in  the  entrancing  pages  of  the  Arabian  Nights,  or  in 
the  very  entertaining  folk-lore  of  China,  as  given  to  us  by 
Dr.  N.  P.  Dennys  of  Singapore.* 

The  latest  notice  of  the  flying  serpent  that  we  find  is  in  a 
work  by  P.  Belon  du  Mans,  published  in  1557,  entitled, 
Portraits  de  quelques  animaux,  poissons,  serpents,  herbes  et  arbres, 
hommes  et  femmes  d'Arabie,  Egypte,  et  Asie,  observes  par  P. 
Belon  du  Mans.  It  contains  a  drawing  of  a  biped  winged 
dragon,  with  the  notice  "Portrait  du  serpent  aile  "  and  the 
quatrain — 

Dangereuse  est  du  serpent  la  nature 
Qu'on  voit  voler  pres  le  mont  Sinai 
Qui  ne  serait,  de  la  voir,  esbahy, 
Si  on  a  peur,  voyant  sa  pourtraiture  ? 

This  is  copied  by  Gesner,  who  repeats  the  story  of  its  flying 
out  of  Arabia  into  Egypt,  f  I  attach  considerable  importance 
to  the  short  extract  which  I  shall  give  in  a  future  page  from 
the  celebrated  Chinese  work  on  geography  and  natural 
history,  the  Shan  Hai  King,  or  Mountain  and  Sea  Classic. 
The  Shan  tiai  King  claims  to  be  of  great  antiquity, 
and,  as  Mr.  Wylie  remarks,  though  long  looked  on  with 
distrust,  has  been  investigated  recently  by  scholars  of  great 


*  The  popular  illustrations  of  the  Story  of  the  Black  and  White  Snakes 
given  by  him,  a  favourite  story  among  the  Chinese,  always  represent 
them  as  winged.  Folk  Lore  of  China,  N.  P.  Dennys,  Ph.D. 

f  Erode  rip,  Zoological  Recreations,  p.  333. 


192  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


ability,  who  have  come  to  the  conclusion  that  it  is  at  least  as 
old  as  the  Chow  dynasty,  and  probably  older.  Now,  as  the 
Chow  dynasty  commenced  in  1122  B.C.,  it  is,  if  this  latter 
supposition  be  correct,  of  a  prior  age  to  the  works  of  Aristotle, 
Herodotus,  and  all  the  other  authors  we  have  been  quoting, 
and  therefore  is  the  earliest  work  on  natural  history  extant, 
and  the  description  of  the  flying  serpent  of  the  Sien  moun- 
tains (vide  infra)  the  earliest  record  of  the  existence  of  such 
creatures. 

Classical  Dragon  and  Mediceval  Dragon. 

While  the  flying  serpents  of  which  we  have  just  treated, 
will,  if  we  assent  to  the  reality  of  their  former  existence, 
assist  greatly  in  the  explanation  of  the  belief  in  a  winged 
dragon  so  far  as  Egypt,  Arabia,  and  adjacent  countries  are 
concerned,  it  seems  hardly  probable  that  they  are  sufficient 
to  account  for  the  wide- spread  belief  in  it.  This  we  have 
already  glanced  at ;  but  we  now  propose  to  examine  it  in 
greater  detail,  with  reference  to  countries  so  distant  from 
their  habitat  as  to  render  it  unlikely  that  their  description 
had  penetrated  there. 

The  poets  of  Greece  and  Eome  introduce  the  dragon  into 
their  fables,  as  an  illustration,  when  the  type  of  power  and 
ferocity  is  sought  for.  Homer,  in  his  description  of  the 
shield  of  Hercules,  speaks  of  "  The  scaly  horror  of  a  dragon 
coiled  full  in  the  central  field,  unspeakable,  with  eyes  oblique, 
retorted,  that  askant  shot  gleaming  fire."  So  Hesiod*  (750 
to  700  B.C.,  Grote),  describing  the  same  object,  says  :  "On 
its  centre  was  the  unspeakable  terror  of  a  dragon  glancing 
backward  with  eyes  gleaming  with  fire.  His  mouth,  too, 
was  filled  with  teeth  running  in  a  white  line,  dread  and  un- 
approachable ;  and  above  his  terrible  forehead,  dread  strife 


*  Compare  Shakspeare,  "  Peace,  Kent.  Come  not  between  the  Dragon 
and  his  wrath." 


THE  DRAGON.  193 


was  hovering,  as  he  raises  the  battle  rout.  On  it  likewise 
were  heads  of  terrible  serpents,  unspeakable,  twelve  in 
number,  who  were  wont  to  scare  the  race  of  men  on  earth, 
whosoever  chanced  to  wage  war  against  the  son  of  Jove." 

Here  it  is  noteworthy  that  Hesiod  distinguishes  between 
the  dragon  and  serpents. 

Ovid*  locates  the  dragon  slain  by  Cadmus  in  Boeotia, 
near  the  river  Cephisus.  He  speaks  of  it  as  being  hid  in  a 
cavern,  adorned  with  crests,  and  of  a  golden  colour.  He, 
like  the  other  poets,  makes  special  reference  to  the  eyes 
sparkling  with  fire,  and  it  may  be  noted  that  a  similar  bril- 
liancy is  mentioned  by  those  who  have  observed  pythons  in 
their  native  condition.  He  speaks  of  the  dragon  as  bluerf  and 
terribly  destructive  owing  to  the  possession  of  a  sting,  long 
constricting  folds,  and  venomous  breath. 

The  story  of  Ceres  flying  to  heaven  in  a  chariot  drawn 
by  two  dragons,  and  of  her  subsequently  lending  it  to  Trip- 
tolemus,  to  enable  him  to  travel  all  over  the  earth  and  dis- 
tribute corn  to  its  inhabitants,  is  detailed  or  alluded  to  by 
numerous  poets,  as  well  as  the  tale  of  Medea  flying  from 
Jason  in  a  chariot  drawn  by  winged  dragons.  CeresJ  is 


*  Metamorphoses,  Book  iii.  35,  translated  by  H.  J.  Biley ;   London, 
1872. 

t  In  reference  to  colours  so  bright  as  to  be  inconsistent  with  our 
knowledge  of  the  ordinary  colours  of  reptiles,  it  may  be  of  interest  to 
compare  the  description  by  D'Argensola — who  wrote  the  history  of  the 
successive  conquests  of  the  Moluccas,  by  the  Spaniards,  Portuguese  and 
Dutch — of  a  blue  and  golden  saurian  existing  upon  a  volcanic  mountain 
in  Tarnate.  "  II  y  a  aussi  sur  cette  inontagne  un  grand  lac  d'eau  douce, 
entoure  d'arbres,  dans  lequel  on  voit  de  crocodiles  azures  et  dores  qui 
ont  plus  d'un  brasse  de  longueur,  et  qui  se  plongent  dans  1'eau  lors 
qu'ils  entendent  des  hommes." — D'Argensola,  vol.  iii.  p.  4,  translated 
from  the  Spanish,  3  vols. ;  J.  Desbordes,  Amsterdam,  1706.  And  Pliny, 
Nat.  Hist.,  Book  viii.  chap,  xxviii.,  speaks  of  lizards  upon  Nysa,  a  moun- 
tain of  India,  twenty-four  feet  long,  their  colour  being  either  yellow, 
purple,  or  azure  blue. 

*  Ovid,  Fasti,  Book  iv.  501. 

13 


194  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


further  made  to  skim  the  waves  of  the  ocean,  much  after  the 
fashion  of  mythical  personages  depicted  in  the  wood-cuts 
illustrating  passages  in  the  Shan  Hai  King*  Amrnianus 
Marcellinus,  whose  history  ends  with  the  death  of  Valerius 
in  A.D.  378,  refers,  as  a  remarkable  instance  of  credulity,  to  a 
vulgar  rumour  that  the  chariot  of  Triptolemus  was  still 
extant,  and  had  enabled  Julian,  who  had  rendered  himself 
formidable  both  by  sea  and  land,  to  pass  over  the  walls  of, 
and  enter  into  the  city  of  Heraclea.  Though  rational  expla- 
nations are  afforded  by  the  theory  of  Bochart  and  Le  Clerc, 
that  the  story  is  based  upon  the  equivocal  meaning  of  a  Phoe- 
nician word,  signifying  either  a  winged  dragon  or  a  ship 
fastened  with  iron  nails  or  bolts  ;  or  by  that  of  Philodorus, 
as  cited  by  Eusebius,  who  says  that  his  ship  was  called  a 
flying  dragon,  from  its  carrying  the  figure  of  a  dragon  on  its 
prow ;  yet  either  simply  transposes  into  another  phase  the 
current  belief  in  a  dragon,  without  prejudicing  it. 

Diodorus  Siculus  disposes  of  the  Colchian  dragon  and 
the  golden-fleeced  ram  in  a  very  summary  manner,  as 
follows : — 

"It  is  said  that  Phryxus,  the  son  of  Athamas  and 
Nephele,  in  order  to  escape  the  snares  of  his  stepmother,  fled 
from  Greece  with  his  half-sister  Hellen,  and  that  whilst  they 
were  being  carried,  under  the  advice  of  the  gods,  by  the  ram 
with  a  golden  fleece  out  of  Europe  into  Asia,  the  girl  acci- 
dentally fell  off  into  the  sea,  which  on  that  account  has 
been  called  Hellespont.  Phryxus,  however,  being  carried 
safely  into  Colchis,  sacrificed  the  ram  by  the  order  of  an 
oracle,  and  hung  up  its  skin  in  a  shrine  dedicated  to 
Mars. 

"  After  this  the  king  learnt  from  an  oracle  that  he  would 
meet  his  death  when  strangers,  arriving  there  by  ship, 
should  have  carried  off  the  golden  fleece.  On  this  account, 

*  These  wood-cuts  occur  on  pp.  239,  240, 


THE  DRAGON.  195 


as  well  as  from  innate  cruelty,  the  man  was  induced  to  offer 
sacrifice  with  the  slaughter  of  his  guests ;  in  order  that,  the 
report  of  such  an  atrocity  being  spread  everywhere,  no  one 
might  dare  to  set  foot  within  his  dominions.  He  also  sur- 
rounded the  temple  with  a  wall,  and  placed  there  a  strong 
guard  of  Taurian  soldiery  ;  which  gave  rise  to  a  prodigious 
fiction  among  the  Greeks,  for  it  was  reported  by  them  that 
bulls,  breathing  fire  from  their  nostrils,  kept  watch  over  the 
shrine,  and  that  a  dragon  guarded  the  skin,  for  by  ambiguity 
the  name  of  the  Taurians  was  twisted  into  that  of  bulls,  and 
the  slaughter  of  guests  furnished  the  fiction  of  the  expiation 
of  fire.  In  like  manner  they  translated  the  name  of  the 
prefect  Draco,  to  whom  the  custody  of  the  temple  had  been 
assigned,  into  that  of  the  monstrous  and  horrible  creature  of 
the  poets." 

Nor  do  others  fail  to  give  a  similar  explanation  of  the 
fable  of  Phryxus,  for  they  say  that  Phryxus  was  conveyed  in 
a  ship  which  bore  on  its  prow  the  image  of  a  ram,  and  that 
Hellen,  who  was  leaning  over  the  side  under  the  misery  of 
sea-sickness,  tumbled  into  the  water. 

Among  other  subjects  of  poetry  are  the  dragon  which 
guarded  the  golden  apples  of  the  Hesperides,  and  the  two 
which  licked  the  eyes  of  Plutus  at  the  temple  of  JSsculapius 
with  such  happy  effect  that  he  began  to  see. 

Philostratus*  separates  dragons  into  Mountain  dragons  and 
Marsh  dragons.  The  former  had  a  moderate  crest,  which 
increased  as  they  grew  older,  when  a  beard  of  saffron  colour 
was  appended  to  their  chins ;  the  marsh  dragons  had  no 
crests.  He  speaks  of  their  attaining  a  size  so  enormous  that 
they  easily  killed  elephants.  JSlian  describes  their  length 
as  being  from  thirty  or  forty  to  a  hundred  cubits  ;  and  Posi- 
donius  mentions  one,  a  hundred  and  forty  feet  long,  that 
haunted  the  neighbourhood  of  Damascus  ;  and  another,  whose 

*  Broderip,  Zoological  Recreations,  p,  332. 

13  * 


196  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

lair  was  at  Macra,  near  Jordan,  was  an  acre  in  length,  and 
of  such  bulk  that  two  men  on  horseback,  with  the  monster 
between  them,  could  not  see  each  other. 

Ignatius  states  that  there  was  in  the  library  of  Constanti- 
nople the  intestine  of  a  dragon  one  hundred  and  twenty  feet 
long,  on  which  were  written  the  Iliad  and  Odyssey  in  letters 
of  gold.  There  is  no  ambiguity  in  Lucan's*  description  of 
the  ^Ethiopian  dragon  :  "  You  also,  the  dragon,  shining 
with  golden  brightness,  who  crawl  in  all  (other)  lands  as 
innoxious  divinities,  scorching  Africa  render  deadly  with 
wings  ;  you  move  the  air  on  high,  and  following  whole  herds, 
you  burst  asunder  vast  bulls,  embracing  them  with  your 
folds.  Nor  is  the  elephant  safe  through  his  size ;  everything 
you  devote  to  death,  and  no  need  have  you  of  venom  for  a 
deadly  fate."  Whereas  the  dragon  referred  to  by  Pliny 
(vide  ante,  p.  169),  as  also  combating  the  elephant,  is  evi- 
dently without  wings,  and  may  either  have  been  a  very 
gigantic  serpent,  or  a  lacertian  corresponding  to  the  Chinese 
idea  of  the  dragon. 

Descending  to  later  periods,  we  learn  from  Marcellinusf 
that  in  his  day  dragon  standards  were  among  the  chief 
insignia  of  the  Roman  army  ;  for,  speaking  of  the  triumphal 
entry  of  Constantine  into  Rome  after  his  triumph  over  Mag- 
nentius,  he  mentions  that  numbers  of  the  chief  officers  who 
preceded  him  were  surrounded  by  dragons  embroidered  on 
various  points  of  tissue,  fastened  to  the  golden  or  jewelled 
points  of  spears ;  the  mouths  of  the  dragons  being  open  so 
as  to  catch  the  wind,  which  made  them  hiss  as  though  they 
were  inflamed  with  anger,  while  the  coils  of  their  tails  were 
also  contrived  to  be  agitated  by  the  breeze.  And  again  he 
speaks  of  SilvanusJ  tearing  the  purple  silk  from  the  insignia 


*  Lucan,  Pharsalia,  Book  ix.  726-32. 

f  Book  xvi.  chap.  x. 

I  Book  xv.  chap.  v. ;  A.D.  355, 


THE  DRAGON.  197 


of  the  dragons  and  standards,  and  so  assuming  the  title  of 
Emperor. 

Several  nations,  as  the  Persians,  Parthians,  Scythians, 
&c.,  bore  dragons  on  their  standards  :  whence  the  standards 
themselves  were  called  dracones  or  dragons. 

It  is  probable  that  the  Romans  borrowed  this  custom  from 
the  Parthians,  or,  as  Casaubon  has  it,  from  the  Dacae,  or 
Codin,  from  the  Assyrians ;  but  while  the  Roman  dracones 
were,  as  we  learn  from  Ammianus  Marcellinus,  figures  of 
dragons  painted  in  red  on  their  flags,  among  the  Persians 
and  Parthians  they  were,  like  the  Roman  eagles,  figures  in 
relievo,  so  that  the  Romans  were  frequently  deceived  and 
took  them  for  real  dragons. 

The  dragon  plays  an  important  part  in  Celtic  mythology. 
Among  the  Celts,  as  with  the  Romans,  it  was  the  national 
standard. 

While  Cymri's  dragon,  from  the  Roman's  hold 
Spread  with  calm  wing  o'er  Carduel's  domes  of  gold.* 

The  fables  of  Merllin,  Nennius,  and  G-eoffry  describe  it  as 
red  in  colour,  and  so  differing  from  the  Saxon  dragon  which 
was  white.  The  hero  Arthur  carried  a  dragon  on  his  helm, 
and  the  tradition  of  it  is  moulded  into  imperishable  form  in 
the  Faerie  Queen.  A  dragon  infested  Lludd's  dominion,  and 
made  every  heath  in  England  resound  with  shrieks  on  each 
May-day  eve.  A  dragon  of  vast  size  and  pestiferous  breath 
lay  hidden  in  a  cavern  in  Wales,  and  destroyed  two  districts 
with  its  venom,  before  the  holy  St.  Samson  seized  and  threw 
it  into  the  sea. 

In  Celtic  chivalry,  the  word  dragon  came  to  be  used  for 
chief,  a  Pendragon  being  a  sort  of  dictator  created  in  times 
of  danger ;  and  as  the  knights  who  slew  a  chief  in  battle 
were  said  to  slay  a  dragon,  this  doubtless  helped  to  keep 
alive  the  popular  tradition  regarding  the  monster  which  had 

*  Lord  Lytton,  King  Arthur,  Book  i.  Stanza  4. 


198  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

been  carried  with  them  westward  in  their  migration  from 
the  common  Aryan  centre. 

The  Teutonic  tribes  who  invaded  and  settled  in  England 
bore  the  effigies  of  dragons  on  their  shields  and  banners,  and 
these  were  also  depicted  on  the  ensigns  of  various  German 
tribes.*  We  also  find  that  Thor  himself  was  a  slayer  of 
dragons,!  and  both  Siegfried  and  Beowulf  were  similarly 
engaged  in  the  Niebelungen-lied  and  the  epic  bearing  the 
name  of  the  latter.  |  The  Berserkers  not  only  named  their 
boats  after  the  dragon,  but  also  had  the  prow  ornamented 
with  a  dragon  figure-head ;  a  fashion  which  obtains  to  the 
present  day  among  the  Chinese,  who  have  an  annual  dragon- 
boat  festival,  in  which  long  snaky  boats  with  a  ferocious  dragon 
prow  run  races  for  prizes,  and  paddle  in  processions. 

So  deeply  associated  was  the  dragon  with  the  popular 
legends,  that  we  find  stories  of  encounters  with  it  passing 
down  into  the  literature  of  the  Middle  Ages  ;  and,  like  the 
heroes  of  old,  the  Christian  saints  won  their  principal  renown 
by  dragon  achievements.  Thus  among  the  dragon-slayers§ 
we  find  that — 

1.  St.    Phillip  the  Apostle  destroyed  a  huge  dragon  at 
Hierapolis  in  Phrygia. 

2.  St.  Martha  killed  the  terrible  dragon  called  Tarasque 
at  Aix  (la  Chapelle). 

3.  St.  Florent  killed  a  similar  dragon  which  haunted  the 
Loire. 

4.  St.  Cado,  St.  Maudet,  and  St.  Paul  did  similar  feats  in 
Brittany. 


*  Chamber's  Cyclopcedia,  1881. 

t  J.  Grimm,  Deutsche  Mythologie,  vol.  ii.  p.  653. 

|  A  dragon  without  wings  is  called  a  lintworm  or  lindworm,  which 
Grimm  explains  to  mean  a  beautiful  or  shining  worm  (here  again  we 
have  a  corroboration  of  the  idea  of  the  gold  and  silver  dragon  given 
ante.) 

§  Brewer's  Dictionary  of  Phrase  and  Fable. 


THE  DRAGON. 


199 


5.  St.  Keyne  of  Cornwall  slew  a  dragon. 

6.  St.  Michael,  St.  George,  St.  Margaret,  Pope  Sylvester, 
St.   Samson,  Archbishop  of  Dol,  Donatus  (fourth  century), 
St.  Clement  of  Metz,  killed  dragons. 

7.  St.  Remain  of  Rouen  destroyed  the  huge  dragon  called 
La  Gargouille,  which  ravaged  the  Seine. 

Moreover,  the  fossil  remains  of  animals  discovered  from 
time  to  time,  and  now  relegated  to  their  true  position  -in  the 
zoological  series,  were  supposed  to  be  the  genuine  remains 
of  either  dragons  or  giants,  according  to  the  bent  of  the 
mind  of  the  individual  who  stumbled  on  them  :  much  as  in 
the  present  day  large  fossil  bones  of  extinct  animals  of  all 
kinds  are  in  China  ascribed  to  dragons,  and  form  an  impor- 
tant item  in  the  Chinese  pharmacopoeia.  (Vide  extract  on 


FIG.  38. — SKELETON  of  AN  IGUANODON. 


200  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Dragon  bones  from  the  Pen-tsaou-kang-mu,  given  on  pp.  244 
-246.) 

The  annexed  wood-cut  of  the  skeleton  of  an  Iguanodon, 
found  in  a  coal-mine  at  Bernissant,  exactly  illustrates  the 
semi-erect  position  which  the  dragon  of  fable  is  reported  to 
have  assumed. 

Among  the  latest  surviving  beliefs  of  this  nature  may  be 
cited  the  dragon  of  Wantley  (Wharncliffe,  Yorkshire),  who 
was  slain  by  More  of  More  Hall.  He  procured  a  suit  of 
armour  studded  with  spikes,  and,  proceeding  to  the  well 
where  the  dragon  had  his  lair,  kicked  him  in  the  mouth, 
where  alone  he  was  vulnerable.  The  Lambton  worm  is 
another  instance. 

The  explanations  of  these  legends  attempted  by  mytho- 
logists,  based  on  the  supposition  that  the  dragons  which  are 
their  subjects  are  simply  symbolic  of  natural  phenomena,  are 
ingenious,  and  perhaps  in  many  instances  sufficient,  but  do 
not  affect,  as  I  have  before  remarked,  the  primitive  and  con- 
served belief  in  their  previous  existence  as  a  reality. 

Thus,  the  author  of  British  Goblins  suggests  that  for  the 
prototype  of  the  red  dragon,  which  haunted  caverns  and 
guarded  treasures  in  Wales,  we  must  look  in  the  lightning 
caverns  of  old  Aryan  fable,  and  deduces  the  fire-darting 
dragons  of  modern  lore  from  the  shining  hammer  of  Thor, 
and  the  lightning  spear  of  Odin. 

The  stories  of  ladies  guarded  by  dragons  are  explained 
on  the  supposition*  that  the  ladies  were  kept  in  the  secured 
part  of  the  feudal  castles,  round  which  the  walls  wound,  and 
that  an  adventurer  had  to  scale  the  walls  to  gain  access  to 
the  ladies;  when  there  were  two  walls,  the  authors  of 
romance  said  that  the  assaulter  overcame  two  dragons,  and 
so  on.  St.  Eomain,  when  he  delivered  the  city  of  Rouen 
from  a  dragon  which  lived  in  the  river  Seine,  simply  pro- 

*  Eev.  Dr.  Brewer,  Dictionary  of  Phrase  and  Fable,  London. 


THE  DRAGON.  '201 


tected  the  city  from  an  overflow,  just  as  Apollo  (the  sun)  is 
symbolically  said  to  have  destroyed  the  serpent  Python,  or, 
in  other  words,  dried  up  an  overflow.  And  the  dragon  of 
Wantley  is  supposed  by  Dr.  Percy  to  have  been  an  over- 
grown rascally  attorney,  who  cheated  some  children  of  their 
estates,  but  was  compelled  to  disgorge  by  a  gentleman 
named  More,  who  went  against  him  armed  with  the  "  spikes 
of  the  law,"  whereupon  the  attorney  died  of  vexation. 

Furthermore,  our  dragoons  were  so  denominated  because 
they  were  armed  with  dragons,  that  is,  with  short  muskets, 
which  spouted  fire  like  dragons,  and  had  the  head  of  a 
dragon  wrought  upon  their  muzzle. 

This  fanciful  device  occurs  also  among  the  Chinese,  for  a 
Jesuit,  who  accompanied  the  Emperor  of  China  on  a  journey 
into  Western  Tartary  in  1683,  says,  "  This  was  the  reason 
of  his  coming  into  their  country  with  so  great  an  army,  and 
such  vast  military  preparations ;  he  having  commanded  several 
pieces  of  cannon  to  be  brought,  in  order  for  them  to  be  dis- 
charged from  time  to  time  in  the  valleys ;  purposely  that  the 
noise  and  fire,  issuing  from  the  mouths  of  the  dragons,  with 
which  they  were  adorned,  might  spread  terror  around." 

Though  dragons  have  completely  dropped  out  of  all 
modern  works  on  natural  history,  they  were  still  retained  and 
regarded  as  quite  orthodox  until  a  little  before  the  time  of 
Cuvier;  specimens,  doubtless  fabricated  like  the  ingeniously 
constructed  mermaid  of  Mr.  Barnum,  were  exhibited  in  the 
museums ;  and  voyagers  occasionally  brought  back,  as 
authentic  stories  of  their  existence,  fables  which  had  perco- 
lated through  time  and  nations  until  they  had  found  a  home 
in  people  so  remote  from  their  starting  point  as  to  cause  a 
complete  obliteration  of  their  passage  and  origin. 

For  instance,  Pigafetta,  in  a  report  of  the  kingdom  of 
Congo,*  "  gathered  out  of  the  discourses  of  Mr.  E.  Lopes,  a 

*  The  Harleian  Collection  of  Travels,  vol.  ii.  p.  457.     1745. 


202  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Portuguese, "  speaking  of  the  province  of  Bemba,  which  he 
defines  as  "on  the  sea  coast  from  the  river  Ambrize,  until 
the  river  Coanza  towards  the  south,"  says  of  serpents, 
"  There  are  also  certain  other  creatures  which,  being  as  big 
as  rams,  have  wings  like  dragons,  with  long  tails,  and  long 
chaps,  and  divers  rows  of  teeth,  and  leed  upon  raw  flesh. 
Their  colour  is  blue  and  green,  their  skin  painte'd  like  scales, 
and  they  have  two  feet  but  no  more.*  The  Pagan  negroes 
used  to  worship  them  as  gods,  and  at  this  day  you  may  see 
divers  of  them  that  are  kept  for  a  marvel.  And  because  they 
are  very  rare,  the  chief  lords  there  curiously  preserve  them, 
and  suffer  the  people  to  worship  them,  which  tendeth  greatly 
to  their  profits  by  reason  of  the  gifts  and  oblations  which  the 
people  offer  unto  them." 

And  John  Barbot,  Agent-General  of  the  Royal  Company  of 
Africa,  in  his  description  of  the  coasts  of  South  Guinea,f 
says:  "Some  blacks  assuring  me  that  they  (i.e.  snakes) 
were  thirty  feet  long.  They  also  told  me  there  are  winged 
serpents  or  dragons  having  a  forked  tail  and  a  prodigious 
wide  mouth,  full  of  sharp  teeth,  extremely  mischievous  to 
mankind,  and  more  particularly  to  small  children.  If  we 
may  credit  this  account  of  the  blacks,  they  are  of  the  same 
sort  of  winged  serpents  which  some  authors  tell  us  are  to  be 
found  in  Abyssinia,  being  very  great  enemies  to  the  elephants. 
Some  such  serpents  have  been  seen  about  the  river  Senegal, 
and  they  are  adorned  and  worshipped  as  snakes  are  at  Wida 
or  Fida,  that  is,  in  a  most  religious  manner." 

Ulysses  Aldrovandus,J  who  published  a,  large  folio  volume 
on  serpents  and  dragons,  entirely  believed  in  the  existence  of 
the  latter,  and  gives  two  wood  engravings  of  a  specimen 


*  The  italics  are  mine. 

f  Churchill,  Collection  of  Voyages,  vol.  v.  p.  213  ;  London,  1746. 
I  Ulyssis   Aldrovandi  Serpenium    et   Dracouum   Histories;  Bonouise, 
1640. 


THE  DRAGON '. 


which  he  professes  to  have  received  in  the  year  1551,  of  a 
true  dried  ^Ethiopian  dragon. 

He  describes  it  as  having  two  feet  armed  with  claws,  and 
two  ears,  with  five  prominent  and  conspicuous  tubercles  on 
the  back.  The  whole  was  ornamented  with  green  and  dusky 
scales.  Above,,  it  bore  wings  fit  for  flight,  and  had  a  long  and 
flexible  tail,  coloured  with  yellowish  scales,  such  as  shone  on 
the  belly  and  throat.  The  mouth  was  provided  with  sharp 
teeth,  the  inferior  part  of  the  head,  towards  the  ears,  was 
even,  the  pupil  of 'the  eye  black,  with  a  tawny  surrounding, 
and  the  nostrils  were  two  in  number,  and  open. 

He  criticises  Ammianus  Marcellinus  for  his  disbelief  in 
winged  dragons,'  and  states  in  further  justification  of  his 
censure  that  he  had  heard,  from  men  worthy  of  confidence, 
that  in  that  portion  of  Pistorian  territory  called  Cotone,  a 
great  dragon  was  seen  whose  wings  were  interwoven  with 
sinews  a  cubit  in  length,  and  were  of  considerable  width ; 
this  beast  also  possessed  two  short  feet  provided  with  claws 
like  those  of  an  eagle.  The  whole  animal  was  covered  with 
scales.  The  gaping  mouth  was  furnished  with  big  teeth,  it 
had  ears,  and  was  as  big  as  a  hairy  bear.  Aldrovandus 
sustains  his  argument  by  quotations  from  the  classics  and 
reference  to  more  recent  authors.  He  quotes  Isidorus  as 
stating  that  the  winged  Arabian  serpents  were  called  Sirens, 
while  their  venom  was  so  effective  that  their  bite  was  attended 
by  death  rather  than  pain;  this  confirms  the  account  of 
Solinus. 

He  instances  Gesner  as  saying  that,  in  1543,  he  under- 
stood that  a  kind  of  dragon  appeared  near  Styria,  within  the 
confines  of  Germany,  which  had  feet  like  lizards,  and  wings 
after  the  fashion  of  a  bat,  with  an  incurable  bite,  and  says 
these  statements  are  confirmed  by  Froschonerus  in  his  work 
on  Styria  (idque  Froschonerus  ex  Bibliophila  Stirio  narrabat). 
He  classes  dragons  (which  he  considers  as  essentially  winged 
animals)  either  as  footless  or  possessing  two  or  four  feet. 


204  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

He  refers  to  a  description  by  Scaliger*  of  a  species  of 
serpent  four  feet  long,  and  as  thick  as  a  man's  arm,  with 
cartilaginous  wings  pendent  from  the  sides.  He  also  men- 
tions an  account  by  Brodeus,  of  a  winged  dragon  which  was 
brought  to  Francis,  the  invincible  King  of  the  Gauls,  by  a 
countryman  who  had  killed  it  with  a  mattock  near  Sane- 
tones,  and  which  was  stated  to  have  been  seen  by  many  men 
of  approved  reputation,  who  thought  it  had  migrated  from 
transmarine  regions  by  the  assistance  of  the  wind. 

Cardanf  states  that  whilst  he  resided  in  Paris  he  saw  five 
winged  dragons  in  the  William  Museum  ;  these  were  biped, 
and  possessed  of  wings  so  slender  that  it  was  hardly  pos- 
sible that  they  could  fly  with  them.  Cardan  doubted  their 
having  been  fabricated,  since  they  had  been  sent  in  vessels 
at  different  times,  and  yet  all  presented  the  same  remarkable 
form.  Bellonius  states  that  he  had  seen  whole  carcases 
of  winged  dragons,  carefully  prepared,  which  he  considered 
to  be  of  the  same  kind  as  those  which  fly  out  of  Arabia 
into  Egypt ;  they  were  thick  about  the  belly,  had  two  feet, 
and  two  wings,  whole  like  those  of  a  bat,  and  a  snake's 
tail. 

It  would  be  useless  to  multiply  examples  of  the  stories,  no 
doubt  fables,  current  in  mediaeval  times,  and  I  shall  there- 
fore only  add  here  two  of  those  which,  though  little 
known,  are  probably  fair  samples  of  the  whole.  It  is 
amusing  to  find  the  story  of  Sindbad's  escape  from  the  Valley 
of  Diamonds  reappearing  in  Europe  during  the  Middle  Ages, 
with  a  substitution  of  the  dragon  for  the  roc.  Athanasius 
Kircher,  in  the  Mundus  Subterraneus,  gives  the  story  of  a 
Lucerne  man  who,  in  wandering  over  Mount  Pilate,  tumbled 
into  a  cavern  from  which  there  was  no  exit,  and,  in  search- 
ing round,  discovered  the  lair  of  two  dragons,  who  proved 


*  Scaliger,  lib.  iii.  Miscell.  cap.  i.    See  ante,  p.  182, "  Winged  Serpents." 
f  De  Naturd  Eerum,  lib.  vii.,  cap.  29. 


THE  DRAGON. 


205 


206  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

more  tender  than  their  reputation.  Unharmed  by  them  he 
remained  for  the  six  winter  months,  without  any  other  suste- 
nance than  that  which  he  derived  from  licking  the  moisture 
off  the  rock,  in  which  he  followed  their  example.  Noticing 
the  dragons  preparing  for  flying  out  on  the  approach  of 
spring,  by  stretching  and  unfolding  their  wings,  he  attached 
himself  by  his  girdle  to  the  tail  of  one  of  them,  and  so  was 
restored  to  the  upper  world,  where,  unfortunately,  the  return 
to  the  diet  to  which  he  had  been  so  long  unaccustomed 
killed  him.  In  memory,  however,  of  the  event,  he  left  his 
goods  to  the  Church,  and  a  monument  illustrative  of  his 
escape  was  erected  in  the  Ecclesiastical  College  of  St.  Leo- 
degaris  at  Lucerne.  Kircher  had  himself  seen  this,  and  it 
was  accepted  as  an  irrefragable  proof  of  the  story. 

Another  story  is  an  account  also  given  by  A.  Kircher,*  of 
the  fight  between  a  dragon  and  a  knight  named  G-ozione,  in 
the  island  of  Rhodes,  in  the  year  1349  A.D.  This  monster 
is  described  as  of  the  bulk  of  a  horse  or  ox,  with  a  long  neck 
and  serpent's  head — tipped  with  mule's  ears — the  mouth 
widely  gaping  and  furnished  with  sharp  teeth,  eyes  spark- 
ling as  though  they  flashed  fire,  four  feet  provided  with  claws 
like  a  bear,  and  a  tail  like  a  crocodile,  the  whole  body  being 
coated  with  hard  scales.  It  had  two  wings,  blue  above,  but 
blood-coloured  and  yellow  underneath ;  it  was  swifter 
than  a  horse,  progressing  partly  by  flight  and  partly  by 
running.  The  knight,  being  solicited  by  the  chief  magis- 
trate, retired  into  the  country,  when  he  constructed  an  imita- 
tion dragon  of  paper  and  tow,  and  purchased  a  charger  and 
two  courageous  English  dogs ;  he  ordered  slaves  to  snap  the 
jaws  and  twist  the  tail  about  by  means  of  cords,  while  he 
urged  his  horse  and  dogs  on  to  the  attack.  After  practising 
for  two  months,  these  latter  could  scarcely  retain  their  frenzy 
at  the  mere  sight  of  the  image.  He  then  proceeded  to 

*  Athanasii  Kircheri  Mundus  Subterraneus,  Book  viii.  27. 


THE  DRAGON. 


207 


Rhodes,  and  after  offering  his  vows  in  the  Church  of  St. 
Stephen,  repaired  to  the  fatal  cave,  instructing  his  slaves  to 
witness  the  combat  from  a  lofty  rock,  and  hasten  to  him 
with  remedies,  if  after  slaying  the  dragon  he  should  be  over- 
come by  the  poisonous  exhalations,  or  to  save  themselves,  in 
the  event  of  his  being  slain.  Entering  the  lair  he  excited 
the  beast  with  shouts  and  cries,  and  then  awaited  it  outside. 
The  dragon  appearing,  allured  by  the  expectation  of  an  easy 
prey,  rushed  on  him,  both  running  and  flying ;  the  knight 
shattered  his  spear  at  the  first  onset  on  the  scaly  carcase,  and 
leaping  from  his  horse  continued  the  contest  with  sword  and 
shield.  The  dragon,  raising  itself  on  its  hind  legs,  endea- 
voured to  grasp  the  knight  with  his  fore  ones,  giving  the 


FIG.  40.— THE  DKAGON  OF  THE  DRACHENFELDT.     (Athanasius  Kircher.) 

latter  an  opportunity  of  striking  him  in  the  softer  parts  of 
the  neck.  At  last  both  fell  together,  the  knight  being 
exhausted  by  the  fatigue  of  the  conflict,  or  by  mephitic  exha- 
lations. The  slaves,  according  to  instruction,  rushed  for- 
ward, dragged  off  the  monster  from  their  master,  and  fetched 
water  in  their  caps  to  restore  him  ;  after  which  he  mounted 
his  horse  and  returned  in  triumph  to  the  city,  where  he  was 
at  first  ungratefully  received,  but  afterwards  rewarded  with 


208  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

the  highest  ranks  of  the   order,   and  created  magistrate  of 
the  province.* 

Kircher  had  a  very  pious  belief  in  dragons.  He  says : 
"  Since  monstrous  animals  of  this  kind  for  the  most  part 
select  their  lairs  and  breeding-places  in  subterraneous  caverns. 
I  have  considered  it  proper  to  include  them  under  the  head 
of  subterraneous  beasts.  I  am  aware  that  two  kinds  of  this 
animal  have  been  distinguished  by  authors,  the  one  with,  the 
other  without,  wings.  No  one  either  can  or  ought  to  doubt 
concerning  the  latter  kind  of  creature,  unless  perchance  he 
dares  to  contradict  the  Holy  Scripture,  for  it  would  be  an 
impious  thing  to  say  it  when  Daniel  makes  mention  of  the 
divine  worship  accorded  to  the  dragon  Bel  by  the  Baby- 
lonians, and  after  the  mention  of  the  dragon  made  in  other 
parts  of  the  sacred  writings." 

Harris,  in  his  Collection  of  Voyages,^  gives  a  singular 
resume.  He  says : — "  We  have,  in  an  ancient  author,  a  very 
large  and  circumstantial  account  of  the  taking  of  a  dragon 
on  the  frontiers  of  Ethiopia,  which  was  one  and  twenty  feet 
in  length,  and  was  carried  to  Ptolemy  Philadelphus,  who 
very  bountifully  rewarded  such  as  ran  the  hazard  of  pro- 
curing him  this  beast. — Diodorus  Siculus,  lib.  iii.  .  .  .  Yet 
terrible  as  these  were  they  fall  abundantly  short  of  monsters 
of  the  same  species  in  India,  with  respect  to  which  St. 
Ambroset  tells  us  that  there  were  dragons  seen  in  the  neigh- 
bourhood of  the  Ganges  nearly  seventy  cubits  in  length.  It 
was  one  of  this  size  that  Alexander  and  his  army  saw  in  a 
cave,  where  it  was  fed,  either  out  of  reverence  or  from 
curiosity,  by  the  inhabitants ;  and  the  first  lightning  of  its 


*  Probably  many  of  my  readers  are  acquainted  with  Schiller's  poem 
based  on  this  story,  and  with  the  beautiful  designs  by  Ketsch  illus- 
trating it. 

t  Harris,  Collection  of  Voyages,  vol.  i.  p.  474;  London,  1764. 

J  De  Moribus  Brachmanornm,  p.  63.  Strabo,  lib.  16,  p.  75.  Bochart 
Hieroz,  p.  11,  lib.  3,  cap.  13. 


THE  DRAGON.  209 


eyes,  together  with  its  terrible  hissing,  made  a  strong  im- 
pression on  the  Macedonians,  who,  with  all  their  courage, 
could  not  help  being  frighted  at  so  horrid  a  spectacle.*  The 
dragon  is  nothing  more  than  a  serpent  of  enormous  size  ; 
and  they  formerly  distinguished  three  sorts  of  them  in  the 
Indies,  viz.  such  as  were  found  in  the  mountains,  such  as 
were  bred  in  caves  or  in  the  flat  country,  and  such  as  were 
found  in  fens  and  marshes. 

"  The  first  is  the  largest  of  all,  and  are  covered  with  scales 
as  resplendent  as  polished  gold.f  These  have  a  kind  of 
beard  hanging  from  their  lower  jaw,  their  eyebrows  large, 
and  very  exactly  arched  ;  their  aspect  the  most  frightful 
that  can  be  imagined,  and  their  cry  loud  and  shrill ;  {  their 
crests  of  a  bright  yellow,  and  a  protuberance  on  their  heads 
of  the  colour  of  a  burning  coal. 

"  Those  of  the  flat  country  differ  from  the  former  in 
nothing  but  in  having  their  scales  of  a  silver  colour, §  and  in 
their  frequenting  rivers,  to  which  the  former  never  come. 

"  Those  that  live  in  marshes  and  fens  are  of  a  dark  colour, 
approaching  to  a  black,  move  slowly,  have  no  crest,  or  any 
rising  upon  their  heads. jj  Strabo  says  that  the  painting  them 
with  wings  is  the  effect  of  fancy,  and  directly  contrary  to 
truth,  but  other  naturalists  and  travellers  both  ancient  and 
modern  affirm  that  there  are  some  of  these  species  winged.^" 


*  JElian,  De  Animal,  lib.  xv.  cap.  21. 

t  Strabo,  lib.  xvi. 

J  Gosse  tells  us  that  it  is  still  a  common  belief  in  Jamaica  that 
crested  snakes  exist  there  which  crow  like  a  cock. 

§  Strabo,  lib.  xvi. 

||  Jonston,  Theatr.  Animal,  tome  ii.  p.  34,  "  De  Serpentibus."  Note. 
—It  is  interesting  to  record  that  in  China,  to  the  present  day,  the 
tradition  of  the  gold  and  silver  scaled  species  of  dragons  remains  alive. 
Two  magnificent  dragons,  200  feet  and  150  feet  long,  representing 
respectively  the  gold  and  silver  dragon,  formed  part  of  the  processions 
in  Hongkong  in  December  1881,  in  honour  of  the  young  princes. 

T  Strabo,  lib.  xvi. 

H 


210  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Pliny  says  their  bite  is  not  venomous,  other  authors  deny 
this.  Pliny  gives  a  long  catalogue  of  medical  and  magical 
properties,  which  he  ascribes  to  the  skin,  flesh,  bones,  eyes, 
and  teeth  of  the  dragon,  also  a  valuable  stone  in  its  head. 
*  They  hung  before  the  mouth  of  the  dragon  den  a  piece  of 
stuff  flowered  with  gold,  which  attracted  the  eyes  of  the 
beast,  till  by  the  sound  of  soft  music  they  lulled  him  to 
sleep,  and  then  cut  off  his  head.'  ' 

I  do  not  find  Harris's  statement  in  Diodorus  Siculus,  the 
author  quoted,  but  there  is  the  very  circumstantial  description 
of  a  serpent  thirty  cubits  (say  forty-five  feet)  in  length,  which 
was  captured  alive  by  stratagem,  the  first  attempt  by  force 
having  resulted  in  the  death  of  several  of  the  party.  This 
was  conveyed  to  Ptolemy  II.  at  Alexandria,  where  it  was 
placed  in  a  den  or  chamber  suitable  for  exhibition,  and 
became  an  object  of  general  admiration.  Diodorus  says : 
"  When,  therefore,  so  enormous  a  serpent  was  open  for  all  to 
see,  credence  could  no  longer  be  refused  the  Ethiopians,  or 
their  statements  be  received  as  fables  ;  for  they  say  that  they 
have  seen  in  their  country  serpents  so  vast  that  they  can  not 
only  swallow  cattle  and  other  beasts  of  the  same  size,  but 
that  they  also  fight  with  the  elephant,  embracing  his  limbs 
so  tightly  in  the  fold  of  their  coils  that  he  is  unable  to  move, 
and,  raising  their  neck  up  underneath  his  trunk,  direct  their 
head  against  the  elephant's  eyes  ;  having  destroyed  his  sight 
by  fiery  rays  like  lightning,  they  dash  him  to  the  ground, 
and,  having  done  so,  tear  him  to  pieces." 

In  an  account  of  the  castle  of  Fahender,  formerly  one  of 
the  most  considerable  castles  of  Ears,  it  is  stated — "  Such  is 
the  historical  foundation  of  an  opinion  generally  prevalent, 
that  the  subterranean  recesses  of  this  deserted  edifice  are 
still  replete  with  riches.  The  talisman  has  not  been  for- 
gotten ;  and  tradition  adds  another  guardian  to  the  previous 
deposit,  a  dragon  or  winged  serpent;  this  sits  for  ever 
brooding  over  the  treasure  which  it  cannot  enjoy." 


THE  DRAGON.  211 


I  shall  examine,  on  a  future  occasion,  how  far  those 
figures  correspond  to  the  Persian  ideas  of  dragons  and  ser- 
pents, the  azhdaha  (\&A')\  =  dragon)  and  mar  (;U=:  snake), 
which,  as  various  poets  relate,  are  constant  guardians  of 
every  subterraneous  ganj  (~j£  =  treasure). 

The  mar  at  least  may  be  supposed  the  same  as  that 
serpent  which  guards  the  golden  fruit  in  the  garden  of  the 
Hesperides. 


212  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


CHAPTER  VII. 

THE    CHINESE    DRAGON. 

WE  now  approach  the  consideration  of  a  country  in  which 
the  belief  in  the  existence  of  the  dragon  is  thoroughly 
woven  into  the  life  of  the  whole  nation.  Yet  at  the  same 
time  it  has  developed  into  such  a  medley  of  mythology  and 
superstition  as  to  materially  strengthen  our  conviction  of  the 
reality  of  the  basis  upon  which  the  belief  has  been  founded, 
though  it  involves  us  in  a  mass  of  intricate  perplexities  in 
connection  with  the  determination  of  its  actual  period  of 
existence. 

There  is  no  country  so  conservative  as  China,  no  nation 
which  can  boast  of  such  high  antiquity,  as  a  collective  people 
permanently  occupying  the  same  regions,  and  preserving 
records  of  their  polity,  manners,  and  surroundings  from  the 
earliest  date  of  their  occupation  of  the  territory  which  still 
remains  the  centre  of  their  civilization  ;  and  there  is  none  in 
which  dragon  culture  has  been  more  persistently  maintained 
down  to  the  present  day. 

Its  mythologies,  histories,  religions,  popular  stories,  and 
proverbs,  all  teem  with  references  to  a  mysterious  being  who 
has  a  physical  nature  and  spiritual  attributes.  Gifted  with 
an  accepted  form,  which  he  has  the  supernatural  power  of 
casting  off  for  the  assumption  of  others,  he  has  the  power 
of  influencing  the  weather,  producing  droughts  or  fertilizing 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  213 

rains  at  pleasure,  of  raising  tempests  and  allaying  them. 
Volumes  could  be  compiled  from  the  scattered  legends  which 
everywhere  abound  relating  to  this  subject ;  but  as  they  are, 
for  the  most  part,  like  our  mediaeval  legends,  echoes  of  each 
other,  no  useful  purpose  would  be  served  by  doing  so,  and  I 
therefore  content  myself  with  drawing,  somewhat  copiously, 
from  one  or  two  of  the  chief  sources  of  information. 

As,  however,  Chinese  literature  is  but  little  known  or 
valued  in  England,  it  is  desirable  that  I  should  devote  some 
space  to  the  consideration  of  the  authority  which  may  be 
fairly  claimed  for  the  several  works  from  which  I  shall  make 
quotations,  bearing  on  the  Chinese  testimony  of  the  past 
existence,  and  date  of  existence,  of  the  dragon  and  other 
so-called  mythical  animals. 

Incidental  comments  on  natural  history  form  a  usual  part 
of  every  Chinese  geographical  work,  but  collective  descrip- 
tions of  animals  are  rare  in  the  literature  of  the  present,  and 
almost  unique  in  that  of  the  past.  We  are,  therefore,  forced 
to  rely  on  the  side-lights  occasionally  afforded  by  the  older 
classics,  and  on  one  or  two  works  of  more  than  doubtful 
authenticity  which  claim,  equally  with  them,  to  be  of  high 
antiquity.  The  works  to  which  I  propose  to  refer  more 
immediately  are  the  Yih  King,  the  Bamboo  Books,  the  Shu 
King,  the  'Rh  Ya,  the  Shan  Hai  King,  the  Pan  Ts'ao  Kang 
Muh,  and  the  Yuen  Kien  Lei  Han. 

As  it  is  well  known  that  all  the  ancient  books,  with  the 
exception  of  those  on  medicine,  divination,  and  husbandry, 
were  ordered  to  be  destroyed  in  the  year  B.C.  212  by  the 
Emperor  Tsin  Shi  Hwang  Ti,  under  the  threatened  penalty 
for  non-compliance  of  branding  and  labour  on  the  walls  for 
four  years,  and  that  a  persecution  of  the  literati  was  com- 
menced bv  him  in  the  succeeding  year,  which  resulted  in  the 
burying  alive  in  pits  of  four  hundred  and  sixty  of  their 
number,  it  may  be  reasonably  objected  that  the  claims  to 
high  antiquity  which  some  of  the  Chinese  classics  put  forth, 


214  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


are,  to  say  the  least,  doubtful,  and,  in  some  instances,  highly 
improbable. 

This  question  has  been  well  considered  by  Mr.  Legge  in 
his  valuable  translation  of  the  Chinese  Classics.  He  points 
out  that  the  tyrant  died  within  three  years  after  the  burning 
of  the  books,  and  that  the  Han  dynasty  was  founded  only 
eleven  years  after  that  date,  in  B.C.  201,  shortly  after  which 
attempts  were  commenced  to  recover  the  ancient  literature. 
He  concludes  that  vigorous  efforts  to  carry  out  the  edict 
would  not  be  continued  longer  than  the  life  of  its  author — 
that  is,  not  for  more  than  three  years — and  that  the  materials 
from  which  the  classics,  as  they  come  down  to  us,  were  com- 
piled and  edited  in  the  two  centuries  preceding  the  Christian 
era,  were  genuine  remains,  going  back  to  a  still  more  remote 
period. 

THE  "Yra  KING"  OR  "Yn  KING." 

The  Yih  King  is  one  of  those  books  specially  excepted  from 
the  general  destruction  of  the  books.  References  in  it  to 
the  dragon  are  not  numerous,  and  will  be  found  as  quota- 
tions in  the  extracts  from  the  large  encyclopaedia  Yuen 
Kien  Lei  Han,  given  hereafter.  This  work  has  hitherto 
been  very  imperfectly  understood  even  by  the  Chinese 
themselves,  but  the  recent  researches  of  M.  Terrien  de  la 
Couperie  lead  us  to  suppose  that  our  translations  have 
been  imperfect,  from  the  fact  that  many  symbols  have 
different  significations  in  the  present  day  to  those  which 
they  had  in  very  ancient  times,  and  that  a  special  dic- 
tionary of  archaic  meanings  must  be  prepared  before  an 
accurate  translation  can  be  arrived  at,  a  consummation 
which  may  shortly  be  expected  from  his  labours.  I 
find  in  my  notes,  taken  from  the  manuscript  of  a  lecture 
given  before  the  Ningpo  Book  Club  in  1870,  by  the  Kev.  J. 
Butler,  of  the  Presbyterian  Mission,  that  "  the  way  in  which 
the  dragon  came  to  represent  the  Emperor  and  the  Throne 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  215 

of  China*  is  accounted  for  in  the  Yih  King  as  follows  : — 
The  chief  dragon  has  his  abode  in  the  sky,  and  all  clouds 
and  vapours,  winds  and  rains  are  under  his  control.  He 
can  send  rain  or  withhold  it  at  his  pleasure,  and  hence  all 
vegetable  life  is  dependent  on  him.  So  the  Emperor,  from 
his  exalted  throne,  watches  over  the  interests  of  his  people, 
and  confers  on  them  those  temporal  and  spiritual  blessings 
without  which  they  would  perish."  I  abstain  from  dwelling 
on  this  or  any  other  passages  in  the  Yih  King,  pending  the 
translation  promised  by  M.  De  la  Couperie,  the  nature  of 
whose  views  on  it  are  condensed  in  the  notef  attached,  being 
extracts  from  his  papers  on  the  subject. 


*  lu  China  the  dragon  is  peculiarly  the  emblem  of  imperial  power, 
as  with  us  the  lion  is  of  the  kingly.  The  Emperor  is  said  to  be  seated 
on  the  dragon  throne.  A  five-clawed  dragon  is  embroidered  on  the 
Emperor's  court-robes.  It  often  surrounds  his  edicts,  and  the  title- 
pages  of  books  published  by  his  authority,  and  dragons  are  inscribed 
on  his  banners.  It  is  drawn  stretched  out  at  full  length  or  curled  up 
with  two  legs  pointing  forwards  and  two  backwards ;  sometimes  holding 
a  pearl  in  one  hand,  and  surrounded  by  clouds  and  fire. 

f  The  Yih  King — extracts  from  papers  by  Monsieur  De  la  Couperie, 
in  the  Journal  of  the  Royal  Asiatic  Society. 

"  The  Yih  King  is  the  oldest  of  the  Chinese  books,  and  is  the 
mysterious  classic  which  requires  '  a  prolonged  attention  to  make  it  reveal 
its  secrets ' ;  it  has  peculiarities  of  style,  making  it  the  most  difficult  of 
all  the  Chinese  classics  to  present  in  an  intelligible  version." 

"  We  have  multifarious  proofs  that  the  writing,  first  known  in  China, 
was  already  an  old  one,  partially  decayed,  but  also  much  improved  since 
its  primitive  hieroglyphic  stage.  We  have  convincing  proofs  (vide  my 
'  Early  History  of  Chinese  Civilization,'  pp.  21-23,  and  the  last  section 
of  the  present  paper)  that  it  had  been  borrowed,  by  the  early  leaders  of 
the  Chinese  Bak  families  [Poh  Sing]  in  Western  Asia,  from  an  hori- 
zontal writing  traced  from  left  to  right,  the  pre-cuneiform  character, 
•which  previously  had  itself  undergone  several  important  modifica- 
tions. 

"At  that  time  the  Ku-wen  was  really  the  phonetic  expression  of 
speech.  (By  an  analysis  of  the  old  inscriptions  and  fragments,  and  by 
the  help  of  the  native  works  on  palaeography,  some  most  valuable, 
I  have  compiled  a  dictionary  of  this  period.) 

"  If  the   kwas,  which  were   a  survival   of  the  arrows  of  divination 


2l6  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


THE  ANNALS  OF  THE  BAMBOO  BOOKS. 

These  are  annals  from   which   a  great  part   of  Chinese 
chronology  is  derived.     Mr.  Legge  gives  the  history  of  their 


known  to  the  ancestors  of  Chinese  culture  before  their  emigration 
eastward,"  &c.  &c.— Vol.  xiv.  part  4. 

"  This  mysterious  book  is  still  avowedly  not  understood,  and  we 
assist,  now-a-days,  at  a  most  curious  spectacle.  There  are  not  a  few 
Chinese  of  education  among  those  who  have  picked  up  some  knowledge 
in  Europe  or  in  translations  of  European  works  of  our  modern  sciences, 
who  believe  openly  that  all  these  may  be  found  in  their  Tih. .  Electricity, 
steam  power,  astronomical  laws,  sphericity  of  the  earth,  &c.,  are  all, 
according  to  their  views,  to  be  found  in  the  Yih  King ;  they  firmly 
believe  that  these  discoveries  were  not  ignored  by  their  sages,  who  have 
embodied  them  in  their  mysterious  classics,  of  which  they  will  be  able 
to  unveil  the  secrets  when  they  themselves  apply  to  its  study  a  thorough 
knowledge  of  the  modern  sciences.  It  is  unnecessary  for  any  Euro- 
pean mind  to  insist  upon  the  childishness  of  such  an  opinion.  Even  in 
admitting,  what  seems  pi-obable,  that  the  early  leaders  of  the  Bak  people 
(Poh  Sing)  were  not  without  some  astronomical  and  mathematical 
principles,  which  have  been  long  since  forgotten,  there  is  no  possible 
comparison  between  their  rude  notions  and  our  sciences. 

"  It  is  not  a  mysterious  book  of  fate  and  prognostics.  It  contains  a 
valuable  collection  of  documents  of  old  antiquity,  in  which  is  embodied 
much  information  on  the  ethnography,  customs,  language,  and  writing 
of  early  China. 

*'  Proofs  of  various  kinds — similitude  of  institutions,  traditions  and 
knowledge,  affinities  of  words  of  culture;  and,  in  what  concerns  the 
writing,  likenesses  of  shapes  of  characters,  hieroglyphic  and  arbitrary, 
with  the  same  sounds  (sometimes  polyphons)  and  meanings  attached  to 
them,  the  same  morphology  of  written  words,  the  same  phonetic  laws  of 
orthography — had  led  me,  several  years  ago,  to  no  other  conclusion  than 
that  (as  the  reverse  is  proved  impossible  by  numerous  reasons),  at  an 
early  period  of  their  history,  and  before  their  emigration  to  the  far 
East,  the  Chinese  Bak  families  had  borrowed  the  pre-cuneiform  writing 
and  elements  of  their  knowledge  and  institutions  from  a  region  con- 
nected with  the  old  focus  of  culture  of  south-western  Asia. 

"  Numerous  affinities  of  traditions,  institutions,  and  customs,  connect 
the  borrowing  of  script  and  culture  by  the  Chinese  Bak  families  with 
the  region  of  Elam,  the  confederation  of  states  of  which  Susa  was  the 
chief  town,  and  the  Kussi  the  principal  population. 

"  What  are  the  historical  facts  of  this  connection  we  do  not  know. 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  217 

discovery,  as  related  in  the  history  of  the  Emperor  Woo,  the 
first  of  the  sovereigns  of  Tsin,  as  follows : 

"  In  the  fifth  year  of  his  reign,  under  title  of  Heen-ning* 
[=A.D.  279],  some  lawless  parties,  in  the  department  of 
Keih,  dug  open  the  grave  of  King  Seang  of  Wei  [died 
B.C.  295]  and  found  a  number  of  bamboo  tablets,  written 
over,  in  the  small  seal  character,  with  more  than  one  hun- 
dred thousand  words,  which  were  deposited  in  the  imperial 
library." 

Mr.  Legge  adds,  "  The  Emperor  referred  them  to  the 
principal  scholars  in  the  service  of  the  Government,  to  adjust 
the  tables  in  order,  having  first  transcribed  them  in  modern 
characters.  Among  them  were  a  copy  of  the  Yih  King,  in 
two  books,  agreeing  with  that  generally  received,  and  a  book 
of  annals,  in  twelve  or  thirteen  chapters,  beginning  with  the 
reign  of  Hwang-te,  and  coming  down  to  the  sixteenth  year 
of  the  last  emperor  of  the  Chow  dynasty,  B.C.  298." 

"  The  reader  will  be  conscious  of  a  disposition  to  reject  at 
once  the  account  of  the  discovery  of  the  Bamboo  Books. 
He  has  read  so  much  of  the  recovery  of  portions  of  the 
Shoo  from  the  walls  of  houses  that  he  must  be  tired  of  this 


Has  the  break-up  which  happened  in  those  states  and  resulted  in 
the  conquest  of  Babylonia  by  the  Elamite  king,  Kudur  Nakhunta, 
at  the  date,  which  is  certain,  of  2285  B.C.,  been  also  the  cause  of  an 
eastern  conquest  and  a  settlement  in  Bactria  ?  and  would  this  account 
for  the  old  focus  of  culture  coeval  with  the  earlier  period  of  Assyrian 
monarchy  said  to  have  existed  in  Central  Asia? 

"  The  two  ethnic  names,  which,  as  we  have  pointed  out,  were  those  of 
the  Chinese  invaders,  Bak  and  Kutti  or  Kutta,  are  not  altogether 
foreign  to  those  regions.  The  Chinese  Kutti  and  the  Kussi,  the  Chinese 
Bak  and  Bakh,  the  ethnic  of  Bakhdi  (Bactria),  will  be,  most  likely,  one 
day  proved  to  be  the  same  ethnic  names.  Had  not  the  Chinese,  pre- 
vious to  my  researches,  and  quite  on  different  reasons,  been  traced  back 
westerly  to  the  regions  of  Yarkand  and  Khotan  ?  This  is  not  far 
distant  from  the  old  focus  of  culture  of  Central  Asia,  and  the  connection 
cannot  be  objected  to  by  geographical  reasons." — Vol.  xv.  part  2. 

*  Dr.  Williams,  Hien-ning. 


218  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

mode  of  finding  lost  treasures,  and  smiles  when  he  is  now 
called  on  to  believe  that  an  old  tomb  opened  and  yielded  its 
literary  stores  long  after  the  human  remains  that  had  been 
laid  in  it  had  mingled  with  the  dust.  From  the  death  of 
King  Seang  to  A.D.  279  were  574  years." 

Against  this,  however,  which  is  not  a  very  weighty  objec- 
tion, if  we  consider  the  length  of  time  that  Egyptian  papyri 
Jiave  been  entombed  before  their  restoration  to  the  light, 
Mr.  Legge  ranges  preponderating  evidence  in  favour  of  their 
authenticity,  and  concludes  that  "  they  had,  no  doubt,  been 
lying  for  nearly  six  centuries  in  the  tomb  in  which  they  had 
been  first  deposited  when  they  were  then  brought  anew  to 
light." 

The  annals  consist  of  two  portions,  one  forming  what  is 
undoubtedly  the  original  text,  and  consisting  of  short  notices 
of  occurrences,  such  as,  "  In  his  fiftieth  year,  in  the 
autumn,  in  the  seventh  month,  on  the  day  Kang  shin  [fifty- 
seventh  of  cycle]  phoenixes,  male  and  female,  arrived,"  &c. 
&c.  It  also  records  earthquakes,  obituaries,  accessions,  and 
remarkable  natural  phenomena.  The  other  portion  is  inter- 
spersed between  these,  in  the  form  of  rather  diffuse,  though 
not  very  numerous,  notes,  which  by  some  are  supposed  to  be 
a  portion  of  the  original  text,  by  others,  to  have  been  added 
by  the  commentator  Shin  Yo  [A.D.  502-557]. 

In  the  latter,  frequent  references  are  made  to  the  appear- 
ance of  phoenixes  (the  fung  wang},  ki-lins  (unicorns),  and 
dragons. 

In  the  former  we  find  only  incidental  references  to  either 
of  these,  such  as,  "  XIV.  The  Emperor  K'ung-kea.  In 
his  first  year  (B.C.  1611),  when  he  came  to  the  throne,  he 
dwelt  on  the  west  of  the  Ho.  He  displaced  the  chief  of 
Ch'e-wei,*  and  appointed  Lew-luyf  to  feed  the  dragons." 


*  Williams,  Shi- Wei. 
f  Williams,  Liu-Lei. 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  219 

» •• 

According  to  the  .latter,  Hwang  Ti  (B.C.  2697)  had  a 
dragon-like  countenance ;  while  the  mother  of  Yaou  (B.C. 
2356)  conceived  him  by  a-  dragon.  The  legend  is  :  "  After 
she  was  grown  up,  whenever  she  looked  into  any  of  the  three 
Ho,  there  was  a  dragon  following  her.  One  morning  the 
dragon  came  with  a  picture  and  writing.  The  substance  of 
the  writing  was — the  Red  one  "has  received  the  favour  of 
Heaven.  .  .  .  The  red  dragon  made  K'ing-teo  pregnant."  . 

Again,  when  Yaou  had  been  on  the  throne  seventy  years, 
a  dragon-horse  appeared  bearing  a  scheme,  which  he  laid  on 
the  table  and  went  away. 

The  Emperor  Shun  (B.C.  2255)  is  said  to  have  had  a 
dragon  countenance. 

It  is  also  said  of  Yu  (the  first  emperor  of  the  Hia  dynasty) 
that  when  the  fortunes  of  Hia  were  about  to  rise,  all  vegeta- 
tion was  luxuriant,  and  green  dragons  lay  in  the  borders ; 
and  that  "  on  his  way  to  the  south,  when  crossing  the  Kiang, 
in  the  middle  of  the  stream,  two  yellow  dragons  took  the 
boat  on  their  backs.  The  people  were  all  afraid  ;  but  Yu 
laughed,  and  said,  '  I  received  my  appointment  from  Heaven, 
and  labour  with  all  my  strength  to  nourish  men.  To  be 
born  is  the  course  of  nature  ;  to  die  is  by  Heaven's  decree. 
Why  be  troubled  by  the  dragons  ? '  On  this  the  dragons 
went  away,  dragging  their  tails." 

From  these  extracts  it  will  be  seen  that  the  dragon, 
although  universally  believed  in,  was  already  mythical  and 
legendary i  so  far  as  the  Chinese  were  concerned. 

THE  "  SHU  KING  "*  OB  "  SHOO  KING  " 

is,  according  to  Dr.  Legge,  simply  a  collection  of  historic 
memorials,  extending  over  a  space  of  one  thousand  seven 
hundred  years,  but  on  no  connected  method,  and  with  great 
gaps  between  them. 

*  Williams,  Shu  King. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


It  opens  with  the  reign  of  Yaou  (B.C.  2357),  and  contains 
interesting  details  of  the  polity  of  those  remote  ages. 

It  contains  a  record  of  the  great  inundation  occurring 
during  his  reign,  which  Mr.  Legge  does  not  identify  with  the 
Deluge  of  Genesis,  but  which  Dr.  G-utzlaff  and  other 
missionary  Sinologues  consider  to  be  the  same. 

It  is  interesting  to  find  in  this  work,  claiming  so  high  an 
antiquity,  references  to  an  antiquity  which  had  preceded  it — 
a  bygone  civilization,  perhaps — as  follows,  in  the  book  called 
Yih  and  Ts'ih.*  The  emperor  (Shun,  B.C.  2255  to  2205) 
says,  "  I  wish  to  see  the  emblematic  figures  of  the  ancients 
— the  sun,  the  moon,  the  stars,  the  mountain,  the  dragon, 
and  the  flowery  fowl,  which  are  depicted  on  the  upper  garment ; 
the  temple  cup,  the  aquatic  grass,  the  flames,  the  grains  of 
rice,  the  hatchet,  and  the  symbol  of  distinction,  which  are 
embroidered  on  the  lower  garment.  I  wish  to  see  all  these  dis- 
played with  the  five  colours,  so  as  to  form  the  official  robes ; 
it  is  yours  to  adjust  them  clearly."  Here  the  dragon  is 
chosen  as  an  emblematic  figure,  in  association  with  eleven 
others,  which  are  objects  of  every-day  knowledge,  and  this, 
I  think,  establishes  a  presumption  that  it  itself  was  not  at 
that  date  considered  an  object  of  doubtful  credibility. 

Similarly,  we  find  the  twelve  symbolical  animals,  repre- 
senting the  twelve  branches  of  the  Horary  characters 
(dating,  see  Williams'  Dictionary,  from  B.C.  2637),  to  be  the 
rat,  the  ox,  tiger,  hare,  dragon,  serpent,  horse,  sheep, 
monkey,  cock,  dog,  boar,  where  the  dragon  is  the  only  one 
about  whose  existence  a  question  can  be  raised.  From  this 
latter  we  learn  that  there  was  no  confusion  of  meaning  then  between 
dragons  and  serpents  ;  the  distinction  of  the  two  creatures  was 
clearly  recognized,  just  as  it  was  many  centuries  after- 
wards by  Mencius  (4th  century  B.C.),  who,  in  writing  of 
these  early  periods,  says,  "  In  the  time  of  Yaou,  the  waters, 

*  Williams,  Yik  and  Ts'ih. 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  221 

flowing  out  of  their  channels,  inundated  the  Middle  King- 
dom. Snakes  and  dragons  occupied  it,  and  the  people  had 
no  place  where  they  could  settle  themselves  "  ;  and  again, 
"  Yu  dug  open  their  obstructed  channels,  and  conducted 
them  to  the  sea.  He  drove  away  the  snakes  and  dragons,* 
and  forced  them  into  the  grassy  marshes." 

THE  "'En  YA.." 

The  'Eh  Ya  or  Urh  7a,f  also  transliterated  Eul  Ya  and 
(El  Ya,  a  dictionary  of  terms  used  in  the  Chinese  classics, 
but  more  especially  of  those  in  the  Shi  King,  or  "  Book  of 
Odes,"  a  collection  of  ancient  ballads  compiled  and  arranged 
by  Confucius. 

There  is  a  tradition  that  it  was  commenced  by  the  Duke 
of  Chow  1100  B.C.,  and  completed  or  enlarged  by  Tsz  Hia, 
a  disciple  of  Confucius. 

Dr.  Bretschneider  suggests  that  each  heading  or  phrase 
in  the  original  book  merely  represents  the  book  names  and 
the  popular  names  of  the  plants  and  animals. 

The  bulk  of  the  work  at  present  extant  consists  of  the 
commentary  by  Kwoh  P'oh  (about  A.D.  300)  and,  in  some 
editions,  of  additional  commentaries  by  other  authors. 

The  illustrations  selected  from  it  for  the  present  volume 
are  reduced  from  those  in  a  very  fine  folio  copy,  for  the  loan 


*  I  am  under  the  impression  that  the  dragons  to  which  Mencius 
refers  were  probably  alligators,  of  which  one  small  species  still  exists, 
though  rare,  in  the  Yang-tsze-kiang.  So  also  we  may  regard  as  alligators 
the  dragons  referred  to  above  in  the  annals  of  the  Bamboo  Books  on 
the  passage  of  the  Kiang  by  Yu.  Mr.  Griffis,  in  his  work  on  Corea, 
says,  "  The  creature  called  a-ke,  or  alligator,  capable  of  devouring  a 
man,  is  sometimes  found  in  the  largest  rivers." 

f  For  a  full  account  of  this  work,  see  an  Article  by  E.  C.  Bridgman 
in  Chinese  Repository,  xviii.  (1849),  p.  169 ;  and  Botanicon  Sinicum,  by 
Dr.  E.  Bretschneider,  in  the  Journal  of  the  North  China  Branch  of  the 
Royal  Asiatic  Society,  New  Series,  vol.  xvi.  1881. 


222 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


of   which   I    am   indebted   to   Mr.    Thomas   Kingsmill,    of 
Shanghai. 

These  profess  to  date  back  so  far  as  the  Sung  dynasty 
(A.D.  960  to  A.D.  1127),  and  it  is  interesting  to  observe  that 


FIG.  41.— THE  BANNER  CALLED  Tsmo  K'I.     (From  the  'Rfi  Ya.) 


the  representations  of  tools  of  husbandry  then  in  use  (Fig.  50, 
p.  232),  and  of  the  methods  of  hawking  (Fig.  46,  p.  225), 
fishing  (Fig.  47,  p.  227),  and  the  like,  are  such  as  might  be 
taken  without  alteration  from  those  of  the  present  day. 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON. 


The  drawings  made  by  Kwoh  P'oh  appear  to  have  been 
lost  in  the  sixth  century  A.D. 

Notices  of  the  dragon  only  appear  incidentally  in  the  'Rh 
Ya  as  forming  part  of  the  decoration  of  banners,  &c.  ;  but 


FIG.  42.— THE  K'l  WITH  BELLS.     (From  the  'Rh  Ya.) 

descriptions  and  figures  of  the  Chinese  unicorn  are  given, 
and  of  other  remarkable  animals,  of  which  I  shall  eventually 
take  notice. 

These  figures  of  dragons  in  the  drawings  of  banners 
(Figs.  41-44)  are  especially  interesting ;  as  there  is  fair 
reason  to  suppose  that  they  at  least  have  been  reproduced 


224 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


time  after  time  from  pre-existing  ones  with  tolerable  accu- 
racy ;  and  that  they  give  us  a  good  notion  of  the  general 
character  of  the  animal  they  purport  to  represent. 

I  have  appended  a  few  fac-similes  of  wood  engravings  from 
the  'Rh  Ya  on  general  subjects,  in  anticipation  of  others 


FIG.  48.— THE  GHAO  EARNER. 
(From  the  7?A  Ya.) 


FIG.  44.— THE  K'l  OK  KIAO  LUNG 
STANDARD.    (From  the  San  Li  Tit.) 


dealing  with  specialities,  which  will  be  found  in  their 
appropriate  positions  ;  they  will  serve  to  correct  the  notion 
that  the  Chinese  are  entirely  devoid  of  artistic  power  and 
imagination  (Figs.  46-49). 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON. 


225 


THE   "  SHAN  HAI  KING  "  OB  CLASSIC  OP  MOUNTAIN  AND  SEAS. 

Short  notices  of  this  remarkable  work  are  given  by  Mr. 
Alexander  Wylie*  and  Dr.  Bretschneider,  f  and  a  more  ex- 
haustive one  by  M.  Bazin.j: 


J.  45.—ONE  OP  THE  EAVE  TILES  PBOM  THE  OLD  IMPEKIAL  PALACE  OF  NANKIN, 
showing  the  Five-clawed  or  Imperial  Dragon,  an  emblem  which  cannot  be  borne 
by  any  outside  of  the  Imperial  service,  under  the  penalty  of  death.  Commoners 
have  to  be  satisfied  with  a  four-clawed  dragon. 


FIG.  46.— RETCBN  FBOM  THE  CHASE.    (From  the  'Rh  Ya.) 

*  Notes  on  Chinese  Literature,  A.  Wylie,  Shanghai  and  London,  1867. 
f  "Bot.  Sin."  in  Journal  of  N.  China  Branch  E.  A.  S.,  1881. 
I  Journal  Asiatique,  Extr.  No.  17  (1839). 

15 


226  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

It  is  also  largely  quoted  by  Williams  in  his  valuable 
Chinese  dictionary.  Otherwise  Sinologues  appear  to  have 
entirely  ignored  it. 

Mr.  Wylie  remarks  that  "it  has  long  been  looked  upon 
with  distrust ;  but  some  scholars  of  great  ability  have  recently 
investigated  its  contents,  and  come  to  the  conclusion  that  it 
is  at  least  as  old  as  the  Chow  dynasty,  and  probably  of  a 
date  even  anterior  to  that  period." 

M.  Bazin  speaks  of  it  as  a  fabulous  description  of  the 
world,  and  attributes  it  to  Taouist  writers  in  the  fourth  cen- 
tury of  our  era,  who  forged  the  authority  of  the  great  Yii 
and  Peh  Yi.  He  thinks  it  would  be  useless  to  attempt  the 
identification  of  the  localities  given  in  it,  and  offers  a  trans- 
lation of  a  portion  of  the  first  chapter  in  support  of  his 
views. 

The  value  of  his  translation  is  impaired  by  his  making 
no  distinction  between  the  text  and  the  commentary,  and  he 
appears  to  have  possessed  an  inferior  and  incomplete 
version. 

In  an  editorial  article  in  the  North  China  Herald  of  May 
9,  1884  (presumably  by  Mr.  Balfour,  an  excellent  Sinologue), 
it  is  referred  to  the  date  of  Ch'in  Shih  Huang,  who  con- 
nected the  Heptarchy  into  a  single  kingdom,  and  conquered 
Cochin  China  about  B.C.  222. 

Kwoh  Po'h*  (A.D.  276-324),  who  prepared  an  edition 
which  has  descended  to  us,  ascribes  a  date  to  it  3,000  years 
anterior  to  his  time. 

Liu  Hsiu,*  of  the  Han  dynasty  (B.C.  206  to  A.D.  25), 
states  that  the  Emperor  Yii,  the  founder  of  the  Hia  dynasty 
(B.C.  2205),  employed  Yih  and  Peh  Yi  as  geographers  and 
natural  historians,  who  produced  the  "  Book  of  Wonders  by 
Land  and  Sea."  While  Yang  Sun,*  of  the  Ming  dynasty 


*  The  three  prefaces  by  these  authors  are  given  in  extenso  in  the 
Appendix  to  this  Chapter, 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON. 


227 


15 


228 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


FIG.  48.— SUMMER.    (From  the  'Rh  Ya.) 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  229 

(commencing  A.D.  1368),  states  in  his  after-preface  that  the 
Emperor  Yii  had  nine  metal  vases  cast,  on  which  all  won- 
derful or  rare  animals  were  engraved,  the  commoner  ones 
being  recorded  in  the  annals  of  Yii ;  and  that  K'ung  Kiah 
(of  the  Hia  dynasty,  B.C.  1879),  included  this  varied  infor- 
mation in  the  present  work. 

It  is  to  be  hoped  that  at  no  distant  date  some  competent 
Sinologue  will  be  induced  to  furnish  a  full  translation  of 
this  remarkable  work,  with  an  adequate  commentary. 

There  is  no  doubt  that  many  would  be  deterred  from  doing 
so  by  an  impression  that  a  collection  of  fabulous  stories, 
treating  of  supernatural  beings  and  apparently  impossible 
monsters,  is  unworthy  the  consideration  of  mature  intellect, 
and  only  fit  to  be  relegated  to  the  domain  of  Jack  the  Giant 
Killer  and  other  childish  stories.  After  a  close  examination 
of  the  book,  I  apprehend  that  this  view  of  it  can  hardly 
be  maintained.  That  such  stories  or  descriptions  are  inter- 
spersed throughout  the  work  is  not  to  be  disputed ;  but  a 
large  proportion  of  it  consists  of  apparently  authentic  geo- 
graphical records,  including,  as  is  customary  with  all  works 
of  a  similar  nature  in  China,  descriptions  of  the  most  remark- 
able objects  of  natural  history  occurring  in  the  different 
regions.  I  think  it  will  be  found  possible  to  identify  many 
of  these  at  the  present  day,  some  may  be  conjectured  at, 
and  the  residue  are  not  more  numerous  in  proportion  than 
the  similar  fables  or  perverted  accounts  which  figure  in  the 
western  classic  volumes  of  Ctesias,  Aristotle,  Pliny,  and 
even  much  later  writers.  So  far  as  the  supernatural  portions 
are  concerned,  it  must  be  remembered  that,  even  so  late  as 
the  days  of  the  childhood  of  Sir  Humphrey  Davy,  pixies  were 
still  supposed  by  the  lower  classes  to  trace  the  fairy  rings  in 
Cornwall;  that  quite  lately,  and  perhaps  among  certain 
classes  to  the  present  day,  the  existence  of  the  banshee  in 
Ireland,  of  the  kelpie  in  Scotland,  and  of  persons  gifted  with 
the  mysterious  and  awe-inspiring  power  of  second  sight, 


230  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


FIG.  49. — MANTIS  (A  VERY  CHARACTERISTIC  FIGURE).    (From  the  'Rh  Ya.) 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  231 


was  religiously  believed  in.  There  are  few  important 
houses  in  England  whose  ancestral  walls  have  not  concealed 
an  apparition  connected  with  the  destinies  of  the  family, 
appearing  only  on  fatal  or  eventful  occasions ;  and  in  the 
days  of  the  sapient  James  I.  in  England,  and  among  the 
Pilgrim  Fathers  in  the  American  States,  the  existence 
of  wizards  and  witches  was  universally  accepted  as  an 
undeniable  fact,  proved  by  hundreds  of  instances  of  ex- 
torted or  voluntary  confession,  and  supplemented  by  the 
concurrent  testimony  of  a  still  greater  number  of  witnesses 
who  genuinely  believed  themselves  to  have  been  the  spec- 
tators or  victims  of  the  supernatural  powers  of  the  accused. 

An  historian  of  these  later  times  might  well  have  described 
such  things  as  realities,  and  we  should  not  be  disposed,  on 
account  of  his  having  done  so,  to  question  the  validity  of  his 
description  of  other  objects  or  creatures  existing  at  the 
period,  presuming  them  to  be  more  consistent  with  our 
present  notions  of  possibility. 

No  one,  now-a-days,  would  discredit  the  veracity  of  Marco 
Polo  because  he  speaks  of  enormous  serpents  in  Carajan, 
possessing  two  feet,  each  armed  with  a  single  claw.  That 
there  was  a  solid  foundation  for  his  story  is  admitted,  and 
commentators  are  only  at  variance  as  to  whether  the  basis 
was  a  large  species  of  python,  such  as  still  exists  in  Southern 
China,  or  a  gigantic  alligator,  of  which  he  might  have  seen 
a  mutilated  specimen. 

It  must  also  be  borne  in  mind  that  the  existence  of  some 
gigantic  saurian,  now  extinct,  possessing  two  limbs  only,  in 
place  of  four,  is  not  an  impossibility ;  as  the  small  lizard, 
Chirotes,  is  in  that  condition,  and  also  the  North  American 
genus  Siren,  belonging  to  the  Newts. 

I  notice  that  Retzoch,  in  his  designs  to  illustrate  Schiller's 
poem,  "  The  Fight  with  the  Dragon,"  makes  the  monster 
have  only  two  fore-legs,  and  this  appears  to  have  been  a 
common  mediaeval  conception  of  it.  Aldrovandus  and  Gesuer 


232  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


% 

% 

V, 


FIG.  50.— TOOLS  OF  HUSBANDRY.    (From  the  'Rh  Ya.) 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON. 


both  give  figures  of  biped  dragons.  There  is  also  a  curious 
drawing  in  the  Gentleman's  Magazine  for  1749 — which  is 
transferred  into  the  pages  of  the  Encyclopaedia  of  Philadel- 
phia, apparently  a  piracy  of  an  English  Cyclopaedia,  of  what 
is  styled  a  sea-dragon,  four  feet  long,  which  stands  bolt 
upright  on  two  legs,  and,  like  Barnum's  mermaid,  was 
probably  a  triumph  of  art. 

Aldrovandus  was  probably  imposed  on  by  some  waggish 
Mend,  in  reference  to  the  biped  dragon  without  wings,  two 
cubits  long,  which  was  said  to  have  been  killed  by  a  country- 
man near  Bonn  in  1572  A.D.,  and  which  he  first  figured  and 


FIG.  51.— DBACO  BIPES  APTEKOS  CAPTCS  IN  AGRO  BONONIENSI.    (Aldrovandus). 

then  placed  in  his  museum ;  and  he  evidently  fully  believed 
in  the  Ethiopian  winged  biped  dragon,  of  which  he  gives  two 
figures,  but  without  quoting  his  authority. 


FIG.  52. — DBACO  JETHIOPICUS.    (Aldrovandus. 

Gesner  gives  a  similar  figure,  after  Belon,  of  the  winged 
dragon  of  Mount  Sinai ;  but  Athanasius  Kircher  is  more 
liberal,  and  gives  his  dragon  not  only  wings  but  four  legs. 


234  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


FIG.  53.— THE  FOUR-FOOTED  WINGED  DRAGON.    (Kircher.) 

In  poetry  we  find  Ashtaroth  described  as  appearing  to 
Faust  in  the  form  of  a  serpent  with  two  little  feet. 

As  to  the  mysterious  powers  imputed  throughout  the  Shan 
t£ai  King  to  different  creatures,  of  controlling  drought,  rain, 
and  fire,  or  acting,  when  partaken  of,  as  remedies  for  sundry 
ills  and  ailments,  it  may  be  asked  whether  we  ourselves  are 
free  from  analogous  superstitious  beliefs  ?  Will  a  sailor 
view  without  uneasiness  the  destruction  of  a  Mother  Carey's 
chicken,  or  a  Dutchman,  of  a  stork  ?  Or  is  the  Chinese 
pharmacopoeia  of  the  present  day  much  more  trustworthy  as 
to  many  of  its  items  ? 

As  to  the  hurnan-visaged  creatures,  both  snakes  and  four- 
footed  beasts,  may  we  not  perhaps  put  them  on  a  par  with 
other  fancied  resemblances,  which  hold  to  the  present  day,  of 
(for  example)  the  hippopotamus,  to  a  river-horse,  of  the 
pipe-fish,  known  as  the  hippocampus,  to  a  sea-horse  ;  of  the 
manatee  to  a  merman,  and  the  like  ? 

And,  lastly,  are  the  composite  creatures,  partly  bird  and 
partly  reptilian,  occasionally  referred  to,  so  entirely  incre- 
dible ?  Is  it  not  barely  possible  that  some  of  those  inter- 
vening types  which  we  know  from  the  teaching  of  Darwin, 
must  have  existed ;  which  we  know,  from  the  researches  of 
palaeontology  have  existed ;  types  intermediate  to  the  Stru- 
thionidce,  the  most  reptilian  of  birds,  and  the  Chlamydce,  the 
most  avian  of  reptiles — is  it  not  possible  that  some  of  these 
may  have  continued  their  existence  down  to  a  late  date,  and 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON. 


235 


that  the  tradition  of  these  existing  as  the  descendants  or  the 
analogues  of  the  Archseopteryx,  and  the  toothed  birds  of 
America,  may  be  embalmed  in  the  pages  in  question  ?  Is  it 
impossible?  Do  not  the  Trigonias,  the  Terebratulas,  the 
Marsupials,  and,  in  part,  the  vegetation  of  Australia,  form 
the  spare  surviving  descendants  of  the  forms  which  charac- 
terised the  oolitic  period  on  our  own  shores  ?  Why,  then, 
may  not  a  few  cretaceous  and  early  tertiary  forms  have 
struggled  on,  through  a  happy  combination  of  circumstances, 
to  an  aged  and  late  existence  in  other  lands. 

After  long,  repeated,  and  careful  examination  of  the  Shan 
Hai  King,  I  arrive  at  a  very  different  conclusion  from  M. 
Bazin.  I  hold  it  to  be  an  authentic  and  precious  memorial 
which  has  been  handed  down  to  us  from  remote  antiquity, 
the  value  of  which  has  been  unrecognised  owing  to  the  book 
being  unfortunately  a  fusion  of  two  and  perhaps  three  distinct 
works. 


FIG.  54. — THE  PA  SNAKE.     (From  the  Shan  Hai  King.) 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


The  oldest  was  the  Shan  King,  and  consists  of  five  volumes, 
devoted  respectively  to  the  northern,  southern,  eastern, 
western,  and  central  mountain  ranges.  This  is  devoid  of  all 
reference  to  persons  and  habited  places.  It  is  simply  an 
abstract  of  the  results  of  a  topographical  survey  which  may 
not  impossibly  have  been,  as  it  claims,  the  one  conducted 
by  Yii. 

It  contains  lists  of  mountains  and  rivers,  with  valuable 
notes  on  their  mineral  productions,  fauna  and  flora.  It  also 
gives  lists  of  the  divinities  controlling  or  belonging  to  each 
mountain  range,  and  the  sacrifices  suitable  to  them.  There 
are  few  extravagances  in  this  portion  of  the  work. 

The  remainder  is  devoted  to  a  history  of  the  regions 
without  and  within  the  four  hai  or  seas  bounding  the  empire, 
and  those  constituting  what  is  called  the  Great  Desert. 
Here  extravagant  stories,  myths,  accounts  of  wonderful 
people,  references  to  states,  cities,  and  tribes  are  mingled 
with  geographical  notices  which,  from  their  repetition,  show 
that  this  portion  is  itself  resolvable  into  two  distinct  works 
of  more  modern  date,  whose  origin  was  probably  posterior  to 
the  wave  of  Taouist  superstition  which  swept  over  China  in 
the  first  six  centuries  of  our  era.  I  must  add  that  the  term, 
"  within  the  four  seas  "  does  not  imply  the  arrogant  belief, 
as  is  generally  supposed,  that  this  Empire  extended  to  the 
ocean  on  every  side,  the  archaic  meaning  being  the  very 
different  one  of  frontier  or  boundary  region  ;  while  the  word 
"  desert "  has  a  similar  signification. 

In  that  more  credible  portion  of  the  work  which  I  believe 
to  have  been  the  original  Shan  King,  references  to  dragons 
are  infrequent.  In  some  instances  the  kiao  (which  I  inter- 
pret as  the  gavial)  is  specifically  referred  to ;  in  others  the 
word  lung  is  used ;  thus,  it  speaks  of  dragons  and  turtles 
abounding  in  the  Ti  Eiver,  flowing  from  one  of  the  northern 
mountains  east  of  the  Ho.  From  the  context,  however,  an 
aquatic  creature,  ;and  probably  an  alligator,  is  indicated. 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  237 


FIG.  56.— FLYING  SNAKES  FBOM  THE  SIBN  MOUNTAINS  (CENTRAL  MOUNTAINS). 
(Shan  Hai  King.) 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


From  the  entire  text  I  gather  that  the  true  terrestrial  dragon 
was  not  an  inmate  of  China,  at  all  events  after  the  period  ol 
Yii.  I  further  infer  that  it  was  a  feared  and  much  respected 
denizen  of  the  more  or  less  arid  highlands,  whence  the  early 
Chinese  either  migrated  or  were  driven,  and  from  which 
point  the  dragon  traditions  flowed  pretty  evenly  east  and 
west,  beat  against  the  Himalayan  chain  on  the  south,  and 
only  penetrated  India  in  a  later  and  modified  form. 

There  is  a  short  reference  to  the  Ying  Lung  or  winged 
dragon ;  it  is  as  follows  : — 

"  In  the  north-east  corner  of  the  Great  Desert  are  moun- 
tains called  Hiung-li  and  T'u  K'iu.  The  Ying  Lung  lives  at 
the  south  extremity. 

"  [Commentary. — The  Ying  Lung  is  a  dragon  with  wings.] 

"  He  killed  Tsz  Yiu  and  Kwa  Fu. 

"  [Commentary. — Tsz  Yiu  was  a  soldier.] 

"  He  could  not  ascend  to  heaven. 

"  [Commentary. — The  Ying  Lung  dwells  beneath  the  earth.] 

"  So  there  is  often  drought. 

"  [Commentary. — Because  no  rain  was  made  above.] 

"  When  there  is  a  drought,  the  form  of  the  Ying  dragon  is 
made,  and  then  there  is  much  rain. 

"  [Commentary. — Now  the  false  dragon  is  for  this  purpose,  to  in- 
fluence (the  heaven)  ;  men  are  not  able  to  do  it.]" 

The  better  printed  copies  of  this  work  are  illustrated  with 
a  very  truculent- looking  dragon  with  outspread  wings.  A 
stone  delineation  of  a  dragon  with  wings  forms  the  orna- 
mentation of  the  bridge  at  Nincheang  Foo.  In  the  interior 
of  China,  it  was  observed  by  Mr.  Cooper,  and  is  given  in  his 
Travels  of  a  Pioneer  of  Commerce.  These  are  the  only  cases 
in  China  in  which  I  have  come  across  illustrations  of 
dragons  with  genuine  wings.  As  a  rule,  the  dragon  appears 
to  be  represented  as  having  the  power  of  translating  itself 
without  mechanical  agency,  sailing  among  the  clouds,  or 
rising  from  the  sea  at  pleasure. 


240 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  241 

The  Shan  Hai  King  contains  valuable  notices  of  winged 
snakes  and  gigantic  serpents,  as,  for  example,  the  so-called 
singing  snakes.  Speaking  of  the  Sien  mountain  (one  of  the 
Central  Mountains),  it  says  :  "  Gold  and  jade  abound.  It  is 
barren.  The  Sien  river  issues  and  flows  north  into  the  I  river. 
On  it  are  many  singing  snakes.  They  look  like  snakes,  but 
have  four  wings.  Their  voice  is  like  the  beating  of  stones. 
When  they  appear  there  will  be  great  drought  in  the  city." 


FIG.  58.— Yii  KIANG  (A  GOD).     Without  the  Sea  and  North.     (Shan  Hai  King.) 

The  Pa  snake,  already  spoken  of,  is  described  as  capable  of 
gorging  an  elephant.  The  Ta  Hien  mountains  were  reputed 
uninhabitable  on  account  of  the  presence  of  gigantic  ser- 
pents (pythons  ?),  which  were  said  to  have  been  of  the 
colour  of  mugwort,  to  have  possessed  hairs  like  pig's  bristles 
projecting  between  the  lines  of  their  riband-like  markings. 
Rumour  had  magnified  their  length  to  one  hundred  fathoms, 
and  they  made  a  noise  like  the  beating  of  a  drum  or  the 
striking  of  a  watchman's  wooden  clapper.  The  Siong  Jan 
mountains  were  infested  by  serpents,  also  gigantic,  but  of  a 
different  species. 

The  annexed  wood -cuts  (Figs.  56,  57)  of  Ping  I  (Icy 
exterminator),  and  the  Emperor  K'i  (B.C.  2197),  each  in 
cars,  driving  two  dragons,  are  interesting  in  connection 

16 


242 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


with  the  later  fable  of  Medea  and  Triptoleinus.  The  two 
stories  were  probably  derived  from  a  common  source  ;  the 
Chinese  version,  however,  being  much  the  older  of  the  two. 

The  text  as  to  K'i  is  :— 
"K'i  of  the  Hia  dynasty 
danced  with  Kiutai  at  the 
Tayoh  common.  He  drove 
two  dragons.  The  clouds 
overhung  in  three  layers. 
In  his  left  hand  he 
grasped  a  screen  ;  in  his 
right  hand  he  held  ear  or- 
naments; at  his  girdle 
dangled  jade  crescents.  It 
is  north  of  Tayun  mount  ; 
one  author  calls  it  Tai 
common."  The  commen- 
tator says  Kiutai  is  the 


FIU.59.-THETYPHOOKDKAGON. 

(From  a  Chinese  Painting.)  (t  dance  "    means    to 

in  a  circle.  [Probably  this  is  the  earliest  reference  extant 
to  a  circus  performance.] 

Ping  I  is  supposed  to  dwell  in  Tsung  Ki  pool  near  the 
fairy  region  of  Kwa-Sun,  to  have  a  human  face,  and  to 
drive  two  dragons. 

Cursorily  examined,  the  Shan  Hai  King  is  a  farrago  of  false- 
hood ;  read  with  intelligence,  it  is  a  mine  of  historical  wealth. 

THE  PAN  TSAO  KANG  Mu.* 

Descending  to  late  times,  we  have  the  great  Chinese 
Materia  Medica,  in  fifty-two  volumes,  entitled  Pan  Tsao  Kang 

*  The  reader  is  referred,  for  a  careful  precis  of  the  contents  of  this 
valuable  work,  to  an  exhaustive  paper  entitled  "  Botanicon  Sinicum," 
in  the  Journal  of  North  China  Branch  Royal  Asiatic  Society,  1881,  by 
E.  Bretschneider,  M.D, 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  243 


Mu,  made  up  of  extracts  from  upwards  of  eight  hundred 
preceding  authors,  and  including  three  volumes  of  illustra- 
tions by  Li  Shechin,  of  the  Ming  dynasty  (probably  born 
early  in  the  sixteenth  century  A.D.).  It  was  first  printed  in 
the  Wan-leih  period  (1573  to  1620).  I  give  its  article 
upon  the  dragon  in  extenso. 

11  According  to  the  dictionary  of  Hii  Shan,  the  character 
lung  in  the  antique  form  of  writing  represents  the  shape  of 
the  animal.  According  to  the  Shang  Siao  Lun,  the  dragon  is 
deaf,  hence  its  name  of  lung  (deaf).  In  Western  books  the 
dragon  is  called  nake  (naga).  Shi-Chan  says  that  in  the 
'Rh  Ya  Yih  of  Lo-Yuen  the  dragon  is  described  as  the  largest 
of  scaled  animals  (literally,  insects).  Wang  Fu  says  that 
the  dragon  has  nine  (characteristics)  resemblances.  Its  head 
is  like  a  camel's,  its  horns  like  a  deer's,  its  eyes  like  a 
hare's,*  its  ears  like  a  bull's,  its  neck  like  a  snake's,  its  belly 
like  an  iguanodon's  (?),  its  scales  like  a  carp's,  its  claws  like 
an  eagle's,  and  its  paws  like  a  tiger's.  Its  scales  number 
eighty- one,  being  nine  by  nine,  the  extreme  (odd  or)  lucky 
number.  Its  voice  resembles  the  beating  of  a  gong.  On 
each  side  of  its  mouth  are  whiskers,  under  its  chin  is  a 
bright  pearl,  under  its  throat  the  scales  are  reversed,  on  the 
top  of  its  head  is  the  poh  shan,  which  others  call  the  wooden 
foot-rule.  A  dragon  without  a  foot-rule  cannot  ascend  the 
skies.  When  its  breath  escapes  it  forms  clouds,  sometimes 
changing  into  rain,  at  other  times  into  fire.  Luh  Tien  in 
the  P'i  Ya  remarks,  when  dragon-breath  meets  with  damp  it 
becomes  bright,  when  it  gets  wet  it  goes  on  fire.  It  is  extin- 
guished by  ordinary  fire. 

"  The  dragon  comes  from  an  egg,  it  being  desirable  to 
keep  it  folded  up.  When  the  male  calls  out  there  is  a  breeze 
above,  when  the  female  calls  out  there  is  a  breeze  below,  in 

*  The  character  for  a  hare  is  very  like  the  character  for  a  devil.     The 
Japanese,  in  quoting  this  passage,  have  fallen  into  this  error. 

16   * 


244  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


consequence  of  which  there  is  conception.  The  Shih  Tien 
states,  when  the  dragons  come  together  they  are  changed 
into  two  small  serpents.  In  the  Siao  Shwoh  it  is  said  that 
the  disposition  of  the  dragon  is  very  fierce,  and  it  is  fond  of 
beautiful  gems  and  jade  (?).  It  is  extremely  fond  of  swallow's 
flesh ;  it  dreads  iron,  the  mong  plant,  the  centipede,  the 
leaves  of  the  Pride  of  India,  and  silk  dyed  of  different  (five) 
colours.  A  man,  therefore,  who  eats  swallow's  flesh  should 
fear  to  cross  the  water.  When  rain  is  wanted  a  swallow 
should  be  offered  (used);  when  floods  are  to  be  restrained, 
then  iron  ;  to  stir  up  the  dragon,  the  mong  plant  should  be 
employed ;  to  sacrifice  to  Kuh  Yuen,  the  leaves  of  the  Pride 
of  India  bound  with  coloured  silk  should  be  used  (see 
Mayers,  p.  107,  §  326)  and  thrown  into  the  river.  Physi- 
cians who  use  dragons'  bones  ought  to  know  the  likes  and 
dislikes  of  dragons  as  given  above." 

"  Dragons'  Bones* — In  the  Pieh  luh  it  is  said  that  these 
are  found  in  the  watercourses  in  Tsin  (Southern  Shansi) 
and  in  the  earth-holes  which  exist  along  the  banks  of  the 
streams  running  in  the  caves  of  the  T'ai  Shan  (Great  Hill), 
Shantung.  For  seeking  dead  dragons'  graves  there  is  no 
fixed  time.  Hung  King  says  that  now  they  are  largely 
found  in  Leung-yih  (in  Shansi  ?)  and  Pa-chung  (in  Sz- 
chuen).  Of  all  the  bones,  dragon's  spine  is  the  best;  the 
brains  make  the  white  earth  strice,  which  when  applied  to  the 
tongue  is  of  great  virtue.  The  small  teeth  are  hard,  and  of 
the  usual  appearance  of  teeth.  The  horns  are  hard  and 
solid.  All  the  dragons  cast  off  their  bodies  without  really 
dying.  Han  says  the  dragon-bones  from  Yea-cheu,  Ts'ang- 


*  The  dragons'  bones  sold  by  apothecaries  in  China  consist  of  the 
fossilized  teeth  and  bones  of  a  variety  of  species,  generally  in  a  frag- 
mentary condition.  The  white  earth  striae,  or  dragons'  brains,  here 
referred  to,  are  probably  asbestos.  The  asbestos  sold  in  Chefoo 
market,  under  the  name  of  Lung  Ku  or  dragons'  bones,  is  procured  at 
0-tzu-kung. 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  245 

cheu  and  T'ai-yuen  (all  in  Shansi)  are  the  best.  The  smaller 
bones  marked  with  wider  lines  are  the  female  dragon's ;  the 
rougher  bones  with  narrower  lines  are  those  of  the  male 
dragon  ;  those  which  are  marked  with  variegated  colours  are 
esteemed  the  best.  Those  that  are  either  yellow  or  white 
are  of  medium  value  ;  the  black  are  inferior.  If  any  of  the 
bones  are  impure,  or  are  gathered  by  women,  they  should 
not  be  used. 

"  P'u  says  dragons'  bones  of  a  light  white  colour  possess 
great  virtue.  Kung  says  the  bones  found  in  Tsin  (South 
Shansi)  that  are  hard  are  not  good  ;  the  variegated  ones 
possess  virtue.  The  light,  the  yellow,  the  flesh-coloured, 
the  white,  and  the  black,  are  efficacious  in  curing  diseases 
in  the  internal  organs  having  their  respective  colours,  just  as 
the  five  varieties  of  the  chi*  plant,  the  five  kinds  of  lime- 
stone, and  the  five  kinds  of  mineral  oil  (literally,  fat),  which 
remain  still  for  discussion  in  this  work. 

"  Su-chung  states  :  *  In  the  prefecture  of  Cheu  kiiin,  to  the 
"  East  of  the  River  "  (Shansi),  dragons'  bones  are  still  found 
in  large  quantities.' 

"  Li-chao,  in  the  Kwoh-shi-pu,  says  :  '  In  the  spring  floods 
the  fish  leap  into  the  Dragon's  Gate,  and  the  number  of  cast- 
off  bones  there  is  very  numerous.  These  men  seek  for  medi- 
cinal purposes.  They  are  of  the  five  colours.  This  Dragon's 
Gate  is  in  Tsin  (Shansi),  where  this  work  (Kwoh-shi-pu)  is 
published.  Are  not,  then,  these  so-called  dragons'  bones 
the  bones  of  fish  ?  ' 

"  Again,  quoting  from  Sun  Kwang-hien  in  the  Poh-mung 
Legends  :  '  In  the  time  of  the  five  dynasties  there  was  a  con- 
test between  two  dragons;  when  one  was  slain,  a  village 
hero,  Kw'an,  got  both  its  horns.  In  the  front  of  the  horns 
was  an  object  of  a  bluish  colour,  marked  with  confused  lines, 


*  The  boletus,  supposed  to  possess  mystic  efficacy. 


246  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

which  no  one  knew  anything  about,  as  the  dragon  was  com- 
pletely dead.' 

"  Tsung  Shih  says  :  '  All  statements  [concerning  dragons' 
bones]  disagree ;  they  are  merely  speculations,  for  when  a 
mountain  cavern  has  disclosed  to  view  a  skeleton  head,  horns 
and  all,  who  is  to  know  whether  they  are  exuviae  or  that  the 
dragon  has  been  killed  ?  Those  who  say  they  are  exuviae,  or 
that  the  dragon  is  dead,  then  have  the  form  of  the  animal, 
but  have  never  seen  it  alive.  Now,  how  can  one  see  the 
thing  (as  it  really  is)  when  it  is  dead  ?  Some  also  say 
that  it  is  a  transformation,  but  how  is  it  only  in  its  appear- 
ance that  it  cannot  be  transformed  ?  ' 

"  Ki,  in  the  present  work,  says  that  they  are  really  dead 
dragons'  bones;  for  one  to  say  that  they  are  exuviae  is  a 
mere  speculation. 

« «  Shi  Chan  says :  '  The  present  work  considers  that  these 
are  really  dead  dragons'  bones,  but  To  Shi  thinks  they 
are  exuvice.  Su  and  Kan  doubt  both  these  statements. 
They  submit  that  dragons  are  divine  beings,  and  resemble 
the  principle  of  immortality  (never-in-themselves-dying 
principle) ;  but  there  is  the  statement  of  the  dragon  fight- 
ing and  getting  killed;  and  further,  in  the  Tso-chw'en, 
in  which  it  is  stated  that  there  was  a  certain  rearer  of 
dragons  who  pickled  dragons  for  food  [for  the  imperial 
table?].' 

"  The  I-U  says  :  '  In  the  time  of  the  Emperor  Hwo,  of  the 
Han  dynasty,  during  a  heavy  shower  a  dragon  fell  in  the 
palace  grounds,  which  the  Emperor  ordered  to  be  made  into 
soup  and  given  to  his  Ministers.' 

"  The  Poh-wuh-chi  states  that  a  certain  Chang  Hwa  '  got 
dragon's  flesh  to  dry,  for  it  is  said  that  when  seasoning  was 
applied  the  five  colours  appeared,  &c.  These  facts  prove 
that  the  dragon  does  die,  an  opinion  which  is  considered 
correct  by  [the  writers  of]  the  present  work.'  " 


THE  CHINESE  DRAGON.  247 


THE  YUEN  KIEN  LEI  HAN. 

This  is  an  encyclopaedia  in  four  hundred  and  fifty  books  or 
volumes,  completed  in  1710.  More  than  eighty  pages  are 
devoted  -to  the  dragon.  These,  with  all  similar  publica- 
tions in  China,  consist  entirely  of  extracts  from  old  works, 
many  of  which  have  perished,  and  of  which  fragments  alone 
remain  preserved  as  above. 

I  have  had  the  whole  of  this  carefully  translated,  but  think 
it  unnecessary  to  trouble  the  reader,  in  the  present  volume, 
with  more  than  the  first  chapter,  which  I  give  in  the 
Appendix.  There  is  also  a  description  of  the  Kiao,  of  which 
I  give  extracts  in  the  Appendix,  together  with  others  relating 
to  the  same  creature,  and  to  the  T'o  lung,  from  the  Pan  Tsao 
Kang  Mu, 


248 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


FIG.  GO— VIGNETTE.     (After  Ho/cusai.) 

CHAPTER  VIII. 

THE    JAPANESE    DRAGON. 

THERE  is  but  little  additional  information  as  to  the  dragon 
to  be  gained  from  Japan,  the  traditions  relating  to  it  in  that 
country  having  been  obviously  derived  from  China.  In 
functions  and  qualities  it  is  always  represented  as  identical 
with  the  Chinese  dragon.  In  Japan,  however,  it  is  invari- 
ably figured  as  possessing  three  claws,  whereas  in  China  it 
has  four  or  five,  according  as  it  is  an  ordinary  or  an  imperial 
emblem.  The  peasantry  are  still  influenced  by  a  belief  in  its 
supernatural  powers,  or  in  those  of  some  large  or  multiple- 
headed  snake,  supposed  to  be  a  transformation  of  it,  and  to 
be  the  tenant  of  deep  lakes  or  of  springs  issuing  from 
mountains. 

i  give,  as  examples  of  dragon  stories,  two  selected  from  the 
narratives  of  mythical  history,*  and  one  extracted  from  a 
native  journal  of  the  day. 

*  The  first  two  stories  are  from  the  Ko  Ku  Shi  Riyah,  a  recent  his- 
tory of  Japan,  from  the  earliest  periods  down  to  the  present  time,  by 
Matsunai,  with  a  continuation  by  a  later  author.  They  are  contained  in 


THE  JAPANESE  DRAGON.  249 


The  first  states  that  "  Hi-koho-ho-da-mi  no  mikoto  (a 
god)  went  out  hunting,  and  his  eldest  brother  Hono-sa-su-ri 
no  mikoto  went  out  fishing.  They  were  very  successful,  and 
proposed  to  one  another  to  change  occupations.  They 
did  so. 

"  Hono-sa-su-ri  no  mikoto  went  out  to  the  mountain  hunt- 
ing, but  got  nothing,  therefore  he  gave  back  his  bow  and 
arrow ;  but  Hi-ko-hoho-da-mi  no  mikoto  lost  his  hook  in  the 
sea  ;  he  therefore  tried  to  return  a  new  one,  but  his  brother 
would  not  receive  it,  and  wanted  the  old  one  ;  and  the 
mikoto  was  greatly  grieved,  and,  wandering  on  the  shore, 
met  with  an  old  man  called  Si-wo-tsu-chino-gi,  and  told  him 
what  had  happened. 

"  The  latter  made  a  cage  called  me-na-shi.kogo,  enclosed 
him  in  it,  and  sank  it  to  the  bottom  of  the  sea.  The 
mikoto  proceeded  to  the  temple  of  the  sea-god,  who  gave  him 
a  girl,  Toyotama,  in  marriage.  He  remained  there  three 
years,  and  recovered  the  hook  which  he  had  lost,  as  well  as 
receiving  two  pieces  of  precious  jade  called  '  ebb  '  and  '  flood.' 
He  then  returned.  After  some  years  he  died.  His  son,  Hi- 
ko-na-gi-sa-ta-k'e-ouga-ya-fu-ki-aya-dzu  no  mikoto,  succeeded 
to  the  crown. 

"  When  his  father  first  proposed  to  return,  his  wife  told 
him  that  she  was  enciente,  and  that  she  would  come  out  to 
the  shore  during  the  rough  weather  and  heavy  sea,  saying, 
'  I  hope  you  will  wait  until  you  have  completed  a  house  for 
my  confinement.'  After  some  time  Toyotama  came  there 
and  begged  him  never  to  come  to  her  bed  when  she  was 
sleeping.  He,  however,  crept  up  and  peeped  at  her.  He 
saw  a  dragon  holding  a  child  in  the  midst  of  its  coils. 
It  suddenly  jumped  up  and  darted  into  the  sea." 


the  first  chapter  of  the  first  volume.  The  third  is  given  as  an  ordinary 
item  of  news  in  the  journal  called  the  Chin-jei-Nippo,  April  30th, 
1884. 


250 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


THE  JAPANESE  DRAGON.  25l 

The  second  legend  is  :  "  When  the  So-sa-no-o  no  mikoto 
went  to  the  sources  of  the  river  Hi-no-ka-mi  at  Idzumo,  he 
heard  lamentations  from  a  house ;  he  therefore  approached  it 
and  inquired  the  cause.  He  saw  an  old  man  and  woman  clasp- 
ing a  young  girl.  They  told  him  that  in  that  country  there 
was  a  very  large  serpent,  which  had  eight*  heads  and  eight 
tails,  and  came  annually  and  swallowed  one  person.  *  We 
had  eight  children,  and  we  have  already  lost  seven,  and  now 
have  only  one  left,  who  will  be  swallowed  ;  hence  our  .grief.' 
The  mikoto  said,  *  If  you  will  give  that  girl  to  me,  I  will 
save  her.'  The  old  man  and  woman  were  rejoiced.  The 
mikoto  changed  his  form,  and  assumed  that  of  the  young 
girl.  He  divided  the  room  into  eight  partitions,  and 
in  each  placed  one  saki  tub  and  waited  its  approach.  The 
serpent  arrived,  drank  the  saki,  got  intoxicated,  and  fell 


"  Then  the  mikoto  drew  his  sword  and  cut  the  serpent  into 
small  pieces.  When  he  was  cutting  the  tail  his  sword  was 
a  little  broken  ;  therefore  he  split  open  the  tail  to  find  the 
reason,  and  found  in  it  a  valuable  sword,  and  offered  it  to 
the  god  0-mi-ka-mi,  at  Taka-maga-hara. 

"  He  called  the  sword  Ama  no  mourakoumo  no  tsurogi,f 
because  there  was  a  cloud  up  in  the  heaven  where  the  ser- 
pent lies.  Finally  he  married  the  girl,  and  built  a  house  at 
Suga  in  Idzumo." 

The  third  story  runs  as  follows : — 

The  White  Dragon. 

"  There  is  a  very  large  pond  at  the  eastern  part  of  Fu-si- 
ml-shi-ro-yama,  at  Yama-shiro  (near  Kioto)  ;  it  is  called 


*  The  idea  of  the  eight  heads  probably  originated  in  China ;  thus, 
in  the  caves  in  Shantung,  near  Chi-ning  Chou,  among  carvings  of 
mythological  figures  and  divinities,  dating  from  A.D.  147,  we  find  a 
tiger's  body  with  eight  heads,  all  human. 

f  Mourakoumo  means  "  clouds  of  clouds  " ;  ama  means  "  heaven  "  ; 
tsurogi  means  "  sword." 


252  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Ukisima.  In  the  fine  weather  little  waves  rise  up  on  account 
of  its  size.  There  are  many  turtles  in  it.  In  the  summer- 
time many  boys  go  to  the  pond  to  swim,  but  never  go  out 
into  the  middle  or  far  from  the  shore.  No  one  is  aware  how 
deep  the  centre  of  the  pond  is,  and  it  is  said  that  a  white 
dragon  lives  in  that  pond,  and  can  transform  itself  into  a 
bird,  which  the  people  of  the  district  call  0-gon-cho,  i.e. 
golden  bird,  because,  when  it  becomes  a  bird,  it  has  a  yellow 
plumage.  The  bird  flies  once  in  fifty  years,  and  its  voice  is 
like  the  howling  of  a  wolf.  In  that  year  there  is  famine  and 
pestilence,  and  many  people  die.  Just  one  hundred  years 
ago,  when  this  bird  flew  and  uttered  its  cry,  there  was  a 
famine  and  drought  and  disease,  and  many  people  died. 
Again,  at.  Tempo-go-nen  (i.e.  in  the  fifth  year  of  Tempo), 
fifty  years  back  from  the  present  time,  the  bird  flew  as  before, 
and  there  was  once  again  disease  and  famine.  Hence  the 
people  in  that  district  were  much  alarmed,  as  it  is  now 
just  fifty  years  again.  They  hoped,  however,  that  the  bird 
would  not  fly  and  cry.  But  at  2  A.M.  of  the  19th  April  it  is 
said  that  it  was  seen  to  do  so.  The  people,  therefore,  were 
surprised,  and  now  are  worshipping  God  in  order  to  avert  the 
famine  and  disease.  The  old  farmers  say,  in  the  fine  weather 
the  white  dragon  may  occasionally  be  seen  floating  on  the 
water,  but  that  if  it  sees  people  it  sinks  down  beneath  the 
surface.  "* 

As  a  pendant  to  this  I  now  quote  a  memorial  from  the 
Pekin  Gazette  of  April  3rd,  1884,  of  which  a  translation  is 
given  in  the  North  China  Herald  for  May  16th,  1884. 

"  A  Postscript  Memorial  of  P'an  Yii  requests  that  an  addi- 
tional title  of  rank,  and  a  tablet  written  by  His  Majesty's 

*  White  snakes  are  occasionally,  although  rarely,  seen  in  Japan. 
They  are  supposed  to  be  messengers  from  the  gods,  and  are  never 
killed  by  the  people,  but  always  taken  and  carried  to  some  temple.  The 
white  snake  is  worshipped  in  Nagasaki  at  a  temple  called  Miyo-ken,  at 
Nishi-yaina,  which  is  the  northern  part  of  the  city  of  Nagasaki. 


THE  JAPANESE  DRAGON.  253 


own  hand,  may  be  conferred  on  a  dragon  spirit,  who  has 
manifested  himself  and  answered  the  prayers  made  to 
him. 

"  In  the  Ang-shan  mountains,  a  hundred  li  from  the  town 
of  Kuei-hai,  there  are  three  wells,  of  which  one  is  on  the 
mountain  top,  in  a  spot  seldom  visited.  It  has  long  been 
handed  down  that  a  dragon  inhabits  this  well.  If  pieces 
of  metal  are  thrown  into  the  well  they  float,  but  light 
things,  as  silk  or  paper,  will  sink.  If  the  offerings  are 
accepted,  fruits  come  floating  up  in  exchange.  Anything  not 
perfectly  pure  and  clean  is  rejected  and  sent  whirling  up 
again.  The  spirit  dwells  in  the  blackest  depths  of  the  water, 
in  form  like  a  strange  fish,  with  golden  scales  and  four  paws, 
red  eyes  and  long  body.  He  ordinarily  remains  deep  in 
the  water  without  stirring.  But  in  times  of  great  drought, 
if  the  local  authorities  purify  themselves,  and  sincerely  wor- 
ship him,  he  rises  to  the  top.  He  is  then  solemnly  conveyed 
to  the  city,  and  prayers  for  rain  are  offered  to  him,  which 
are  immediately  answered.  His  temple  is  in  the  district 
city,  on  the  To'ang-hai  Ling.  The  provincial  and  local 
histories  record  that  tablets  to  him  have  been  erected 
from  the  times  of  the  Mongol  and  the  Ming  dynasties. 
During  the  present  dynasty,  on  several  occasions,  as,  for 
instance,  in  the  years  1845  and  18(53,  he  has  been  carried 
into  the  city,  and  rain  has  fallen  immediately.  Last  year  a 
dreadful  drought  occurred,  in  which  the  ponds  and  tanks 
dried  up,  to  the  great  terror  of  the  people.  On  the  15th 
day  of  the  eighth  month,  the  magistrate  conducted  the  spirit 
into  the  city,  and,  with  the  assembled  multitude,  prayed  to 
him  fervently ;  thereupon  a  gentle  rain,  falling  throughout 
the  country,  brought  plenty  in  the  place  of  scarcity,  and 
gladdened  the  hearts  of  all.  At  about  the  same  time,  the 
people  of  a  district  in  the  vicinity,  called  Chin-yu,  also  had 
recourse  to  the  spirit,  with  equally  favourable  results.  These 
are  well-known  events,  which  have  happened  quite  recently. 


254  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

"It  is  the  desire  of  the  people  of  the  district  that  some 
mark  of  distinction  should  be  conferred  on  the  spirit ;  and 
the  memorialist  finds  such  a  proceeding  to  be  sanctioned  both 
by  law  and  precedent ;  he  therefore  humbly  lays  the  wishes 
of  the  people  before  His  Majesty,  who,  perhaps,  will  be 
pleased  to  confer  a  title  and  an  autograph  tablet  as  above 
suggested.  The  Rescript  has  already  been  recorded. 

"No.  6  of  Memorial." 

The  idea  of  the  transformation  of  a  sea-monster  or  dragon 
into  a  bird  is  common  both  to  China  and  Japan;  for  instance, 
in  The  Works  of  Chuang  Tsze,  ch.  i.  p.  1,  by  F.  H.  Balfour, 
F.B.G-.S.,  we  read  that— 

"  In  the  Northern  Sea  there  was  a  fish,  whose  name  was 
kw'en.  It  is  not  known  how  many  thousand  li  this  fish  was 
in  length.  It  was  afterwards  transformed  into  a  bird  called 
p'eng,  the  size  of  whose  back  is  uncertain  by  some  thousands 
of  li.  Suddenly  it  would  dart  upwards  with  rapid  flight,  its 


Fio.62.— TUB  HAI  Rivo.     (Chi-on-in  Monastery,  Kioto.) 


THE  JA PA NESE  DRAGON.  255 

wings  overspreading  the  sky  like  clouds.  When  the  waters 
were  agitated  [in  the  sixth  moon]  the  bird  moved  its  abode 
to  the  Southern  Sea,  the  Pool  of  Heaven.  In  the  book 
called  Ts'i  Hieh,  which  treats  of  strange  and  marvellous 
things,  it  is  said  that  when  the  p'eng  flew  south,  it  first 
rushed  over  three  thousand  li  of  water,  and  then  mounted 
to  the  height  of  ninety  thousand  li,  riding  upon  the 
wind  that  blows  in  the  sixth  moon.  The  wild  horses,  i.e. 
the  clouds  and  dust  of  heaven,  were  driven  along  by  the 
zephyrs.  The  colour  of  the  sky  was  blue  ;  yet,  is  that  the 
real  colour  of  the  sky,  or  only  the  appearance  produced  by 
infinite,  illimitable  depths  ?  For  the  bird,  as  it  looked 
downwards,  the  view  was  just  the  same  as  it  is  to  us  when 
we  look  upwards." 

On  the  screens  decorating  the  Chi-on-in  monastery  in 
Kioto,  are  depicted  several  composite  creatures,  half-dragon, 
half-bird,  which  appear  to  represent  the  Japanese  rendering 
of  the  Chinese  Ying  Lung  or  winged  dragon.  They  have 
dragons'  heads,  plumose  wings,  and  birds'  claws,  and  have 
been  variously  designated  to  me  by  Japanese  as  the  Hai 
Liiyo  (Fig.  62),  the  Tobi  Tatsu,  and  the  Schachi  Hoko. 


FIG.  03. — JAPANESE:  DRAGON  (BRONZE) 


256  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


V  ^ 

•^ 

U    .   *.*        w          ,  » 


^ 

iy 


fc**.*^*, 

***> 

•*>*, 

***V*V 

i^*v^**  *  **, 

«•  $•  ^  2  ><  *• 

*&>*%•?* 
5*  ?  ^# 

*    £ 

FIG.  64. 

CONCLUSION  OF  DRAGON  CHAPTERS. 

The  numerous  quotations  given  in  the  above  pages,  or 
in  the  Appendix,  are  merely  a  selection,  and  by  no  means 
profess  to  be  so  extensive  as  they  should  be  were  this  work 
a  monograph  on  the  dragon  alone.  Having  a  special  object 
in  view,  I  have  forborne  to  diverge  into  those  interesting 
speculations  which  relate  to  its  religious  significance ;  these 
I  leave  to  those  who  deal  specially  with  this  portion  of  its 
history.  I  therefore  pass  over  the  many  traditions  and 
legends  regarding  it  contained  in  the  pages  of  the  Memoirs  of 
Hiouen-Thsang*  of  Foe  Koue  Kirf  and  similar  narratives,  and 

*  Memoires  sur  les  Contrees  occidentals,  traduits  du  Sanscrit  en  Chinois 
en  Van  648 ;  et  du  Chinois  en  Francais,  par  M.  Stanislas  Julien.  2  vols., 
Paris,  1857. 

f  Foe  Koue   Ki,  ou  Relation  des  Royaumes  Bouddhiques,  par  Che  Fa 


CONCLUSION  OF  DRAGON  CHAPTERS.  257 

omit  quoting  folk-lore  from  the  pages  of  Dennys,  Eitel,  and 
others  who  have  written  on  the  subject. 

For  my  purpose  it  would  be  profitless  to  collate  legends 
such  as  that  given  in  the  Apocrypha,  in  the  story  of  Bel  and 
the  Dragon,  and  reappearing  in  the  pages  of  El  Edrisi  as  an 
Arab  legend,  with  Alexander  the  Great  as  the  hero,  and  the 
Canaries  as  the  scene,  or  to  dwell  on  the  Corean  and  Japanese 
versions  of  dragon  stories,  which  are  merely  borrowed,  and 
corrupted  in  borrowing,  from  the  Chinese.  Nor  shall  I  do 
more  than  allude  to  the  fact  that  dragons  are  represented 
in  the  Brahminical  caves  at  Ellora,  and  among  the  sculptures 
of  Ancoar  Wat  in  Cambodia. 


FIG.  65. 

The  rude  diagrams,  Figs.  64,  65,  66,  are  facsimiles  from 
a  manuscript  of  folio  size  in  the  possession  of  J.  Haas, 
Esq.,  Imperial  Austro-Hungarian  Vice- Consul  for  Shang- 
hai,] which  he  kindly  placed  at  my  disposal.  This  unique 
volume  is  at  present,  unfortunately,  unintelligible.  It 
comes  from  the  western  confines  of  China,  and  is  believed 
to  be  an  example  of  the  written  Lolo  language,  that  is,  of 


Hien.  Translated  from  the  Chinese  by  M.  Abel  Remusat ;  Paris,  1836. 
This  volume  contains  a  number  of  very  interesting  dragon  legends,  and 
quaint  conceits  about  them  ;  but  I  find  nothing  in  it  to  supplement  my 
materialistic  argument, 

17 


258 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


the  language  of  the  aboriginal  tribes  of  China.  They  suffice 
to  show  that  the  same  respect  for  the  dragon  is  shown  among 
these  people  as  in  China;  but  no  opinion  can  be  offered 
as  to  whether  this  belief  and  respect  is  original  or  imported, 
until  their  literature  has  been  examined. 


FIG.  66. 

I  regret  that  I  am  unable  to  give  in  this  volume,  as  I  had 
wished,  an  account  of  the  Persian  dragon,  which,  I  am 
informed,  is  contained  in  a  rare  Persian  work. 

In  conclusion,  I  must  hope  that  the  reader  who  has  had 
the  patience  to  wade  through  the  medley  of  extracts  which  I 
have  selected,  and  to  analyse  the  suggestive  reasoning  of  the 
introductory  chapters,  will  agree  with  me  that  there  is 
nothing  impossible  in  the  ordinary  notion  of  the  traditional 
dragon  ;  that  such  being  the  case,  it  is  more  likely  to  have 
once  had  a  real  existence  than  to  be  a  mere  offspring  of 
fancy ;  and  that  from  the  accident  of  direct  transmission  of 
delineations  of  it  on  robes  and  standards,  we  have  probably 


CONCLUSION  OF  DRAGON  CHAPTERS.  259 

a  not  very  incorrect  notion  of  it  in  the  depicted  dragon  of  the 
Chinese. 

We  may  infer  that  it  was  a  long  terrestrial  lizard,  hiber- 
nating, and  carnivorous,  with  the  power  of  constricting 
with  its  snake-like  body  and  tail ;  possibly  furnished  with 
wing-like  expansions  of  its  integument,  after  the  fashion  of 
Draco  volans,  and  capable  of  occasional  progress  on  its  hind 
legs  alone,  when  excited  in  attack.  It  appears  to  have  been 
protected  by  armour  and  projecting  spikes,  like  those  found 
in  Moloch  horridus  and  Megalania  prisca,  and  was  possibly 
more  nearly  allied  to  this  last  form  than  to  any  other  which 
has  yet  come  to  our  knowledge.  Probably  it  preferred 
sandy,  open  country  to  forest  land,  its  habitat  was  the  high- 
lands of  Central  Asia,  and  the  time  of  its  disappearance  about 
that  of  the  Biblical  Deluge  discussed  in  a  previous  chapter. 

Although  terrestrial,  it  probably,  in  common  with  most 
reptiles,  enjoyed  frequent  bathing,  and  when  not  so  engaged, 
or  basking  in  the  sun,  secluded  itself  under  some  over- 
hanging bank  or  cavern. 

The  idea  of  its  fondness  for  swallows,  and  power  of 
attracting  them,  mentioned  in  some  traditions,  may  not  im- 
possibly have  been  derived  from  these  birds  hawking  round 
and  through  its  open  jaws  in  the  pursuit  of  the  flies  attracted 
by  the  viscid  humours  of  its  mouth.  We  know  that  at  the 
present  day  a  bird,  the  trochilus  of  the  ancients,  freely 
enters  the  open  mouth  of  the  crocodile,  and  rids  it  of  the 
parasites  affecting  its  teeth  and  jaws. 


17 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


CHAPTER  IX. 

THE    SEA-SEBPENT. 

On  the  dark  bottom  of  the  great  salt  lake 
Imprisoned  lay  the  giant  snake, 
With  naught  his  sullen  sleep  to  break. 

Poets  of  the  North,  "  Oelenschlseger."     Translated  by 
Longfellow. 

THAT  frank  writer,  Montaigne,  says*  : — 

"  Yet  on  the  other  side  it  is  a  sottish  presumption  to  dis- 
daine  and  condemne  that  for  false,  which  unto  us  seemeth  to 
beare  no  show  of  likelihood  or  truth  :  which  is  an  ordinarie 
fault  in  those  who  perswade  themselves  to  be  of  more  suffi- 
ciencie  than  the  vulgar  sort. 

"  But  reason  hath  taught  me,  that  so  resolutely  to  con- 
demne a  thing  for  false,  and  impossible,  is  to  assume  unto 
himself  the  advantage,  to  have  the  bounds  and  limits  of 
God's  will,  and  of  the  power  of  our  common  mother  Nature 
tied  to  his  sleeve  :  and  that  there  is  no  greater  folly  in  the 
world,  than  to  reduce  them  to  the  measure  of  our  capacitie, 
and  bounds  of  our  sufficiencie. 

"If  we  term  those  things  monsters  or  miracles  to  which 
our  reason  cannot  attain,  how  many  such  doe  daily  present 

*  Montaigne,  Essays,  chap,  xxvi, 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  261 


themselves  unto  our  sight?  let  us  consider  through  what 
cloudes,  and  how  blinde-folde  we  are  led  to  the  knowledge 
of  most  things,  that  passe  our  hands  :  verily  we  shall  finde, 
it  is  rather  custome,  than  Science  that  removeth  the  strange- 
nesse  of  them  from  us  :  and  that  those  things,  were  they 
newly  presented  unto  us,  wee  should  doubtless  deeme 
them,  as  much,  or  more  unlikely,  and  incredible,  than  any 
other." 

Montaigne's  remarks  seem  to  me  to  apply  as  aptly  to  the 
much -vexed  question  of  the  existence  or  non-existence  of  the 
sea-serpent  as  though  they  had  been  specially  written  in 
reference  to  it. 

The  sea-serpent,  at  once  the  belief  and  the  denied  of 
scientific  men ;  the  accepted  and  ignored,  according  to 
their  estimation  of  the  evidence,  of  reasoners,  not  scientific 
perhaps,  but  intelligent  and  educated ;  the  valued  basis  for 
items  to  the  journalist,  and  the  quintain  for  every  self- 
sufficient  gobemouche  to  tilt  against ;  appearing  mysteriously 
at  long  intervals  and  in  distant  places  ;  the  sea-serpent  has 
as  yet  avoided  capture  and  the  honourable  distinction  of  being 
catalogued  and  labelled  in  our  museums. 

Yet  I  do  believe  this  weird  creature  to  be  a  real  solid  fact, 
and  not  a  fanciful  hallucination.  This  assertion,  however, 
has  to  be  sustained  under  many  difficulties.  The  dread  of 
ridicule  closes  the  mouths  of  many  men  who  could  speak 
upon  the  subject,  while  their  dependent  position  forces  them 
to  submit  to  the  half-bantering,  half-warning  expostulations 
of  their  employers.  When,  for  example,  an  unimaginative 
shipowner  breaks  jests  over  his  unfortunate  shipmaster's 
head,  and  significantly  hints  his  hope  (as  I  know  to  have 
been  the  case)  that  on  his  next  voyage  he  will  see  no  more 
sea-serpents,  or,  in  other  words,  that  the  great  monster 
belongs  to  the  same  genus  as  the  snakes  seen  in  the  boots 
of  a  western  dram-drinker,  we  may  be  sure  that  an  important 
barrier  is  put  to  any  further  communication  on  the  subject 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


from  that  source,  at  least ;  *  or  when,  again,  some  knot  of 
idle  youngsters  enliven  the  monotony  of  a  long  voyage  by 
preparing  a  deliberate  hoax  for  publication  on  their  arrival, 
a  certain  amount  of  discredit  necessarily  attaches  to  the 
monster  on  the  ultimate  exposure  of  the  jest. 


*  "  I  fully  believe  in  this  great  marine  monster.  I  have  as  much 
evidence  as  to  its  existence  as  of  anything  not  seen.  Some  years  ago, 
Captain  Austin  Cooper  and  the  officers  and  crew  of  the  Carlisle  Castle, 
on  a  vogage  to  Melbourne,  saw  the  '  varmint.'  A  description  and  sketch 
of  it  were  published  in  the  Argus.  This,  when  it  arrived  in  London,  it 
being  the  '  silly  season '  in  journalism,  was  seized  and  torn  to  pieces  by 
one  of  the  young  lions  of  the  Daily  Telegraph,  in  a  leading  article,  in 
which  much  fun  was  poked  at  the  gallant  sailor.  '  I  don't  see  any  more 
sea-serpents,'  said  my  Irish  friend  to  me.  '  It  is  too  much  to  be  told 
that  one  of  Green's  commanders  can't  tell  the  difference  between  a  piece 
of  sea- weed  and  a  live  body  in  the  water.  If  twenty  serpents  come  on 
the  starboard,  all  hands  shall  be  ordered  to  look  to  port.  No  London 
penny-a-liner  shall  say  again  that  Austin  Cooper  is  a  liar  and  a  fool.' 
After  this  we  softened  down  over  some  Coleraine  whiskey.  Again, 
some  three  years  ago,  the  monster  was  plainly  seen  off  the  great  reef  of 
New  Caledonia  by  Commandant  Villeneuve,  and  the  officers  of  the 
French  man-of-war,  the  Seudre.  Chassepots  were  procured  to  shoot  it, 
but  before  it  came  within  easy  range  it  disappeared.  During  my  late 
visit  to  Fiji,  Major  James  Harding,  who  was  an  officer  in  Cakoban's 
army  when  that  chief,  '  by  the  grace  of  God  '  was  king  of  Fiji,  described 
exactly  the  same  creature  as  passing  within  a  few  yards  of  his  canoe  on 
a  clear  moonlight  night  in  the  Bay  of  Suva.  It  swam  towards  a  small 
island  outside  the  reef,  which  is  known  amongst  Fijians  as  the  '  Cave  of 
the  Big  Snake.'  Major  Harding  is  a  cool,  brave  soldier,  who  saw  much 
hot  work  with  Cakoban's  men  against  the  hill  tribes  of  Vonua  Levu. 
He  was  once  riddled  by  bullets,  and  left  for  dead.  Accustomed  for  years 
to  travel  about  the  reefs  in  canoes,  every  phase  of  the  aspect  of  the 
waters  was  known  to  him,  and  he  was  not  likely  to  be  frightened  with 
false  fire.  The  extraordinary  thing  is,  that  the  English  sailor,  the  French 
commander,  and  the  Fijian  soldier,  all  gave  the  same  account  of  this 
monster.  It  is  something  with  a  head  slightly  raised  out  of  the  water, 
and  with  a  sort  of  mane  streaming  behind  it,  whilst  the  back  of  a 
long  body  is  seen  underneath  the  water.  So,  from  these  instances,  in 
which  I  know  the  witnesses,  I  fully  believe  in  the  sea-serpent.  What 
is  there  very  wonderful  in  it,  after  all  ?  The  whale  is  the  largest  living 
thing.  Why  shouldn't  the  waters  produce  snakes  of  gigantic  size." 
THE  VAGABOND,  in  Supplement  to  the  Australasian,  September  10,  1881. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  263 


Men  also  occasionally  deceive  themselves,  and  while 
honestly  believing  that  they  have  seen  his  oceanic  majesty, 
produce  a  story  which,  on  analysis,  crumbles  into  atoms  and 
crowns  him  with  disgrace  as  an  impostor. 

The  hard  logic  of  science,  in  the  hand  of  one  of  our 
master  minds,  has  also  been  arrayed  against  him,  but  fortu- 
nately weighs  rather  against  special  avatars  than  against 
his  existence  absolutely. 

Finally,  the  narratives  of  different  observers  disagree  so 
much  in  detail  that  we  have  a  difficulty  in  reconciling  them, 
except  upon  the  supposition  that  they  relate  to  several  dis- 
tinct creatures,  a  supposition  which  I  shall  hope  to  show  is 
not  improbable,  as  well  as  that  the  term  sea-serpent  is  an 
unwarranted  specific  differentiation  of  that  of  sea-monster, 
the  various  creatures  collectively  so  designated  being  neither 
serpents  nor,  indeed,  always  mutually  related.  In  com- 
mencing my  record,  I  must  bear  in  mind  Mrs.  Glasse's  pro- 
verbially excellent  advice,  and  admit  that  it  is  simply  a 
history  of  the  various  appearances  of  a  creature  or  creatures 
too  fugitive  to  admit  of  specific  examination,  and  that  until, 
by  some  remarkable  stroke  of  fortune,  specimens  are  secured, 
their  zoological  status  must  remain  an  unsolved,  although 
closely  guessed  at,  problem. 

I  have  elsewhere  stated  my  conviction  that  the  serpent 
Midgard  is  only  a  corruption  of  accounts  of  the  sea-serpent 
handed  down  from  times  when  a  supernatural  existence  was 
attributed  to  it ;  and  we  have  in  the  Sagas  probably  the 
earliest  references  to  it,  unless,  perhaps,  the  serpents  mentioned 
by  Aristotle,  which  attacked  and  overset  the  galleys  off  the 
Libyan  coast,  may  have  been  of  this  species. 

The  coast  of  Norway,  deeply  indented  by  fjords,  the 
channels  of  which,  for  a  certain  breadth,  have  a  depth  equal 
to  that  of  the  sea  outside,  seldom  less  than  four  hundred 
fathoms,  and  corresponding  in  some  degree  with  the  height 
of  the  precipitous  cliffs  which  enclose  them,  abounding  in 


264  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

all  kinds  of  fish,  and  in  the  season  with  whales,  which  at 
one  time  used  to  number  thousands  in  a  shoal,  appears, 
until  within  the  last  thirty  years,  to  have  been  peculiarly 
the  favourite  haunt  of  the  serpent.  Paddle  and  screw  are 
probably  answerable  for  his  non-appearance  on  the  surface 
lately. 

The  west  coast  of  the  Isle  of  Skye  is  another  locality  from 
which  several  reports  of  it  have  been  received  during  this 
century;  less  frequently  it  has  been  observed  upon  the 
eastern  American  coast-line,  upon  the  sea-board  of  China, 
and  in  various  portions  of  the  broad  ocean.  It  generally 
follows  the  track  of  whales,  and  in  two  instances  observers 
affirm  that  it  has  been  seen  in  combat  with  them. 

I  have  no  doubt  but  that  the  literature  of  Norway  contains 
frequent  references  to  it  of  olden  date,  but  the  earliest  notice 
of  it  in  that  country  which  I  have  been  able  to  procure  is 
one  contained  in  A  Narrative  of  the  North-East  Frosty  Seas, 
declared  by  the  Duke  of  Mosconia  his  ambassadors  to  a 
learned  gentlemen  of  Italy,  named  G-aleatius  Butrigarius,  as 
follows*  :— 

"  The  lake  called  Mos,  and  the  Island  of  Hoffusen  in 
myddest  thereof  is  in  the  degree  45.30  and  61.  In  this 
lake  appeareth  a  strange  monster,  which  is  a  serpent 
of  huge  bigness ;  and  as,  to  all  other  places  of  the  world, 
blazing  stars  do  portend  alteration,  so  doth  this  to  Norway. 
It  was  seen  of  late  in  the  year  of  Christ  1522,  appear- 
ing far  above  the  water,  rowling  like  a  great  pillar,  and 
was  by  conjecture  far  off  esteemed  to  be  of  fifty  cubits  in 
length." 

Pontoppidan,  the  Bishop  of  Bergen,  who  published 
his  celebrated  Natural  History  of  Norway  in  1755,  and 
who  had  at  one  time  discredited  its  existence  "  till  that 
suspicion  was  removed  by  full  and  sufficient  evidence  from 

*  Contained  in  Eden's  Travels. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  265 


creditable  and  experienced  fishermen  and  sailors  in  Norway, 
of  which  there  are  hundreds,  who  can  testify  that  they  have 
annually  seen  them,"  states  that  the  North  traders,  who  came 
to  Bergen  every  year  with  their  merchandise,  thought  it  a 
very  strange  question,  when  they  were  seriously  asked  whether 
there  were  any  such  creatures,  as  ridiculous,  in  fact,  as  if  the 
question  had  been  put  to  them  whether  there  be  such  fish 
as  eel  or  cod. 

According  to  Pontoppidan,  these  creatures  continually  keep 
at  the  bottom  of  the  sea,  excepting  in  the  months  of  July  and 
August,  which  is  their  spawning  time,  and  then  they  come  to 
the  surface  in  calm  weather,  but  plunge  into  the  water  again 
so  soon  as  the  wind  raises  the  least  wave. 

It  was  supposed  by  the  Norway  fishermen  to  have  a  great 
objection  to  castor,  with  which  they  provided  themselves 
when  going  out  to  sea,  shutting  it  up  in  a  hole  in  the  stern, 
and  throwing  a  little  overboard  when  apprehensive  of  meet- 
ing the  sea-snake.  The  Faroe  fisherman  had  the  same  idea 
with  reference  to  the  Tvold  whale,  which  was  supposed  to 
have  a  great  aversion  to  castor  and  to  shavings  of  juniper 
wood. 

Olaus  Magnus,  in  his  Histor.  Septentrion,  chap,  xxvii., 
writing  not  from  personal  observation  but  from  the  relations 
of  others,  speaks  of  it  as  being  two  hundred  feet  in  length 
and  twenty  feet  round,  having  a  mane  two  feet  long,  being 
covered  with  scales,  having  fiery  eyes,  disturbing  ships,  and 
raising  itself  up  like  a  mast,  and  sometimes  snapping  some 
of  the  men  from  the  deck. 

Aldrovandus,  quoting  Olaus  Magnus,  says  that  about  Nor- 
way there  occasionally  appears  a  serpent  reaching  to  one 
hundred  or  two  hundred  feet  in  length,  dangerous  to  ships 
in  calm  weather,  as  it  sometimes  snatches  a  man  from  the 
ship.  It  is  said  that  merchant  ships  are  involved  by  it  and 
sunk. 

Olaus  Magnus  also  figures  another  serpent,  which  is  said 


MYTHICAL  MONSTEKS. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  267 


to  inhabit  the  Baltic  or  Swedish  Sea ;  it  is  from  thirty  to 
forty  feet  in  length,  and  will  not  hurt  anyone  unless 
provoked. 

Arndt.  Bernsen,  in  his  account  of  the  fertility  of  Denmark 
and  Norway,  says  that  the  sea-snake,  as  well  as  the  Tvold 
whale,  often  sinks  both  men  and  boats;  and  Pontoppidan 
was  informed  by  the  North  traders  that  the  sea-snake  has 
frequently  raised  itself  up  and  thrown  itself  across  a  boat,  and 
even  across  a  vessel  of  some  hundred  tons  burthen,  and  by 
its  weight  sunk  it  to  the  bottom  ;  and  that  they  would  some- 
times raise  their  frightful  heads  and  snap  a  man  out  of  a 
boat ;  but  this  Pontoppidan  does  not  vouch  for,  and,  indeed, 
says  that  if  anything,  however  light,  be  thrown  at  and  touch 
them  they  generally  plunge  into  the  water  or  take  another 
course. 

Hans  (afterwards  Bishop)  Egede,  in  his  Full  and  Particular 
Relation  of  my  Voyage  to  Greenland,  as  a  Missionary,  in  the  year 
1734,  figures  and  describes  a  sea-monster  which  showed 
itself  on  his  passage.  He  says  :  "  On  the  6th  of  July  1734, 
when  ofif  the  south  coast  of  Greenland,  a  sea-monster 
appeared  to  us,  whose  head,  when  raised,  was  on  a  level  with 
our  main- top.  Its  snout  was  long  and  sharp,  and  it  blew 
water  almost  like  a  whale ;  it  had  large  broad  paws ;  its  body 
was  covered  with  scales  ;  its  skin  was  rough  and  uneven ;  in 
other  respects  it  was  as  a  serpent  ;  and  when  it  dived,  its 
tail,  which  was  raised  in  the  air,  appeared  to  be  a  whole 
ship's  length  from  its  body." 

In  another  work,  The  New  Survey  of  Old  Greenland,  Egede 
speaks  of  the  same  monster,  with  the  addition  that  the  body 
was  full  as  thick  and  as  big  in  circumference  as  the  ship  that 
he  sailed  in.  The  drawing  (which  I  reproduce,  Fig.  68) 
appears  to  have  been  taken  by  another  missionary,  Mr.  Bing, 
who  stated  that  the  creature's  eyes  seemed  red,  and  like 
burning  fire.  The  paws  mentioned  by  Egede  were  probably 
paddles  like  those  of  the  Liassic  Saurians. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  269 


Pontoppidan  considers  this  to  be  a  different  monster  from 
the  Norway  sea-serpent,  of  which  he  gives  a  figure  furnished 
him  by  the  Rev.  Hans  Strom,  made  from  descriptions  of  two 
of  his  neighbours  at  Herroe,  who  had  been  eye-witnesses  of 
its  appearance. 

Lawrance  de  Ferry,  a  captain  in  the  Norwegian  Navy, 
and  commander  in  Bergen  in  Pontoppidan' s  time,  actually 
wounded  one  of  the  Norwegian  serpents,  and  made  two  of 
his  men,  who  were  with  him  in  the  boat  at  the  time,  testify 
upon  oath  in  court  to  the  truth  of  the  statement  which  he 
himself  made,  as  follows : — 

"  The  latter  end  of  August,  in  the  year  1746,  as  I  was  on 
a  voyage,  in  my  return  from  Trundheim,  in  a  very  calm  and 
hot  day,  having  a  mind  to  put  in  at  Molde,  it  happened  that 
when  we  were  arrived  with  my  vessel  within  six  English 
miles  of  the  aforesaid  Molde,  being  at  a  place  called  Jule- 
Nsefs,  as  I  was  reading  in  a  book,  I  heard  a  kind  of  mur- 
muring voice  from  amongst  the  men  at  the  oars,  who  were 
eight  in  number,  and  observed  that  the  man  at  the  helm  kept 
off  from  the  land.  Upon  this  I  inquired  what  was  the 
matter  ;  and  was  informed  that  there  was  a  sea-snake  before 
us.  I  then  ordered  the  man  at  the  helm  to  keep  to  the  land 
again,  and  to  come  up  with  this  creature,  of  which  I  had 
heard  so  many  stories.  Though  the  fellows  were  under 
some  apprehensions,  they  were  obliged  to  obey  my  orders. 
In  the  meantime  this  sea-snake  passed  by  us,  and  we  were 
obliged  to  tack  the  vessel  about,  in  order  to  get  nearer  to  it. 
As  the  snake  swam  faster  than  we  could  row,  I  took  my  gun, 
that  was  ready  charged,  and  fired  at  it ;  on  this  he  imme- 
diately plunged  under  the  water.  We  rowed  to  the  place 
where  it  sank  down  (which  in  the  calm  might  be  easily 
observed)  and  lay  upon  our  oars,  thinking  it  would  come  up 
again  to  the  surface  ;  however,  it  did  not.  When  the  snake 
plunged  down,  the  water  appeared  thick  and  red ;  perhaps 
some  of  the  shot  might  wound  it,  the  distance  being  very 


270  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

little.  The  head  of  this  snake,  which  it  held  more  than  two 
feet  above  the  surface  of  the  water,  resembled  that  of  a 
horse.  It  was  of  a  greyish  colour,  and  the  mouth  was  quite 
black  and  very  large.  It  had  black  eyes  and  a  long  white 
mane,*  that  hung  down  from  the  neck  to  the  surface  of  the 
water.  Besides  the  head  and  neck,  we  saw  seven  or  eight 
folds  or  coils  of  this  snake,  which  were  very  thick,  and,  as  far 
as  we  could  guess,  there  was  about  a  fathom  distance  between 
each  fold. — Bergen,  1751." 

Pontoppidan  remarks  on  the  peculiarity  of  spouting  water 
from  the  nostrils  exhibited  by  the  creature  seen  by  Hans 
Egede,  and  states  that  he  had  not  known  it  spoken  of  in 
any  other  instance. 


FIG.  G9. — THE  NORWEGIAN  SEA-SERPENT.    (According  to  Pontoppidan.) 

He  also  remarks  that  the  Norway  sea-snakes  differ  from 
the  Greenland  ones  with  regard  to  the  skin,  which  in  the 
former  is  as  smooth  as  glass,  and  has  not  the  least  wrinkle, 
except  about  the  neck,  where  there  is  a  kind  of  mane,  which 
looks  like  a  parcel  of  sea- weeds  hanging  down  to  the  water. 
Summarising  the  accounts  which  had  reached  him,  he  esti- 
mates the  length  at  about  one  hundred  fathoms  or  six  hun- 
dred English  feet.  He  states  that  it  lies  on  the  surface  of 
the  water  (when  it  is  very  calm)  in  many  folds,  and  that 
these  are  in  a  line  with  the  head ;  some  small  parts  of  the 
back  are  to  be  seen  above  the  surface  of  the  water  when  it 
moves  or  bends,  which  at  a  distance  appear  like  so  many 

*  Connected  with  the  breathing  apparatus  ? 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  271 

casks  or  hogsheads  floating  in  a  line,  with  a  considerable 
distance  between  each  of  them. 

"  The  creature  does  not,  like  the  eel  or  land-snake,  taper 
gradually  to  a  point,  but  the  body,  which  looks  to  be  as  big 
as  two  hogsheads,  grows  remarkably  small  at  once  just  where 
the  tail  begins.  The  head  in  all  the  kinds  has  a  high  and 
broad  forehead,  but  in  some  a  pointed  snout,  though  in 
others  that  is  flat,  like  that  of  a  cow  or  horse,  with  large 
nostrils,  and  several  stiff  hairs  standing  out  on  each  side  like 
whiskers." 

"  They  add  that  the  eyes  of  this  creature  are  very  large, 
and  of  a  blue  colour,  and  look  like  a  couple  of  bright  pewter 
plates.  The  whole  animal  is  of  a  dark  brown  colour,  but  it 
is  speckled  and  variegated  with  light  streaks  or  spots  that 
shine  like  tortoise-shell.  It  is  of  a  darker  hue  about  the 
eyes  and  mouth  than  elsewhere,  and  appears  in  that  part  a 
good  deal  like  those  horses  which  we  call  Moors-heads." 

He  mentions  two  places,  one  at  Amunds  Vaagen  in  Nord- 
fiord,  the  other  at  the  island  of  Karmen,  where  carcases  of  it 
had  been  left  at  high  water.  He  supposes  it  to  be  vivi- 
parous. 

In  an  account  of  the  Laplanders  of  Finmark,  by  Knud 
Leems,  with  the  notes  of  Gunner,  Bishop  of  Drontheim, 
(Copenhagen,  1767,  4to.,  in  Danish  and  Latin),*  I  find, 
"  The  Sea  of  Finmark  also  generates  the  snake  or  marine 
serpent,  forty  paces  long,  equalling  in  the  size  of  the  head 
the  whale,  in  form  the  serpent.  This  monster  has  a  maned 
neck,  resembling  a  horse,  a  back  of  a  grey  colour,  the  belly 
inclining  to  white. 

"  On  the  canicular  days,  when  the  sea  is  calm,  the  marine 
serpent  usually  comes  up,  winding  into  various  spirals,  of 
which  some  are  above,  the  others  below,  the  water.  The 
seamen  very  much  dread  this  monster.  Nor  while  he  is 

*  Pinkerton,  Voyages  and  Travels,  vol.  i.  p.  376. 


272  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


coming  up  do  they  easily  entrust  themselves  to  the  dangers 
of  the  deep." 

Mr.  J.  Ramus  records  a  large  sea-snake  which  was  seen  in 
1687  by  many  people  in  Dranisfiorden.  It  was  in  very  calm 
weather,  and  so  soon  as  the  sun  appeared,  and  the  wind 
blew  a  little,  it  shot  away  just  like  a  coiled  cable  that  is  sud- 
denly thrown  out  by  the  sailors  ;  and  they  observed  that  it 
was  some  time  in  stretching  out  its  many  folds. 

Captain  (afterwards  Sir  Arthur)  de  Capell  Brooke*  col- 
lected all  accounts  he  could,  during  his  journey  to  the 
North  Cape,  respecting  the  sea-serpent,  with  the  following 
results  : — 

"As  I  had  determined  on  arriving  at  the  coast  to  make 
every  inquiry  respecting  the  truth  of  the  accounts  which  had 
reached  England  the  preceding  year,  of  the  sea-serpent  having 
recently  been  seen  off  this  part  of  Norway,  I  shall  simply 
give  the  different  reports  I  received  during  my  voyage  to  the 
North  Cape,  leaving  others  to  their  own  conclusions,  and 
without  expressing,  at  least  for  the  present,  my  opinion 
respecting  them. 

"  The  fisherman  at  Pejerstad  said  a  serpent  was  seen  two 
years  ago  in  the  Folden- Fjord,  the  length  of  which,  as  far  as 
it  was  visible,  was  sixty  feet." 

At  Otersoen,  the  Postmaster,  Captain  Schielderup,  who 
had  formerly  been  in  the  Norwegian  sea  service,  and  seemed 
a  quick  intelligent  man,  stated  that  the  serpent  had  actually 
been  off  the  island  for  a  considerable  length  of  time  during 
the  preceding  summer,  in  the  narrow  parts  of  the  sound, 
between  this  island  and  the  continent,  and  the  description  he 
gave  was  as  follows : — 

"It  made  its  appearance  for  the  first  time  in  the  month 
of  July  1849  off  Otersoen.  Previous  to  this  he  had  often 
heard  of  the  existence  of  these  creatures,  but  never  before 

*  A.  de  Brooke,  Travels  to  the  North  Cape. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  273 


believed  it.  During  the  whole  of  that  month  the  weather 
was  excessively  sultry  and  calm  ;  and  the  serpent  was  seen 
every  day  nearly  in  the  same  part  of  the  Sound. 

"  It  continued  there  while  the  warm  weather  lasted,  lying 
motionless,  and  as  if  dozing,  in  the  sunbeams. 

"  The  number  of  persons  living  on  the  island,  he  said, 
was  about  thirty;  the  whole  of  whom,  from  motives  of 
curiosity,  went  to  look  at  it  while  it  remained.  This  was 
confirmed  to  me  by  subsequent  inquiries  among  the  inha- 
bitants, who  gave  a  similar  account  of  it.  The  first  time 
that  he  saw  it  he  was  in  a  boat,  at  the  distance  of  two  hun- 
dred yards.  The  length  of  it  he  supposes  to  have  been 
about  three  hundred  ells  or  six  hundred  feet.  Of  this  he 
could  not  speak  accurately;  but  it  was  of  considerable  length, 
and  longer  than  it  appeared,  as  it  lay  in  large  coils  above 
the  water  to  the  height  of  many  feet.  Its  colour  was  greyish. 
At  the  distance  at  which  he  was,  he  could  not  ascertain 
whether  it  were  covered  with  scales ;  but  when  it  moved  it 
made  a  loud  crackling  noise,  which  he  distinctly  heard.  Its 
head  was  shaped  like  that  of  a  serpent;  but  he  could  not  tell 
whether  it  had  teeth  or  not.  He  said  it  emitted  a  very  strong 
odour  ;  and  that  the  boatmen  were  afraid  to  approach  near 
it,  and  looked  on  its  coming  as  a  bad  sign,  as  the  fish  left  the 
coast  in  consequence  !  Such  were  the  particulars  he  related 
to  me. 

"The  merchant  at  Krogoen  confirmed  in  every  particular 
the  account  of  Captain  Schielderup,  and  that  many  of  the 
people  of  Krogoen  had  witnessed  it. 

"  On  the  island  of  Leko  I  obtained  from  the  son  of  Peter 
Greger,  the  merchant,  a  young  man  who  employed  himself  in 
the  fishery,  still  further  information  respecting  the  sea- 
serpent.  It  was  in  August  of  the  preceding  year,  while 
fishing  with  others  in  the  Viig  or  Veg-Fjord,  that  he  saw  it. 
At  that  time  they  were  on  shore  hauling  in  their  nets, 
and  it  appeared  about  sixty  yards  distant  from  them,  at 

13 


274  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

which  they  were  not  a  little  alarmed,  and  immediately  re- 
treated. What  was  seen  of  it  above  water,  he  said,  appeared 
six  times  the  length  of  their  boat,  of  a  grey  colour,  and 
lying  in  coils  a  great  height  above  the  surface.  Their  fright 
prevented  them  from  attending  more  accurately  to  other 
particulars.  In  fact,  they  all  fairly  took  to  their  heels  when 
they  found  the  monster  so  near  to  them. 

"  At  Alstahoug  I  found  the  Bishop  of  the  Nordlands.  The 
worthy  prelate  was  a  sensible  and  well-informed  man,  between 
fifty  and  sixty  years  of  age.  To  the  testimony  of  others 
respecting  the  existence  of  the  sea-serpent,  I  shall  now  add 
that  of  the  Bishop  himself,  who  was  an  eye-witness  to  the 
appearance  of  two  in  the  Bay  of  Shuresund  or  Sorsund,  on 
the  Drontheim  Fjord,  about  eight  Norway  miles  from  Dront- 
heim.  He  was  but  a  short  distance  from  them,  and 
saw  them  plainly.  They  were  swimming  in  large  folds,  part 
of  which  were  seen  above  the  water,  and  the  length  of  what 
appeared  of  the  largest  he  judged  to  be  about  one  hundred 
feet.  They  were  of  a  darkish  grey  colour;  the  heads  hardly 
discernible,  from  their  being  almost  under  water,  and  they 
were  visible  for  only  a  short  time.  Before  that  period  he 
had  treated  the  account  of  them  as  fabulous  ;  but  it  was  now 
impossible,  he  said,  to  doubt  their  existence,  as  such  numbers 
of  respectable  people  since  that  time  had  likewise  seen  them 
on  several  occasions.  He  had  never  met  with  any  person 
who  had  seen  the  kraken,  and  was  inclined  to  think  it  a 
fable. 

"During  the  time  that  I  remained  at  Hundholm,  a  curious 
circumstance  occurred.  One  day,  when  at  dinner  at  Mr. 
BlackhalFs  house,  and  thinking  little  of  the  sea-serpent,  con- 
cerning which  I  had  heard  nothing  for  some  time,  a  young 
man,  the  master  of  a  small  fishing-yacht,  which  had  just 
come  in  from  Drontheim,  joined  our  party.  In  the  course  of 
conversation  he  mentioned  that  a  few  hours  before,  whilst 
close  to  Hundholm,  and  previous  to  his  entering  the  harbour, 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  275 


two  sea-snakes  passed  immediately  under  his  yacht.  When 
he  saw  them  he  was  on  the  deck,  and,  seizing  a  handspike, 
he  struck  at  them  as  they  came  up  close  to  the  vessel  on  the 
other  side,  upon  which  they  disappeared.  Their  length  was 
very  great,  and  their  colour  greyish,  but  for  the  very  short 
time  they  were  visible  he  could  not  notice  any  further 
particulars. 

"  He  had  no  doubt  of  their  being  snakes,  as  he  called 
them,  and  the  circumstance  was  related  entirely  of  his  own 
accord."  . 

Captain  Brooke  sums  up  the  reports  he  received  with  the 
following  general  observations  : — 

"  Taking  upon  the  whole  a  fair  view  of  the  different 
accounts  related  in  the  foregoing  pages  respecting  the  sea- 
serpent,  no  reasonable  person  can  doubt  the  fact  of  some 
marine  animal  of  extraordinary  dimensions,  and  in  all  pro- 
bability of  the  serpent  tribe,  having  been  repeatedly  seen  by 
various  persons  along  the  Norway  and  Finmark  coasts. 
These  accounts,  for  the  most  part,  have  been  given  verbally 
from  the  mouths  of  the  fishermen,  a  honest  and  artless  class 
of  men,  who,  having  no  motive  for  misrepresentation,  cannot 
be  suspected  of  a  wish  to  deceive  ;  could  this  idea,  however, 
be  entertained,  the  circumstance  of  their  assertions  having 
been  so  fully  confirmed  by  others,  in  more  distant  parts, 
would  be  sufficient  to  free  them  from  any  imputation  of  this 
kind. 

"  The  simple  facts  are  these  :  In  traversing  a  space  of  full 
seven  hundred  miles  of  coast,  extending  to  the  most  northern 
point,  accounts  have  been  received  from  numerous  persons 
respecting  the  appearance  of  an  animal  called  by  them  a 
sea-serpent.  This  of  itself  would  induce  some  degree  of 
credit  to  be  given  to  it ;  but  when  these  several  relations 
as  to  the  general  appearance  of  the  animal,  its  dimensions, 
the  state  of  the  weather  when  it  was  seen,  and  other  parti- 
culars, are  so  fully  confirmed,  one  by  the  other,  at  such  con- 

18  * 


276  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

siderable  intervening  distances,  every  reasonable  man  will  feel 
satisfied  of  the  truth  of  the  main  fact.  Many  of  the  infor- 
mants, besides,  were  of  superior  rank  and  education;  and 
the  opinions  of  such  men  as  the  Amtmand  (Governor)  of 
Finmark,  Mr.  Steen,  the  clergyman  of  Carlso,  Prosten 
(Dean)  Deinboll  of  Vadso,  and  the  Bishop  of  Nordland  and 
Finmark,  who  was  even  an  eye-witness,  ought  not  to  be 
disregarded. 

"  The  Bishop  of  Nordland  has  seen  two  of  them  about  eight 
miles  from  Drontheim,  the  largest  being  apparently  one  hun- 
dred feet,  and,  in  1822,  one  as  bulky  as  an  ox,  and  a  quarter 
of  a  mile  in  length,  appeared  off  the  island  of  Soro,  near 
Finmark,  and  was  seen  by  many  people." 

Not  having  the  Zoologist  at  hand,  I  now  quote  a  resume  of 
short  notices  extracted  from  it,  contained  in  the  Illustrated 
London  News  for  October  28,  1848,  as  follows  : — 

"  Our  attention  has  been  drawn  to  the  Zoologist  for  the 
past  year,  wherein  are  several  communications  tending  to 
authenticate  the  existence  of  the  great  sea-serpent.  Thus, 
in  the  number  for  February  1847,  we  find  paragraphs  quoted 
from  the  Norse  newspapers  stating  that  in  the  neighbourhood 
of  Christiansund  and  Molde,  in  the  province  of  Bomsdal,  in 
Norway,  several  highly  respectable  and  credible  witnesses 
have  attested  the  seeing  of  the  serpent.  In  general,  they 
state  that  it  has  been  seen  in  the  larger  Norwegian  fjords, 
seldom  in  the  open  sea.  In  the  large  bight  of  the  sea  at 
Christiansund  it  has  been  seen  every  year,  though  only  in 
the  warmest  season,  in  the  dog  days,  and  then  only  in  per- 
fectly calm  weather  and  unruffled  water. 

"  Its  length  is  stated  at  about  forty-four  feet,  and  twice  as 
thick  as  a  common  snake,  in  proportion  to  the  length.  The 
front  of  the  head  was  rather  pointed,  the  eyes  sharp,  and 
from  the  back  of  the  head  commenced  a  mane  like  that  of  a 
horse.  The  colour  of  the  animal  was  a  blackish  brown.  It 
.swam  swiftly,  with  serpentine  movements  like  a  leech,  One 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  277 


of  the  witnesses  describes  the  body  to  be  two  feet  in  diameter, 
the  head  as  long  as  a  brandy  anker  (ten-gallon  cask)  and 
about  the  same  thickness,  not  pointed,  but  round.  It  had  no 
scales,  but  the  body  quite  smooth.  The  witness  acknow- 
ledged Pontoppidan's  representation  to  be  like  the  serpent  he 
saw." 

"  The  writer  of  this  article  received  letters  from  Mr.  Soren 
Knudtzon,  stating  that  a  sea-serpent  had  been  seen  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  Christiansund  by  several  people ;  and  from 
Dr.  Hoffmann,  a  respectable  surgeon  in  Molde,  stating  that, 
lying  on  a  considerable  fjord  to  the  south  of  Christiansund, 
Bector  Hammer,  Mr.  Krabt,  curate,  and  several  persons, 
very  clearly  saw,  while  on  a  journey,  a  sea-serpent  of  very 
considerable  size. 

"Four  other  persons  saw  a  similar  animal,  July  28th, 
1845. 

"  The  next  communication,  dated  Sund's  Parsonage, 
August  31st,  1846,  records  the  appearance  of  a  supposed 
sea-serpent,  on  the  8th,  in  the  course  between  the  islands  of 
Sartor  Leer  and  Tos.  Early  on  this  day,  just  as  the  steamer 
Eiorgmn  passed  through  Bogne  Fjord,  towing  a  vessel  to 
Bergen,  Daniel  Solomonson,  a  cotter,  saw  a  sea-monster 
swimming  from  Bogne  Fjord  in  a  westerly  direction  towards 
his  dwelling  at  Gronnevigskiseset,  in  the  northern  part  of  the 
parish  of  Sund.  The  head  appeared  like  a  Fsering  boat 
(about  twenty  feet  long)  keel  uppermost ;  and  from  behind  it 
raised  itself  forward  in  three,  and  sometimes  four  and  five 
undulations,  each  apparently  about  twelve  feet  long.  On 
the  same  morning  a  lad,  out  fishing  in  the  Bogne  Fjord, 
saw  a  serpent,  which  he  describes  to  have  been  sixty  feet 
long." 

For  further  information  on  the  Norwegian  sea-serpent,  I 
am  indebted  to  the  excellent  chapter,  devoted  to  the  question 
generally,  contained  in  Mr.  G-osse's  Romance  of  Natural 
History,  First  Series,  from  which  I  transfer,  without  abbre- 


278  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

viation,  a  statement  made  by  the  Rev.  W.  Deinboll,  Arch- 
deacon of  Molde  : — 

"  On  the  28th  of  July  1845,  J.  C.  Lund,  bookseller  and 
printer ;  G-.  S.  Krogh,  merchant ;  Christian  Flang,  Lund's 
apprentice  ;  and  John  Elgensen,  labourer,  were  out  on  Roms- 
dalfjord,  fishing.  The  sea  was,  after  a  warm  sunshiny  day, 
quite  calm.  About  seven  o'clock  in  the  afternoon,  a  little 
distance  from  shore,  near  the  ballast  place  and  Molde  Hove, 
they  saw  a  large  marine  animal  which  slowly  moved  itself 
forward,  as  it  appeared  to  them,  with  the  help  of  two  fins  on 
the  fore-part  of  the  body  nearest  the  head,  which  they  judged 
from  the  boiling  of  the  water  on  both  sides  of  it.  The  visible 
part  of  the  body  appeared  to  be  between  forty  and  fifty  feet  in 
length,  and  moved  in  undulations  like  a  snake.  The  body 
was  round  and  of  a  dark  colour,  and  seemed  to  be  several 
ells*  in  thickness.  As  they  discerned  a  waving  motion  in 
the  water  behind  the  animal,  they  concluded  that  part  of  the 
body  was  concealed  under  water.  That  it  was  one  connected 
animal  they  saw  plainly  from  its  movement.  When  the 
animal  was  about  one  hundred  yards  from  the  boat,  they 
noticed  tolerably  correctly  its  fore-part,  which  ended  in  a 
sharp  snout ;  its  colossal  head  raised  itself  above  the  water 
in  the  form  of  a  semi- circle  ;  the  lower  part  was  not  visible. 
The  colour  of  the  head  was  dark  brown,  and  the  skin  smooth. 
They  did  not  notice  the  eyes,  or  any  mane  or  bristles  on  the 
throat.  When  the  serpent  came  about  a  musket-shot  near, 
Lund  fired  at  it,  and  was  certain  the  shots  hit  it  in  the  head. 
After  the  shot  he  dived  but  came  up  immediately ;  he  raised 
his  head  like  a  snake  preparing  to  dart  on  its  prey.  After 
he  had  turned  and  got  his  body  in  a  straight  line,  which  he 
appeared  to  do  with  great  difficulty,  he  darted  like  an  arrow 
against  the  boat.  They  reached  the  shore,  and  the  animal, 
perceiving  it  had  come  into  shallow  water,  dived  immediately, 
and  disappeared  in  the  deep." 

*  1  ell=2  feet. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  279 


Mr.  Gosse  further  quotes  a  statement  made  by  an  English- 
man, writing  under  the  signature  of  "  Oxoniensis  "  in  the 
Times  of  November  4th,  1848,  to  the  effect  that— 

"  A  parish  priest,  residing  on  Romsdalfjord,  about  two 
days'  journey  south  of  Drontheim,  an  intelligent  person, 
whose  veracity  I  have  no  reason  to  doubt,  gave  me  a  cir- 
cumstantial account  of  one  which  he  had  himself  seen.  It 
rose  within  thirty  yards  of  the  boat  in  which  he  was,  and 
swam  parallel  with  it  for  a  considerable  time.  Its  head  he 
described  as  equalling  a  small  cask  in  size,  and  its  mouth, 
which  it  repeatedly  opened  and  shut,  was  furnished  with  for- 
midable teeth ;  its  neck  was  smaller,  but  its  body,  of  which 
he  supposed  that  he  saw  about  half  on  the  surface  of  the 
water,  was  not  less  in  girth  than  that  of  a  moderate-sized 
horse.  Another  gentleman,  in  whose  house  I  stayed,  had 
also  seen  one,  and  gave  a  similar  account  of  it ;  it  also  came 
near  his  boat  upon  the  fjord,  when  it  was  fired  at,  upon 
which  it  turned  and  pursued  them  to  the  shore,  which  was 
luckily  near,  when  it  disappeared.  They  expressed  great 
surprise  at  the  general  disbelief  attached  to  the  existence  of 
these  animals  amongst  naturalists,  and  assured  me  that  there 
was  scarcely  a  sailor  accustomed  to  those  inland  lakes  who 
had  not  seen  them  at  one  time  or  other." 

The  Rev.  Alfred  C.  Smith,  M.A.,  a  naturalist,  who  visited 
Norway  in  1850,  summarises  the  result  of  his  investigations 
in  the  words :  "  and  I  cannot  withhold  my  belief  in  the 
existence  of  some  huge  inhabitant  of  those  northern  seas, 
when,  to  my  mind,  the  fact  of  his  existence  has  been  so 
clearly  proved  by  numerous  eye-witnesses,  many  of  whom 
were  too  intelligent  to  be  deceived,  and  too  honest  to  be 
doubted." 

Passing  from  these  numerous  narratives,  which  are  dis- 
tinguished for  a  remarkable  agreement  in  the  main  charac- 
teristic described,  I  will  proceed  to  some  of  those  whose  scene 
lies  on  our  own  coast. 


280  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

In  1809,  Mr.  McLean,  the  parish  minister  of  Eigg,  com- 
municated to  Dr.  Neil,  the  Secretary  of  the  Wernerian 
Society,  the  following  statement : — * 

"  I  saw  the  animal  of  which  you  inquire,  in  June  1808,  on 
the  coast  of  Coll.  Rowing  along  that  coast,  I  observed,  at 
about  the  distance  of  half  a  mile,  an  object  to  windward, 
which  gradually  excited  astonishment.  At  first  view  it- 
appeared  like  a  small  rock  ;  but  knowing  that  there  was  no 
rock  in  that  situation,  I  fixed  my  eyes  closely  upon  it.  Then 
I  saw  it  elevated  considerably  above  the  level  of  the  sea,  and, 
after  a  slow  movement,  distinctly  perceived  one  of  its  eyes. 
Alarmed  at  the  unusual  appearance  and  magnitude  of  the 
animal,  I  steered  so  as  to  be  at  no  great  distance  from  the 
shore.  When  nearly  in  a  line  between  it  and  the  shore, 
the  monster,  directing  its  head,  which  still  continued  above 
water,  towards  us,  plunged  violently  under  water.  Certain 
that  he  was  in  chase  of  us,  we  plied  hard  to  get  ashore.  Just 
as  we  leapt  out  on  a  rock,  and  had  taken  a  station  as  high 
as  we  conveniently  could,  we  saw  it  coming  rapidly  under 
water  towards  the  stern  of  our  boat.  When  within  a  few 
yards  of  it,  finding  the  water  shallow,  it  raised  its  monstrous 
head  above  water,  and,  by  a  winding  course,  got,  with  appa- 
rent difficulty,  clear  of  the  creek  where  our  boat  lay,  and  where 
the  monster  seemed  in  danger  of  being  embayed.  It  con- 
tinued to  move  off,  with  its  head  above  water  and  with  the 
wind,  for  about  half  a  mile  before  we  lost  sight  of  it.  Its  head 
was  somewhat  broad,  and  of  form  somewhat  oval;  its  neck 
somewhat  smaller ;  its  shoulders,  if  I  can  so  term  them,  consi- 
derably broader,  and  thence  it  tapered  towards  the  tail,  which 
last  it  kept  pretty  low  in  the  water,  so  that  a  view  of  it  could 
not  be  taken  so  distinctly  as  I  wished.  It  had  no  fins  that  I 
could  perceive,  and  seemed  to  me  to  move  progressively  by 
undulation  up  and  down.  Its  length  I  believed  to  be 

*  Transactions  of  the  Wernerian  Society,  vol.  i.  p.  442. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  28l 


between  seventy  and  eighty  feet.  When  nearest  to  me  it  did 
not  raise  its  head  wholly  ahove  water,  so  that,  the  neck  being 
under  water,  I  could  perceive  no  shining  filaments  thereon,  if 
it  had  any.  Its  progressive  motion  under  water  I  took  to  be 
very  rapid.  About  the  time  I  saw  it,  it  was  seen  near  the 
Isle  of  Canna.  The  crews  of  thirteen  fishing-boats,  I  am 
told,  were  so  much  terrified  at  its  appearance,  that  they,  in  a 
body,  fled  from  it  to  the  nearest  creek  for  safety.  On  the 
passage  from  Kum  to  Canna,  the  crew  of  one  boat  saw  it 
coming  towards  them,  with  the  wind,  and  its  head  high  above 
water.  One  of  the  crew  pronounced  the  head  as  large  as  a  little 
boat,  and  its  eye  as  large  as  a  plate.  The  men  were  much 
terrified,  but  the  monster  offered  them  no  molestation." 

I  next  extract,  from  the  pages  of  the  Inverness  Courier, 
some  very  pertinent  remarks  upon  a  description  of  the  sea- 
monster  seen  by  the  Rev.  Messrs.  McKae  and  Twopeny,  con- 
tained in  the  Zoologist,  and  I  add  the  article  there  referred 
to.  I  had  the  advantage  of  hearing  from  a  gentleman 
related  to  Mr.  McRae  that  he  could  substantiate  his  state- 
ment, having  himself  about  the  same  time,  and  in  that 
locality,  observed  the  same  appearance,  though  at  a  greater 
distance  off. 

The  following  is  the  article  in  the  Inverness  Courier : — 
"  We  are  glad  to  see  that  the  two  gentlemen  who  favoured 
us  last  autumn  with  an  account  of  what  they  believed  to  be 
a  strange  animal  seen  off  the  west  coast,  Inverness- shire, 
have  published  in  the  Zoologist,  a  monthly  journal  of  natural 
history,  a  careful  description  of  the  creature  which  they  saw, 
and  which  seems  to  resemble  the  engravings  of  what  is  called 
the  Norwegian  sea-serpent.  We  subjoin  the  magazine 
article  entire.  There  is  such  a  dread  of  ridicule  in  appearing 
publicly  in  company  with  this  mysterious  and  disreputable 
monster,  that  we  must  commend  the  boldness  of  the  two 
cleigymen  in  putting  their  names  to  the  narrative ;  espe- 
cially as  we  observe  that  other  observers  have  not  been  so 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


courageous,  and  that  they  have  been  obliged  to  give  some  of 
their  information  anonymously. 

"  The  huge  serpent,  if  serpent  it  may  be  called,  inva- 
riably appears  in  still  warm  weather,  and  in  no  other. 
There  are  certain  Norwegian  fjords  and  narrow  seas  which  it 
frequents,  and  it  is  scarcely  ever  seen  in  the  open  sea.  In 
the  present  case,  the  limit  in  which  the  animal  has  been  seen 
on  our  coast,  is  Lochduich  to  the  north  and  the  Sound  of 
Mull  to  the  south,  only  about  a  fifth  of  the  space  between 
Cape  Wrath  and  the  Mull  of  Kintyre  ;  and  it  is  in  that  part 
it  should  be  most  looked  for.  We  beg  to  draw  the  attention 
of  our  readers  on  the  West  Coast  to  the  fact,  now  established 
on  indubitable  evidence,  of  the  supposed  animal  having  been 
seen  there  last  year,  and  to  the  possibility  of  its  appearing 
again  in  similar  weather  this  year.  If  it  chances  to  turn  up 
once  more,  some  full  and  accurate  account  of  the  pheno- 
menon would  certainly  be  most  desirable." 

The  following  is  the  article  in  the  Zoologist*  : — 

Appearance  of  an  animal,  believed  to  be  that  which  is  called  the  Nor- 
wegian Sea-serpent,  on  the  Western  Coast  of  Scotland,  in  August 
1872,  by  the  Eev.  John  McEae,  Minister  of  Glenelg,  Inverness- 
shire,  and  the  Rev.  David  Twopeny,  Vicar  of  Stockbury,  Kent. 

On  the  20th  of  August  1872  we  started  from  Glenelg  in  a  small 
cutter,  the  Leda,  for  an  excursion  to  Lochourn.  Our  party  consisted, 
besides  ourselves,  of  two  ladies,  F.  and  K.,  a  gentleman,  G.  B.,  and  a 
Highland  lad.  Our  course  lay  down  the  Sound  of  Sleat,  which  on  that 
side  divides  the  Isle  of  Skye  from  the  mainland,  the  average  breadth 
of  the  channel  in  that  part  being  two  miles. 

It  was  calm  and  sunshiny,  not  a  breath  of  air,  and  the  sea  perfectly 
smooth.  As  we  were  getting  the  cutter  along  with  oars  we  perceived  a 
dark  mass  about  two  hundred  yards  astern  of  us,  to  the  north.  While 
we  were  looking  at  it  with  our  glasses  (we  had  three  on  board)  another 
similar  black  lump  rose  to  the  left  of  the  first,  leaving  an  interval 
between ;  then  another  and  another  followed,  all  in  regular  order.  We 
did  not  doubt  its  being  one  living  creature :  it  moved  slowly  across 
our  wake,  and  disappeared.  Presently  the  first  mass,  which  was 

*  No.  92,  May  1873;  London,  Van  Voorst. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


evidently  the  head,  reappeared,  and  was  followed  by  the  rising  of  the 
other  black  lumps,  as  before.  Sometimes  three  appeared,  sometimes 
four,  five,  or  six,  and  then  sank  again.  When  they  rose,  the  head 
appeared  first,  if  it  had  been  down,  and  the  lumps  rose  after  it  in 
regular  order,  beginning  always  with  that  next  the  head,  and  rising 
gently  ;  but  when  they  sank,  they  sank  altogether  rather  abruptly, 
sometimes  leaving  the  head  visible. 

It  gave  the  impression  of  a  creature  crooking  up  its  back  to  sun 
itself.  There  was  no  appearance  of  undulation  ;  when  the  lumps  sank, 
other  lumps  did  not  rise  in  the  intervals  between  them.  The  greatest 
number  we  counted  was  seven,  making  eight  with  head,  as  shown  in 
sketch  No.  1  [two  engravings  are  given].  The  parts  were  separated  from 
each  other  by  intervals  of  about  their  own  length,  the  head  being  rather 
smaller  and  flatter  than  the  rest,  and  the  nose  being  very  slightly 
visible  above  the  water ;  but  we  did  not  see  the  head  raised  above  the 
surface  either  this  or  the  next  day,  nor  could  we  see  the  eye.  We 
had  no  means  of  measuring  the  length  with  any  accuracy ;  but  taking 
the  distance  from  the  centre  of  one  lump  to  the  centre  of  the  next  to 
be  six  feet,  and  it  could  scarcely  be  less,  the  whole  length  of  the 
portion  visible,  including  the  intervals  submerged,  would  be  forty-five 
feet. 

Presently,  as  we  were  watching  the  creature,  it  began  to  approach  us 
rapidly,  causing  a  great  agitation  in  the  sea.  Nearly  the  whole  of  the 
body,  if  not  all  of  it,  had  now  disappeared,  and  the  head  advanced  at  a 
great  rate  in  the  midst  of  a  shower  of  fine  spray,  which  was  evidently 
raised  in  some  way  by  the  quick  movement  of  the  animal — it  did  not 
appear  how — and  not  by  spouting.  F.  was  alarmed  and  retreated  to  the 
cabin,  crying  out  that  the  creature  was  coming  down  upon  us.  When 
within  about  a  hundred  yards  of  us  it  sank  and  moved  away  in  the 
direction  of  Syke,  just  under  the  surface  of  the  water,  for  we  could  trace 
its  course  by  the  waves  it  raised  on  the  still  sea  to  the  distance  of  a 
mile  or  more.  After  this  it  continued  at  intervals  to  show  itself, 
careering  about  at  a  distance,  as  long  as  we  were  in  that  part  of  the 
Sound ;  the  head  and  a  small  part  only  of  the  body  being  visible  on  the 
surface ;  but  we  did  not  again,  on  that  day,  see  it  so  near  nor  so  well  as 
at  first. 

At  one  time  F.  and  K.  and  G.  B.  saw  a  fin  sticking  up  at  a  little 
distance  back  from  the  head,  but  neither  of  us  were  then  observing.  On 
our  return  the  next  day  we  were  again  becalmed  on  the  north  side  of  the 
opening  of  Lochourn,  where  it  is  about  three  miles  wide,  the  day  warm 
and  sunshiny  as  before.  As  we  were  dragging  slowly  along  in  the  after- 
noon the  creature  again  appeared  over  towards  the  south  side,  at  a 
greater  distance  than  we  saw  it  the  first  day.  It  now  showed  itself  in 
three  or  four  rather  long  lines,  as  in  the  sketch  No.  2,  and  looked  con- 
siderably longer  than  it  did  the  day  before ;  as  nearly  as  we  could  com- 


284  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS 


pute,  it  looked  at  least  sixty  feet  in  length.  Soon  it  began  careering 
about,  showing  but  a  small  part  of  itself,  as  on  the  day  before,  and 
appeared  to  be  going  up  Lochourn.  Later  in  the  afternoon,  when  we 
were  still  becalmed  in  the  mouth  of  Lochourn,  and  by  using  the  oars 
had  nearly  reached  the  island  of  Sandaig,  it  came  rushing  past  us  about 
a  hundred  and  fifty  yards  to  the  south,  on  its  return  from  Lochourn. 
It  went  with  great  rapidity,  its  black  head  only  being  visible  through 
the  clear  sea,  followed  by  a  long  trail  of  agitated  water.  As  it  shot 
along,  the  noise  of  its  rush  through  the  water  could  be  distinctly  heard 
on  board.  There  were  no  organs  of  motion  to  be  seen,  nor  was  thei'e 
any  shower  of  spray  as  on  the  day  before,  but  merely  such  a  commotion 
in  the  sea  as  its  quick  passage  might  be  expected  to  make.  Its  progress 
was  equable  and  smooth,  like  that  of  a  log  towed  rapidly.  For  the  rest 
of  the  day,  as  we  worked  our  way  home  northwards  through  the  Sound 
of  Sleat,  it  was  occasionally  within  sight  of  us  until  nightfall,  rushing 
about  at  a  distance,  as  before,  and  showing  only  its  head,  and  a  small 
part  of  its  body  on  the  surface.  It  seemed  on  each  day  to  keep  about 
us,  and  as  we  were  always  then  rowing,  we  were  inclined  to  think  it 
perhaps  might  be  attracted  by  the  measured  sound  of  the  oars.  Its  only 
exit  in  this  direction  to  the  north  was  by  the  narrow  Strait  of  Kylerhea, 
dividing  Skye  from  the  mainland,  and  only  a  third  of  a  mile  wide,  and 
we  left  our  boat,  wondering  whether  this  strange  creature  had  gone  that 
way  or  turned  back  again  to  the  south.  We  have  only  to  add  to  this 
narrative  of  what  we  saw  ourselves,  the  following  instances  of  its  being 
seen  by  other  people,  of  the  correctness  of  which  we  have  no  doubt. 
The  ferrymen  on  each  side  of  Kylerhea  saw  it  pass  rapidly  through  on 
the  evening  of  the  21st,  and  heard  the  rush  of  the  water ;  they  were 
surprised,  and  thought  it  might  be  a  shoal  of  porpoises,  but  could  not 
comprehend  their  going  so  quickly. 

Finlay  McEae,  of  Bundaloch,  in  the  parish  of  Kintail,  was  within  the 
mouth  of  Lochourn  on  the  2J  st,  with  other  men  in  his  boat,  and  saw  the 
creature  at  about  the  distance  of  one  hundred  and  fifty  yards.  Two 
days  after  we  saw  it,  Alexander  Macmillan,  boat-builder  at  Dornie,  was 
fishing  in  a  boat  in  the  entrance  of  Lochduich,  half-way  between 
Druidag  and  Castledonan,  when  he  saw  the  animal,  near  enough  to  hear 
the  noise,  and  see  the  ripple  it  made  in  rushing  along  in  the  sea.  He 
says  that  what  seemed  its  head  was  followed  by  four  or  more  lumps,  or 
"  half-rounds,"  as  he  calls  them,  and  that  they  sometimes  rose  and  some- 
times sank  altogether.  He  estimated  its  length  at  not  less  than  between 
sixty  and  eighty  feet.  He  saw  it  also  on  two  subsequent  days  in  Loch- 
duich. On  all  these  occasions  his  brother,  Farquhar,  was  with  him  in 
the  boat,  and  they  were  both  much  alarmed,  and  pulled  to  the  shore 
in  great  haste. 

A  lady  at  Duisdale,  in  Skye,  a  place  overlooking  the  part  of  the  Sound 
which  is  opposite  the  opening  of  Lochourn,  said  that  she  was  looking 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  285 

out  with  a  glass  when  she  saw  a  strange  object  on  the  sea,  which 
appeared  like  eight  seals  in  a  row.  This  was  just  about  the  time  that  we 
saw  it.  We  were  also  informed  that  about  the  same  -time  it  was  seen 
from  the  island  of  Eigg,  between  Eigg  and  the  mainland,  about  twenty 
miles  to  the  south-west  of  the  opening  of  Lochourn.  We  have  not 
permission  to  mention  the  names  in  these  two  last  instances. 

JOHN  McRAE. 
DAVID  TWOPENY. 

P.S. — The  writers  of  the  above  account  scarcely  expect  the  public  to 
believe  in  the  existence  of  the  creature  which  they  [saw.  Bather  than 
that,  they  look  for  the  disbelief  and  ridicule  to  which  the  subject 
always  gives  rise,  partly  on  account  of  the  animal  having  been  pro- 
nounced to  be  a  snake,  without  any  sufficient  evidence,  but  principally 
because  of  the  exaggerations  and  fables  with  which  the  whole  subject  is 
beset.  Nevertheless,  they  consider  themselves  bound  to  leave  a  record 
of  what  they  saw,  in  order  that  naturalists  may  receive  it  as  a  piece  of 
evidence,  or  not,  according  to  what  they  think  it  is  worth.  The  animal 
will  very  likely  turn  up  on  those  coasts  again,  and  it  will  be  always  in 
that  "dead  season,"  so  convenient  to  editors  of  newspapers,  for  it  is 
never  seen  but  in  the  still  warm  days  of  summer  or  early  autumn. 
There  is  a  considerable  probability  that  it  has  visited  the  same  coasts 
before. 

In  the  summer  of  1871,  some  large  creature  was  seen  for  some  time 
rushing  about  in  Lochduich,  but  it  did  not  show  itself  sufficiently  for 
anyone  to  ascertain  what  it  was.  Also,  some  years  back,  a  well-known 
gentleman  of  the  West  Coast,  now  living,  was  crossing  the  Sound  of 
Mull,  from  Mull  to  the  mainland,  "  on  a  very  calm  afternoon,  when," 
as  he  writes,  "  our  attention  was  attracted  to  a  monster  which  had  come 
to  the  surface,  not  more  than  fifty  yards  from  our  boat.  It  rose  with- 
out causing  the  slightest  disturbance  of  the  sea,  or  making  the  slightest 
noise,  and  floated  for  some  time  on  the  surface,  but  without  exhibiting 
its  head  or  tail,  showing  only  the  ridge  of  the  back,  which  was  not  that 
of  a  whale  or  any  other  sea  animal  that  I  had  ever  seen.  The  back 
appeared  sharp  and  ridge-like,  and  in  colour  very  dark,  indeed  black, 
or  almost  so.  It  rested  quietly  for  a  few  minutes,  and  then  dropped 
quietly  down  into  the  deep,  without  causing  the  slightest  agitation.  I 
should  say  that  about  forty  feet  of  it,  certainly  not  less,  appeared  on 
the  surface." 

It  should  be  noticed  that  the  inhabitants  of  that  Western  Coast  are 
quite  familiar  with  the  appearance  of  whales,  seals,  and  porpoises,  and 
when  they  see  them  they  recognise  them  at  once.  Whether  the  creature 
which  pursued  Mr.  McLean's  boat  off  the  island  of  Coll  in  1808,  and 
of  which  there  is  an  account  in  the  Transactions  of  the  Wernerian 
Society  (vol.  i.  p.  442),  was  one  of  these  Norwegian  animals,  it  is  not 


28tf  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

easy  to  say.  Survivors  who  knew  Mr.  McLean,  say  that  he  could  quite 
be  relied  upon  for  truth. 

The  public  are  not  likely  to  believe  in  the  creature  till  it  is  caught, 
and  that  does  not  seem  likely  to  happen  just  yet,  for  a  variety  of 
reasons,  one  reason  being  that  it  has,  from  all  the  accounts  given  of  it, 
the  power  of  moving  very  rapidly.  On  the  20th,  while  we  were  be- 
calmed in  the  mouth  of  Lochourn,  a  steam-launch  slowly  passed  us, 
and,  as  we  watched  it,  we  reckoned  its  rate  at  five  or  six  miles  an  hour. 
When  the  animal  rushed  past  us  on  the  next  day  at  about  the  same 
distance,  and  when  we  were  again  becalmed  nearly  in  the  same  place, 
we  agreed  that  it  went  twice  as  fast  as  the  steamer,  and  we  thought 
that  its  rate  could  not  be  less  than  ten  or  twelve  miles  an  hour.  It 
might  be  shot,  but  would  probably  sink.  There  are  three  accounts  of  its 
being  shot  at  in  Norway  ;  in  one  instance  it  sank,  and  in  the  other  two 
it  pursued  the  boats,  which  were  near  the  shore,  but  disappeared  when 
it  found  itself  getting  into  shallow  water. 

It  should  be  mentioned  that  when  we  saw  this  creature,  and  made  our 
sketches  of  it,  we  had  never  seen  either  Pontoppidan's  Natural  History 
or  his  print  of  the  Norwegian  sea-serpent,  which  has  a  most  striking 
resemblance  to  the  first  of  our  own  sketches.  Considering  the  great 
body  of  reasonable  Norwegian  evidence,  extending  through  a  number  of 
years,  which  remains  after  setting  aside  fables  and  exaggerations,  it 
seems  surprising  that  no  naturalist  of  that  country  has  ever  applied 
himself  to  make  out  something  about  the  animal.  In  the  meantime,  as 
the  public  will  most  probably  be  dubious  about  quickly  giving  credit  to 
our  account,  the  following  explanations  are  open  to  them,  all  of  which 
have  been  proposed  to  me,  viz. : — porpoises,  lumps  of  sea-weed,  empty 
herring- barrels,  bladders,  logs  of  wood,  waves  of  the  sea,  and  inflated 
pig-skins !  but  as  all  these  theories  present  to  our  mind  greater  difficul- 
ties than  the  existence  of  the  animal  itself,  we  feel  obliged  to  decline 
them. 

The  editor  of  the  Zoologist  adds  : — 

I  have  long  since  expressed  my  firm  conviction  that  there  exists  a 
large  marine  animal  unknown  to  us  naturalists ;  I  maintain  this  belief 
as  firmly  as  ever. 

I  totally  reject  the  evidence  of  published  representations ;  but  I  do 
not  allow  these  imaginary  figures  to  interfere  with  a  firm  conviction. 

Here,  again,  we  have  the  same  general  resemblances, 
observed  under  the  same  conditions  of  weather,  as  in  the  case 
of  the  Norwegian  serpent.  As  to  the  pursuit,  which  may 
either  have  been  urged  from  motives  of  curiosity  or  of  anger, 
it  is  curious  to  find  a  remarkable  account  of  a  similar  incident 


THE  SEA-SEEPENT.  287 


in  Kotzebue's  Vogages,  where  it  is  stated  that  M.  Kriukoff, 
while  in  a  boat  at  Beering's  Island,  was  pursued  by  an 
animal  like  a  red  serpent,  and  immensely  long,  with  a  head 
like  that  of  a  sea-lion,  but  the  eyes  disproportionately  large. 
"  It  was  fortunate,"  observed  M.  Kriukoff,  "  we  were  so  near 
land,  or  the  monster  would  have  swallowed  us ;  he  raised  his 
head  far  above  the  surface,  and  the  sea-lions  were  so  terri- 
fied, that  some  rushed  into  the  water,  and  others  concealed 
themselves  on  the  shore  !  " 

The  last  notice  of  its  appearance  in  British  waters  is 
extracted  from  Nature,  as  follows  : — 

Believing  it  to  be  desirable  that  every  well-authenticated  observation 
indicating  the  existence  of  large  sea-serpents  should  be  permanently 
registered,  I  send  you  the  following  particulars  : — 

About  three  P.M.  on  Sunday,  September  3,  1882,  a  party  of  gentle- 
men and  ladies  were  standing  at  the  northern  extremity  of  Llandudno 
pier,  looking  towards  the  open  sea,  when  an  unusual  object  was 
observed  in  the  water  near  to  the  Little  Orine's  Head,  travelling 
rapidly  westwards  towards  the  Great  Orme.  It  appeared  to  be  just 
outside  the  mouth  of  the  bay,  and  would  therefore  be  about  a  mile 
distant  from  the  observers.  It  was  watched  for  about  two  minutes,  and 
in  that  interval  it  traversed  about  half  the  width  of  the  bay,  and  then 
suddenly  disappeared.  The  bay  is  two  miles  wide,  and  therefore  the 
object,  whatever  it  was,  must  have  travelled  at  the  rate  of  thirty  miles 
an  hour.  It  is  estimated  to  have  been  fully  as  long  as  a  large  steamer, 
say  two  hundred  feet;  the  rapidity  of  its  motion  was  particularly 
remarked  as  being  greater  than  that  of  any  ordinary  vessel.  The  colour 
appeared  to  be  black,  and  the  motion  either  corkscrew-like  or  snake-like, 
with  vertical  undulations.  Three  of  the  observers  have  since  made 
sketches  from  memory,  quite  independently,  of  the  impression  left  on  their 
minds,  and  on  comparing  these  sketches,  which  slightly  varied,  they 
have  agreed  to  sanction  the  accompanying  outline  as  representing  as 
nearly  as  possible  the  object  which  they  saw.  The  party  consisted  of 
W.  Barfoot,  J.P.,  of  Leicester,  F.  J.  Marlow,  solicitor,  of  Manchester, 
Mrs.  Marlow,  and  several  others.  They  discard  the  theories  of  birds  or 
porpoises  as  not  accounting  for  this  particular  phenomenon. 

F.  T.  MOTT. 

Birstall  Hill,  Leicester, 

January  Ib'th,  1883. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


It  must  also  be  mentioned  that  Dr.  Hibbert*  states  that 
the  sea-serpent  has  been  seen  in  the  Shetland  seas,  and 
instances  one  seen  off  the  Isle  Stonness,  Valley  Island,  and 
Dunvossness. 

The  first  that  we  hear  of  the  appearance  of  the  sea-serpent 
in  American  waters  is  of  one  which  appeared  on  the  coast  of 
Maine,  in  Penobscot  Bay,  at  intervals,  during  the  thirty  years 
preceding  1809.  The  Rev.  Abraham  Cummings,  who  reports 
this,  saw  it  himself  at  a  distance  of  about  eighty  yards,  and 
considered  it  to  be  seventy  feet  long ;  it  was  seen  by  the 
British  in  their  expedition  to  Bagaduse,  during  the  first 
American  war,  and  supposed  to  be  three  hundred  feet  long. 
The  next  record  relates  to  one  appearing  in  August  1817, 
which  was  frequently  seen  in  the  harbour  of  Gloucester,  Cape 
Aure,  about  thirty  miles  from  Boston.  It  is  the  subject  of 
a  report,  published  by  a  committee  appointed  by  the  Linnaean 
Society  of  New  England.  Dr.  Hamilton  summarises  the 
results  as  follows  : — 

"  The  affidavits  of  a  great  many  individuals  of  unblemished 
character  are  collected,  which  leaves  no  room  to  apprehend 
anything  like  deceit.  They  do  not  agree  in  every  minute 
particular,  but  in  regard  to  its  great  length  and  snake-like 
form,  they  are  harmonious." 

Eleven  depositions  were  taken,  in  which  the  length 
was  variously  estimated  at  from  fifty  to  one  hundred 
feet.  It  was  either  seen  lying  perfectly  still,  extended  upon 
the  surface  of  the  water,  or  progressing  rapidly  at  the  rate 
of  a  mile  in  two,  or  at  the  most  three,  minutes ;  the  mode  of 
progression  is  generally  spoken  of  as  vertical  undulation.  The 
tenth  deposition  states  :  "  On  the  20th  of  June  1815,  my  boy 
informed  me  of  an  unusual  appearance  on  the  surface  of  the 
sea  in  the  Cove.  When  I  viewed  it  through  the  glass,  I  was 
in  a  moment  satisfied  that  it  was  some  aquatic  animal,  with 


*  Shetland  Islands,  p.  565. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


the  form,  motions,  and  appearance  of  which  I  was  not  pre- 
viously acquainted.  It  was  about  a  quarter  of  a  mile  from 
the  shore,  and  was  moving  with  great  rapidity  to  the  south- 
ward ;  it  appeared  about  thirty  feet  in  length.  Presently  it 
turned  about,  and  then  displayed  a  greater  length,  I  suppose 
at  least  one  hundred  feet.  It  then  came  towards  me  very 
rapidly,  and  lay  entirely  still  on  the  surface  of  the  water. 
His  appearance  then  was  like  a  string  of  buoys.  I  saw 
thirty  or  forty  of  these  protuberances,  or  bunches,  which 
were  about  the  size  of  a  barrel.  The  head  appeared  six  or 
eight  feet  long,  and  tapered  off  to  the  size  of  a  horse's  head. 
He  then  appeared  about  one  hundred  and  twenty  feet  long  ; 
the  body  appeared  of  a  uniform  size  ;  the  colour  deep  brown. 
I  could  not  discover  any  eye,  mane,  gills,  or  breathing  holes. 
I  did  not  see  any  fins  or  lips." 

One  of  the  Committee  of  the  Linneean  Society  was  himself 
an  eye-witness,  and  Colonel  Perkins,  of  Boston,  published  in 
1848  a  communication  which  was  a  copy  of  a  letter  he  had 
written  in  1820,  detailing  his  personal  experience  in  con- 
firmation of  the  Society's  Report,  as  follows : — "  In  a  few 
moments  after  my  exclamation,  I  saw,  on  the  opposite  side 
of  the  harbour,  at  about  two  miles  from  where  I  had  first 
seen,  or  thought  I  saw,  the  snake,  the  same  object,  moving 
with  a  rapid  motion  up  the  harbour,  on  the  western  shore. 
As  he  approached  us,  it  was  easy  to  see  that  his  motion  was 
not  that  of  the  common  snake,  either  on  the  land  or  in  the 
water,  but  evidently  the  vertical  movement  of  the  caterpillar. 
As  nearly  as  I  could  judge,  there  was  visible  at  a  time  about 
forty  feet  of  his  body.  It  was  not,  to  be  sure,  a  continuity 
of  body,  as  the  form  from  head  to  tail  (except  as  the  apparent 
bunches  appeared  as  he  moved  through  the  water)  was  seen 
only  at  three  or  four  feet  asunder.  It  was  very  evident, 
however,  that  his  length  must  be  much  greater  than  what 
appeared,  as  in  his  movement  he  left  a  considerable  wake  in 
his  rear.  I  had  a  fine  glass,  and  was  within  from  one-third 

19 


290  MYTHICAL  MONSTEES. 

to  half  a  mile  of  him.  The  head  was  flat  in  the  water, 
and  the  animal  was,  as  far  as  I  could  distinguish,  of  a  choco- 
late colour.  I  was  struck  with  an  appearance  in  front  of  the 
head  like  a  single  horn,  about  nine  inches  to  a  foot  in  length, 
and  of  the  form  of  a  marline -spike.  There  were  a  great 
many  people  collected  by  this  time,  many  of  whom  had 
before  seen  the  same  object,  and  the  same  appearance. 
From  the  time  I  first  saw  him  until  he  passed  by  the  place 
where  I  stood,  and  soon  after  disappeared,  was  not  more 
than  fifteen  or  twenty  minutes. 

"  Subsequent  to  the  period  of  which  I  have  been  speaking, 
the  snake  was  seen  by  several  of  the  crews  of  our  coasting 
vessels,  and  in  some  instances  within  a  few  yards.  Captain 
Tappan,  a  person  well  known  to  me,  saw  him  with  his  head 
above  the  water  two  or  three  feet,  at  times  moving  with  great 
rapidity,  and  at  others  slowly.  He  also  saw  what  explained 
the  appearance,  which  I  have  described,  of  a  horn  on  the 
front  of  the  head.  This  was  doubtless  what  was  observed 
by  Captain  Tappan  to  be  the  tongue,  thrown  in  an  upright 
position  from  the  mouth,  and  having  the  appearance  which 
I  have  given  to  it. 

"  One  of  the  revenue  cutters,  whilst  in  the  neighbourhood 
of  Cape  Ann,  had  an  excellent  view  of  him  at  a  few  yards' 
distance.  He  moved  slowly ;  and  upon  the  approach  of  the 
vessel,  sank  and  was  seen  no  more." 

Dr.  Hamilton*  states  that  an  animal  of  similar  appearance 
was  again  seen,  in  August  1819,  off  Nahant,  Boston,  and 
remained  in  the  neighbourhood  for  some  weeks.  Two  hun- 
dred persons  witnessed  it,  thirteen  folds  were  counted,  and 
the  head,  which  was  serpent-shaped,  was  elevated  two  feet 
above  the  surface.  Its  eye  was  remarkably  brilliant  and 
glistening.  The  water  was  smooth,  and  the  weather  calm 
and  serene.  When  it  disappeared,  its  motion  was  undulatory, 

*  Jardine's  Naturalist" a  Library,  vol.  xxv. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  291 


making  curves  perpendicular  to  the  surface  of  the  water,  and 
giving  the  appearance  of  a  long  moving  string  of  corks.  It 
appeared  again  off  Nahant  in  July  1833.  "  It  was  first 
seen  on  Saturday  afternoon,  passing  between  Egg  Kock  and 
the  Promontory,  winding  his  way  into  Lynn  Harbour  ;  and 
again  on  Sunday  morning,  heading  for  South  Shores.  It 
was  seen  by  forty  or  fifty  ladies  and  gentlemen,  who  insist 
that  they  could  not  have  been  deceived." 

The  Zoologist  for  May  1847  contains  an  account  of  a  sea- 
serpent  seen  in  Mahone  Bay,  about  forty  miles  east  of 
Halifax,  by  five  officers  of  the  garrison,  when  on  a  fishing 
excursion  : — "  We  were  surprised  by  the  sight  of  an  immense 
shoal  of  grampuses,  which  appeared  in  an  unusual  state  of 
excitement,  and  which  in  their  gambols  approached  so  close 
to  our  little  craft  that  some  of  the  party  amused  themselves 
by  firing  at  them  with  rifles.  At  this  time  we  were  jogging 
at  about  five  miles  an  hour,  and  must  have  been  crossing 
Margaret's  Bay,  '  when  suddenly,'  at  a  distance  of  from  a 
hundred  and  fifty  to  two  hundred  yards  on  our  starboard  bow, 
we  saw  the  head  and  neck  of  some  denizen  of  the  deep,  pre- 
cisely like  those  of  a  common  snake,  in  the  act  of  swimming, 
the  head  so  far  elevated  and  thrown  forward  by  the  curve  of 
the  neck,  as  to  enable  us  to  see  the  water  under  and  beyond 
it.  The  creature  rapidly  passed,  leaving  a  regular  wake, 
from  the  commencement  of  which  to  the  fore  part,  which 
was  out  of  water,  we  judged  in  length  to  be  about  eighty 
feet,  and  this  within  rather  than  beyond  the  mark.  It  is 
most  difficult  to  give  correctly  the  dimensions  of  any  object 
in  the  water.  The  head  of  the  creature  we  set  down  at  about 
six  feet  in  length,  and  that  portion  of  the  neck  which  we  saw 
the  same ;  the  extreme  length,  as  before  stated,  at  between 
eighty  and  one  hundred  feet.  The  neck  in  thickness  equalled 
the  bole  of  a  moderate-sized  tree.  The  head  and  neck  of  a 
dark  brown  or  nearly  black  colour,  streaked  with  white  in  irre- 
gular streaks.  I  do  not  recollect  seeing  any  part  of  the  body," 

19  • 


292  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Considerable  interest  was  excited  in  1848  by  the  account 
of  a  sea-serpent  seen  by  the  captain  and  officers  of  Her 
Majesty's  ship  Dcedalus  while  on  her  passage  from  the  Cape 
of  Good  Hope  to  St.  Helena,  in  lat.  24°  44'  S.  and  long. 
9°  22'  B.  In  this  case  the  usual  concomitants  of  calm 
weather  and  absence  of  swell  are  wanting.  The  official 
report  to  the  Admiralty  is  as  follows  : — 


FIG.  70. — SEA-SERPENT  SEEN  BY  THE  CREW  OF  H.M.S.  "DAEDALUS,"  IN  1848. 

H.M.S.  Dcedalus, 

Hamoaze,  Oct.  11. 

SIR, — In  reply  to  your  letter  of  this  day's  date,  requiring  information 
as  to  the  truth  of  a  statement  published  in  the  Times  newspaper,  of  a 
sea-serpent  of  extraordinary  dimensions  having  been  seen  from  Her 
Majesty's  ship  Dwdalus,  under  my  command,  on  her  passage  from  the 
East  Indies,  I  have  the  honour  to  acquaint  you,  for  the  information  of 
my  Lords  Commissioners  of  the  Admiralty,  that  at  5  o'clock  P.M.  on  the 
6th  of  August  last,  in  latitude  24°  44'  S.  and  longitude  9°  22'  E.,  the 
weather  dark  and  cloudy,  wind  fresh  from  the  N.W.,  with  a  long  ocean 
swell  from  the  S.W.,  the  ship  on  the  port  tack,  heading  N.E.  by  N., 
something  very  unusual  was  seen  by  Mr.  Sartoris,  midshipman,  rapidly 
approaching  the  ship  from  before  the  beam.  The  circumstance  was 
immediately  reported  by  him  to  the  officer  of  the  watch,  Lieutenant 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


Edgar  Druinmond,  with  whom  and  Mr.  William  Barrett,  the  master,  I 
was  at  the  time  walking  the  quarter-deck.  The  ship's  company  were  at 
supper. 

On  our  attention  being  called  to  the  object,  it  was  discovered  to  be 
an  enormous  serpent,  with  head  and  shoulders  kept  about  four  feet 
constantly  above  the  surface  of  the  sea;  and  as  nearly  as  we  could 
approximate  by  comparing  it  with  the  length  of  what  our  main  topsail- 
yard  would  show  in  the  water,  there  was  at  the  very  least  sixty  feet  of 
the  animal  a  fleur  d'eau,  no  portion  of  which  was,  in  our  perception, 
used  in  propelling  it  through  the  water,  either  by  vertical  or  horizontal 
undulation.  It  passed  rapidly,  but  so  close  under  our  lee  quarter  that 
had  it  been  a  man  of  my  acquaintance  I  should  have  easily  recognized 
his  features  with  the  naked  eye  ;  and  it  did  not,  either  in  approaching 
the  ship  or  after  it  had  passed  our  wake,  deviate  in  the  slightest  degree 
from  its  course  to  the  S.W.,  which  it  held  on  at  the  pace  of  from 
twelve  to  fifteen  miles  per  hour,  apparently  on  some  determined  purpose. 
The  diameter  of  the  serpent  was  about  fifteen  or  sixteen  inches  behind 
the  head,  which  was,  without  any  doubt,  that  of  a  snake ;  and  it  was 
never,  during  the  twenty  minutes  that  it  continued  in  sight  of  our 
glasses,  once  below  the  surface  of  the  water ;  its  colour,  a  dark  brown 
with  yellowish  white  about  the  throat.  It  had  no  fins,  but  something 
like  the  mane  of  a  horse,  or  rather  a  bunch  of  sea-weed,  washed  about 
its  back.  It  was  seen  by  the  quarter-master,  the  boatswain's  mate,  and 
the  man  at  the  wheel,  in  addition  to  myself  and  officers  above  men- 
tioned. 

I  am  having  a  drawing  of  the  serpent  made  from  a  sketch  taken 
immediately  after  it  was  seen,  which  I  hope  to  have  ready  for  transmis- 
sion to  my  Lords  Commissioners  of  the  Admiralty  by  to-morrow's  post. 

I  have,  &c., 

PETEB  M'QuncE,  Gapt. 

To  Admiral  Sir  W.  H.  Gage,  G.C.B., 
Devonport. 

This  drawing  was  figured  in  the  Illustrated  London  News 
in  illustration  of  a  short  but  very  valuable  memoir,  and  is 
reproduced  upon  a  smaller  scale  here. 

A  similar,  perhaps  the  same,  monster  was  fallen  in  with 
at  a  slightly  later  date,  20°  further  south,  as  described  in  a 
letter  addressed  to  the  editor  of  the  Globe. 

Mary  Ann  of  Glasgow. 

Glasgow,  Oct.  19,  1848. 

SIR,— I  have  just  reached  this  port,  on  a  voyage  from  Malta  to 
Lisbon,  and  my  attention  having  been  called  to  a  report  relative  to  an 


294  MYTHICAL   MONSTEM. 


animal  seen  by  the  master  and  crew  of  Her  Majesty's  ship  Dcedalus,  I 
take  the  liberty  of  communicating  the  following  circumstance : — 

"  When  clearing  out  of  the  port  of  Lisbon,  upon  the  30th  of  Sep- 
tember last,  we  spoke  the  American  brig  Daphne,  of  Boston,  Mark 
Trelawny  master ;  she  signalled  for  us  to  heave  to,  which  we  did,  and 
standing  close  round  her  counter  lay  to  while  the  mate  boarded  us  with 
the  jolly  boat,  and  handed  a  packet  of  letters,  to  be  despatched  per 
first  steamer  for  Boston  on  our  arrival  in  England.  The  mate  told  me 
that  when  in  lat.  4°  11'  S.,  long.  10°  15'  E.,  wind  dead  north,  upon  the 
20th  of  September,  a  most  extraordinary  animal  had  been  seen. 
Prom  his  description,  it  had  the  appearance  of  a  huge  serpent  or 
snake,  with  a  dragon's  head. 

"  Immediately  upon  its  being  seen,  one  of  the  deck  guns  was  brought 
to  bear  upon  it,  which,  having  been  charged  with  spike-nails  and  what- 
ever other  pieces  of  iron  could  be  got  at  the  moment,  was  discharged 
at  the  animal,  then  only  distant  about  forty  yards  from  the  ship.  It 
immediately  reared  its  head  in  the  air,  and  plunged  violently  with  its 
body,  showing  evidently  that  the  charge  had  taken  effect.  The  Daphne 
was  to  leeward  at  the  time,  but  was  put  about  on  the  starboard  tack, 
and  stood  towards  the  brute,  which  was  seen  foaming  and  lashing  the 
water  at  a  fearful  rate.  Upon' the  brig  nearing,  however,  it  disappeared, 
and,  though  evidently  wounded,  made  rapidly  off  at  the  rate  of  fifteen 
or  sixteen  knots  an  hour,  as  was  judged  from  its  appearing  several 
times  upon  the  surface.  The  Daphne  pursued  for  some  time;  but 
the  night  coming  on,  the  master  was  obliged  to  put  about  and 
continue  his  voyage. 

From  the  description  given  by  the  mate,  the  brute  must  have  been 
nearly  a  hundred  feet  long,  and  his  account  of  it  agrees  in  every  respect 
with  that  lately  forwarded  to  the  Admiralty  by  the  master  of  the  Daedalus. 

JAMES  HENDERSON,  Master. 

The  account  of  the  creature  seen  by  the  officers  and  crew 
of  the  Dtxdalus  excited  more  than  the  usual  attention  given 
to  these  stories ;  for  the  professional  status  of  the  observers 
guaranteed  at  once  the  veracity  of  their  statement,  and  the 
probability  of  their  judgment  being  accurate.  Considerable 
correspondence  ensued,  including  a  very  masterly  attack 
upon  the  identification  of  the  creature  by  Professor  Owen, 
which  will  be  again  referred  to  further  on.  It  also  elicited 
another  sea-serpent  story  which  appeared  in  the  Bombay 
Bi-monthly  Times  for  January  1849. 

I  see,  in  your  paper  of  the  30th  of  December,  a  paragraph  in  which 
a  doubt  is  expressed  of  the  authenticity  of  the  account  given  by 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  295 


Captain  M'Quhce  of  the  great  "  sea-serpent."  When  returning  to 
India,  in  the  year  1829,  I  was  standing  on  the  poop  of  the  Royal 
Saxon,  in  conversation  with  Captain  Petrie,  the  commander  of  that 
ship.  We  were  at  a  considerable  distance  south-west  of  the  Cape  of 
Good  Hope,  in  the  usual  track  of  vessels  to  this  country,  going 
rapidly  along  (seven  or  eight  knots)  in  fine  smooth  water.  It  was 
in  the  middle  of  the  day,  and  the  other  passengers  were  at  luncheon, 
the  man  at  the  wheel,  a  steerage  passenger,  and  ourselves  being  the 
only  persons  on  the  poop.  Captain  Petrie  and  myself,  at  the  same 
instant,  were  literally  fixed  in  astonishment  by  the  appearance,  a  short 
distance  ahead,  of  an  animal  of  which  no  more  generally  correct 
description  could  be  given  than  that  by  Captain  M'Quhce.  It  passed 
within  thirty-five  yards  of  the  ship  without  altering  its  course  in  the 
least;  but  as  it  came  right  abreast  of  us,  it  slowly  turned  its  head 
towards  us.  Apparently  about  one-third  of  the  upper  part  of  its  body 
was  above  water,  in  nearly  its  whole  length  ;  and  we  could  see  the  water 
curling  up  on  its  breast  as  it  moved  along,  but  by  what  means  it  moved 
we  could  not  perceive.  .  .  .  We  saw  this  apparently  similar  creature  in 
its  whole  length,  with  the  exception  of  a  small  portion  of  the  tail,  which 
was  under  water ;  and  by  comparing  its  length  with  that  of  the  Royal 
Saxon  (about  six  hundred  feet)  when  exactly  alongside  in  passing,  we 
calculated  it  to  be  in  that,  as  well  as  its  other  dimensions,  greater  than 
the  animal  described  by  Captain  M'Quhce.  I  am  not  quite  sure  of  our 
latitude  a'nd  longitude  at  the  time,  nor  do  I  exactly  remember  the  date, 
but  it  was  about  the  end  of  July. 

E.  DAVIDSON, 
Superintending  Surgeon, 

Kamptu,  Nagpore  Subsidiary  Force. 

3rd  January  1849. 

Again,  Lieutenant-Colonel  Thomas  Steele,  of  the  Cold- 
stream  Guards,  wrote  to  the  Zoologist :  "I  have  lately 
received  the  following  account  from  my  brother,  Captain 
Steele,  9th  Lancers,  who,  on  his  way  out  to  India  in  the 
Barham,  saw  the  sea-serpent.  Thinking  it  might  be  interest- 
ing to  you,  as  corroborating  the  account  of  the  Dadalus,  I 
have  taken  the  liberty  of  sending  you  the  extract  from  my 
brother's  letter:—'  On  the  28th  of  August,  in  long.  40°  E., 
lat.  37°  16'  S.,  about  half-past  two,  we  had  all  gone  down 
below  to  get  ready  for  dinner,  when  the  first  mate  called  us 
on  deck  to  see  a  most  extraordinary  sight.  About  five  hun- 
dred yards  from  the  ship  there  was  the  head  and  neck  of  an 


296  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

enormous  snake  ;  we  saw  about  sixteen  or  twenty  feet  out  of 
the  water,  and  he  spouted  a  long  way  from  his  head  ;  down 
his  back  he  had  a  crest  like  a  cock's  comb,*  and  was  going 
very  slowly  through  the  water,  but  left  a  wake  of  about  fifty 
or  sixty  feet,  as  if  dragging  a  long  body  after  him.  The 
captain  put  the  ship  off  her  course  to  run  down  to  him,  but 
as  we  approached  him  he  went  down.  His  colour  was  green, 
with  light  spots.  He  ivas  seen  by  everyone  on  board.''  My 
brother  is  no  naturalist ;  and  I  think  this  is  the  first  time 
the  monster  has  ever  been  seen  to  spout." 

One  of  the  officers  of  the  ship  wrote  :  "  On  looking  over 
the  side  of  the  vessel  I  saw  a  most  wonderful  sight,  which  I 
shall  recollect  as  long  as  I  live.  His  head  appeared  to  be 
about  sixteen  feet  above  the  water,  and  he  kept  moving  it  up 
and  down,  sometimes  showing  his  enormous  neck,  which  was 
surmounted  with  a  huge  crest  in  the  shape  of  a  saw.  It 
was  surrounded  by  hundreds  of  birds,  and  we  at  first  thought 
it  was  a  dead  whale.  He  left  a  track  in  the  water  like  the 
wake  of  a  boat,  and  from  what  we  could  see  of  his  head  and 
part  of  his  body,  we  were  led  to  think  he  must  be  about 
sixty  feet  in  length,  but  he  might  be  more.  The  captain 
kept  the  vessel  away  to  get  nearer  to  him ;  and  when  we 
were  within  a  hundred  yards  he  slowly  sank  into  the  depths 
of  the  sea.  While  we  were  at  dinner  he  was  seen  again." 

The  Times,  of  Feb.  5,  1858,  contains  a  statement  made 
by  Captain  Harrington,  of  the  ship  Castilian,  and  certified  to 
by  his  chief  and  second  officers,  as  follows  : — 

"Ship  Castilian,  Dec.  12,  1857;  N.E.  end  of  St.  Helena, 
distant  ten  miles.  At  6.30  P.M.,  strong  breezes  and  cloudy, 
ship  sailing  about  twelve  miles  per  hour.  While  myself  and 
officers  were  standing  on  the  leeside  of  the  poop,  looking 
towards  the  island,  we  were  startled  by  the  sight  of  a  huge 
marine  animal,  which  reared  its  head  out  of  the  water  within 


*  How  this  reminds  one  of  the  Chinese  dragon. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  297 

twenty  yards  of  the  ship,  when  it  suddenly  disappeared  for 
about  half  a  minute,  and  then  made  its  appearance  in  the 
same  manner  again,  showing  us  distinctly  its  neck  and  head 
about  ten  or  twelve  feet  out  of  the  water.  Its  head  was 
shaped  like  a  long  nun-buoy,  and  I  suppose  the  diameter  to 
have  been  seven  or  eight  feet  in  the  largest  part,  with  a  kind 
of  scroll,  or  tuft  of  loose  skin,  encircling  it  about  two  feet 
from  the  top  ;  the  water  was  discoloured  for  several  hundred 
feet  from  its  head,  so  much  so  that,  on  its  first  appearance, 
my  impression  was  that  the  ship  was  in  broken  water,  pro- 
duced, as  I  supposed,  by  some  volcanic  agency  since  the  last 
time  I  had  passed  the  island ;  but  the  second  appearance 
completely  dispelled  those  fears,  and  assured  us  that  it  was 
a  monster  of  extraordinary  length,  which  appeared  to  be 
moving  slowly  towards  the  land.  The  ship  was  going  too 
fast  to  enable  us  to  reach  the  masthead  in  time  to  form  a 
correct  estimate  of  its  extreme  length ;  but  from  what  we 
saw  from  the  deck,  we  conclude  that  it  must  have  been  over 
two  hundred  feet  long.  The  boatswain  and  several  of  the 
crew  who  observed  it  from  the  topgallant  forecastle,  state 
that  it  was  more  than  double  the  length  of  the  ship,  in  which 
case  it  must  have  been  five  hundred  feet.  Be  that  as  it  may, 
I  am  convinced  that  it  belonged  to  the  serpent  tribe  ;  it  was 
of  a  dark  colour  about  the  head,  and  was  covered  with 
several  white  spots." 

A  writer  in  the  New  York  Sun  (I  have  the  clipping,  but, 
unfortunately,  not  the  date),  discussing  the  best  authenti- 
cated stories,  says  :  "The  Lynn  sea-serpent  appears  to  be 
the  most  authentic,  the  writer  having  seen  several  persons 
who  saw  it  from  the  beach,  and  knowing  others  personally  or 
by  reputation.  The  first  animal  of  this  kind  seen  about 
Lynn  was  in  1638,  and  was  seen  by  Dr.  John  Josselyn  ;  and 
again  another  was  observed,  in  1819,  by  Mr.  Cabot.  Amos 
Lawrance,  one  of  the  pillars  of  old  Boston,  said :  '  I  have 
never  had  any  doubt  of  the  existence  of  the  sea-serpent 


298  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

since  the  morning  he  was  seen  off  Nahant  by  old  Marshal 
Prince  through  his  famous  masthead  spy- glass.  For  within 
the  next  two  hours  I  conversed  with  Samuel  Cabot  and 
Daniel  P.  Parker,  I  think,  and  one  or  more  persons  besides, 
who  had  spent  a  part  of  that  morning  in  witnessing  its 
movements.  In  addition,  Colonel  Harris,  the  commander 
at  Fort  Independence,  told  me  that  the  creature  had  been 
seen  by  a  number  of  his  soldiers  while  standing  sentry  at 
early  dawn,  some  time  before  this  show  at  Nahant  ;  and 
Colonel  Harris  believed  it  as  firmly  as  though  the  creature 
were  drawn  up  before  us  in  State  Street,  where  we  then 
were.'  Such  is  the  history  of  the  Lynn  sea-serpent;  and 
the  following  is  an  extract  from  the  report  of  the  Linnaean 
Society  of  Boston,  made  by  Dr.  Bigelow  and  F.  C.  Gray  : 
'  The  monster  was  from  eighty  to  ninety  feet  long ;  his  head 
usually  carried  about  two  feet  above  the  water ;  the  body  of 
a  dark  brown  colour,  with  thirty  or  forty  more  protuberances, 
compared  by  some  to  four-gallon  kegs,  by  others  to  a  string 
of  buoys,  and  called,  by  some,  bunches  on  the  back.  Motions 
very  rapid — faster  than  those  of  a  whale  ;  swimming  a  mile 
in  three  minutes,  and  sometimes  more,  leaving  a  wake 
behind  him;  chasing  mackerel,  herrings,  and  other  fish, 
which  were  seen  jumping  out  of  the  water  fifty  at  a  time  as 
he  approached.  He  only  came  to  the  surface  of  the  sea  in 
calm  and  bright  weather.  A  skilful  gunner  fired  at  him  from 
our  boat,  and,  having  taken  good  aim,  felt  sure  he  must  have 
hit  him  on  the  head.  The  creature  turned  towards  him, 
then  dived  under  the  boat,  and  reappeared  a  hundred  yards 
on  the  other  side.'  In  February  of  1846  a  letter  was  printed 
in  the  various  newspapers,  signed  by  Captain  Lawson,  giving 
a  description  of  a  monstrous  snake  seen  by  him  from  his 
vessel  off  Capes  Charles  and  Henry.  The  length  was  stated 
at  one  hundred  feet,  and  on  the  back  were  seen  sharp 
projections.  The  head  was  small  in  proportion  to  the 
length." 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


I  next  append  a  few  short  statements  which  have  appeared 
at  various  dates  in  the  public  prints. 

The  News  of  the  World,  Sept.  28,  1879,  states  that  Captain 
J.  F.  Cox,  master  of  the  British  ship  Privateer,  which  arrived 
at  Delaware  breakwater  on  Sept.  9,  from  London,  says  :  "  On 
August  5,  one  hundred  miles  west  of  Brest  (France),  weather 
fine  and  clear,  at  5  P.M.,  as  I  was  walking  the  quarter-deck, 
I  saw  something  black  rise  out  of  the  water,  about  twenty 
feet,  in  shape  like  an  immense  snake  of  three  feet  diameter. 
It  was  about  three  hundred  yards  from  the  ship,  coming 
towards  us.  It  turned  its  head  partly  from  us,  and  went  down 
with  a  great  splash,  after  staying  up  about  five  seconds,  but 
rose  again  three  times  at  intervals  of  ten  seconds,  until  it  had 
turned  completely  from  us,  and  was  going  from  us  at  a  great 
speed,  and  making  the  water  boil  all  round  it.  I  could  see 
its  eyes  and  shape  perfectly.  It  was  like  a  great  eel  or  snake, 
but  as  black  as  coal  tar,  and  appeared  to  be  making  great 
exertions  to  get  away  from  the  ship.  I  have  seen  many 
kinds  of  fish,  in  five  different  oceans,  but  was  never  favoured 
with  a  sight  of  the  great  sea-snake  before." 

The  Singapore  Daily  News,  April  6,  1878,  in  its  Australian 
news  quotes  from  Wellington  (New  Zealand),  Feb.  26  (this 
month  corresponds  with  August  north  of  the  Line) :  "  The 
captain  of  the  steamship  Durham  reports  having  seen  a 
monster  serpent  off  Nerowas  Island.  Thirty  feet  of  the 
monster  was  visible  out  of  the  water.  The  crew  and  pas- 
sengers corroborate  the  report." 

The  Australian  Sketcher  for  November  24,  1877,  states  : 
"  Captain  W.  H.  Nelson,  of  the  American  ship  Sacramento, 
which  arrived  in  this  port  from  New  York  on  October  20, 
reported  that  he  saw  the  sea-serpent  on  his  voyage.  The 
Argus  paragraph  on  the  subject  stated  :  '  The  date  on  which 
the  creature  was  seen  was  on  July  30,  the  ship  then  being  in 
lat.  31'  59'  N.  and  long.  37°  W.  The  man  at  the  wheel  was 
the  first  to  observe  the  monster,  and  he  at  once  called  Captain 


300 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


Nelson,  telling  him  what  he  saw  ;  but  the  latter,  having  the 
same  feeling  of  incredulity  with  regard  to  the  sea-serpent  as 
most  other  people,  did  not  hurry  from  below.  On  coming  on 
deck,  however,  he  was  rewarded  with  a  distant  glimpse  of 
the  supposed  sea-serpent,  which  the  helmsman,  for  his  part, 


FIG.  71.— SEA-SERPENT  SEEN  FROM  THE  SHIP  "  SACRAMENTO,"  JULY  30,  1877. 
(From  the  "  Australian  Sketcher") 

declared  he  saw  quite  plainly.  Some  forty  feet  of  the 
monster  was  alleged  to  be  observable.  It  appeared  to  be 
about  the  size  of  a  flour-barrel  in  girth,  and  its  colour  was 
yellowish ;  the  head  is  described  as  being  flat.  The  eyes 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  301 

were  plainly  visible.  Captain  Nelson  is  convinced  that  what 
he  saw  was  some  extraordinary  marine  monster.'  We  have 
obtained  from  John  Hart,  the  man  at  the  wheel,  a  pencil 
sketch  of  the  creature,  of  which  we  give  an  engraving.  The 
sketch  is  accompanied  with  a  further  description,  in  which 
the  writer  says  :  «  This  is  a  correct  sketch  of  the  sea-serpent 
seen  by  me  while  on  board  the  ship  Sacramento,  on  her  pas- 
sage from  New  York  to  Melbourne,  I  being  at  the  wheel  at 
the  time.  It  had  the  body  of  a  very  large  snake  ;  its  length 
appeared  to  me  to  be  about  fifty  feet  or  sixty  feet.  Its  head  was 
like  an  alligator's,  with  a  pair  of  flippers  about  ten  feet  from 
its  head.  The  colour  was  of  a  reddish  brown.  At  the  time 
seen  it  was  lying  perfectly  still,  with  its  head  raised  about 
three  feet  above  the  surface  of  the  sea,  and  as  it  got  thirty  or 
forty  feet  astern,  it  dropped  its  head.'  " 

I  confess  that  I  do  not  attach  much  weight  to  this  last 
example,  from  the  suspicious  resemblance  which  the  illustra- 
tion given  in  the  Sketcker  bears  to  an  alligator,  suggesting 
that  possibly  such  a  creature  may  have  been  blown  by  winds 
or  carried  by  currents  to  the  position  where  it  was  seen.  It 
is  true  that  Mr.  Gosse  quotes  the  size  of  the  largest  alligator 
on  record  as  only  seventeen  feet  and  a  half,  whereas  the  esti- 
mated length  of  the  supposed  sea-serpent  in  this  instance  was 
from  forty  to  sixty.  But  against  that  may  be  argued  the 
difficulty  of  estimating  lengths  or  heights  when  you  have 
but  a  short  inspection,  and  no  object  immediately  near  with 
which  to  institute  a  comparison* ;  while  I  am  by  no  means 
certain  that  Mr.  Gosse 's  maximum  is  correct.  Dr.  Dennys, 
of  Singapore,  has  assured  me  that  some  years  back  an  alli- 
gator, approaching  thirty  feet  in  length,  haunted  for  some 

*  Within  a  few  days  of  writing  these  lines  I  made  one  of  a  party  of 
four  to  visit  the  waterfalls  of  Taki-kwannon,  near  Nagasaki.  I  asked 
for  estimates  of  the  height  of  the  fall,  which  was  variously  guessed,  by 
different  members  of  the  party,  at  from  forty-three  to  one  hundred  and 
fifty  feet. 


302 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


days  the  small  tidal  creek  which  runs  through,  and  for  some 
miles  above,  that  town  ;  while  I  very  well  remember  Mr. 
Gregory,  the  Surveyor- General  of  Queensland,  informing  me 
that  in  the  rivers  in  the  north  of  that  colony  there  were  alli- 
gators equalling  in  length  a  whale-boat,  say  twenty-eight 
feet. 

The  Graphic  of  April  19th,  1879,  contains  a  drawing  of  "  a 
marine  monster  seen  from  S.S.  City  of  Baltimore,  in  the  Gulf 
of  Aden,  January  28th."  The  descriptive  letter-press  is  as 
follows  :  — 

"  The  following  is  an  abstract  of  the  account  given  by  our 
correspondent,  Major  H.  W.  I.  Senior,  of  the  Bengal  Staff 
Corps,  to  whom  we  are  indebted  for  the  sketch  from  which 


FIG.  72. — SEA-SERPENT  SEES  FROM  THE  S.S.  "  CITY  OF  BALTIMORE,"  IN  THE  GULF  OF 
ADEN,  JAN.  28,  1879.     (From  the  «  Graphic  "  of  April  19,  1879.) 

our  engraving  is  taken :  '  On  the  28th  January  1879,  at  about 
10  A.M.,  I  was  on  the  poop  deck  of  the  steamship  City  of 
Baltimore,  in  latitude  12°  28'  N.,  longitude  43°  52'  E.  I 
observed  a  long  black  object  a-beam  of  the  ship's  stern  on 
the  starboard  side,  at  a  distance  of  about  three-quarters  of  a 
mile,  darting  rapidly  out  of  the  water  and  splashing  in  again 
with  a  noise  distinctly  audible,  and  advancing  nearer  and 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


nearer  at  a  rapid  pace.  In  a  minute  it  had  advanced  to 
within  half-a-mile,  and  was  distinctly  recognisable  as  the 
"  veritable  sea-serpent."  I  shouted  out  "  Sea-serpent !  sea- 
serpent !  Call  the  captain!"  Dr.  C.  Hall,  the  ship's 
surgeon,  who  was  reading  on  deck,  jumped  up  in  time  to  see 
the  monster,  as  did  also  Miss  Greenfield,  one  of  the  pas- 
sengers on  board.  By  this  time  it  was  only  about  five  hun- 
dred yards  off,  and  a  little  in  the  rear,  owing  to  the  vessel 
then  steaming  at  the  rate  of  about  ten  knots  an  hour  in  a 
westerly  direction.  On  approaching  the  wake  of  the  ship, 
the  serpent  turned  its  course  a  little  way,  and  was  soon  lost 
to  view  in  the  blaze  of  sunlight  reflected  on  the  waves  of  the 
sea.  So  rapid  were  its  movements,  that  when  it  approached 
the  ship's  wake,  I  seized  a  telescope,  but  could  not  catch 
a  view,  as  it  darted  rapidly  out  of  the  field  of  the  glass  before 
I  could  see  it.  I  was  thus  prevented  from  ascertaining 
whether  it  had  scales  or  not;  but  the  best  view  of  the 
monster  obtainable,  when  it  was  about  three  cables'  length, 
that  is,  about  five  hundred  yards,  distant,  seemed  to  show 
that  it  was  without  scales.  I  cannot,  however,  speak  with 
certainty.  The  head  and  neck,  about  two  feet  in  diameter, 
rose  out  of  the  water  to  a  height  of  about  twenty  or  thirty 
feet,  and  the  monster  opened  its  jaws  wide  as  it  rose,  and 
closed  them  again  as  it  lowered  its  head  and  darted  forward 
for  a  dive,  reappearing  almost  immediately  some  hundred 
yards  ahead.  The  body  was  not  visible  at  all,  and  must 
have  been  some  depth  under  water,  as  the  disturbance  on 
the  surface  was  too  slight  to  attract  notice,  although  occa- 
sionally a  splash  was  seen  at  some  distance  behind  the  head. 
The  shape  of  the  head  was  not  unlike  pictures  of  the 
dragon  I  have  often  seen,  with  a  bull-dog  appearance  of  the 
forehead  and  eye-brow.  When  the  monster  had  drawn  its 
head  sufficiently  out  of  the  water,  it  let  itself  drop,  as  it  were, 
like  a  huge  log  of  wood,  prior  to  darting  forward  under  the 
water.'  " 


304  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Major  Senior's  statement  is  countersigned  by  the  two 
persons  whom  he  mentions  as  co-witnesses. 

When  in  Singapore,  in  1880,  I  received  the  personal  tes- 
timony of  Captain  Anderson,  at  that  time  chief  officer  of  the 
Pluto  (property  of  the  Straits  Government)  and  formerly  a 
commander  in  the  P.  and  0.  Company's  service. 

Captain  Anderson  assured  me  that  he  had  twice  seen  large 
sea-serpents.  Once  off  Ushant,  when  he  was  chief  officer  of 
the  Delta  in  1861.  No  account  was  entered  in  the  log  nor 
any  notice  sent  to  the  newspapers,  for  fear  of  ridicule.  On 
that  occasion  the  whole  ship's  company  saw  it ;  it  was  five  (?) 
miles  distant,  and  showed  fifteen  feet  of  its  body  out  of  the 
water.  It  resembled  a  snake  with  a  large  fringe  round  the 
neck.  It  appeared  to  be  travelling,  and  moved  its  head  to 
and  fro  like  a  snake.  It  never  spouted,  and  was  observed 
for  a  quarter  of  an  hour. 

The  second  occasion  was  in  the  Red  Sea,  when  he  was  in 
command  of  the  Sumatra,  on  the  outward  trip  in  October  or 
November  1877.  Off  Mocha  he  saw  an  animal,  five  miles 
distant,  that  lifted  the  body  high  out  of  the  water  like  a 
snake.  All  exclaimed,  "  There  is  the  sea-serpent !  "  but  no 
entry  was  made  in  the  log,  or  report  made  of  it.  The  same 
creature  was,  however,  seen  shortly  after  by  a  man-of-war 
close  to  Suez  and  reported. 

In  1881  I  once  more  had  the  personal  testimony  of  an 
eye-witness. 

Mr.  J.  H.  Hoar,  of  the  pilot  station,  Shanghai,  China, 
informed  me  that  he  saw  a  sea-serpent  some  years  previously, 
when  he  was  stationed  at  Ningpo,  on  the  China  coast-line, 
a  little  south  of  the  embouchure  of  the  Yangtse-kiang.  He 
was  at  the  time  on  the  look-out  for  a  vessel,  from  the  top  of 
the  bank  of  Lowchew  Island,  Chinsang,  on  the  southern  side 
of  the  island  fronting  the  six -mile  passage.  This  island  lies 
east  of  Worth  Point.  The  hill  he  was  on  was  about  one 
hundred  and  fifty  feet  high,  the  snake  distant  about  two 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  305 

hundred  and  fifty  yards,  the  depth  of  water  seven  fathoms. 
His  attention  was  directed  to  it  by  a  group  of  Chinamen 
calling  out  "  She,"  which  means  "  snake."  He  saw  it  lying  on 
the  surface  of  the  water,  resembling  two  masts  of  a  junk  end 
to  end,  but  with  a  slight  interval.  Presently  it  rose  slightly, 
and  then  appeared  all  in  one,  extended  flat  upon  the  surface 
of  the  water.  He  examined  it  with  his  glass,  and  noticed  the 
eye,  which  appeared  to  be  as  big  as  a  coffee  saucer,  and  slate  - 
coloured.  The  head  was  flat  on  the  top.  He  estimated  the 
length  at  from  one  hundred  and  twenty  to  one  hundred  and 
forty  feet. 

He  learned  that  it  was  the  third  occasion  of  its  being  seen 
in  that  place  within  eight  years.  An  account  was  published 
in  one  of  the  local  journals,  by  Mr.  Sloman,  from  the  state- 
ments of  the  Chinese  observers.  Mr.  Hoar  was  prevented 
from  doing  the  same  by  the  fear  of  being  ridiculed.  I  may 
note  that  there  is  a  bay,  not  far  from  this  spot,  among  the 
Chusan  islands,  which  has  long  been  credited  with  being  the 
abode  of  a  great  sea-dragon,  and  in  passing  over  which  junks 
take  certain  superstitious  precautions. 

I  have  little  doubt  of  the  identity  of  the  sea-serpent  with 
the  sea-dragon  of  the  Chinese.  Dr.  Dennys*  says  :  "Of 
course  our  old  friend,  the  sea-serpent,  turns  up  on  the  coasts 
of  China,  and  the  description  of  him  does  not  greatly  differ 
from  that  recorded  elsewhere.  According  to  a  popular  legend, 
the  Chien  Tang  river  was  at  one  time  infested  by  a  great  kiau 
or  sea-serpent,  and  in  1129  A.D.,  a  district  graduate  is  said 
to  have  heroically  thrown  himself  into  the  flood  to  encounter 
and  destroy  the  monster.  It  has  been  already  noted  that 
most  of  the  river  gods  are  supposed  to  appear  in  the  form  of 
water-snakes,  and  that  the  sea-serpents  noticed  in  Chinese 
records  have  always  infested  the  mouths  of  rivers." 

The  Rev.  Mr.  Butler,  of  the  Presbyterian  Mission  in  Ningpo, 

*  Folklore  of  China,  p.  113. 

20 


306  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

informed  nie  that  a  dragon  which  threatened  boats  was  sup- 
posed by  the  Chinese  to  infest  a  narrow  passage  called  Quo 
Mung,  outside  of  Chinaye.  Formerly  there  were  two  of  them 
in  the  neighbourhood,  which  were  very  furious,  and  frequently 
upset  boats.  They  had  to  be  appeased  by  a  yearly  offering 
of  a  girl  of  fair  appearance  and  perfect  body.  At  last,  one  of 
the  literati  determined  to  stop  this.  He  armed  himself,  and 
jumped  into  the  water ;  blood  rose  to  the  surface.  He  had 
killed  one  of  the  dragons.  The  other  retired  to  the  narrow 
place.  A  temple  was  erected  to  the  hero  at  Peach  Blossom 
ferry. 

It  may  be  noted  that  both  the  Malays  and  the  Chinese 
attribute  the  origin  of  ambergris  to  either  a  sea-dragon  or  a 
sea-serpent.  Thus,  in  the  description  of  Ambergris  Island  or 
Dragon  Spittle  Island,  contained  in  the  History  of  the  Ming 
Dynasty,  Book  325,  from  which  an  extract  is  given  (in  trans- 
lation) by  Mr.  W.  P.  Groeneveldt,  in  his  Notes  on  the  Malay 
Archipelago  and  Malacca,  compiled  from  Chinese  sources,* 
we  find  it  stated  that  "  this  island  has  the  appearance  of  a 
single  mountain,  and  is  situated  in  the  Sea  of  Lambri,  at  a 
distance  of  one  day  and  one  night  from  Sumatra.  It  rises 
abruptly  out  of  the  sea,  which  breaks  on  it  with  high  waves." 
"  Every  spring  numerous  dragons  come  together  to  play 
on  this  island,  and  they  leave  behind  their  spittle.  The 
natives  afterwards  go  in  canoes  to  the  spot  and  collect  this 
spittle,  which  they  take  with  them. 

"  The  dragon-spittle  is  at  first  like  fat,  of  a  black  and 
yellow  colour,  and  with  a  fishy  smell ;  by  length  of  time  it 
contracts  into  large  lumps  ;  and  these  are  also  found  in  the 
belly  of  a  large  fish,  of  the  size  of  the  Chinese  peck,  and 
also  with  a  fishy  smell.  When  burnt  it  has  a  pure  and 
delicious  fragrance. 


*   Vide  Verhandelingen  van  Het  Bataviaasch  Genoofschap  van  Kunsten 
en  Weten  Schappen,  Deel  xxxix.,  lere  Stuk..  Batavia,  1877, 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  307 


"It  is  sold  in  the  market  of  Sumatra,  one  tael,  official 
weight,  costing  twelve  golden  coins  of  that  country,  and  one 
cati,*  one  hundred  and  ninety -two  of  such  pieces,  equal  to 
about  nine  thousand  Chinese  copper  cash  ;  and  so  it  is  not 
very  cheap." 

Dr.  F.  Porter  Smithf  states  that  there  can  be  no  doubt 
that  the  costly,  odorous,  light  yellow,  gummy  substance, 
found  floating  on  the  sea,  or  procured  from  the  belly  of  some 
large  fish  in  the  Indian  Ocean,  and  known  by  the  Chinese 
of  the  present  day  as  lung  sin,  or  dragon's  spittle,  is  actually 
ambergris.  The  dragon  is  said  to  cough  it  up. 

"  A  similar  substance,  called  kih-tiau-chi,  brought  from 
Canton  and  Foochow  in  former  days,  is  said  to  be  the  egg  of 
the  dragon  or  a  kind  of  sea-serpent  named  kih  tiau.  The 
name  kih  tiau  is  singularly  like  the  Greek  name  for  a  sea- 
monster." 

One  of  the  most  remarkable  accounts  of  sea-monsters, 
which  I  believe  to  be  thoroughly  trustworthy,  is  of  an  animal 
seen  in  the  Malacca  Straits  in  1876. 

The  first  notice  of  it  appeared  in  the  Straits  Times 
Overland  Journal  for  September  18th,  1876,  in  the  form  of  a 
short  editorial. 

"  Our  friend  Mr.  Henry  Lee,  of  Land  and  Water,  who  in 
his  late  work  has  taken  so  much  trouble  to  enter  into  and 
describe  the  habits  and  peculiarities  of  the  sea-serpent,  J  will 


*  About  1£  Ib.  avoirdupois. 

f  Contributions  to  Materia  Medica  and  Natural  History  of  China,  by 
F.  P.  Smith,  M.B.,  London ;  Shanghai  and  London,  1871. 

I  give,  in  the  appendix  to  this  chapter,  some  accounts  of  a  reputed 
monster,  the  Shan,  the  description  of  which  by  Chinese  authors,  although 
vague,  appears  to  me  to  point  to  the  sea-serpent.  I  only  insert  a  por- 
tion of  the  latter  part  of  the  legends  regarding  it  which  I  find  in  my 
authority,  as  they  are  perfectly  valueless.  The  sample  given  may,  how- 
ever, be  interesting  as  au  example  of  how  the  Taouists  compiled  their 
absurd  miraculous  stories. 

1  For  sea-serpent  read  octopus, 

20  * 


308  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

be  glad  to  hear  that  the  passengers  and  officers  of  the  S.S. 
Nestor,  which  arrived  here  this  morning,  are  unanimous  in 
the  conclusion,  and  vouch  for  the  fact,  that  an  extraordinary 
sea-monster  was  seen  by  them  between  Malacca  and  Penang 
on  their  voyage  to  this  port,  on  Monday,  about  noon.  It  was 
about  two  hundred  and  fifty  feet  long,  about  fifty  feet  broad, 
square-headed,  with  black  and  yellow  stripes,  closely 
resembling  a  salamander." 

This  was  followed,  on  the  succeeding  day,  by  a  letter  from 
the  captain. 

SIR, — In  reference  to  your  paragraph  in  your  yesterday's  issue,  rela- 
ting to  our  having  seen  a  sea-monster  answering  to  the  popular  notion 
of  a  sea-serpent,  I  am  prepared  to  vouch  for  the  correctness  of  the 
statement  already  made  to  you  by  the  doctor  and  a  passenger  by  my 
ship. 

Being  on  the  bridge  at  the  time  (about  10  A.M.)  with  the  first  and 
third  officers,  we  were  surprised  by  the  appearance  of  an  extraordinary 
monster  going  in  our  course,  and  at  an  equal  speed  with  the  vessel,  at 
a  distance  from  us  of  about  six  hundred  feet.  It  had  a  square  head  and 
a  dragon  black  and  white  striped  tail,  and  an  immense  body,  which  was 
quite  fifty  feet  broad  when  the  monster  raised  it.  The  head  was  about 
twelve  feet  broad,  and  appeared  to  be  occasionally,  at  the  extreme, 
about  six  feet  above  the  water.  When  the  head  was  placed  on  a  level 
with  the  water,  the  body  was  extended  to  its  utmost  limit  to  all 
appearance,  and  then  the  body  rose  out  of  the  water  about  two  feet,  and 
seemed  quite  fifty  feet  broad  at  those  times.  The  long  dragon  tail  with 
black  and  white  scales  afterwards  rose  in  an  undulating  motion,  in 
which  at  one  time  the  head,  at  another  the  body,  and  eventually  the 
tail,  formed  each  in  its  turn  a  prominent  object  above  the  water. 

The  animal,  or  whatever  it  may  be  called,  appeared  careless  of  our 
proximity,  and  went  our  course  for  about  six  minutes  on  our  starboard 
side,  and  then  finally  worked  round  to  our  port  side,  and  remained  in 
view,  to  the  delight  of  all  on  board,  for  about  half  an  hour.  His  length 
was  reckoned  to  be  over  two  hundred  feet. 

JOHN  W.   WEBSTER, 

Singapore,  Commander,  S.S.  Nestor. 

"  18th  Sepember  1876. 

Mr.  Cameron,  proprietor  of  the  journal,  subsequently 
informed  me  that  he  had  specially  warned  Captain  Webster 
of  the  certain  doubt  that  would  be  cast  upon  his  statement, 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  309 


but  he  still  insisted  on  its  publication.  It  was  confirmed  by 
Mr.  H.  R.  Beaver,  a  merchant  of  Singapore,  and  other 
persons  who  were  passengers  by  the  boat. 

The  same  newspaper  (Straits  Times  Overland  Journal),  on 
November  2,  1876,  had  the  following  extract  from  the  China 
Mail  :— 

"  It  is  more  than  probable  that  Captain  Webster,  of  the 
steamer  Nestor,  will  be  '  interviewed  '  very  extensively  when 
he  reaches  a  berth  in  London  Docks.  A  genuine  sea-serpent 
is  not  met  with  every  day,  and  as  the  observations  made  by 
the  officers  of  the  ship  have,  we  understand,  been  set  down  in 
some  formal  way  before  Consul  Medhurst  at  Shanghai,  to  be 
forwarded  to  the  Field,  the  naturalists  will  be  in  a  position 
to  pursue  their  researches  when  the  captain  arrives.  Com- 
petent authorities  are  now  of  opinion  that  the  part  of  the 
monster  formerly  supposed  to  have  been  its  head,  must  have 
been  a  hump ;  and  that  its  head's  being  under  water  would 
account  for  the  supreme  contempt  with  which  it  treated  the 
passage  of  the  steamer.  The  undulating  motion  of  the  huge 
animal  would  explain  the  statement  that  this  knob  or  hump 
rose  occasionally  about  six  feet  out  of  the  water.  The  alter- 
nate yellow  and  black  stripes  which  covered  all  that  could  be 
seen  of  the  body,  appear  to  have  conveyed  the  impression 
that  the  tail  was  like  that  of  a  dragon  covered  with  scales, 
although  that  conclusion  need  not  necessarily  be  looked  upon 
as  certain.  If  the  head  of  this  unknown  '  shape  '  was  actually 
under  water,  then  the  length  becomes  proportionately  greater. 
It  was  over  two  hundred  feet  long  before,  it  must  now  be 
regarded  as  measuring,  say,  two  hundred  and  fifty  feet,  which, 
with  forty-five  or  fifty  feet  beam,  gives  a  leviathan  of  some- 
thing like  the  dimensions  of  an  old-fashioned  frigate." 

A  correspondent  of  the  Celestial  Empire,  of  Shanghai,  wrote 
thus  to  the  journal : — 

gIBj if  it  is  true  that  one  of  those  who  observed  the  marine  monster 

from  the  Nestor  is  still  here,  it  is  very  desirable  that  he  should  give 


310  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

some  fuller  account  of  what  he  saw.  Only  a  sciolist  will  deny  the  pos- 
sibility of  such  a  beast,  and  Professor  Owen  himself  has  remarked  that 
the  only  absolutely  incredible  part  of  the  accounts  of  those  who  have 
seen  it,  is  the  statement  of  its  vertical  sinuosity,  which  is  impossible  to 
any  of  the  serpent  tribe. 

The  monster  seen  by  the  Nestor,  however,  was  probably  one  of  the 
Chelonidse,  "  the  father  of  all  the  turtles,"  as  he  is  fitly  called  by  the 
natives  of  Sumatra,  who  fully  believe  in  his  existence,  and  to  whom  he 
occasionally  appears.  Indeed,  Baumgarten,  in  his  Malaysien,  published 
at  Amsterdam  in  1829,  describes  the  monster,  and  estimates  its  length 
and  breadth  at  one  hundred  and  twenty  and  thirty  cubits  respectively, 
measurements  which  agree  very  nearly  with  those  given  by  Captain 
Webster.  Baumgarten*  adds  that  it  is  a  general  belief  in  Sumatra 
(vol.  ii.  p.  321,  Ed.  1820),  that  whosoever  sees  him  will  die  within  the 
year.  "  This,"  he  says  naively  enough,  "  I  have  not  been  able  to 
prove." 

Mr.  David  Aitken,  of  Singapore,  wrote  to  the  Daily  Times 
as  follows : — 

DEAR  SIK, — Like  many  others,  I  have  been  astonished  at  the  dimen- 
sions given  by  you  of  the  sea-serpent.  They  are  certainly  enormous, 
and  they  far  surpass  anything  I  have  ever  seen  or  heard  of.  The  largest 
snake  ever  I  authentically  heard  about  was  one  which  passed  between 
the  surveying  brigs  Krishna  and  M&tix  when  under  the  command  of 
Lieutenant  Ward,  of  the  Indian  Navy,  when  surveying  off  the  coast  of 
Sumatra,  about  the  years  1858  and  1859.  This  monster  passed  by  the 
brigs  one  Sunday  morning  when  they  were  moored  somewhere  opposite 
Malacca.  Its  length  was  variously  estimated  at  from  the  length  of  the 
Krishna  to  one  hundred  feet.  Sixty  feet  was  the  moderate  length  set 
down  for  its  frame. 

In  or  near  the  same  place,  another  monster  had  been  seen  by  a 
previous  surveying  party. 

Mr.  Stephen  Cave,  M.P.  for  Shoreham,  in  1861,  commu- 
nicated to  Mr.  Gosse  a  short  statement,  which  throws  some 
light  upon  the  food  of  the  monster.  It  is  in  the  form  of  an 

*  I  must  also  add,  on  the  information  of  Mr.  H.  C.  Syers,  of 
Selangor,  that  Captain  Douglas,  late  Resident  of  Perak,  had  a  large  sea- 
serpent  rise  close  to  him,  somewhere  off  Perak,  when  in  a  boat  manned 
by  Malays.  Mr.  Syers  had  the  account  both  from  Captain  Douglas  and 
from  the  crew ;  and  he  tells  me  that  there  is  a  universal  belief  in  the 
existence  of  some  large  sea- monster  among  the  Malays  of  the  western 
coast  of  the  Peninsula. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  311 

extract  from  his  journal  written  during  a  voyage  to  the  West 
Indies,  in  1846,  as  follows  : — 

"  Thursday,  December  10,  off  Madeira,  on  board  K.M.S. 
Thomas,  made  acquaintance  with  a  Captain  Christmas,  of  the 
Danish  Navy,  a  proprietor  in  Santa  Cruz,  and  holding  some 
office  about  the  Danish  court.  He  told  me  he  once  saw  a 
sea-serpent  between  Iceland  and  the  Faroe  islands.  He  was 
lying-to  in  a  gale  of  wind,  in  a  frigate  of  which  he  had  the 
command,  when  an  immense  shoal  of  porpoises  rushed  by  the 
ship  as  if  pursued  ;  and,  lo  and  behold,  a  creature  with  a  neck 
moving  like  that  of  a  swan,  about  the  thickness  of  a  man's 
waist,  with  a  head  like  a  horse,  raised  itself  slowly  and  grace- 
fully from  the  deep,  and,  seeing  the  ship,  it  immediately  dis- 
appeared again,  head  foremost,  like  a  duck  diving.  He  only 
saw  it  for  a  few  seconds.  The  part  above  the  water  seemed 
about  eighteen  feet  in  length.  He  is  a  singularly  intelligent 
man,  and  by  no  means  one  to. allow  his  imagination  to  run 
away  with  him." 

Witty  journalists  had  a  good  time  over  the  publication  of 
the  story  of  the  serpent  seen  by  Captain  Drevar,  with  which 
I  shall  wind  up  my  list  of  apparitions.  As  will  be  seen, 
however,  the  captain  stuck  manfully  to  his  guns,  and  I,  for 
one,  am  of  the  belief  that  he  really  saw  the  incident  which  he 
narrates.  I  have  not  met  the  captain  himself,  but  I  did,  in 
Singapore,  meet  with  many  who  had  heard  the  whole  story 
from  his  own  lips,  and  whose  impression  was  that  he  was  a 
truthful  man. 

The  Barque    "Pauline"    Sea-serpent. 
To  the  Editor  of  the  Calcutta  Englishman. 

SIR, — As  I  am  not  sure  that  my  statement  respecting  the  sea-serpent 
reached  the  Shipping  Gazette  in  London,  I  enclose  a  copy  that  may  be 
interesting  to  your  numerous  readers.  I  have  been  sent  plenty  of 
extracts  from  English  papers,  nearly  all  of  them  ridiculing  my  state- 
ment. I  can  laugh  and  joke  on  the  subject  as  well  as  anyone,  but  I 
can't  see  why,  if  people  can't  fairly  refute  my  statement,  they  should 
use  falsehood  to  do  so.  The  Daily  Telegraph  says,  "  The  ribs  of  the  ill- 


312 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


fated  fish  were  distinctly  heard  cracking  one  after  the  other,  with  a 
report  like  that  of  a  small  cannon  ;  its  bellowings  ceased,  &c.  To  use 
the  eloquent  words  of  the  principal  spectator,  it  '  struck  us  all  aghast 
with  terror.' "  If  the  writer  knew  anything  of  sailors,  he  would  not  write 
such  bosh.  Fear  and  terror  are  not  in  Jack's  composition ;  and  such 
eloquent  words  he  leaves  to  such  correspondents  as  described  the  ever- 
doubtful  "  man-and-dog-fight."  I  am  just  as  certain  of  seeing  what  I 
described,  as  that  I  met  the  advertisement  that  the  Telegraph  has 
the  largest  circulation  in  the  world  staring  me  at  every  street  corner  in 
London.  It  is  easy  for  such  a  paper  to  make  any  man,  good,  great,  or 
interesting,  look  ridiculous.  Little  wonder  is  it  that  my  relatives  write 
saying  that  they  would  have  seen  a  hundred  sea-serpents  and  never 
reported  it ;  and  a  lady  also  wrote  that  she  pitied  anyone  that  was 
related  to  anyone  that  had  seen  the  sea-serpent.  It  is  quite  true  that  it 
is  a  sad  thing  for  any  man  to  see  more,  to  feel  more,  and  to  know 
more,  than  his  fellows  ;  but  I  have  some  of  the  philosophy  that  made 
O'Connell  rejoice  in  being  the  most  abused  man  in  the  United  Kingdom, 
for  he  also  had  the  power  of  giving  a  person  a  lick  with  the  rough  side 
of  his  tongue.  If  I  had  any  such  power  I  would  not  use  it,  for  contempt 
is  the  sharpest  reproof ;  and  this  letter  is  the  only  notice  I  have  taken 
of  the  many  absurd  statements,  &c.  &c.  &c. 

GEORGE  DBEVAE, 

Barque  Pauline,  Master  of  the  Pauline. 

Chittagong,  January  15,  1876. 


FIG.  73.— SEA-SERPENT  ATTACKING  WHALE,  AS  SEEN  BY  CAPT.  DREVAK, 
OP  THE  BARQUE  "  PAULINE,"  IN  1876. 

Barque  Pauline,  January  8th,  1875,  lat.  5°  13'  S.,  long.  35°  W.,  Cape 
Eoque,   north-east   corner  of   Brazil   distant    twenty   miles,   at 

11  A.M. 

The  weather  tine  and  clear,  the  wind  and  sea  moderate.  Observed 
some  black  spots  on  the  water,  and  a  whitish  pillar,  about  thirty -five 
feet  high,  above  them  At  the  first  glance  I  took  all  to  be  breakers,  as 
the  sea  was  splashing  up  fountain-like  about  them,  and  the  pillar,  a 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


313 


pinnacle  rock  bleached  with  the  sun  ;  but  the  pillar  fell  with  a  splash, 
and  a  similar  one  rose.  They  rose  and  fell  alternately  in  quick  succes- 
sion, and  good  glasses  showed  me  it  was  a  monster  sea-serpent  coiled 
twice  round  a  large  sperm  whale.  The  head  and  tail  parts,  each  about 
thirty  feet  long,  were  acting  as  levers,  twisting  itself  and  victim  around 
with  great  velocity.  They  sank  out  of  sight  about  every  two  minutes, 
coming  to  the  surface  still  revolving,  and  the  struggles  of  the  whale  and 
two  other  whales  that  were  near,  frantic  with  excitement,  made  the  sea 
in  this  vicinity  like  a  boiling  cauldron  ,  and  a  loud  and  confused  noise 
was  distinctly  heard.  This  strange  occurrence  lasted  some  fifteen 


FIG.  74. — SEA-SERPENT  A\  TACKING  WHALE. — THE  END  OF  THE  STRUGGLE. 

minutes,  and  fir'  ,hed  with  the  tail  portion  of  the  whale  being  elevated 
straight  in  th'  air,  then  waving  backwards  and  forwards,  and  laving 
[lashing?]  the  water  furiously  in  the  last  death-struggle,  when  the 
whole  body  disappeared  from  our  view,  going  down  head-foremost 
towards  the  bottom,  where,  no  doubt,  it  was  gorged  at  the  serpent's 
leisure  ;  and  that  monster  of  monsters  may  have  been  many  months  in 
a  state  of  coma,  digesting  the  huge  mouthful.  Then  two  of  the  largest 
sperm  whales  that  I  have  ever  seen  moved  slowly  thence  towards  the  vessel, 
their  bodies  more  than  usually  elevated  out  of  the  water,  and  not 
spouting  or  making  the  least  noise,  but  seeming  quite  paralysed  with 
fear ;  indeed,  a  cold  shiver  went  through  my  own  frame  on  beholding 
the  last  agonising  struggle  of  the  poor  whale  that  had  seemed  as  help- 
less in  the  coils  of  the  vicious  monster  as  a  small  bird  in  the  talons  of 
a  hawk.  Allowing  for  two  coils  round  the  whale,  I  think  the  serpent 
was  about  one  hundred  and  sixty  or  one  hundred  and  seventy  feet  long, 
and  seven  or  eight  in  girth.  It  was  in  colour  much  like  a  conger  eel, 
and  the  head,  from  the  mouth  being  always  open,  appeared  the  largest 

part  of  the  body I  think  Cape  San  Eoque  is  a  landmark  for 

whales  leaving  the  south  for  the  North  Atlantic I  wrote  thus 

far,  little  thinking  I  would  ever  see  the  serpent  again  ;  but  at  7  A.M.,  July 
13th,  in  the  same  latitude,  and  some  eighty  miles  east  of  San  Roque,  I 
was  astonished  to  see  the  same  or  a  similar  monster.  It  was  throwing 
its  head  and  about  forty  feet  of  its  body  in  a  horizontal  position  out 


314  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

of  the  water  as  it  passed  onwards  by  the  stern  of  our  vessel.  I  began 
musing  why  we  were  so  much  favoured  with  such  a  strange  visitor,  and 
concluded  that  the  band  of  white  paint,  two  feet  wide  above  the 
copper,  might  have  looked  like  a  fellow-serpent  to  it,  and,  no  doubt, 

attracted  its  attention While  thus  thinking,  I  was  startled  by 

the  cry  of  "There  it  is  again,"  and  a  short  distance  to  leeward, 
elevated  some  sixty  feet  in  the  air,  was  the  great  leviathan,  grimly  look- 
ing towards  the  vessel.  As  I  was  not  sure  it  was  only  our  free  board  it 
was  viewing,  we  had  all  our  axes  ready,  and  were  fully  determined, 
should  the  brute  embrace  the  Pauline,  to  chop  away  for  its  backbone 
with  all  our  might,  and  the  wretch  might  have  found  for  once  in  its 
life  that  it  had  caught  a  Tartar.  This  statement  is  strictly  true,  and 
the  occurrence  was  witnessed  by  my  officers,  half  the  crew,  and  myself ; 
and  we  are  ready,  at  any  time,  to  testify  on  oath  that  it  is  so,  and  that 

we  are  not  in  the  least  mistaken A  vessel,  about  three  years 

ago,  was  dragged  over  by  some  sea-monster  in  the  Indian  Ocean. 

GEORGE  DREVAE, 

Master  of  the  Pauline. 

Chittagong,  January  15,  1876. 

Captain  George  Drevar,  of  the  barque  Pauline,  appeared  on  Wed- 
nesday morning  at  the  Police-court,  Dale-street,  before  Mr.  Raffles, 
stipendiary  magistrate,  accompanied  by  some  of  his  officers  and  part 
of  the  crew  of  the  barque,  when  they  made  the  following  decla- 
ration : — 

"  We,  the  undersigned,  captain,  officers,  and  crew  of  the  barque 
Pauline,  of  London,  do  solemnly  and  sincerely  declare  that  on  July 
8th,  1875,  in  latitude  5°  13',  longitude  35°  W.,  we  observed  three  large 
sperm  whales,  and  one  of  them  was  gripped  round  the  body  with  two 
turns  of  what  appeared  to  be  a  large  serpent.  The  head  and  tail 
appeared  to  have  a  length  beyond  the  coils  of  about  thirty  feet,  and  its 
girth  eight  or  nine  feet.  The  serpent  whirled  its  victim  round  and 
round  for  about  fifteen  minutes,  and  then  suddenly  dragged  the  whale 
to  the  bottom,  head  first. 

"  GEORGE  DREVAR,  Master, 
"  HORATIO  THOMPSON, 
"  HENDERSON  LANDELLO, 
"  OWEN  BAKER, 
"  WILLIAM  LEWAN. 

"  Again,  on  July  13th,  a  similar  serpent  was  seen  about  two  hundred 
yards  off,  shooting  itself  along  the  surface,  head  and  neck  being  out  of 
the  water  several  feet.  This  was  seen  only  by  the  captain  and  one 
ordinary  seaman. 

"  GEORGE  DREVAR,  Master. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  315 

"  A  few  moments  after,  it  was  seen  elevated  some  sixty  feet  perpen- 
dicularly in  the  air  by  the  chief  officer  and  the  following  able  seamen, 
Horatio  Thompson,  Owen  Baker,  William  Lewan.  And  we  make  this 
solemn  declaration,  conscientiously  believing  the  same  to  be  true. 

"  GEORGE  DREVAR,  Master. 

"  WILLIAM  LEWAN,  Steward. 

"  HORATIO  THOMPSON,  Chief  Officer, 

"  JOHN  HENDERSON  LANDELLO,  2nd  Officer, 

"  OWEN  BAKER." 

Some  confirmation  of  Captain  Drevar's  story  is  afforded  by 
one  quoted  by  the  Rev.  Henry  T.  Cheeves,  in  The  Whale 
and  his  Captors.  The  author  says  : — 

"  From  a  statement  made  by  a  Kinebeck  shipmaster  in 
1818,  and  sworn  to  before  a  justice  of  the  peace  in  Kinebeck 
county,  Maine,  it  would  seem  that  the  notable  sea-serpent 
and  whale  are  sometimes  found  in  conflict.  At  six  o'clock 
in  the  afternoon  of  June  21st,  in  the  packet  Delia,  plying 
between  Boston  and  Hallowell,  when  Cape  Ann  bore  west- 
south-west  about  two  miles,  steering  north-north-east, 
Captain  Shuback  West  and  fifteen  others  on  board  with  him 
saw  an  object  directly  ahead,  which  he  had  no  doubt  was 
the  sea-serpent,  or  the  creature  so  often  described  under  that 
name,  engaged  in  fight  with  a  large  whale 

"  The  serpent  threw  up  its  tail  from  twenty-five  to  thirty 
feet  in  a  perpendicular  direction,  striking  the  whale  by  it  with 
tremendous  blows,  rapidly  repeated,  which  were  distinctly 
heard,  and  very  loud,  for  two  or  three  minutes ;  they  then 
both  disappeared,  moving  in  a  south-west  direction ;  but  after 
a  few  minutes  reappeared  in-shore  of  the  packet,  and  about 
under  the  sun,  the  reflection  of  which  was  so  strong  as  to 
prevent  their  seeing  so  distinctly  as  at  first,  when  the  ser- 
pent's fearful  blows  with  his  tail  were  repeated  and  clearly 
heard  as  before.  They  again  went  down  for  a  short  time, 
and  then  came  up  to  the  surface  under  the  packet's  larboard 
quarter,  the  whale  appearing  first,  and  the  serpent  in  pur- 
suit, who  was  again  seen  to  shoot  up  his  tail  as  before,  which 


316 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


he  held  out  of  water  for  some  time,  waving  it  in  the  air 
before  striking,  and  at  the  same  time  his  head  fifteen  or 
twenty  feet,  as  if  taking  a  view  of  the  surface  of  the  sea. 
After  being  seen  in  this  position  a  few  minutes,  the  serpent 
and  whale  again  disappeared,  and  neither  was  seen  after  by 
any  on  board.  It  was  Captain  West's  opinion  that  the 


FIG.  75. — SEA-SERPENT  ATTACKING  WHALE.     (From  Sketches  by  Capt.  Davidson, 
S.S.  "  Kiushiu-maru") 

whale  was  trying  to  escape,  as  he  spouted  but  once  at  a  time 
on  coming  to  the  surface,  and  the  last  time  he  appeared  he 
went  down  before  the  serpent  came  up." 

A  remarkable  and  independent  corroboration  of  modern 
date  comes  from  the  Japan  seas.      It  was  reported  both  in 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  317 

local  papers  and  in  the  San  Francisco  Calif ornian  Mail- Bag 
for  1879,  from  which  I  extract  the  notice  and  the  illustrative 
cuts  (Fig.  75). 

"  The  accompanying  engravings  are  fac-similes  of  a  sketch 
sent  to  us  by  Captain  Davidson,  of  the  steamship  Kiushiu- 
maru,*  and  is  inserted  as  a  specimen  of  the  curious  drawings 
which  are  frequently  forwarded  to  us  for  insertion.  Captain 
Davidson's  statement,  which  is  countersigned  by  his  chief 
officer,  Mr.  McKechnie,  is  as  follows  : — 

"  '  Saturday,  April  5th,  at  11.15  A.M.;  Cape  Satano  distant 
about  nine  miles,  the  chief  officer  and  myself  observed  a 
whale  jump  clear  out  of  the  sea,  about  a  quarter  of  a  mile 
away. 

"  '  Shortly  after  it  leaped  out  again,  when  I  saw  there 
was  something  attached  to  it.  Got  glasses,  and  on  the  next 
leap  distinctly  saw  something  holding  on  to  the  belly  of  the 
whale.  The. latter  gave  one  more  spring  clear  of  the  water, 
and  myself  and  chief  officer  then  observed  what  appeared  to 
be  a  creature  of  the  snake  species  rear  itself  about  thirty  feet 
out  of  the  water.  It  appeared  to  be  about  the  thickness  of  a 
junk's  mast,  and  after  standing  about  ten  seconds  in  an 
erect  position,  it  descended  into  the  water,  the  upper  end 
going  first.  With  my  glasses  I  made  out  the  colour  of  the 
beast  to  resemble  that  of  a  pilot  fish." 

There  is  an  interesting  story  f  of  a  fight  between  a  water - 
snake  and  a  trout,  by  Mr.  A.  W.  Chase,  Assistant  United 
States  Coast  Survey,  which,  magnis  componere  parva,  may  be 
accepted  as  an  illustration  of  how  a  creature  of  serpentine 
form  would  have  to  deal  with  a  whale  ;  only,  as  on  the  sur- 
face or  in  mid-water  it  would  be  prevented  from  grasping-any 
rocks  by  which  to  anchor  itself,  we  may  readily  conceive  it 


*  This  is  one  of  the  fleet  of  the  important  Japanese  Mitsu  Bish 
Company,  the  equivalent  of  the  P.  and  O.  Company  in  Japan, 
f  Pop.  Sci.  Monthly,  No.  56,  December  1876,  p.  234. 


318  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

holding  on  with  a  tenacious  grip  of  its  extended  jaws,  and 
drawing  itself  up  to  the  enemy  until  it  could  either  embrace 
it  in  its  coils  or  stun  it  with  violent  blows  of  the  tail.* 

"  The  trout,  at  first  sight,  was  lying  in  mid-water,  heading 
up  stream.     It  was,  as  afterwards  appeared,  fully  nine  inches 

in  length This  new  enemy  of  the  trout  was  a  large 

water-snake  of  the  common  variety,  striped  black  and  yellow. 
He  swam  up  the  pool  on  the  surface  until  over  the  trout, 
when  he  made  a  dive,  and  by  a  dexterous  movement  seized 
the  trout  in  such  a  fashion  that  the  jaws  of  the  snake  closed 
its  mouth.  The  fight  then  commenced.  The  trout  had  the 
use  of  its  tail  and  fins,  and  could  drag  the  snake  from  the 
surface ;  when  near  the  bottom,  however,  the  snake  made  use 
of  its  tail  by  winding  it  round  every  stone  or  root  that  it 
could  reach.  After  securing  this  tail-hold,  it  could  drag  the 
trout  towards  the  bank,  but  on  letting  go  the  trout  would 
have  a  new  advantage.  This  battle  was  continued  for  full 
twenty  minutes,  when  the  snake  managed  to  get  its  tail  out 
of  the  water  and  clasped  around  the  root  of  one  of  the 
willows  mentioned  as  overhanging  the  pool.  The  battle  was 
then  up,  for  the  snake  gradually  put  coil  after  coil  around 
the  root,  with  each  one  dragging  the  fish  toward  the  land. 
When  half  its  body  was  coiled  it  unloosed  the  first  hold, 
and  stretched  the  end  of  its  tail  out  in  every  direction, 
and  finding  another  root,  made  fast ;  and  now,  using  both, 
dragged  the  trout  on  the  gravel  bank.  It  now  had  it  under 
control,  and,  uncoiling,  the  snake  dragged  the  fish  fully 
ten  feet  up  on  the  bank,  and,  I  suppose  would  have  gorged 
him,"  &c.  &c. 


*  It  must  be  remembered  that  it  is  with  a  blow  of  its  powerful  tail 
that  the  alligator  stuns  its  prey  and  knocks  it  into  the  water  (when  any 
stray  animal  approaches  the  bank),  and  it  is  with  the  tail  that  the 
dragon,  in  the  fable  related  by  Julian,  chastises,  although  gently, 
its  mistress,  and  constricts,  according  to  Pliny,  the  elephant  in  its 
folds. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  319 

Captain  Drevar  follows  Pontoppidan  (probably  unwit- 
tingly) in  identifying  the  sea-serpent  with  the  leviathan  of 
Scripture,  quoting  Isaiah  xxvii.  1,  "  In  that  day  the  Lord 
with  his  sore  and  great  and  strong  sword  shall  punish 
leviathan,  the  piercing  serpent,  even  leviathan  that  crooked 
serpent.;  and  he  shall  slay  the  dragon  that  is  in  the 
sea."  As  I  read  the  above  passage,  it  is  the  dragon  that 
is  in  the  sea,  and  not  the  leviathan,  which  should  be 
identified  with  the  sea-serpent,  unless  the  two,  dragon 
and  leviathan,  are  in  apposition,  which  does  not  seem  to 
be  the  case. 

These  various  narratives  which  I  have  collected  are,  for 
the  most  part,  well  attested  by  the  signature,  or  declaration 
on  oath,  of  well-known  and  responsible  people.  Captain 
Drevar,  in  the  small  pamphlet  which  he  had  printed  for 
private  circulation,  says :  "  Does  any  thinking  person 
imagine  I  could  keep  command  over  men  with  a  deliberate  lie 
in  our  mouths  ?  "  and  a  similar  question  may  be  asked,  with, 
I  think,  the  possibility  of  only  one  reply,  in  the  case  of  the 
narratives  of  Captain  M'Quhoe  and  other  officers  and  com- 
manders in  various  navies  and  merchant  vessels,  and  of  the 
numerous  other  reputable  witnesses  who  have  affirmed, 
either  as  a  simple  statement  or  on  oath,  that  they  have  seen 
sundry  remarkable  sea-monsters.  I  used  the  expression, 
"I  think,"  because,  of  course,  there  is  the  possibility  of 
scepticism. 

"  Authority,  in  matters  of  opinion,  divides  itself  (say)  into 
three  principal  classes :  there  is  the  authority  of  witnesses ; 
they  testify  to  matters  of  fact.  The  judgment  upon  these  is 
commonly,  though  not  always,  easy ;  but  this  testimony  is 
always  the  substitution  of  the  faculties  of  others  for  our 
own,  which,  taken  largely,  constitutes  the  essence  of 
authority. 

"  This  is  the  kind  which  we  justly  admit  with  the  smallest 
jealousy.  Yet  not  always  ;  one  man  admits,  another  refuses, 


320  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

the  authority  of  a  sea-captain  and  a  sailor  or  two  on  the 
existence  of  a  sea-serpent."  * 

I,  for  my  part,  belong  to  the  former  of  these  two  categories. 
I  believe  in  the  statements  that  I  have  recorded,  and  in  the 
following  reasoning  address  only  those  who  do  likewise. 

That  mistakes  have  occasionally  occurred  is  undoubted. 
Mr.  Gosse  records  two  instances  in  which  long  patches  of 
sea-weed  so  far  excited  the  imagination  of  captains  of 
vessels  as  to  cause  them  to  lower  boats  and  proceed  to  the 
attack. 

The  credibility  of  ghost  stories  generally  is  much  affected 
when  supposed  apparitions  are  investigated  and  traced  to 
some  simple  cause;  and  the  hypersceptical  may  argue  on 
parallel  grounds  that  the  transformation,  in  some  few 
instances,  of  a  supposed  sea-serpent  into  sea-weed,  or  the 
admission  of  the  plausible  suggestion  that  it  has  been  simu- 
lated by  a  seal,  a  string  of  porpoises,  or  some  other  very 
ordinary  animals,  largely  affects  the  whole  question. 

And  this  would  undoubtedly  be  the  case  if  the  conditions 
of  the  several  examples  were  at  all  similar.  But  the  hesita- 
tion or  temporary  misapprehension  of  captains  or  crews,  in  a 
thousand  instances,  as  to  the  nature  of  a  string  of  weed, 
supine  on  the  surface,  and  lashed  into  fantastic  motion  by 
the  surge  of  the  ocean  waves,  has  absolutely  no  bearing  on 
the  positive  stories  of  a  creature  which  is  seen  in  calm  fjords 
and  bays  to  roll  itself  coil  after  coil,  uplift  its  head  high 
above  the  water,  exhibit  capacious  jaws  armed  with  teeth, 
conspicuous  eyes,  and  paws  or  paddles,  which  pursues  and 
menaces  boats,  presents  a  tangible  object  to  a  marksman, 
and  when  struck  disappears  with  a  mighty  splash. 

The  probability  of  a  gigantic  seal,  or  of  a  string  of  por- 


*  Nineteenth  Century,  March  1877,  p.  20.  Article  on  "Authority 
in  Matters  of  Opinion,"  by  G.  Cornewall  Lewis.  Eeviewed  by  W.  E. 
Gladstone. 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  321 


poises,  being  mistaken  for  a  sea-serpent  by  post-captains 
and  their  officers  in  the  Navy  is  small,  but  becomes  almost, 
if  not  quite,  impossible  when  the  observers  are  fishermen  on 
coasts  like  those  of  Norway,  who  have  been  in  the  habit  of 
seeing  seals  and  porpoises  almost  every  day  of  their  lives. 
We  may,  therefore,  freely  grant  that  occasional  mistakes 
have  arisen,  just  as  we  have  admitted  that  undoubtedly 
many  hoaxes  have  been  indulged  in. 

A  rational  and  commonplace  explanation  is  quite  possible 
in  some  cases,  as,  for  example,  in  that  of  a  creature  of 
abnormal  appearance  seen  by  the  crew  of  Her  Majesty's 
yacht,  the  Osborne,  in  the  Mediterranean,  which  was  sug- 
gested, with  great  probability,  to  have  been,  if  I  remember 
correctly,  some  species  of  shark;  while  the  supposed  sea- 
serpent,  washed  up  on  the  Isle  of  Stronsa,  in  1808,  proved, 
on  scientific  examination,  to  be  a  shark  of  the  genus  Selache, 
probably  belonging  to  the  species  known  as  "  the  barking 
shark."" 

The  great  oceanic  bone  shark,  known  to  few  except  whalers, 
which  has  been  stated  to  reach  as  much  as  sixty  feet  in 
length,  may  also  occasionally  have  originated  a  misconcep- 
tion ;  and  there  must  be  still  remaining  in  the  depths  of  the 
ocean  undescribed  species  of  fish,  of  bizarre  form,  and  pro- 
bably gigantic  size,  the  occasional  appearance  of  which  would 
puzzle  an  observer. 

For  example,  in  November  1879,  an  illustration  was  given 
in  the  Graphic  of  "  another  marine  monster,"  professing  to 
be  a  sketch  in  the  Gulf  of  Suez  from  H.M.S.  Philomel,  accom- 
panied by  the  following  descriptive  letter-press  : — 

"This  strange  monster,"  says  Mr.  W.  J.  Andrews, 
Assistant  Paymaster,  H.M.S.  Philomel,  "  was  seen  by  the 
officers  and  ship's  company  of  this  ship  at  about  5.30  P.M. 
on  October  14,  when  in  the  gulf  of  Suez,  Cape  Zafarana 
bearing  at  the  time  N.W.  seventeen  miles,  lat.  28°  56'  N., 
long.  32°  54'  E. 

21 


322  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

11  When  first  observed  it  was  rather  more  than  a  mile 
distant  on  the  port  bow,  its  snout  projecting  from  the  surface 
of  the  water,  and  strongly  marked  ripples  showing  the  posi- 
tion of  the  body.  It  then  opened  its  jaws,  as  shown  in  the 
sketch,  and  shut  them  again  several  times,  forcing  the  water 
from  between  them  as  it  did  so  in  all  directions  in  large  jets. 
From  time  to  time  a  portion  of  the  back  and  dorsal  fin 
appeared  at  some  distance  from  the  head.  After  remaining 
some  little  time  in  the  above-described  position,  it  dis- 


FIG.  76. — ANOTHER  MARINE  MONSTER.    A  Sketch  in  the  Gulf  of  Suez,  from 
H.M.S.  "  Philomel,"  Oct.  14,  1879.     (From  the  «  Graphic,"  Nov.  1879.) 

appeared,  and  on  coming  to  the  surface  again  it  repeated  the 
action  of  elevating  the  head  and  opening  the  jaws  several 
times,  turning  slowly  from  side  to  side  as  it  did  so. 

"  On  the  approach  of  the  ship  the  monster  swam  swiftly 
away,  leaving  a  broad  track  like  the  wake  of  a  ship,  and  dis- 
appeared beneath  the  waves. 

"  The  colour  of  that  portion  of  the  body  that  was  seen  was 
black,  as  was  also  the  upper  jaw.  The  lower  jaw  was  grey 
round  the  mouth,  but  of  a  bright  salmon  colour  underneath, 
like  the  belly  of  some  kinds  of  lizard,  becoming  redder  as  it 
approached  the  throat.  The  inside  of  the  mouth  appeared  to 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  323 


be  grey  with  white  stripes,  parallel  to  the  edges  of  the  jaw, 
very  distinctly  marked.  These  might  have  been  rows  of 
teeth  or  of  some  substance  resembling  whalebone.  The 
height  the  snout  was  elevated  above  the  surface  of  the 
water  was  at  least  fifteen  feet,  and  the  spread  of  the  jaws 
quite  twenty-five  feet." 

Strangely  enough,  a  proximate  counterpart  of  this  fish, 
but  of  mimic  size,  was  made  known  to  science  in  1882.  My 
attention  was  called  by  Mr.  Streich,  of  the  German  Consulate 
in  Shanghai,  to  a  description  of  this  in  the  Daheim,  an 
illustrated  family  paper,  published  in  Leipzig,  with  an  illus- 
trative figure,  from  which  I  inferred  that  the  monster  seen  by 
the  crew  of  the  Philomel  was  only  a  gigantic  and  adult  spe- 
cimen of  a  species  belonging  to  the  same  order,  perhaps  to 
the  same  genus,  as  the  Eurypharynx,  adapted  to  live  in  the 
depths  of  the  ocean,  and  only  appearing  upon  the  surface 
rarely  and  as  the  result  of  some  abnormal  conditions.  I 
give  fac-similes  of  both  engravings,  in  order  that  my  readers 
may  draw  their  own  comparison.  The  letter-press  of  the 
Daheim  is  as  follows  : — 

"  A  New  Fish.* 

"  The  deep-sea  explorations  of  last  year,  which  extended 
over  eight  thousand  metres  in  depth,  brought  to  light  some 
very  extraordinary  animals,  of  which,  up  to  the  present  date, 
we  have  no  idea.  The  most  curious  one  was  found  by  the 
French  steamer  Le  Travailleur,  on  which  there  was  a  staff  of 
naturalists,  and  of  the  number  was  M.  Milne  Edwards.  They 
were  entirely  devoted  to  deep-sea  dredging. 

"  Between  Morocco  and  the  Canary  Islands,  at  two  thou- 
sand three  hundred  metres  depth,  the  dredge  caught  a  most 
wonderful  animal,  which  at  the  first  glance  nobody  thought 

*  From  the  Daheim,  No.  17,  Supplement.  January  27th,  1883. 
Leipzig. 

21  * 


324  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

to  be  a  fish.  This  fish,  of  which  we  give  here  a  picture, 
dwells  on  the  bottom  of  the  sea  where  the  water  is  4- 5° 
Celsius,*  in  a  kind  of  red  slime  composed  of  the  shells  of 
small  Globigerinae.  On  account  of  its  curious  mouth  it  has 
been  called  Eurypharynx  Pelicanoides,  i.e.  the  Pelican-like 
Broad-jaws.  This  creature  is  distinguished  from  all  its  class 
by  the  peculiar  construction  of  its  mouth,  its  under  jaw  being 
of  a  structure  different  from  that  of  any  other  fish,  possess- 
ing only  two  small  teeth  and  a  big  pouch  of  most  expansible 


FIG.  77. — EURYPIIARYNX  PEMCANOIDKS.     (From  the  Daheim.') 

skin,  similar  to  the  sac  which  a  pelican  has  on  its  under  jaw. 
In  this  sac  it  (the  Broad-jaw)  collects  its  food,  and  as  its 
stomach  is  of  very  small  dimensions,  we  may,  from  analogy 
with  other  fishes,  conclude  that  it  digests  partly  in  this 
sac. 

"  The  swimming  apparatus  of  this  fish  is  not  much  deve- 
loped, and  reduced  to  a  number  of  spines  erect  from  the  back 
and  the  belly. 

*  41°  Fahrenheit, 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  325 


"  The  pectoral  fins,  which  are  immediately  behind  the 
eye,  are  also  very  small,  so  that  we  may  conclude  from 
this  that  this  fish  does  not  move  much,  and  is  not  a  good 
swimmer. 

"  It  only  inhabits  the  bottom  of  the  sea.  Its  body 
decreases  gradually  backwards  till  it  finishes  in  a  string-like 
tail.  The  organs  for  breathing  are  not  much  developed. 
Six  slits  (gill  apertures  ?)  allow  the  water  to  enter. 

"  The  colour  of  the  fish  (the  size  of  which  we  do  not  find 
in  our  authority)  is  velvet  black." 

Before  proceeding  further  I  must  point  out  that  we  may 
dismiss  from  our  minds  the  possibility  of  the  so-called  sea- 
serpent  being  merely  a  large  example  of  those  marine  ser- 
pents of  which  several  species  and  numerous  individuals  are 
known  to  exist  on  the  coast  of  many  tropical  countries,  for 
these  are  rarely  more  than  from  four  to  six  feet  in  length, 
although  Dampier*  mentions  one  which  he  saw  on  the 
northern  coast  of  Australia,  which  was  long  (but  the  length 
is  not  specified)  and  as  big  as  a  man's  leg.  He  gives  a 
curious  instance  of  these  biters  being  bit,  which  he  observed 
not  far  from  Scoutens  Island,  off  New  Guinea : — 

"  On  the  23rd  we  saw  two  snakes,  and  the  next  morning 
another  passing  by  us,  which  was  furiously  assaulted  by  two 
fishes  that  had  kept  in  company  five  or  six  days.  They  were 
shaped  like  mackerel,  and  were  about  that  bigness  and 
length,  and  of  a  yellow-greenish  colour.  The  snake  swam 
away  from  them  very  fast,  keeping  his  head  above  water. 
The  fish  snapped  at  his  tail ;  but  when  he  turned  himself 
that  fish  would  withdraw  and  another  would  snap ;  so  that 
by  turns  they  kept  him  employed.  Yet  he  still  defended 
himself,  and  swam  away  at  a  great  pace,  till  they  were  out  of 
sight." 

*  A  Collection  of  Voyages,  in  4  volumes.  J.  J.  Kuaptoii,  London, 
1729. 


326  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Leguat*  speaks  of  a  marine  serpent,  over  sixty  pounds  in 
weight,  which  he  and  his  comrades  in  misfortune  captured 
and  tasted,  when  marooned  by  order  of  the  Governor  of 
the  Mauritius  on  some  small  island  off  the  harbour,  about  six 
miles  from  the  shore.  He  says  : — 

11  It  was  a  frightful  sea-serpent,  which  we  in  our  great 
simplicity  took  for  a  large  lamprey  or  eel.  This  animal 
seemed  to  us  very  extraordinary,  for  it  had  fins,  and  we  knew 
not  that  there  were  any  such  creatures  as  sea-serpents. 
Moreover,  we  had  been  so  accustomed  to  discover  creatures 
that  were  new  to  us,  both  at  land  and  at  sea,  that  we  did  not 
think  this  to  be  any  other  than  an  odd  sort  of  eel  that  we 
never  had  seen  before,  yet  which  we  could  not  but  think 
more  resembled  a  snake  than  an  eel.  In  a  word,  the  monster 
had  a  serpent  or  crocodile's  head,  and  a  mouth  full  of  hooked, 

long  and  sharp  teeth When  our  purveyors  came  we 

related  to  them  what  had  happened  to  us,  and  showed  them 
the  eel's  head,  but  they  only  said  they  had  never  seen  the 
like." 

In  spite  of  Leguat's  impression,  I  think  it  was  only  seine 
species  of  conger  eel. 

Marine  serpents  are  abundant  on  the  Malay  coast,  and 
particularly  so  in  the  Indian  Ocean.  Niebuhr  says : — 

"  In  the  Indian  Ocean,  at  a  certain  distance  from  land,  a 
great  many  water-serpents,  from  twelve  to  fifteen  inches  in 
length,  are  to  be  seen  rising  above  the  surface  of  the  water. 
When  these  serpents  are  seen  they  are  an  indication  that  the 
coast  is  exactly  two  degrees  distant.  We  saw  some  of  these 
serpents,  for  the  first  time,  on  the  evening  of  the  9th  of 
September ;  on  the  1 1th  we  landed  in  the  harbour  of 
Bombay."  f 

*  A  Voyage  to  the  East  Indies,  by  Francis  Leguat.     London,  1708. 

f  I  find  the  following  note  in  Maclean's  Guide  to  Bombay,  for  1883  : 
"  Since  the  first  edition  of  this  Gazette  was^'published,  Captain  Dundas, 
of  the  P.  and  O.  Company's  steamer  Cathay,  has  informed  me  that  the 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  327 


These  sea-snakes  are  reputed  to  be  mostly,  if  not  entirely, 
venomous.  Their  motion  in  the  water  is  by  undulation  in 
a  horizontal,  not  in  a  vertical,  direction ;  they  breathe  with 
lungs ;  their  home  is  on  the  surface,  and  they  would  perish 
if  confined  for  any  considerable  period  beneath  it. 


FIG.  78. — SCOLIOPHIS  ATLANTICCS.     Killed  on  the  Sea-shore  near  Boston,  in  1817,  and 
at  that  time  supposed  to  be  the  young  of  the  Sea-Serpent. 

It  is  an  open  question  whether  conger  eels  may  not  exist, 
in  the  ocean  depths,  of  far  greater  dimensions  than  those  of 
the  largest  individuals  with  which  we  are  acquainted.  Major 
Wolf,  who  was  stationed  at  Singapore  while  I  was  there  in 
1880,  gave  me  information  which  seems  to  corroborate  this 
idea.  He  stated  that  when  dining  some  years  before  with  a 
retired  captain  of  the  39th  Begiment,  then  resident  at 
Wicklow,  the  latter  informed  him  that,  having  upon  one 
occasion  gone  to  the  coast  with  his  servant  in  attendance  on 
him,  the  latter  asked  permission  to  cease  continuing  on  with 
the  captain  in  order  that  he  might  bathe.  Having  received 
permission,  he  proceeded  to  do  so,  and  swam  out  beyond 
the  edge  of  the  shallow  water  into  the  deep.  A  coastguards- 
man,  who  was  watching  him  from  the  cliff  above,  was  hor- 
rified to  see  something  like  a  huge  fish  pursuing  the  man 
after  he  had  turned  round  towards  the  shore.  He  was  afraid 
to  call  out  lest  the  man  should  be  perplexed.  The  man, 


statements  of  old  travellers  regarding  these  serpents  are  quite  accurate. 
The  serpents  are  not  seen  excepting  during  the  south-west  monsoon 
the  season  in  which  alone  voyages  used  to  be  made  to  India.  In  Hors- 
burgh's  Sailing  Directions,  shipmasters  are  warned  to  look  out  for  the 
serpents,  whose  presence  is  a  sign  that  the  ship  is  close  to  land.  Captain 
Dundas  says  that  the  serpents  are  yellow  or  copper-coloured.  The 
largest  ones  are  farthest  out  to  sea.  They  lie  on  the  surface  of  the 
water,  and  appear  too  lazy  even  to  get  out  of  a  steamer's  way. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTEliS. 


however,  heard  some  splash  or  noise  behind  him,  and  looked 
round  and  saw  a  large  head,  like  a  bull-dog's  head,  project- 
ing out  of  the  water  as  if  to  seize  him.  He  made  a  frantic 
rush  shoreways,  and  striking  the  shallow  ground,  clambered 
out  as  quickly  as  possible,  but  broke  one  of  his  toes  from  the 
violence  with  which  he  struck  the  ground.  This  story  was 
confirmed  by  a  Mr.  Burbidge,  a  farmer,  who  stated  that  on 
one  occasion  when  he  himself  was  bathing  within  a  mile  or 
so  of  the  same  spot,  the  water  commenced  swirling  around 
him,  and  that,  being  alarmed,  he  swam  rapidly  in,  and  was 
pursued  by  something  perfectly  corresponding  with  that 
described  by  the  other  narrator,  and  which  he  supposed  to 
be  a  large  conger  eel.  In  each  case  the  length  was  estimated 
at  twenty  feet.  Mr.  Gosse  gives  the  greatest  length  recorded 
at  ten  feet. 

Were  we  only  acquainted  with  a  small  and  certain 
proportion  of  the  sea-serpent  stories,  we  might  readily 
imagine  that  they  had  been  originated  by  a  sight  of 
some  monstrous  conger,  but  there  are  details  exhibited 
by  them,  taken  as  a  whole,  which  forbid  that  idea.  We 
must  therefore  search  elsewhere  for  the  affinities  of  the  sea- 
serpent. 

And  first  as  to  those  authorities  who  believe  and  who  dis- 
believe in  its  existence. 

Professor  Owen,  in  1848,  attacked  the  Dcedalus  story  in 
a  very  masterly  manner,  and  extended  his  arguments  so  as 
to  embrace  the  general  non -probability  of  other  stories  which 
had  previously  affirmed  it.  He  was,  in  fact,  its  main  scien- 
tific opponent. 

Sir  Charles  Lyell,  upon  the  other  hand,  was,  I  believe, 
persuaded  of  its  existence  from  the  numerous  accounts  which 
he  accumulated  on  the  occasion  of  his  second  visit  to 
America,  especially  evidence  procured  for  him  by  Mr.  J.  W. 
Dawson,  of  Pictou,  as  to  one  seen,  in  1844,  at  Arisaig, 
near  the  north-east  end  of  Nova  Scotia,  and  as  to 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


another,    in  August   1845,    at  Merigomish,  in  the  Gulf  of 
St.  Lawrence. 

Agassiz  also  gave  in  his  adhesion  to  it.  "  I  have  asked 
myself,  in  connection  with  this  subject,  whether  there  is  not 
such  an  animal  as  the  sea-serpent.  There  are  many  who 
will  doubt  the  existence  of  such  a  creature  until  it  can  be 
brought  under  the  dissecting  knife ;  but  it  has  been  seen  by 
so  many  on  whom  we  may  rely,  that  it  is  wrong  to  doubt 
any  longer.  The  truth  is,  however,  that  if  a  naturalist  had 
to  sketch  the  outlines  of  an  icthyosaurus  or  plesiosaurus 
from  the  remains  we  have  of  them,  he  would  make  a  drawing 
very  similar  to  the  sea-serpent  as  it  has  been  described. 
There  is  reason  to  think  that  the  parts  are  soft  and  perish- 
able, but  I  still  consider  it  probable  that  it  will  be  the  good 
fortune  of  some  person  on  the  coast  of  Norway  or  North 
America  to  find  a  living  representative  of  this  type  of  reptile, 
which  is  thought  to  have  died  out." 

Mr.  Z.  Newman  was  the  first  scientific  man  to  absolutely 
affirm  his  belief  in  its  existence,  and  to  indicate  its  probable 
zoological  affinities  ;  and  he  was  ably  followed  by  Mr.  Gosse, 
who,  in  the  charming  work*  already  frequently  quoted,  ex- 
haustively discusses  the  whole  question. 

Mr.  Gosse,  however,  to  my  mind,  forgoes  a  great 
portion  of  the  advantage  of  his  argument  by  a  too 
limited  acceptance  of  authorities,  and  leaves  untouched,  as 
have  all  who  preceded  him,  the  question  of  the  breathing 
apparatus  of  the  creature,  and  also  omits  insisting,  as  he 
might  well  have  done,  on  the  remarkable  coincidence  of 
the  seasons  and  climatic  conditions  at  and  under  which 
the  creature  ordinarily  exhibits  itself,  which  may  be 
quoted  first  as  an  argument  in  favour  of  the  reality  of 
the  different  stories,  and,  secondly,  as  affording  indica- 


*  The  Romance  of  Natural  History,  P.  H.  Gosse,  P.R.S.,  First  Series, 
London,  1880,  12th  edition  ;  Second  Series,  1875,  5th  edition. 


330  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

tions  of  the  nature  and  habits  of  the  creature  to  which  they 
relate. 

Both  Mr.  Newman  and  Mr.  Gosse,  moreover,  laboured 
under  the  disadvantage  of  being  unacquainted  with  some  of 
the  later  stories,  such  as  that  of  the  Nestor  sea-serpent  seen 
in  the  Straits  of  Malacca,  which  appears  to  amply  substan- 
tiate the  general  conclusion  at  which  they  had  already, 
happily,  as  I  conceive,  arrived. 

In  nearly  all  the  cases  quoted,  and  in  all  of  those  where 
the  creature  has  appeared  in  the  deep  fjords  of  Norway  or 
in  the  bays  of  other  coasts,  the  date  of  its  appearance  has 
been  some  time  during  the  months  of  July  and  August,  and 
the  weather  calm  and  hot.  These  last  summer  conditions,  in 
high  latitudes,  do  not  obtain  for  long  together,  so  that  the 
auspices  favourable  to  the  appearance  of  the  creature  would 
probably  not  exist  for  more  than  a  few  weeks  in  each 
season,  and  during  the  remainder  of  the  year  it  would  rest 
secluded  in  the  depths  of  the  fjords,  presuming  those  to  be 
its  permanent  habitation,  or  in  some  oceanic  home,  if,  as 
would  seem  more  likely  to  be  the  case,  its  appearance  in 
the  bays  and  fjords  was  simply  due  to  a  temporary  visit, 
made  possibly  in  connection  with  its  reproduction;  for, 
were  its  habitation  in  the  fjords  constant,  we  should  expect 
it  to  make  its  appearance  annually,  instead  of  at  irregular 
and  distant  intervals. 

We  must  also  infer  that  it  is  a  non-air-breathing  creature. 

Professor  Owen,  in  his  very  able  discussion  of  the  Dcedalus 
story,  bases  his  main  argument  against  the  serpentine 
character  of  the  creature  seen  in  this  and  other  instances  on 
there  being  either  no  undulation  at  all  of  the  body,  or  a  ver- 
tical one,  which  is  not  a  characteristic  of  serpents,  and  on 
the  fact  of  no  remains  having  ever  been  discovered  washed 
up  on  the  Norway  coasts.  He  says  : — 

"  Now,  a  serpent,  being  an  air-breathing  animal,  with  long 
vesicular  and  receptacular  lungs,  dives  with  an  effort,  and 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  331 


commonly  floats  when  dead,  and  so  would  the  sea-serpent, 
until  decomposition  or  accident  had  opened  the  tough  integu- 
ment and  let  out  the  imprisoned  gases During  life 

the  exigencies  of  the  respiration  of  the  great  sea-serpent 
would  always  compel  him  frequently  to  the  surface  ;  and, 
when  dead  and  swollen,  it  would 

Prone  on  the  flood,  extended  long  and  large, 
Lie  floating  many  a  rood. 

Such  a  spectacle,  demonstrative  of  the  species  if  it  existed, 
has  not  hitherto  met  the  gaze  of  any  of  the  countless  voyagers 
who  have  traversed  the  seas  in  so  many  directions." 

But,  assuming  it  to  be  neither  a  serpent  nor  an  air- 
breathing  creature,  the  very  cogent  arguments  which  he 
applied  so  powerfully  fall  to  the  ground,  and  I  may  at  once 
state  that  a  review  of  the  whole  of  the  reported  cases  of  its 
appearance  entirely  favours  the  first  assumption,  while  a  little 
reflection  will  show  the  necessity  of  the  latter.  No  air- 
breathing  creature,  or  rather  a  creature  furnished  with  lungs, 
could  possibly  exist,  even  for  a  season  only,  in  the  inland  bays 
of  populous  countries  like  Norway  and  Scotland  without  con- 
tinually exposing  itself  to  observation ;  but  this  is  not  the 
case.  Whereas  there  is  no  difficulty  in  conceiving  that  a 
creature  adapted  to  live  in  the  depths  of  the  ocean  could 
breathe  readily  enough  at  the  surface,  even  for  considerable 
periods ;  for  we  know  that  fish  of  many  kinds,  and  notably 
carp,  can  retain  life  for  days,  and  even  weeks,  when  removed 
from  the  water,  provided  they  happen  to  be  in  a  moist 
situation. 

Again,  a  power  of  constriction,  a  characteristic  of  boas  and 
pythons,  and  therefore  implying  an  alliance  with  them,  is  not 
necessarily  indicated,  as  might  be  supposed,  even  by  the 
action  affirmed  in  Captain  Drevar's  story ;  for  a  creature  of 
serpentine  form,  attacking  another,  might  coil  itself  round 
for  the  mere  purpose  of  maintaining  a  hold  while  it  tore  its 


MYTHICAL  MONlSTEtiS. 


victim  open  with  its  powerful  jaws  and  teeth.  This  action  is 
simply  that  of  an  eel  which,  on  being  hooked,  grasps  weeds 
at  the  bottom  to  resist  capture. 

Nor  are  we  bound  to  accept  in  any  way  the  captain's 
suggestion  that  the  monster  gorged  its  victim  after  the  fashion 
of  a  land-serpent.  It  may  as  readily  have  'torn  it  open  and 
fed  on  it  as  an  eel  might ;  and  it  is,  indeed,  not  unreasonable 
to  suppose  that  so  powerful  a  monster  would  find  its  prey 
among  large  creatures,  such  as  seals,  porpoises,  and  the 
smaller  cetaceas. 

That  the  sea-serpent  was  formerly  more  frequently  seen 
on  the  Norwegian  coasts  than  now  I  consider  probable,  as 
also  that  its  visits  were  connected  with  its  breeding  season, 
and  discontinued  in  consequence  of  the  greater  number  and 
larger  size  of  vessels,  and  especially  of  the  introduction  of 
steam.     As  a  parallel  instance,  I  may  mention  that,  in  the 
early   days   of  the    settlement   of  Australia,  sperm   whales 
resorted  to  the  harbours  along  its  coasts  for  calving  pur- 
poses, and  were  sufficiently  numerous  to  cause  the  mainte- 
nance of  what  were  called  "  bay  whaling  stations  "  at  Hobart 
Town,  Spring  Bay,    and  many  other  harbours  of  Tasmania 
and  South  Australia.     At  the  present  time,  the  sperm  whale 
rarely  approaches  within  ten  miles  of  the  coast,  and  the  small 
whaling  fleet  finds  scanty  occupation  in  the  ocean  extending 
south   from   the    great  Australian   bight  to  the  south  cape 
of  Tasmania.      Mr.  G-osse  eliminates  from  his  concluding 
analysis  of  sea-serpent  stories  all  those  recorded  by  Norwe- 
gian and  American  observers,  and  argues  only  upon  a  selected 
number  resting  on  British  evidence. 

By  this  contraction  he  loses  as  a  basis  of  argument  a 
number  of  accounts  which  I  consider  as  credible  as  those  he 
quotes,  and  from  which  positive  deductions  might  be  drawn, 
more  weighty  than  those  of  similar,  but  merely  inferential, 
character  which  he  employs. 

The  account   of  the  monster  seen   by  Hans   Egede,    lor 


THE  SEA-SERPENT. 


example,  where  the  creature  exhibited  itself  more  completely 
than  it  did  in  any  of  the  instances  selected  by  Mr.  Gosse, 
specifically  indicated  the  possession  of  paws,  flippers,  fins  or 
paddles,  while  this  can  only  be  surmised  at,  in  the  latter 
cases  to  which  I  refer,  from  the  progressive  steady  motion  of 
the  creature,  with  the  head  and  neck  elevated  above  the 
surface,  and  apparently  unaffected  by  any  undulatory  motion 
of  the  body.  This  at  once  removes  it  from  the  serpent  class, 
without  any  necessity  for  the  additional  confirmation  which 
the  enlarged  proportions  of  the  body  in  comparison  with 
those  of  the  neck,  as  given  in  Egede's  amended  version, 
afford  us. 

The  creature  seen  in  the  Straits  of  Malacca,  and  one 
quoted  by  Mr.  Newman,  in  the  Zoologist,  exhibit  characters 
which  confirm  Egede's  story.  In  the  latter  instance, 
"  Captain  the  Hon.  George  Hope  states  that,  when  in 
H.M.S.  Fly,  in  the  Gulf  of  California,  the  sea  being  perfectly 
calm  and  transparent,  he  saw  at  the  moment  a  large  marine 
animal,  with  the  head  and  general  figure  of  an  alligator, 
except  that  the  neck  was  much  longer,  and  that  instead  of 
legs  the  creature  had  four  large  flappers,  somewhat  like  those 
of  turtles,  the  anterior  pair  being  larger  than  those  of  the 
posterior.  The  creature  was  distinctly  visible,  and  all  its 
movements  could  be  observed  with  ease.  It  appeared  to  be 
pursuing  its  prey  at  the  bottom  of  the  sea.  Its  movements 
were  somewhat  serpentine,  and  an  appearance  of  annulations 
or  ring-like  divisions  of  the  body  were  distinctly  perceptible." 
Mr.  Gosse,  commenting  on  this  story,  says :  "  Now,  unless 
this  officer  was  egregiously  deceived,  he  saw  an  animal  which 
could  have  been  no  other  than  an  Enaliosaur,  a  marine  reptile 
of  large  size,  of  sauroid  figure,  with  turtle-like  paddles." 

In  the  former  case  the  creature  was  far  more  gigantic  and 
robust,  in  contradistinction  to  the  slender  and  serpentine 
form  more  usually  observed,  and  we  must  consequently  infer 
that  there  is  not  merely  one  but  several  distinct  species  of 


334  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

marine  monster,  unknown  and  rarely  exhibiting  themselves, 
belonging  to  different  genera,  and  perhaps  orders,  but  all 
popularly  included  under  the  title  of  "  sea-serpent." 

The  attempt  to  classify  these  presents  difficulties.  Mr. 
Gosse,  however,  has  very  ably  reviewed  the  somewhat  scanty 
materials  at  his  command,  and,  agreeing  with  the  suggestion 
made  originally  by  Mr.  Newman,  has  elaborated  the  argu- 
ment that  one  of  the  old  Enaliosaurs  exists  to  the  present 
day.  This  form,  Palaeontology  tells  us,  commenced  in  the 
Carboniferous,  attained  its  maximum  specific  development  in 
the  Jurassic,  and  continued  to  the  close  of  the  Cretaceous 
periods.  This  rational  suggestion  is  supported  by  the  colla- 
teral argument  that  some  few  Ganoid  fishes  and  species  of 
Terebratula,  have  continuously  existed  to  the  present  time  ; 
that  certain  Placoid  fishes,  of  which  we  have  no  trace,  and 
which  consequently  must  have  been  very  scarce  during  Ter- 
tiary periods,  reappear  abundantly  as  recent  species ;  that  the 
Iguanodon  is  represented  by  the  Iguana  of  the  American 
tropics,  and  that  the  TrionychidaB,  or  river  tortoises,  which 
commenced  during  the  Wealden,  and  disappeared  from 
thence  until  the  present  period,  are  now  abundantly  repre- 
sented in  the  rivers  of  the  Old  and  the  New  World. 

The  points  of  resemblance  between  the  northern  and  most 
often  seen  form  of  the  sea-serpent  and  certain  genera  of  the 
Enaliosaurs,  such  as  Plesiosaurus,  are  a  long  swan-like 
neck,  a  flattened  lizard-like  head  and  progress  by  means  of 
paddles.  A  difficulty  in  this  connection  arises,  however,  in 
respect  to  the  breathing  apparatus.  Palaeontologists  favour 
the  idea  that  the  Plesiosaurus  and  its  allies  were  air-breathing 
creatures  with  long  necks,  adapted  to  habitual  projection 
above  the  surface.  Such  a  construction  and  habit  is,  as  I 
have  before  said,  to  my  mind,  impossible  in  the  case  of  an 
animal  of  so  scarce  an  appearance  as  the  sea-serpent ;  and  I 
am  incapable  of  estimating  how  far  the  theory  is  inflexible 
in  regard  to  the  old  forms  that  I  have  mentioned.  May 


THE  SEA-SERPENT.  335 


there  not  be  some  large  marine  form  combining  some  of  the 
characters  of  the  salamander  and  the  saurians ;  may  not  the 
pigmy  newt  of  Europe,  the  large  salamander  tenanting  the 
depths  of  Lake  Biwa  in  Japan,  and  the  famous  fossil  form, 
the  Homo  Diluvii  Testis  of  Sheuzberg,  have  a  marine  cousin 
linking  them  with  the  gigantic  forms  which  battled  in  the 
Oolitic  seas  ?  May  not  the  tuft  of  loose  skin  or  scroll  en- 
circling its  head  have  some  connection  with  a  branchial 
apparatus  analagous  to  that  of  the  Amphibia  ;  and  was  not 
the  large  fringe  round  the  neck,  like  a  beard,  noticed  on 
the  one  seen  by  Captain  Anderson  when  in  the  Delta  in 
1861,  of  a  similar  nature  ? 

In  conclusion,  I  must  strongly  express  my  own  convic- 
tion, which  I  hope,  after  the  perusal  of  the  evidence  contained 
in  the  foregoing  pages,  will  be  shared  by  my  readers,  that, 
let  the  relations  of  the  sea-serpent  be  what  they  may ;  let 
it  be  serpent,  saurian,  or  fish,  or  some  form  intermediate 
to  them ;  and  even  granting  that  those  relations  may  never 
be  determined,  or  only  at  some  very  distant  date ;  yet,  never- 
theless, the  creature  must  now  be  removed  from  the  regions 
of  myth,  and  credited  with  having  a  real  existence,  and  that 
its  name  includes  not  one  only,  but  probably  several  very 
distinct  gigantic  species,  allied  more  or  less  closely,  and 
constructed  to  dwell  in  the  depths  of  the  ocean,  and  which 
only  occasionally  exhibit  themselves  to  a  fortune-favoured 
wonder-gazing  crew. 


NOTE. 

It  is  with  great  pleasure  that  I  add  the  following  testimony  of  a  belief 
in  the  existence  of  the  sea- serpent,  from  a  country  which  has  not 
hitherto  been  supposed  to  have  any  traditions  relating  to  it.  My 
inquiries  in  Burmah,  as  to  a  belief  among  its  inhabitants  in  sundry 
so-called  mythical  beings,  led  me  unexpectedly  on  the  track  of  the  fol- 
lowing information,  for  which  I  am  indebted  to  the  scholarship  and 


336  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


courtesy  of  F.  Ripley,  Esq.,  Government  Translator  in  the  Secretariat 
Department,  Eangoon. 

EXTRACT  from  the  Kavilakhana  depane,  pp.  132-133. 

[Author — Mingyi  Thiri  Mahazeyathu,  the  Myaunghla  Myoza,  Nanig- 
ngan-gya  Wundauk,  or  Sub-Minister  for  Foreign  Affairs  to  His 
Majesty  the  late  King  of  Burmah.] 

"  The  creature  Nyan  is  called  in  the  Magadha  language  Tanti-gdha, 
in  the  Bengali  Gara ;  in  the  Sakkata,  Grdha  or  Avagrdh  ;  and  in  the 
Burmese,  Nyan. 

"Hence  are  to  be  found  the  following  passages,  viz. : — 

"  '  Tanti-gdha — The  creature  Nyan,  of  the  immense  length  of  one 
or  two  hundred  fathoms,'  in  the  Shri  Sariputtara  Apadan. 

"  '  Graho  or  Avagraho — a  predatory  monster,  in  shape  like  an 
earthworm,'  in  the  Amarakosha  Abhidhan  ; 

and 

"  '  Dvagar  samudda  maha  nady  sanga  mela  tdkd  yazantu  vigera 
itichate,'  in  the  commentary  of  the  Amarakosha  Abhidhan. 

"  From  these  works,  which  contain  definitions  of  two  words  designa- 
tive  of  the  creature  Nyan,  it  will  be  gathered  that  there  does  exist  a 
predatory  monster  in  the  form  of  an  earthworm,  which  inhabits  estuaries 
and  the  mouths  of  great  rivers. 

"  Regarding  the  predatory  instincts  of  this  creature,  it  should  be 
understood  that  it  attacks  even  such  animals  as  elephants.  Hence  the 
Dhammathats,  in  dealing  with  the  decision  of  cases  of  hire  of  live-stock, 
wishing  to  point  out  that  no  fault  lies  through  losses  owing  to  natural 
accidents,  make  the  following  remarks : — 

"  '  There  shall  be  no  fault  held  if  oxen  die  by  reason  of  a  snake  gliding 
under  them.' 

"  '  There  shall  be  no  fault  held,  if  buffaloes  die  by  reason  of  a  dove 
resting  on  their  horns.' 

"  '  There  shall  be  no  fault  held  if  oxen  and  buffaloes  die  of  their  having 
eaten  a  grasshopper.' 

" '  There  shall  be  no  fault  held  if  elephants  die  by  reason  of  their 
having  been  encoiled  in  the  folds  of  a  Nyan.' 

"  '  There  shall  be  no  fault  held  if  horses  die  by  reason  of  their  having 
been  sucked  by  bilas.' 

"  The  Poetical  Version  of  the  Pokinnaka  Dhammathat,  which  is  a  com- 
pilation of  several  Dhammathats,  in  the  same  strain,  says : — 
[Here  follows  a  verse,  the  same  in  effect  as  the  above.] 

"  From  such  passages  it  will  be  seen  that  there  is  a  frightful  monster 
of  extraordinary  strength,  which  is  capable  of  capturing  even  such 
aninaals  as  elephants." 


THE  CHINESE  PHCEN1X. 


367 


Fifi.  S)0. — TEMPLE  MEDALS  FI:OM  CHINA:  DRAGON  AND  PHCENIX. 


368  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

original  passage  in  the  Tso  Chuen  is]  so  interesting  that  I 
quote  in  extenso  Dr.  Legge's  translation  of  it : — 

"  When  my  ancestor,  Shaou-Haou  Che,  succeeded  to  the 
kingdom,  there  appeared  at  that  time  a  phoenix,  and  there- 
fore he  arranged  his  government  under  the  nomenclature  of 
birds,  making  bird  officers,  and  naming  them  after  birds. 
There  were  so  and  so  Phcenix  bird,  minister  of  the  calendar ; 
so  and  so  Dark  bird  [the  swallow],  master  of  the  equinoxes ; 
so  and  so  Pih  Chaou  [the  shrike],  master  of  the  solstices ; 
so  and  so  Green  bird  [a  kind  of  sparrow],  master  of  the 
beginning  (of  spring  and  autumn) ;  and  so  and  so  Carnation 
bird  [the  golden  pheasant],  master  of  the  close  (of  spring 
and  autumn).  .  .  .  The  five  Che  [Pheasants]  presided  over 
the  five  classes  of  mechanics. 

"  So  in  previous  reigns  there  had  been  cloud  officers,  fire 
officers,  water  officers,  and  dragon  officers,  according  to 
omens." 

I  think  there  is  some  connection  between  this  old  usage 
and  the  present  or  late  system  of  tribe  totems  among  the 
North  American  Indians.  Thus  we  have  Snake,  Tortoise, 
Hare  Indians,  &c.,  and  I  hope  some  day  to  explain  some 
of  the  obscure  and  apparently  impossible  passages  of  the 
Shan  Hai  King,  in  reference  to  strange  tribes,  upon  what  I 
may  call  the  totem  theory. 

The  Kin  King,  a  small  work  devoted  to  ornithology,  and 
professing  to  date  back  to  the  Tsin  dynasty  [A.D.  265  to 
317],  opens  its  pages  with  a  description  of  the  Fung  Hwang, 
because,  as  it  states,  the  Fung  is  the  principal  of  the  three 
hundred  and  sixty  different  species  of  birds.  According  to 
it,  the  Fung  is  like  a  swan  in  front  and  like  a  Lin  behind  ; 
it  enumerates  its  resemblances  pretty  much  as  the  commen- 
tator in  the  'Eh  Ya  gives  them ;  but  we  now  find  a  com- 
mencement of  extraordinary  attributes.  Thus  the  head  is 
supposed  to  have  impressed  on  it  the  Chinese  character 
expressing  virtue,  the  poll  that  for  uprightness,  the  back 


THE  CHINESE  PHCENIX. 


that  for  humanity  ;  the  heart  is  supposed  to  contain  that  of 
sincerity,  and  the  wings  to  enfold  in  their  clasp  that  of 
integrity ;  its  foot  imprints  integrity ;  its  low  notes  are 
like  a  bell,  its  high  notes  are  like  a  drum.  It  is  said  that 
it  will  not  peck  living  grass,  and  that  it  contains  all  the  five 
colours.* 

When  it  flies  crowds  of  birds  follow.  When  it  appears, 
the  monarch  is  an  equitable  ruler,  and  the  kingdom  has 
moral  principles.  It  has  a  synonym,  "  the  felicitous  yen.1' 
According  to  the  King  Shun  commentary  upon  the  'Rh  Ya,  it 
is  about  six  feet  in  height.  The  young  are  called  Yoh  Shoh, 
and  it  is  said  that  the  markings  of  the  five  colours  only 
appear  when  it  is  three  years  of  age.  f 

There  appears  to  have  been  another  bird  closely  related 
to  it,  which  is  called  the  Lwan  Shui.  This,  when  first 
hatched,  resembles  the  young  Fung,  but  when  of  mature  age 
it  changes  the  five  colours. 

The  Shdng  Li  Ten  Wei  I  says  of  this,  that  when  the  world 
is  peaceful  its  notes  will  be  heard  like  the  tolling  of  a  bell,  Pien 
Lwan  [answering  to  our  "  ding-dong  "].  During  the  Chao 
dynasty  it  was  customary  to  hang  a  bell  on  the  tops  of 
vehicles,  with  a  sound  like  that  of  the  Lwan.*  From  another 
passage  we  learn  that  it  was  supposed  to  have  different  names 
according  to  a  difference  in  colour.  Thus,  when  the  head 


*  Black,  red,  azure  (green,  blue,  or  black),  white,  yellow. 

f  Many  species  of  bird  do  not  attain  their  mature  plumage  until  long 
after  they  have  attained  adult  size,  as  some  among  the  gulls  and  birds 
of  pre^ .  I  think  I  am  right  in  saying  that  some  of  these  latter  only 
become  perfect  in  their  third  year.  We  all  know  the  story  of  the  ugly 
duckling,  and  the  little  promise  which  it  gave  of  its  future  beauty. 

J  According  to  Dr.  Williams,  the  Lwan  was  a  fabulous  bird  described 
as  the  essence  of  divine  influence,  and  regarded  as  the  embodiment  of 
every  grace  and  beauty,  and  that  the  argus  pheasant  was  the  type 
of  it. 

Dr.  Williams  says  that  it  was  customary  to  hang  little  bells  from  the 
phcenix  that  marked  the  royal  cars. 

24 


370  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

and  wings  were  red  it  was  called  the  red  Fung  ;  when  blue, 
the  Yu  Siang ;  when  white,  the  Hwa  Yih  ;  when  black,  the 
Yin  Chu  ;  when  yellow,  the  To  Fu.  Another  quotation  is 
to  the  effect  that,  when  the  Fung  soars  and  the  Lwan 
flies  upwards,  one  hundred  birds  follow  them.  It  is  also 
stated  that  when  either  the  Lwan  or  the  Fung  dies,  one 
hundred  birds  peck  up  the  earth  and  bury  them. 

Another  author  amplifies  the  fancied  resemblances  of  the 
Fung,  for  in  the  Lun  Yu  Tseh  Shwai  Shing  we  find  it  stated 
that  it  has  six  resemblances  and  nine  qualities.  The  former 
are :  1st,  the  head  is  like  heaven  ;  2nd,  the  eye  like  the 
sun ;  3rd,  the  back  is  like  the  moon ;  4th,  the  wings  like 
the  wind ;  5th,  the  foot  is  like  the  ground  ;  6th,  the  tail  is 
like  the  woof.  The  latter  are  :  1st,  the  mouth  contains 
commands ;  2nd,  the  heart  is  conformable  to  regulations ; 
3rd,  the  ear  is  thoroughly  acute  in  hearing  ;  4th,  the  tongue 
utters  sincerity ;  5th,  the  colour  is  luminous ;  6th,  the  comb 
resembles  uprightness ;  7th,  the  spur  is  sharp  and  curved ; 
8th,  the  voice  is  sonorous  ;  9th,  the  belly  is  the  treasure  of 
literature. 

When  it  crows,  in  walking,  it  utters  "  Quai  she  "  [return- 
ing joyously]  ;  when  it  stops  crowing,  "  T'i  fee"  [I  carry 
assistance?];  when  it  crows  at  night  it  exclaims  "Sin" 
[goodness]  ;  when  in  the  morning,  "  Ho  si  "  [I  congratulate 
the  world]  ;  when  during  its  flight,  "Long  Tu  che  wo "  [Long 
Tu  knows  me]  and  "  Hwang  che  chu  sz  si"  [truly  Hwang 
has  come  with  the  Bamboos].*  Hence  it  was  that  Confucius 
wished  to  live  among  the  nine  I  [barbarian  frontier  countries] 
following  the  Fung's  pleasure. 

The  Fung  appears  to  have  been  fond  of  music,  for,  accord- 
ing to  the  Shu  King,  when  you  play  the  flute,  in  nine  cases 
out  of  ten  the  Fung  Wang  comes  to  bear  you  company ; 
while,  according  to  the  Odes,  or  Classic  of  Poetry,  the  Fung, 

*  In  reference  to  Hwang  Ti  (?)  writing  the  Bamboo  Books  ? 


THE  CHINESE  PHCENIX.  371 


in  flying,  makes  the  sound  hwui  hwui,  and  its  wings  carry 
it  up  to  the  heavens  ;  and  when  it  sings  on  the  lofty  moun- 
tain called  Kwang,  the  Wu  Tung  tree  flourishes,*  and  its 
fame  spreads  over  the  world. 

The  presence  of  the  Fung  was  always  an  auspicious  augury, 
and  it  was  supposed  that  when  heaven  showed  its  displea- 
sure at  the  conduct  ^of  the  people  during  times  of  drought, 
of  destruction  of  crops  by  insects  (locusts),  of  disastrous 
famines,  and  of  pestilence,  the  Fung  Wang  retired  from  the 
civilised  country  into  the  desert  and  forest  regions. 

It  was  classed  with  the  dragon,  the  tortoise,  and  the 
unicorn  as  a  spiritual  creature,  and  its  appearance  in  the 
gardens  and  groves  denoted  that  the  princes  and  monarch 
were  equitable,  and  the  people  submissive  and  obedient. 

Its  indigenous  home  is  variously  indicated.  Thus,  in  the 
Shan  Hai  King,  it  is  stated  to  dwell  in  the  Ta  Hueh  moun- 
tains, a  range  included  in  the  third  list  of  the  southern 
mountains  ;  it  is  also,  in  the  third  portion  of  the  same  work 
(treating  of  the  Great  Desert),  placed  in  the  south  and  in 
the  west  of  the  Great  Desert,  and  more  specifically  as  west 
of  Kwan  Lun. 

There  is  also  a  tradition  that  it  came  from  Corea  ;  and 
the  celebrated  Chinese  general,  Sieh  Jan  Kwei,  who  invaded 
and  conquered  that  country  in  A.D.  668,  is  said  to  have 
ascended  the  Fung  Hwang  mountain  there  and  seen  the 
phoenix. 

According  to  the  Annals  of  the  Bamboo  Books  phcenixes, 
male  and  female,  arrived  in  the  autumn,  in  the  seventh 
month,  in  the  fiftieth  year  of  the  reign  of  Hwang  Ti  (B.C. 
2647),  and  the  commentary  states  that  some  of  them  abode 

*  The  Wu  Tung  is  the  Eleococca  verrucosa,  according  to  Dr.  Williams  ; 
others  identify  it  with  the  Stercidia  platanifolia.  There  is  a  Chinese 
proverb  to  the  effect  that  without  having  Wu  Tung  trees  you  cannot 
expect  to  see  phoanixes  in  your  garden. 

24  * 


372  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

in  the  Emperor's  eastern  garden  ;  some  built  their  nests 
about  the  corniced  galleries  (of  the  palaces),  and  some  sung 
in  the  courtyard,  the  females  gambolling  to  the  notes  of  the 
males. 

The  commentary  of  the  same  work  adds  that  (among  a 
variety  of  prodigies)  the  phoenix  appeared  in  the  seventieth 
year  of  the  reign  of  Yaou  (B.C.  2286),  and  again  in  the  first 
year  of  Shun  (B.C.  2255). 

Kwoh  P'oh  states  that,  during  the  times  of  the  Han 
dynasty  (commencing  B.C.  206  and  lasting  until  A.D.  23), 
the  phoenixes  appeared  constantly. 

In  these  later  passages  I  have  adopted  the  word  phoenix, 
after  Legge  and  other  Sinologues,  as  a  conventional  admis- 
sion ;  but,  as  will  be  seen  from  all  the  extracts  given,  there 
are  but  few  grounds  for  identifying  it,  whether  fabulous  or 
not,  with  the  pheenix  of  Greek  mythology.  It  reappears  in 
Japanese  tradition  under  the  name  of  the  Ho  and  0  (male 
and  female),  and,  according  to  Kempfer,  who  calls  it  the 
Foo,  "  it  is  a  chimerical  but  beautiful  large  bird  of  paradise, 
of  near  akin  to  the  phoenix  of  the  ancients.  It  dwells  in 
the  high  regions  of  the  air,  and  it  hath  this  in  common  with 
the  Ki-Ein  (the  equivalent  of  the  Chinese  Ki-Lin),  that  it 
never  comes  down  from  thence  but  upon  the  birth  of  a  sesin 
(a  man  of  incomparable  understanding,  penetration,  and 
benevolence)  or  that  of  a  great  emperor,  or  upon  some 
such  other  extraordinary  occasion." 

It  is  a  common  ornamentation  in  the  Japanese  temples ; 
and  I  select,  as  an  example,  figures  from  some  very  beautiful 
panels  in  the  Nichi-hong-wanji  temple  in  Kioto.  They 
depart  widely  from  the  original  (Chinese)  tradition,  every 
individual  presenting  a  different  combination  of  gorgeous 
colours;  they  only  agree  in  having  two  long  central  tail 
feathers  projecting  from  a  plumose,  bird-of-paradise-like 
arrangement. 

These  can  only  be  accepted  as  the  evolution  of  an  artist's 


THE  CHINESE  PHCENIX. 


373 


fancy ;  nor  can  any  opinion  be  arrived  at  from  the  figure  of 
it  illustrating  the  'Rh  Ya,  of  which  I  reproduce  a  fac-simik. 
I  have  already  stated  that  Kwoh  P'oh's  illustrations  have  been 
lost. 


FIG.  91.— THE  FUNG  HWANG.     (From  the  'Rh  Ya.) 

The  frontispiece  to  this  volume  is  reduced  from  a  large 
and  very  beautiful  painting  on  silk,  which  I  was  fortunate 
enough  to  procure  in  Shanghai,  by  an  artist  named  Fang 


374  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Heng,  otherwise  styled  Sien  Tang ;  it  professes  to  be  made 
according  to  the  designs  of  ancient  books.  The  original  is, 
I  believe,  of  some  antiquity. 

In  this  case  the  delineation  of  the  bird  shows  a  combina- 
tion of  the  characters  of  the  peacock,  the  pheasant,  and  the 
bird  of  paradise ;  the  comb  is  like  that  of  a  pheasant.  The 
tail  is  adorned  with  gorgeous  eyes,  like  a  peacock's,  but 
fashioned  more  like  that  of  an  argus  pheasant,  the  two 
middle  tail  feathers  projecting  beyond  the  others,  while  stiff- 
ened plumes,  as  I  interpret  the  intention  of  the  drawing, 
are  made  to  project  from  the  sides  of  the  back,  and  above 
the  wings,  recalling  those  of  the  Semioptera  Wallacii.  The 
bird  perches,  in  accordance  with  tradition,  on  the  Wu-Tung 
tree.  Without  pretending  to  assert  that  this  is  an  exact 
representation  of  the  Tung,  I  fancy  that  it  comes  nearer  to 
it  than  the  ordinary  Chinese  and  Japanese  representations. 

Looking  to  the  history  of  the  appearance  of  the  Fung, 
the  general  description  of  its  characteristics,  and  disregard- 
ing the  supernatural  qualities  with  which,  probably,  Taouist 
priests  have  invested  it,  I  can  only  regard  it  as  another 
example  of  an  interesting  and  beautiful  species  of  bird  which 
has  become  extinct,  as  the  dodo  and  so  many  others  have, 
within  historic  times. 

Its  rare  appearance  and  gorgeousness  of  plumage  would 
cause  its  advent  on  any  occasion  to  be  chronicled,  and  a 
servile  court  would  only  too  readily  seize  upon  this  pretext 
to  flatter  the  reigning  monarch  and  ascribe  to  his  virtues  a 
phenomenon  which,  after  all,  was  purely  natural. 


APPENDICES. 


APPENDIX  I. 


THE  DELUGE  TRADITION  ACCOEDING  TO  BEEOSUS.* 

"Obartes  Elbaratutu  being  dead,  his  son  Xisuthros  (Khasisatra) 
reigned  eighteen  sares  (64,800  years).  It  was  under  him  that  the  great 
Deluge  took  place,  the  history  of  which  is  told  in  the  sacred  documents 
as  follows :  Cronos  (Ea)  appeared  to  him  in  his  sleep,  and  announced 
that  on  the  fifteenth  of  the  month  of  Daisies — the  Assyrian  month 
Sivan — a  little  before  the  summer  (solstice)  all  men  should  perish  by  a 
flood.  He  therefore  commanded  him  to  take  the  beginning,  the  middle, 
and  the  end  of  whatever  was  consigned  to  writing,  and  to  bury  it  in 
the  city  of  the  Sun,  at  Sippara ;  then  to  build  a  vessel  and  to  enter  it 
with  his  family  and  dearest  friends ;  to  place  in  this  vessel  provisions 
to  eat  and  drink,  and  to  cause  animals,  birds,  and  quadrupeds  to  enter 
it ;  lastly,  to  prepare  everything  for  navigation.  And  when  Xisuthros 
inquired  in  what  direction  he  should  steer  his  bark,  he  was  answered 
'  Toward  the  gods,'  and  enjoined  to  pray  that  good  might  come  of  it 
for  men. 

"Xisuthros  obeyed,  and  constructed  a  vessel  five  stadia  long  and 
five  broad  ;  he  collected  all  that  had  been  prescribed  to  him,  and  em- 
barked his  wife,  his  children,  and  his  intimate  friends. 

"  The  Deluge  having  come,  and  soon  going  down,  Xisuthros  loosed 
some  of  the  birds.  These,  finding  no  food  nor  place  to  alight  on, 
returned  to  the  ship.  A  few  days  later  Xisuthros  again  let  them  free, 
but  they  returned  again  to  the  vessel,  their  feet  full  of  mud.  Finally, 
loosed  the  third  time,  the  birds  came  no  more  back. 

"  Then  Xisuthros  understood  that  the  earth  was  bare.     He  made  an 


*  Berosus  lived  in  the  time  of  Alexander  the  Great,  or  about  B.C.  330-260,  or  300 
years  after  the  Jews  were  carried  captive  to  Babylon. 


376  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

opening  in  the  roof  of  the  ship,  and  saw  that  it  had  grounded  on  the 
top  of  a  mountain.  He  then  descended  with  his  wife,  his  daughter, 
and  his  pilot,  who  worshipped  the  earth,  raised  an  altar,  and  there 
sacrificed  to  the  gods  ;  at  the  same  moment  he  vanished  with  those  who 
accompanied  him. 

"Meanwhile  those  who  had  remained  in  the  vessel,  not  seeing 
Xisuthros  return,  descended  too,  and  began  to  seek  him,  calling  him 
by  his  name.  They  saw  Xisuthros  no  more  ;  but  a  voice  from  heaven 
was  heard  commanding  them  piety  towards  the  gods  ;  that  he,  indeed, 
was  receiving  the  reward  of  his  piety  in  being  carried  away  to  dwell 
thenceforth  in  the  midst  of  the  gods,  and  that  his  wife,  his  daughter, 
and  the  pilot  of  the  ship  shared  the  same  honour.  The  voice  further 
said  that  they  were  to  return  to  Babylon,  and,  conformably  to  the 
decrees  of  fate,  disinter  the  writings  buried  at  Sippara,  in  order  to 
transmit  them  to  men.  It  added  that  the  country  in  which  they  found 
themselves  was  Armenia.  These,  then,  having  heard  the  voice,  sacri- 
ficed to  the  gods  and  returned  on  foot  to  Babylon.  Of  the  vessel  of 
Xisuthros,  which  had  finally  landed  in  Armenia,  a  portion  is  still  to  be 
found  in  the  Gordyan  mountains  in  Armenia,  and  pilgrims  bring  thence 
asphalte  that  they  have  scraped  from  its  fragments.  It  is  used  to 
keep  off  the  influence  of  witchcraft.  As  to  the  companions  of  Xisuthros, 
they  came  to  Babylon,  disinterred  the  writings  left  at  Sippara,  founded 
numerous  cities,  built  temples,  and  restored  Babylon." 

The  large  amount  of  work  done  by  the  few  followers  of  Xisuthros, 
seems  very  surprising,  but  easily  accounted  for  if  we  take  the  version 
of  the  Deluge  given  by  Nicolaus  Damascenus  (a  philosopher  and  his- 
torian of  the  age  of  Augustus,  and  a  friend  of  Herod  the  Great). 

"  He  mentions  that  there  is  a  large  mountain  in  Armenia,  which 
stands  above  the  country  of  the  Minyse,  called  Baris.  To  this  it  was 
said  that  many  people  betook  themselves  in  the  time  of  the  Deluge, 
and  were  saved.  And  there  is  a  tradition  of  one  person  in  particular 
floating  in  an  ark,  and  arriving  at  the  summit  of  the  mountain."* 

*  Encyclopaedia  Brttannica. 


APPENDIX  II.  377 


APPENDIX  II. 


THE  DRAGON. 

^ELIANUS    DB    NATURA    ANIMALIUM. 

BOOK  II.  ch.  26. 

The  dragon  [which  is  perfectly  fearless  of  beasts],  when  it  hears 
the  noise  of  the  wings  of  an  eagle,  immediately  conceals  itself  in 
hiding-places. 

BOOK  n.  ch.  21. 

^Ethiopia  generates  dragons  reaching  thirty  paces  long ;  they  have 
no  proper  name,  but  they  merely  call  them  slayers  of  elephants,  and 
they  attain  a  great  age.  So  far  do  the  Ethiopian  accounts  narrate. 
The  Phrygian  history  also  states  that  dragons  are  born  which  reach 
ten  paces  in  length ,  which  daily  in  midsummer,  at  the  hour  when  the 
forum  is  full  of  men  in  assembly,  are  wont  to  proceed  from  their  caverns, 
and  [near  the  river  Rhyndacus],  with  part  of  the  body  on  the  ground, 
and  the  rest  erect,  with  the  neck  gently  stretched  out,  and  gaping 
mouth,  attract  birds,  either  by  their  inspiration,  or  by  some  fascina- 
tion, and  that  those  which  are  drawn  down  by  the  inhalation  of  their 
breath  glide  down  into  their  stomach — [and  that  they  continue  this 
until  sunset,]  but  that  after  that,  concealing  themselves,  they  lay  in 
ambush  for  the  herds  returning  from  the  pasture  to  the  stable,  and 
inflict  much  injury,  often  killing  the  herdsmen  and  gorging  themselves 
with  food. 

BOOK  VI.  ch.  4. 

When  dragons  are  about  to  eat  fruit  they  suck  the  juice  of  the 
wild  chicory,  because  this  affords  them  a  sovereign  remedy  against 
inflation.  When  they  purpose  lying  in  wait  for  a  man  or  a  beast, 
they  eat  deadly  roots  and  herbs ;  a  thing  not  unknown  to  Homer,  for 
he  makes  mention  of  the  dragon,  who,  lingering  and  twisting  himself 
in  front  of  his  den,  devoured  noxious  herbs. 


378  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


BOOK  VI.  ch.  21. 

In  India,  as  I  am  told,  there  is  great  enmity  between  the  dragon 
and  elephant.  Wherefore  the  dragons,  aware  that  elephants  are 
accustomed  to  pluck  off  boughs  from  trees  for  food,  coil  themselves 
beforehand  in  these  trees,  folding  the  tail  half  of  their  body  round 
the  limbs,  and  leaving  the  front  half  hanging  like  a  rope.  When 
an  elephant  approaches  for  the  purpose  of  browsing  on  the  young 
branches,  the  dragon  leaping  on  him,  tears  out  his  eyes,  and  then 
squeezing  his  neck  with  his  front  part  and  lashing  him  with  his  tail, 
strangles  him  in  this  strange  kind  of  noose. 

BOOK  VI.  ch.  22. 
The  elephant  has  a  great  horror  of  the  dragoii. 

BOOK  VI.  ch.  17. 

In  Idumea,  or  Judaea,  during  Herod's  power,  according  to  the 
statement  of  the  natives  of  the  country,  a  very  beautiful,  and  just 
adolescent,  woman,  was  beloved  by  a  dragon  of  exceptional  magnitude ; 
who  visited  her  betimes  and  slept  with  her  as  a  lover.  She,  indeed, 
although  her  lover  crept  towards  her  as  gently  and  quietly  as  lay  in 
his  power,  yet  utterly  alarmed,  withdrew  herself  from  him ;  and  to  the 
end  that  a  forgetfulness  of  his  passion  might  result  from  the  absence 
of  his  mistress,  absented  herself  for  the  space  of  a  month. 

But  the  desire  of  the  absent  one  was  increased  in  him,  and  his 
amatory  disposition  was  daily  so  far  aggravated  that  he  frequently 
came  both  by  day  and  night  to  that  spot,  where  he  had  been  wont  to 
be  with  the  maiden,  and  when  unable  to  meet  with  his  inamorata, 
was  afflicted  with  a  terrible  grief.  After  the  girl  returned,  angry  at 
being,  as  it  were  spurned,  he  coiled  himself  round  her  body,  and  softly 
and  gently  chastised  her  on  the  legs. 

BOOK  VI.  ch.  63. 

A  dragon  whelp,  born  in  Arcadia,  was  brought  up  with  an  Arcadian 
child ;  and  in  process  of  time,  when  both  were  older,  they  entertained  a 
mutual  affection  for  one  another.  The  friends  of  the  boy,  seeing  how 
the  dragon  had  increased  in  magnitude  in  so  short  a  time,  carried  him, 
while  sleeping  with  the  boy  in  the  same  bed,  to  a  remote  spot,  and, 
leaving  him  there,  brought  the  boy  back.  The  dragon  thereon  remained 
in  the  wood  [feeding  on  growing  plants  and  poisons],  preferring  a  soli- 
tary life  to  one  in  towns  and  [human]  habitations.  Time  having  rolled 
on,  and  the  boy  having  attained  youth,  and  the  dragon  maturity,  the 
former,  while  travelling  upon  one  occasion  through  the  wilds  in  the 
neighbourhood  of  his  friend,  fell  among  robbers,  who  attacked  him 
with  drawn  swords,  and  being  struck,  either  from  pain,  or  in  the  hopes 


APPENDIX  II.  379 


of  assistance,  cried  out.  The  dragon  being  a  beast  of  acute  hearing  and 
sharp  vision,  as  soon  as  he  heard  the  lad  with  whom  he  had  been  brought 
up,  gave  a  hiss  in  expression  of  his  anger,  and  so  struck  them  with  fear, 
that  the  trembling  robbers  dispersed  in  different  directions,  whom 
having  caught,  he  destroyed  by  a  terrible  death.  Afterwards,  having 
cared  for  the  wounds  of  his  ancient  friend,  and  escorted  him  through 
the  places  infested  with  serpents,  he  returned  to  the  spot  where  he 
himself  had  been  exposed — not  showing  any  anger  towards  him  on 
account  of  his  having  been  expelled  into  solitude,  nor  because  ill-feeling 
men  had  abandoned  an  old  friend  in  danger. 

BOOK  VIII.  ch.  11. 

Hegemon,  in  his  Dardanic  verses,  among  other  things  mentions, 
concerning  the  Thessalian  Alevus,  that  a  dragon  conceived  an  affec- 
tion for  him.  Alevus  possessed,  as  Hegemon  states,  golden  hair, 
which  I  should  call  yellow,  and  pastured  cattle  upon  Ossa  near  the 
Thessalian  spring  called  Hsemonium  [as  Anchises  formerly  did  on 
Ida].  A  dragon  of  great  size  fell  violently  in  love  with  him,  and 
used  to  crawl  up  gently  to  him,  kiss  his  hair,  cleanse  his  face  by 
licking  it  with  his  tongue,  and  bring  him  various  spoils  from  the 
chase. 

BOOK  X.  ch.  25. 

Beyond  the  Oasis  of  Egypt  there  is  a  great  desert  which  extends 
for  seven  days'  journey,  succeeded  by  a  region  inhabited  by  the  Cyno- 
prosopi,  on  the  way  to  ^-Ethiopia.  These  live  by  the  chase  of  goats 
and  antelopes.  They  are  black,  with  the  head  and  teeth  of  a  dog,  of 
which  animal,  in  this  connection,  the  mention  is  not  to  be  looked  upon 
as  absurd,  for  they  lack  the  power  of  speech,  and  utter  a  shrill  hissing 
sound,  and  have  a  beard  above  and  below  the  mouth  like  a  dragon ; 
their  hands  are  armed  with  strong  and  sharp  nails,  and  the  body  is 
equally  hairy  with  that  of  dogs. 

BOOK  X.  ch.  48. 

Lycaonus,  King  of  Emathia,  had  a  son  named  Macedon,  from 
whom  eventually  the  country  was  called,  the  old  name  becoming  obso- 
lete. Now,  one  of  Macedon's  sons,  named  Pindus,  was  indued  both  with 
strength  of  mind  and  innate  probity,  as  well  as  a  handsome  person, 
whereas  his  other  children  were  constituted  with  mean  minds  and  less 
vigorous  bodies. 

When,  therefore,  these  latter  perceived  Pindus's  vi,rtue  and  other 
gifts,  they  not  only  oppressed  him,  but  in  the  end  ruined  themselves  in 
punishment  for  so  great  a  crime. 

Pindus,  perceiving  that  plots  were  laid  for  him  by  his  brothers, 
abandoning  the  kingdom  which  he  had  received  from  his  father,  and 


380  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


being  robust  aiid  taking  pleasure  in  hunting,  not  only  took  to  it  himself, 
but  led  the  others  to  follow  his  example. 

Upon  one  occasion  he  was  pursuing  some  young  mules,  and,  spurring 
his  horse  to  the  top  of  its  powers,  drew  away  a  long  distance  from 
those  who  were  hunting  with  him.  The  mules  passing  into  a  deep 
cavern,  escaped  the  sight  of  their  pursuer,  and  preserved  themselves 
from  danger.  He  leaped  down  from  the  horse,  which  he  tied  to  the 
nearest  tree,  and  whilst  he  was  seeking  with  his  utmost  ability  to  dis- 
cover the  mules,  and  probing  the  dens  witli  his  hands,  heard  a  voice 
warning  him  not  to  touch  the  mules.  Wherefore,  when  he  had  long 
and  carefully  looked  about,  and  could  see  no  one,  he  feared  that  the 
voice  was  the  result  of  some  greater  cause,  and,  mounting  his  horse, 
left  the  place.  On  the  next  day  he  returned  to  the  spot,  but,  deterred 
by  the  remembrance  of  the  voice  he  had  heard,  he  did  not  enter  the 
place  where  they  had  concealed  themselves. 

When,  therefore,  he  was  cogitating  as  to  who  had  warned  him  from 
following  his  prey,  and,  as  it  appeared,  was  looking  out  for  mountain 
shepherds,  or  hunters,  or  some  cottage — a  dragon  of  unusual  magnitude 
appeared  to  him,  creeping  softly  with  a  great  part  of  its  body,  but 
raising  up  its  neck  and  head  a  little  way,  as  if  stretching  himself — 
but  his  neck  and  head  were  of  such  height  as  to  equal  that  of  the  tallest 
man. 

Although  Pindus  was  alarmed  at  the  sight,  he  did  not  take  to  flight, 
but,  rallying  himself  from  his  great  terror,  wisely  endeavoured  to  appease 
the  beast  by  giving  him  to  eat  the  birds  he  had  caught,  as  the  price  of 
his  redemption. 

He,  cajoled  by  the  gifts  and  baits,  or,  as  I  may  say,  touched,  left  the 
spot.  This  was  so  pleasing  to  Pindus,  that,  as  an  honourable  man, 
and  grateful  for  his  escape,  he  carried  to  the  dragon,  as  a  thank- 
offering,  whatever  he  could  procure  from  his  mountain  chases,  or  by 
fowling. 

Nor  were  these  gifts  from  his  booty  without  return,  for  fortune 
became  immediately  more  favourable  to  him,  and  he  achieved  success 
in  all  his  hunting,  whether  he  pursued  ground  or  winged  game. 

Wherefore  he  achieved  a  great  reputation,  both  for  finding  and  quickly 
catching  game. 

Now,  he  was  so  tall  that  he  caused  terror  from  his  bulk,  while  from 
his  excellent  constitution  and  beautiful  countenance  he  inflamed  women 
with  so  violent  an  affection  for  him,  that  the  unmarried,  as  if  they 
were  furious  and  bacchantes,  joined  his  hunting  expeditions ;  and 
married  women,  under  the  guardianship  of  husbands,  preferred  passing 
their  time  with  him,  to  being  reported  among  the  number  of  goddesses. 
And,  for  the  most  part,  men  also  esteemed  him  highly,  as  his  virtue 
and  appearance  attracted  universal  admiration.  His  brothers  only  held 
a  hostile  and  inimical  feeling  towards  him.  Wherefore  upon  a  certain 


APPENDIX  II.  381 


occasion  they  attacked  him  from  an  arnbush,  when  he  was  hunting 
alone,  and  having  driven  him  into  the  denies  of  a  river  close  by,  when 
he  was  removed  from  all  help,  attacked  him  with  drawn  swords  and 
slew  him. 

When  the  dragon  heard  its  friend's  outcries  (for  it  is  an  animal  with 
as  sharp  a  sense  of  hearing  as  it  has  quickness  of  vision),  it  issued  from 
its  lair,  and  at  once,  casting  its  coils  round  the  impious  wretches, 
suffocated  them. 

It  did  not  desist  from  watching  over  its  slain  [friend]  with  the 
utmost  care,  until  those  nearest  related  to  the  deceased  came  to  him, 
as  he  was  lying  on  the  ground ;  but  nevertheless,  although  clad  in 
proper  mourning,  they  were  prevented  through  fear  of  the  custodian 
from  approaching  and  interring  the  dead  with  proper  rites,  until  it, 
understanding  from  its  profound  and  wonderful  nature,  that  it  was 
keeping  them  at  a  distance,  quietly  departed  from  its  guard  and  station 
near  the  body,  in  order  that  it  might  receive  the  last  tokens  of  esteem 
from  the  bystanders  without  any  interruption. 

Splendid  obsequies  were  performed,  and  the  river  where  the  murder 
was  effected  received  its  name  from  the  dead  man. 

It  is  therefore  a  peculiarity  of  these  beasts  to  be  grateful  to  those 
from  whom  they  may  have  received  favours. 

BOOK  XI.  ch.  2. — Dragon  Sacred  to  Apollo. 

.The  Epirotes,  both  at  home  and  abroad,  sacrifice  to  Apollo,  and 
solemnise  with  extreme  magnificence  a  feast  yearly  in  his  honour, 
There  is  a  grove  among  them  sacred  to  the  god,  and  inclosed  with  a 
wall,  within  which  are  dragons,  pleasing  to  the  god.  Hither  a  sacred 
virgin  comes  alone,  naked,  and  presents  food  to  the  dragons.  The 
Epirotes  say  that  these  are  descended  from  the  Delphic  python.  If 
they  regarded  the  virgin  ministering  to  them  with  favour,  and  took  the 
food  promptly,  they  were  believed  to  portend  a  fertile  and  healthful 
year ;  if  they  were  rude  towards  her,  and  would  not  accept  the  proffered 
food,  some  predicted,  or  at  least  expected,  the  contrary  for  the  coming 
year. 

BOOK  II.  ch.  16. — Dragon  in  Lavinium. 

There  is  a  peculiar  divination  of  the  dragon,  for  in  Lavinium,  a  town 
of  the  Latins  but  in  Lavinium,  there  is  a  large  and  dense  sacred  grove, 
and  near  it  the  shrine  of  the  Argolic  Juno.  Within  the  grove  is  a  cave 
and  deep  den,  the  lair  of  a  dragon. 

Sacred  virgins  enter  this  grove  on  stated  days,  who  carry  a  barley 
cake  in  their  hands,  with  bandaged  eyes.  A  certain  divine  afflatus 
leads  them  accurately  to  the  den,  and  gently,  and  step  by  step,  they 
proceed  without  hindrance,  and  as  if  their  eyes  were  uncovered.  If 
they  are  virgins,  the  dragon  admits  the  food  as  pure  and  fit  for  a  deity. 


382  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


If  otherwise,  it  does  not  touch  it,  perceiving  and  divining  them  to  be 
impure. 

Ants,  for  the  sake  of  cleansing  the  place,  carry  from  the  grove  the 
cake  left  by  the  vitiated  virgin,  broken  into  little  pieces,  so  that  they 
may  easily  carry  it.  When  this  happens,  it  is  perceived  by  the  inha- 
bitants, and  those  who  have. entered  are  pointed  out  and  examined,  and 
whoever  proves  to  have  forfeited  her  virginity  is  punished  with  the 
penalties  appointed  by  the  laws. 

"  The  masculine  sex  also  seems  to  be  privileged  by  nature  among 
brutes,  inasmuch  as  the  male  dragon  is  distinguished  by  a  crest  and 
hairs,  with  a  beard." 

BOOK  XVI.  ch.  39. 

Onesicritus  Astypalaeus  writes  that  there  were  two  dragons  in  India 
[nurtured  by  an  Indian  dancer],  one  of  forty-six  and  the  other  of  eighty 
cubits,  and  that  Alexander  (Philip's  son)  earnestly  endeavoured  to  see 
them.  It  is  affirmed  in  Egyptian  books  that,  during  the  reign  of  Phil- 
adelphus,  two  dragons  were  brought  from  .^Ethiopia  into  Philadelphia 
alive,  one  forty,  the  other  thirty  cubits  in  magnitude. 

Three  were  also  brought  in  the  time  of  King  Evergetis,  one  nine  and 
another  seven  cubits.  The  Egyptians  say  that  the  third  was  preserved 
with  great  care  in  the  temple  of  ^sculapius. 

It  is  also  said  that  there  are  asps  of  four  cubits  in  length.  Those 
who  write  the  history  of  the  affairs  of  Chios  say  that  a  di'agon  of 
extreme  magnitude  was  produced  in  a  valley,  densely  crowded  and 
gloomy  with  tall  trees,  of  the  Mount  Pelienseus  in  that  island,  whose 
hissing  struck  the  Chians  with  horror. 

As  none  either  of  the  husbandmen  or  shepherds  dare,  by  approach- 
ing near,  estimate  its  magnitude,  but  from  its  hissing  judged  it  to  be 
a  large  and  formidable  beast,  at  length  its  size  became  known  by  a 
remarkable  accident.  For  the  trees  of  the  valley  being  struck  by  a 
very  strong  wind,  and  the  branches  ignited  by  the  friction,  a  great 
fire  thence  arising,  embraced  the  whole  spot,  and  surrounded  the 
beast,  which,  being  unable  to  escape,  was  consumed  by  the  ardour  of 
the  flame.  By  these  means  all  things  were  rendered  visible  in  the 
denuded  place,  and  the  Chians  freed,  from  their  alarms,  came  to  inves- 
tigate, and  lighted  on  bones  of  unusual  magnitude,  and  an  immense 
head,  from  which  they  were  enabled  to  conjecture  its  dimensions  when 
living. 

BOOK  XI.  ch.  17. 

Homer  was  not  rash  in  his  line, 

Terrible  are  the  gods  when  they  manifest  themselves. 

For  the  dragon,  while  sacred  and  to  be  worshipped,  has  within  himself 
something  still  more  of  the  divine  nature  of  which  it  is  better  to  remain 
in  ignorance. 


APPENDIX  II. 


Indeed,  a  dragon  received  divine  honours  in  a  certain  tower  in 
Melita  in  Egypt.  He  had  his  priests  and  ministers,  his  table  and 
bowl.  Every  day  they  filled  the  bowl  with  flour  kneaded  with  honey, 
and  went  away  ;  returning  on  the  following  day,  they  found  the  bowl 
empty. 

Upon  one  occasion,  a  man  of  illustrious  birth,  who  entertained  an 
intense  desire  of  seeing  the  dragon,  having  entered  alone,  and  placed 
the  food,  went  out ;  and  when  the  dragon  commenced  to  feed  at  the 
table,  he  opened  suddenly  and  noisily  the  doors,  which  according  to 
custom  he  had  closed. 

The  dragon  indignantly  left ;  but  he  who  had  desired  to  see  him,  to 
his  own  destruction,  being  seized  with  an  affliction  of  the  mind,  and 
having  confessed  his  crime,  presentlv  lost  his  speech,  and  shortly  after 
died. 

BOOK  XII.  ch.  39. 

When  Halia,  the  daughter  of  Sybasis,  had  entered  the  grove  of 
Diana  in  Phrygia,  a  certain  sacred  dragon  of  large  size  appeared  and 
copulated  with  her  ;  whence  the  Ophiogense  deduce  the  origin  of  their 


BOOK  XV.  ch.  21. — Concerning  the  Indian  Dragon. 

Alexander  (while  he  attacked  or  devastated  some  portions  of  India, 
and  also  seized  others),  lighted  on,  among  other  numerous  animals,  a 
dragon,  which  the  Indians,  because  they  considered  it  to  be  sacred,  and 
worshipped  it  with  great  reverence,  in  a  certain  cave,  besought  him 
with  many  entreaties  to  let  alone,  which  he  agreed  to.  However,  when 
the  dragon  heard  the  noise  made  by  the  passing  army  (for  it  is  an 
animal  endowed  with  a  very  acute  sense  of  hearing  as  well  as  of  vision), 
it  frightened  and  alarmed  them  all  with  a  great  hissing  and  blowing. 
It  was  said  to  be  seventy  cubits  long. 

It  did  not,  however,  show  the  whole  of  itself,  but  only  exposed  its 
head  from  the  cave.  Its  eyes  were  said  to  have  been  of  the  size  (and 
rotundity)  of  a  Macedonian  shield. 


384  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


APPENDIX  III. 


ORIGINAL   PREFACE   TO    "WONDERS  BY  LAND  AND  SEA" 
("SHAN  HAI  KING"). 

The  Classic  containing  "  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea "  has  been 
praised  by  all  who  have  read  it,  for  its  depth,  greatness,  far  sighted- 
ness  and  completeness ;  since  the  narratives  therein  contained  are  all 
wonderful  and  different  from  ordinary  things.  Moreover,  the  truth  or 
veracity  of  the  book  is  a  matter  of  doubt  to  nearly  all  men,  and  I  there- 
fore think  it  fit  that  I  should  give  my  opinion  on  the  subject.  It  has 
been  said  by  the  philosopher  Chuang  that  "  the  things  that  men  do  know 
can  in  no  way  be  compared,  numerically  speaking,  to  the  things  that  are 
unknown,"  thus  in  reading  "  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea,"  the  force  of 
his  remark  becomes  apparent  to  me. 

Now,  since  heaven  and  earth  are  vast,  it  follows  that  the  beings  which 
inhabit  them  must  reasonably  be  numerous.  The  positive  and  nega- 
tive elements  being  heated  by  vernal  warmth,  produce  myriads  of 
living  beings  of  classes  innumerable.  When  the  essence  of  ether 
combines,  motion  becomes  apparent  and  generates  into  wondrous  and 
roving  spirits,  which,  floating  about  and  coming  into  contact  with 
anything,  enter  into  it  and  thus  create  wonderful  beings,  whether 
they  be  inhabitants  of  mountain  or  sea,  or  wood  or  stone ;  yea,  so 
numerous  are  they,  that  it  is  an  impossible  task  for  me  to  give  them 
in  detail. 

The  evolution  of  the  essence  of  the  elements  generates  sound,  which 
by  development  produces  a  certain  image.  When  we  call  a  thing  won- 
derful, it  is  because  we  do  not  know  the  reasons  attending  its  origin, 
and  what  we  do  not  call  wonderful,  we  still  are  unaware  why  it  is  not 
so.  And  why  ?  A  thing  is,  per  se,  not  wonderful,  it  is  because  we  wish 
to  consider  it  so ;  the  wonder  is  in  ourselves  and  not  in  the  thing.  For 
instance,  when  a  savage  looks  at  the  cotton  cloth  we  wear,  he  calls  it 
hemp  ;  and  when  an  inhabitant  of  Yiich  (Soochow  and  vicinity)  sees  a 
rug,  he  calls  it  fur  or  hair.  The  reason  may  be  found  in  this :  we 
believe  only  those  things  to  which  we  have  been  educated,  and  any- 


APPENDIX  III.  385 


thing  which  might  not  be  perfectly  understood  by  us  we  deem  won- 
derful.  Hence  the  shortsightedness  of  human  nature.  I  will  now  give 
a  passing  remark  of  what  is  known  amongst  us.  A  place  called  Ping 
Shui  (?)  produces  fire,  while  the  Yen  mountain  produces  rats.  Now  all 
men  know  these  facts,  and  iyet  when  we  read  and  speak  of  the  classic 
treating  of  the  "  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea,"  we  call  it  wonderful ! 
When  a  thing  is  really  wonderful,  we  do  not  consider  it  so  ;  and  what  is 
not  wonderful,  we  persist  in  considering  it  to  be  so.  Such  being  the 
case,  if,  what  should  be  wondered  at,  we  do  not  call  it  so,  then  there 
cannot  be  a  single  wonder  in  the  whole  Universe ;  and  if  we  call  a  thing 
wonderful  which  in  truth  is  not  so,  then  up  to  the  present  time  there 
can  be  nothing  wonderful.  Moreover,  if  what  is  unknowable  appears 
clear  to  our  minds,  it  follows  that  all  things  on  earth  should  be  under- 
stood by  us. 

According  to  the  Bamboo  Annals  of  Chi  Chuen,  and  the  records  of 
King  Miih,  it  is  said  that  when  that  King  went  to  visit  the  Fairy 
Queen  of  the  West,  he  took  with  him  as  gifts  to  her,  beautiful  jade 
stones,  and  the  best  of  raw  and  embroidered  silks  ;  while,  on  the  other 
hand,  the  Fairy  Queen  gave  a  banquet  in  honour  of  the  King,  on  the 
banks  of  the  lake  formed  by  white  jade  stones.  During  the  banquet 
they  composed  and  spoke  their  thoughts  in  verse,  and  the  sentiments 
embodied  therein  were  beautiful.  Then  the  royal  pair  repaired  to  the 
hillock  adjoining  the  Kiien  Lun  mountain,  and  roamed  over  the  palaces 
of  King  Hsiien  Yuan,  which  were  situated  there,  and  thence  to  the 
artificial  terraces  of  the  Chung  hill,  and  gazed  on  the  precious  and 
wonderful  things  collected  by  that  king.  Returning  to  the  residence 
of  the  Fairy  Queen,  King  Miih  had  a  stone  tablet  engraved  recording 
the  event,  and  erected  it  in  the  Queen's  magic  garden.  On  King 
Miih's  return  home,  he  brought  with  him  to  the  Middle  Kingdom 
beautiful  wood  and  magnificent  flowers,  precious  stones  and  elegant 
jades,  golden  oils  and  silver  candles.  In  his  travels,  King  Muh  rode 
in  a  chariot  drawn  by  eight  splendid  horses ;  the  right-hand  horses 
were  of  a  dark  colour,  while  those  on  the  left  hand  were  greenish. 
Tsao  Fu  was  the  charioteer,  and  Pen  Yung,  who  stood  on  the  King's 
right,  was  the  body-guard.  Myriads  of  Us  could  thus  be  traversed. 
They  went  over  barren  wastes  and  over  celebrated  mountains  and  large 
rivers,  yet  none  of  them  barred  their  onward  course.  To  the  east 
they  came  across  the  Halls  of  the  Giants  ;  to  the  west  they  arrived  at 
the  mansions  of  the  Fairy  Queen ;  to  the  south  they  crossed  over  a 
bridge  composed  of  immense  tortoises ;  and  to  the  north  they  drove 
over  streets  made  of  layers  of  feathers.  Traversing  these,  then,  King 
Miih  commenced  his  journey  homeward  full  of  joy.  History  informs 
us  that  "  King  Muh,  riding  in  a  chariot  drawn  by  eight  magnificent 
horses,  with  Tsao  Fu  as  charioteer,  made  a  journey  to  the  west,  in 
search  of  adventures  in  hunting,  and,  coming  to  the  Fairy  Queen  of 

25 


386  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

the  West,  was  so  happy,  that  he  almost  forgot  to  return  home."  These 
words  are  similar  to  those  recorded  in  the  "  Bamboo  Annals  "  of  Chi 
Chuen.  The  classic  called  "  Spring  and  Autumn,"  says  that  "  King 
Miih  was  a  man  of  vast  ambition,  and  desired  that  the  whole  world 
should  bear  the  tracks  of  his  cart-wheels,  and  receive  the  imprints  of 
his  horse's  hoof,"  and  the  "  Bamboo  Annals  "  illustrate  this  ambition. 

The  disciples  of  Ts'ian  Chow  were  all  eminent  scholars  of  famous 
attainments,  but  they  were  all  sceptical  as  to  the  veracity  of  the  adven- 
tures of  King  Miih,  and  say  that  in  looking  over  history  they  are  con- 
vinced of  their  fallacy.  Sz  Ma  Tseen  also,  in  writing  the  preface  to  the 
"  Records  of  Ta  Wan,"  says  that  when  Chang  Ch'ien  went  on  his  mission 
to  Ta  Hsia,  he  traversed  the  whole  length  of  the  Huang  Ho  up  to  its 
very  source,  but  never  came  across  the  Kiien  Lun  mountain.  Moreover, 
Sz  Ma  Tseen  in  his  own  history  also  says,  in  referring  to  the  "  Book  of 
Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea,"  that,  "As  to  the  wonders  described  in 
that  work,  I,  for  my  part,  dare  not  vouch  for  their  truth."  In  the  face, 
therefore,  of  all  these  authorities,  is  it  not  a  hard  task  for  me  to  prove 
the  contrary  ?  If  the  "  Bamboo  Annals  "  of  a  thousand  years  ago  be 
not  taken  at  the  present  day  as  a  truthful  record  of  the  past,  then, 
indeed,  most  of  the  narratives  contained  in  the  "  Book  of  Wonders  by 
Land  and  Sea "  must  be  false.  Now,  Tung  Fang  Shun  knew  of  Pe 
Fang ;  Lin  Tsz  Chen  proved  satisfactorily  the  existence  of  Tao  Chea 
by  a  corpse  from  that  kingdom.  Wang  Ch'i  had  an  interview  with  men 
having  two  distinct  faces  on  their  heads,  and  a  man  from  the  sea  coast 
picked  up  a  dress  having  two  very  long  sleeves.  In  carefully  studying, 
therefore,  these  books,  I  am  convinced  that  their  stories  mainly  coincide 
with  the  tales  in  the  "  Book  of  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea."  Behold 
these  evidences  then,  ye  who  doubt,  and  place  some  credence  in  the 
narrations  contained  in  this  book. 

The  Sage  King  made  exhaustive  researches  into  these  wondrous 
beings,  and  then  drew  their  images.  It  is  indeed  impossible  to  hide 
the  existence  of  these  wonders  !  The  "  Book  of  Wonders  by  Land  and 
Sea"  was  compiled  seven  dynasties  ago  (up  to  the  Tsin  dynasty), 
a  space  of  3,000  years.  During  the  Han  dynasty  this  book  received 
the  closest  attention,  and  was  elucidated  for  the  benefit  of  its  readers  ; 
but  shortly  after  it  again  fell  into  neglect.  Moreover,  since  then,  the 
names  of  some  mountains  and  rivers  have  undergone  changes.  At  the 
present  day,  teachers  and  expounders  are  unable  to  explain  these 
wonders,  and  hence  through  disuse  their  reasons  given  at  an  earlier 
age  have  almost  sunk  into  oblivion.  Alas,  for  the  loss  of  Eeason! 
Fearing,  therefore,  that  it  will  be  entirely  lost,  I  have  written  the 
accompanying  work,  making  lucid  the  points  that  are  obscure,  and 
erasing  those  that  are  useless ;  pointing  out  what  would  not  be 
noticeable,  and  explaining  the  parts  that  are  deep.  I  shall  endeavour 
.to  reclaim  what  has  almost  become  obsolete,  that  it  may  stand  for 


APPENDIX  III.  387 


thousand  of  ages,  and  the  wonders  herein  recorded  shall  not,  from  the 
present  day,  be  lost.  Thus  the  works  of  the  Emperor  Yu  of  the  Hsia 
dynasty  will  not  be  lost  in  the  future,  and  the  records  of  the  Barren 
Wastes  beyond  the  boundaries  of  this  Empire  will  be  transmitted  to 
posterity.  Will  not  this  be  a  laudable  object  ? 

Insects  that  spring  from  grassy  ground  cannot  soar  as  high  as  the 
birds  of  the  air,  nor  can  the  living  beings  that  inhabit  the  sea  rise 
up  heavenwards  like  the  dragon.  A  man  of  medium  abilities  in  music 
can  never  be  a  member  of  the  Orchestra  in  the  Halls  of  Chuen  Tien, 
nor  can  the  water-buffalo  traverse  the  watery  deeps  to  which  even 
ships  dare  not  venture.  Hence,  unless  a  person  be  of  the  highest 
understanding,  it  would  be  a  hard  task  to  converse  with  him  intelli- 
gently of  the  "  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea."  And  I  sigh  because  it  is 
only  the  learned  and  intelligent  man  that  can  read  understandingly  the 
tales  in  this  work. 

KWOH  P'OH, 

Assistant  Secretary  and  an  Official  of  the  6th  Rank, 
of  the  Tsin  Dynasty. 


25 


388  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


APPENDIX  IV. 


A  MEMORIAL  PRESENTED  BY  LIU  HSIU,  BY  ORDER  OF 
HIS  IMPERIAL  MAJESTY  THE  EMPEROR,  ON  THE 
"BOOK  OF  WONDERS  BY  LAND  AND  SEA." 

The  Memorialist,  an  officer  of  the  Fourth  Rank  and  Charioteer 
to  His  Majesty  the  Emperor,  having  received  commands  to  comment 
upon  and  make  right  wonderful  books,  now  reports  that  an  officer 
named  Wang,  a  subordinate  in  the  Board  of  Civil  Office,  had  already 
made  comments  and  set  right  thirty -two  chapters  of  the  "Book  of 
Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea,"  but  which  the  memorialist  has  reduced  to 
eighteen  chapters.  This  book  was  compiled  during  the  time  of  the 
three  Emperors  (Yao,  Shun,  and  Yii).  At  that  time  there  was  a  great 
flood,  insomuch  that  the  people  had  no  places  to  live,  but  only  in  caves 
and  holes  in  the  rocks,  and  upon  the  tops  of  trees. 

The  father  of  Yii,  by  name  K'un,  being  ordered  by  the  Emperor 
to  assuage  the  floods,  was  unable  to  do  so  ;  the  Emperor  Yao  therefore 
ordered  Yii,  the  son,  to  do  so.  Yii  used  four  things  in  his  journey 
around  to  make  the  floods  flow  away.  He  first  cut  away  the  trees  on 
high  mountains  to  obtain  a  view  of  the  surrounding  country  ;  and  having 
settled  as  to  which  was  the  highest  mountain,  and  which  the  largest 
river,  Yih  and  Peh  Ye  undertook  to  drive  away  the  wild  beasts  and 
birds  abounding  in  the  country,  and  named  the  mountains  and  rivers, 
and  classified  the  fauna  of  the  country,  and  pointed  out  which  was 
water  and  which  was  land.  The  feudal  lords  assisted  Yii  in  his  work, 
and  thus  he  traversed  the  four  quarters  of  the  Empire,  where  foot- 
print of  man  seldom  could  be  found,  and  where  boats  and  carts  scarcely 
reached.  He  named  the  five  mountain  divisions  of  the  Empire  and 
eight  seas  that  bound  it.  He  noted  where  each  kind  of  precious  stone 
could  be  found,  and  the  wonderful  things  he  had  seen.  The  abode  of 
animals  of  land  and  sea,  flora  of  the  country,  birds  of  the  air,  and 
beasts  of  the  field,  worms,  the  unicorn,  and  the  phoenix,  all  these  he 
fixed,  and  also  made  known  their  hiding-places ;  also  the  furthest 
removed  kingdom  of  the  earth,  and  men  who  were  different  from 


APPENDIX  IV. 


human  beings.  Yii  divided  the  Empire  into  nine  divisions,  and  deter- 
mined upon  the  tribute  to  be  given  by  each  division,  and  Yih  and  his 
comrade  noted  which  was  hurtful  and  which  was  harmless  for  the 
"  Book  of  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea." 

All  the  deeds  handed  down  to  us  of  the  sages  are  clearly  noted 
in  the  Maxims  of  the  Ancients.  The  work  therein  expressed  is  a 
matter  that  can  be  believed  in.  During  the  reign  of  Shiao  Wu 
there  was  commonly  seen  a  rare  bird,  which  would  eat  nothing. 
Tung  Fang  Suh  saw  this  bird,  and  gave  its  name ;  he  also  told  what 
it  would  eat.  His  words  being  attended  to,  the  bird  ate  what  was  given 
it.  Someone  asked  Suh  how  he  knew  of  it ;  he  said  he  had  read  of  the 
bird  in  the  "  Book  of  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea."  During  the  reign 
of  Shiao  Hsiien,  a  large  stone  was  broken  in  Shang  Chuen,  which 
then  sank  into  the  ground  and  displayed  a  house  of  stone  ;  in  the  house 
was  a  man  of  Tao  Chia,  with  his  arms  tied.  At  that  time  the  memo- 
rialist's father,  named  Hsiang,  was  a  Censor,  and  he  said  that  this 
Tao  Chia  man  was  a  traitor  to  his  king.  Being  questioned  by  the  Em- 
peror  how  he  could  know  it,  he  said  that  he  had  read  of  it  in  the  "  Book 
of  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea,"  which  says,  "  A  traitor  having  killed  his 
king  in  Tao  Yii,  he  was  chained  and  confined  in  a  mountain,  his  right 
leg  was  cut  off,  and  both  his  arms  tied  behind  his  back."  The  Emperor 
was  much  surprised  at  this.  All  scholars  acknowledge  that  this  book 
is  perfectly  wonderful,  and  all  intelligent  men  should  read  it,  and  be 
able  to  speak  upon  these  wonderful  beings  and  things,  and  learn  the 
customs  of  far-off  kingdoms  and  their  inhabitants.  Hence  the  Yi 
King  says,  "  In  speaking  of  the  products  of  the  empire,  care  should  be 
taken  to  avoid  confusion,"  and  learned  men,  therefore,  may  not  be 
doubtful. 

A  memorial  presented  to  the  Throne  by 

LIU  HSIU. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


APPENDIX  V. 


AFTER  PREFACE  TO  THE  "  BOOK  OF  WONDERS  BY 
LAND  AND  SEA." 

In  the  sayings  of  the  philosopher  Tso,  the  following  remarks  may 
be  found :  "  Virtue  existed  during  the  times  of  the  Hsia  dynasty ; 
drawings  of  all  animals  far  and  wide  were  made,  and  the  metal  from 
which  the  urn  was  made,  for  the  purpose  of  engraving  thereon  the 
images  of  these  animals,  was  presented  as  tribute  by  the  feudal  lords  of 
the  Nine  Kingdoms.  This  urn  contained  the  images  of  all  manner  and 
kinds  of  animals.  This  was  for  the  purpose  of  letting  the  people  know 
about  their  existence,  so  that  they  might  avoid  them  in  entering  the 
mountains  and  forests,  and  the  genii  of  the  mountains  and  rivers. 
Hence  the  object  of  the  classic  treating  on  the  '  Wonders  by  Land  and 
Sea.' "  When  Yii  assuaged  the  floods,  the  Emperor  presented  him 
with  a  red-coloured  wand  made  of  jadestones,  and  then  abdicated  his 
throne  in  his  favour ;  on  this  account  he  ordered  a  tribute  of  metals 
from  the  feudal  lords  of  the  Nine  Kingdoms,  wherewith  to  cast  the  urn, 
on  which  were  engraved  all  kinds  of  animals  from  far  and  wide,  such 
as  the  wonderful  animals  and  beings  of  mountains,  rivers,  grass,  and 
wood,  as  well  as  the  wonders  to  be  found  among  walking  animals  and 
inhabitants  of  the  air.  Yii,  when  Emperor,  caused  the  forms  of  these 
wonders  to  be  described,  how  produced,  and  their  natures ;  he  also  had 
them  classified.  When  he  had  described  those  wonders,  whether  seen 
or  heard  of,  or  common  or  uncommon,  or  rarely  heard  of,  all  these  he 
had  described  minutely,  whereby,  when  the  people  heard  of  them,  an 
exceeding  fear  fell  on  them.  All  animals  and  beings  that  were  common 
in  those  days  were  described  in  the  Annals  of  Yii,  but  such  as  were 
wonderful  and  rare  were  engraved  on  the  nine  urns.  These  urns  when 
completed  were  placed  in  those  parts  of  the  empire  where  these 
wonders  originally  came  from,  in  order  that  the  people  of  that  age 
might  learn  and  see  daily  the  things  that  were  either  heard  of  or  seen 
by  others. 

The  things  brought  by  tribute-bearers  from  afar  were  also  added 


APPENDIX  v.  391 


unto  the  nine  urns.  Indeed,  this  made  wonders  an  ordinary  matter. 
That  the  people  might  learn  these  things  was  the  idea  of  the  sage 
King  Yii.  Hence,  even  though  at  that  time  all  things  were  described 
honestly,  still  the  works  of  that  period  are  far  deeper  than  those  of  the 
Chow  dynasty.  At  the  time  of  the  last  Emperor  of  the  Hsia  dynasty, 
the  historiographer  Chung  Ku,  fearing  that  that  Emperor  might  destroy 
the  books  treating  of  the  ancient  and  present  time,  carried  them  in 
flight  to  Yin.  History  also  says  that  K'ung  Kiah  compiled  into  a  book 
all  the  things  that  were  engraved  on  the  vases  and  dishes  from  the 
time  of  Hwang  Ti  and  his  ministers,  Yao  and  Sz.  And  the  Annals 
treating  on  the  animals  described  on  the  nine  urns  were  due  to  such 
men  as  Chung  Ku  and  K'ung  Kiah.  These  Annals  are  now  known  as 
the  classic  treating  on  "  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea."  The  nine  urns 
were  extinct  at  the  time  of  Tsing,  but  the  pictures  and  classic  still 
existed.  During  the  Tsin  dynasty,  T'ao  Chang  and  his  school  of  poets 
gazed  upon  the  pictures  of  the  "  Wonders  of  Land  and  Sea."  In  the 
"  Seven  Commentaries  "  of  the  Yuen  family,  there  is  observed  a  case 
of  Chang  Sun  Yao's  pictures  of  these  wonders.  These  cases  may  be 
cited  as  proofs  of  the  authenticity  of  the  wonders.  At  the  present 
time,  the  classic  treating  on  these  wonders  still  exists,  but  the  pictures 
have  become  extinct.  This  classic  has  been  treated  upon  and  com- 
mented on  and  made  intelligent  by  the  people  that  have  come  after  it, 
insomuch  that  the  names  of  different  districts  of  the  Tsing  and  Han 
dynasties  have  been  made  to  correspond  with  some  of  the  names 
mentioned  in  the  "  Book  of  Wonders  by  Land  and  Sea."  Hence  the 
readers  of  this  book  are  divided  into  the  believing  and  the  doubting. 
The  believers  base  their  belief  upon  the  fact  that  it  was  the  Emperor 
Yii  who  compiled  it  and  explained  its  origin.  The  doubtful  base  their 
doubt  on  the  probable  fact  of  the  book  having  been  written  by  people 
who  existed  after  Yii,  and  therefore  unreasonable.  This  is  indeed  a 
base  calumny.  Liu  Hsiu  of  the  Han  dynasty  makes  mention  of  the 
book  in  his  seven  chapters  treating  on  it.  And  his  style  of  composi- 
tion might  be  said  to  be  very  ancient.  Kwoh  P'oh  of  the  Tsin  dynasty 
in  his  preface  and  notes  on  this  book,  states  these  wonders.  The  honour 
of  transmitting  this  book  to  posterity  is  due  to  Liu  Hsiu  and  Kwoh 
P'oh  ;  but,  to  prevent  learners  from  considering  that  the  notes  made  by 
the  two  scholars  are  of  no  importance,  I  have  therefore  written  this 
preface. 

YANG  SUN, 

Of  the  Ming  Dynasty. 


MFTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


APPENDIX  VI. 


EXTRACTS  FROM  "  SOCIAL  LIFE  OF  THE  CHINESE," 

BY   JUSTUS   DOOLITTLE. 

Ch.  II.,  p.  264. 

"  The  dragon  holds  a  remarkable  position  in  the  history  and  govern- 
ment of  China.  It  also  enjoys  an  ominous  eminence  in  the  affections 
of  the  Chinese  people.  It  is  frequently  represented  as  the  great  bene- 
factor of  mankind.  It  is  the  dragon  which  causes  the  clouds  to  form 
and  the  rain  to  fall.  The  Chinese  delight  in  praising  its  wonderful 
properties  and  powers.  It  is  the  venerated  symbol  of  good. 

"  The  Emperor  appropriates  to  himself  the  use  of  the  true  dragon, 
the  one  which  has  five  claws  on  each  of  its  four  feet.  On  his  dress  of 
state  is  embroidered  a  likeness  of  the  dragon.  His  throne  is  styled 
'  the  dragon's  seat.'  His  bedstead  is  the  '  dragon's  bedstead.'  His 
countenance  is  '  the  dragon's  face.'  His  eyes  are  '  the  dragon's  eyes.' 
His  beard  is  '  the  dragon's  beard.' 

"  The  true  dragon,  it  is  affirmed,  never  renders  itself  visible  to  mortal 
vision  wholly  at  once.  If  its  head  is  seen,  its  tail  is  obscured  or  hidden. 
If  it  exposes  its  tail  to  the  eyes  of  man,  it  is  careful  to  keep  its  head 
out  of  sight.  It  is  always  accompanied  by  or  enshrouded  in,  clouds, 
when  it  becomes  visible  in  any  of  its  parts.  Water-spouts  are 
believed  by  some  Chinese  to  be  occasioned  by  the  ascent  and  descent  of 
the  dragon.  Fishermen  and  residents  on  the  border  of  the  ocean  are 
reported  to  catch  occasional  glimpses  of  the  dragon  ascending  from  the 
water  and  descending  to  it. 

"  It  is  represented  as  having  scales,  and  without  ears ;  from  its  fore- 
head two  horns  project  upwards.  Its  organ  of  hearing  seems  to  be 
located  in  these  horns,  for  it  is  asserted  that  it  hears  through  them.  It 
is  regarded  as  the  king  of  fishes. 

Proclamations  emanating  directly  from  the  Emperor,  and  published 
on  yellow  paper,  sometimes  have  the  likenesses  of  two  dragons  facing 
each  other,  and  grasping  or  playing  with  a  pearl,  of  which  the  dragon 
is  believed  to  be  very  fond. 


APPENDIX  vi. 


Ch.  II.  p.  338. 

"  The  sagacious  geomancer  is  also  careful  to  observe  the  mountain  or 
hill  on  the  right  and  left  sides  of  the  spot  for  a  lucky  grave.  The  left- 
hand  side  is  called  the  black  dragon ;  the  right-hand  side  is  called 
the  white  tiger.  The  lucky  prospects,  in  a  Chinese  sense,  on  the  hills 
situated  to  the  left,  should  clearly  surpass  the  prospects  of  the  hills 
on  the  right.  And  the  reason  for  this  is  manifest,  for  the  black  dragon 
is  naturally  weaker  than  the  white  tiger. 

Ch.  I.  p.  275. 

"The  common  belief  is  that  the  dragon  and  the  tiger  always  fight 
when  they  meet  ;  and  that  when  the  dragon  moves,  the  clouds  will 
ascend  and  rain  will  soon  fall. 

"  Hence,  in  a  time  of  drought,  if  the  bones  of  a  tiger  should  be  let 
down  into  this  well  called  the  '  dragon's  well,'  and  kept  there  for  three 
days  at  the  most,  there  will,  it  is  sagely  affirmed,  most  likely  be  rain 
soon. 

"  The  tiger's  bones  are  used  to  stir  up  or  excite  the  dragon." 


394  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


APPENDIX  VII. 


EXTEACTS  FKOM  THE  "  PAN  TSAOU  KANG  MU." 

THE  KiAO-LuNQ.    (The  four-footed  coiled  Dragon.     The  Iguanodon. 

— Eitel] 

This  animal,  according  to  Shi  Chan,  belongs  to  the  dragon  family. 
Its  eye-brows  are  crossed,  hence  its  name  signifies  "  the  crossed  reptile." 
The  scaled  variety  is  called  the  Kiao-Lung,  the  winged  the  Ting-Lung. 
The  horned  kind  are  called  K'iu,  the  hornless  kind  Li.  In  Indian 
books  it  is  called  Kwan-P'i-Lo. 

Shi  Chan,  quoting  from  the  Kwan  Cheu  Ki,  says  :  "  The  Iguanodon  (?) 
is  more  than  twelve  feet  long ;  it  resembles  a  snake,  it  has  four  feet, 
and  is  broad  like  a  shield.  It  has  a  small  head  and  a  slender  neck,  the 
latter  being  covered  with  numerous  protuberances.  The  front  of  its 
breast  is  of  a  red  colour,  its  back  is  variegated  with  green,  and  its  sides 
as  if  embroidered.  Its  tail  is  composed  of  fleshy  rings ;  the  larger  ones 
are  several.  Its  eggs  are  also  large.  It  can  induce  fish  to  fly,  but  if  a 
turtle  is  present  they  will  not  do  so. 

"  The  Emperor  Chao,  of  the  Han,  when  fishing  in  the  river  Wei, 
caught  a  white  Iguanodon.  It  resembled  a  snake,  but  was  without 
scales.  Its  head  was  composed  of  soft  flesh,  and  tusks  issued  from  the 
mouth.  The  Emperor  ordered  his  ministers  to  get  it  preserved.  Its 
flesh  is  delicious  ;  bones  green,  flesh  red." 

From  the  above  it  may  be  seen  the  Iguanodon  is  edible. 

THE  CBOCODILE. 

"The  To  Fish,  we  call  it  the  Earth  Dragon,  and  have  correctly 
written  the  character.  It  resembles  the  dragon,  its  voice  is  terrible, 


APPENDIX  VII.  395 


and  its  length  is  a  ch'ang  (a  hundred  and  forty-one  English  inches). 
When  it  breathes  it  forms  clouds,  which  condense  into  rain.  Being 
a  dragon,  the  term  '  fish '  should  be  done  away  with." 

Shi  Chan  says  the  T'o  character  in  appearance  resembles  the  head, 
the  belly,  and  the  tail.  One  author  says  that  an  animal,  which  is 
identified  with  the  crocodile,  is  found  in  the  lagoons  and  marshes  of 
the  Southern  Sea,  at  no  fixed  time.  Its  skin  is  made  into  drums.  It 
is  very  tenacious  of  life.  Before  it  can  be  flayed  quantities  of  boiling 
water  have  to  be  poured  down  its  throat.  Another  author  states  that 
the  crocodile  is  of  a  sleepy  disposition,  with  the  eyes  (nearly)  always 
shut.  It  is  of  immense  strength.  It  frequently  dashes  itself  against 
the  river  bank.  Men  dig  them  out  of  their  caves.  If  a  hundred  men 
dig  them  out,  a  hundred  men  will  be  required  to  pull  them  out ;  but  if 
one  man  dig,  one  man  may  pull  them  out ;  but  the  event  in  either  case 
is  very  uncertain.  Another  author  states  that  recently  there  were  found 
in  the  lakes  and  estuaries  many  animals  resembling  lizards  and  pango- 
lins in  appearance,  which  utter  dreadful  cries  during  the  night,  to  the 
great  terror  of  sailors.  Shi  Chan  says  crocodiles'  dens  are  very  deep, 
and  that  bamboo  ropes  are  baited  in  order  to  catch  him ;  after  he  has 
swallowed  the  bait  he  is  gradually  pulled  out.  He  flies  zigzag,  but 
cannot  fly  upwards.  His  roar  is  like  a  drum's,  and  he  responds  to  the 
striking  of  the  watches  of  the  night,  which  is  called  the  crocodile  drum, 
or  the  crocodile  watch.  The  common  people,  when  they  hear  it,  predict 
rain.  The  nape  of  the  neck  is  bright  and  glistening,  more  brilliant 
than  those  of  fish.  It  lays  a  large  number  of  eggs,  as  many  as  a 
hundred,  which  it  sometimes  eats.  The  people  of  the  South  appreciate 
the  flesh,  and  use  it  at  marriage  festivities.  One  author  states  that  the 
crocodile  has  twelve  different  varieties  of  delicious  flesh ;  but  the  tail, 
like  serpent's  flesh,  is  very  poisonous.  The  crocodile's  flesh  cures  quite 
a  host  of  diseases. 


THE  JAN  SHE,  or  SOUTHERN  SNAKE.    (Mai-Teu-She= closed  up 
(concealed)  head  snake.) 

Shi  Chan  says:  "This  snake  is  a  reptile  (having  a  wriggling  motion). 
Its  body  is  immense,  and  its  motion  is  wrig-wriggling  (jan-jan)*  and 
slow  ;  hence  its  name,  Jan-She.  Another  author  says  its  scales  have 
hair  like  moustaches  (jari).  It  lives  in  Kwangtung  and  Kwangsi 
(literally,  South  of  the  Hills).  Those  that  do  not  lift  their  head  are 
the  true  kind;  in  this  way  they  were  called  the  'Concealed  Head 
Snake.' " 


Jan-jan  means  a  gradual  but  imperceptible  advance. 


896  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Sung  quotes  T'ao  Hung  King  to  the  effect  that  its  habitat  is  in  Tsin- 
ngan  (Fukien),  and  also  Su  Kung,  who  says  that  it  is  found  in 
Kweicheu  and  Kwangcheu,  towards  the  south,  at  Kaocheu  and  Hoiin. 
At  several  places  in  the  south  of  the  Hills  they  are  still  found.  Hung 
King  says  the  large  ones  (in  their  coils  ?)  are  several  fathoms  in  cir- 
cumference. Those  that  walk  without  raising  their  heads  are  the 
genuine  ones.  Those  that  conceal  their  heads  are  not  genuine.  Its 
fat  and  gall  can  be  mixed  together.  The  large  ones  are  more  than  a 
foot  in  diameter  and  more  than  twelve  feet  long.  It  is  a  snake,  but  it 
is  short  and  bulky.  Su  Kung  remarks  that  its  form  resembles  a 
mullet's  and  its  head  a  crocodile's.  Its  tail  is  round  and  without  scales. 
It  is  very  tenacious  of  life.  The  natives  cut  up  its  flesh  into  slices,  and 
esteem  it  as  a  great  delicacy.  Another  says  :  When  steeped  in  vinegar 
the  slices  curl  round  the  chop-sticks,  and  cannot  be  released ;  but 
when  the  chop-sticks  are  made  of  grass  stems  (mong'tso),  then  it  is 
practicable. 

Another  says :  "  This  snake  is  a  hundred  and  forty-four  feet  long ; 
it  often  swallows  a  deer.  When  the  deer  is  completely  digested,  then 
it  coils  round  a  tree,  when  the  bones  of  the  deer  in  the  stomach  pro- 
trude through  the  interstices  of  the  scales.  ...  If  a  woman's  dress  is 
thrown  towards  it,  it  will  coil  round  and  will  not  stir." 

Shi  Chan,  quoting  "The  Wonderful  Eecords,"  says:  "The  boa  is 
sixty  to  seventy  feet  long,  and  four  to  five  feet  in  circumference ;  the 
smaller  ones  from  thirty-six  to  forty-eight  feet  long.  Their  bodies  are 
striped  like  a  piece  of  embroidery.  In  spring  and  summer  it  frequents 
the  recesses  of  forests,  waiting  for  the  deer,  to  devour  them.  When 
the  deer  is  digested  the  boa  becomes  fat.  Someone  says  that  it  will 
eat  a  deer  every  year." 

Another  author  says :  "  The  boa,  when  it  devours  a  deer  or  wild 
boar,  begins  with  the  hind  legs.  The  poisonous  breath  of  the  boa 
comes  in  contact  with  the  horns ;  these  fall  off.  The  galls,  the  smaller 
they  are  the  better  they  are."  Another  says :  "  Boas  abound  in  Wang 
Cheu  (Kwangsi).  The  large  ones  are  more  than  a  hundred  and  forty 
feet  long.  They  devour  deer,  reducing  the  horns  and  bones  to  a  pulp. 
The  natives  use  the  dolishos  and  rattans  to  fill  up  the  entrance  to  its 
den.  The  snake,  when  it  smells  them,  becomes  torpid.  They  then  dig 
him  out.  Its  flesh  is  a  great  delicacy.  Its  skin  may  be  made  into  a 
drum,  and  for  ornamenting  swords,  and  for  making  musical  instru- 
ments." 

The  Tii  Hang  Chi  says :  "Eustic  soldiers  in  Kwangsi,  when  capturing 
boas,  stick  flowers  in  their  heads,  which  when  the  snake  observes,  it 
cannot  move.  They  then  come  up  to  it  and  cut  off  its  head.  They  then 
Wait  till  it  exhausts  itself  by  its  jumping  about  and  dies.  They  then  take 
it  home  and  feast  on  it."  Compare  Lilian  [De  Naturd  Animalium,  lib. 
vi.  chap,  xxi.]  t  "  They  hung  before  the  mouth  of  the  Dragon's  den  a 


APPENDIX  VII.  397 


piece  of  stuff  flowered  with  gold,  which  attracted  the  eyes  of  the  beast, 
till  by  the  sound  of  soft  music  they  lulled  him  to  sleep,  and  then  cut 
off  his  head." 

The  Shan  Hai  King  says  :  "  The  Pa  snake  can  eat  an  elephant,  the 
bones  of  which,  after  three  years,  are  got  rid  of.  Gentlemen  that  eat 
of  this  snake  will  be  proof  against  consumption."  Kwoh  P'oh,  in  his 
commentary,  says  the  boa  of  to-day  is  identical  with  the  Pa  snake. 


MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


APPENDIX  VIII. 


EXTRACT  FROM  THE  "YUEN  KEEN  LEI  HAN." 
THE  DRAGON. — CHAP.  I. 

The  Shwoh  Wan  says :  "  The  dragon  is  the  chief  of  scaly  reptiles  :  in 
the  spring  he  mounts  the  heavens,  in  the  autumn  he  frequents  the 
streams.  This  is  favourable."  Again,  "  When  the  dragon  walks  he  is 
called  sah,  when  he  flies  he  is  a  yao." 

The  Kwang  Ya  says  :  "  When  he  has  scales  he  is  a  Kiao,*  when  he  has 
wings  a  Ying-Lung,+  when  horns  a  Kiu-Lung,^  without  horns  a  Chih- 
Lung. 

The  Ming  Wuh  Kiai  of  the  Odes  says  the  dragon  has  horns  at  five 
hundred  years,  at  one  thousand  years  he  is  a  Ying-Lung. 

The  P'i  Ya  Kwang  Yao  says  :  "  The  dragon  has  eighty-one  scales.  This 
is  nine  times  nine,  nine  is  the  yang  (male  principle).  The  dragon  is 
produced  from  an  egg,  in  which  he  is  enfolded."  Again,  it  says  that  the 
Nei  Tien  says  :  "  Dragon-fire  comes  in  contact  with  moisture  and  there 
is  smoke,  with  water  and  it  is  consumed  (i.e.  a  man  may  extinguish  it 
with  water)." 

The  Fang  Yen  says  :  "  Before  the  dragon  has  ascended  to  heaven  he  is 
a  Pfan§  Lung."  The  Yih  King  says :  "  When  his  clouds  move  the  rain 
falls,  and  the  various  things  put  forth  their  forms  at  the  time  he  rides 
upon  the  six  dragons  and  ascends  the  heavens."  "  The  first  nine : 
The  hidden  dragon  is  inactive.  The  diagram  indicates  that  the  subtile 
ether  is  below.  The  second  nine  :  When  the  dragon  is  seen  in  the 


*  Defined  by  Williams  "  as  the  dragon  of  morasses  and  thickets,  which  has  scales  and 
no  horn,  corresponding  very  nearly  to  the  fossil  iguanodon."  Vide  the  description 
(ante)  from  the  Pan-Tsaou-Kang-mu,  &c. 

f  Ying — correct,  true. 

j  According  to  Williams,  this  is  a  young  dragon  without  a  horn,  although  others,  as 
in  the  text,  say  with  one. 

§  fan — to  curl  up,  to  coil. 


APPENDIX  VIII. 


fields  it  is  profitable  to  meet  the  great  man.  The  diagram  indicates 
that  virtue  is  extended.  Fifth  nine :  The  flying  dragon  appears  in  the 
heavens  :  The  diagram  indicates  the  great  man  creates."  Again,  "  The 
dragons  contend  in  the  wilds,  their  blood  is  azure  and  yellow."  Again, 
"  Thunder  is  a  dragon." 

The  Yuen-Ming-Pao  section  of  the  Ch'un  ts'iu  says  :  "  The  dragons 
begin  to  speak,  yin  and  yang*  are  commingled"  ;  thence,  it  is  said,  the 
dragon  ascends  and  clouds  are  multiplied.  The  Tih  King,  in  all  the 
diagrams,  clearly  says :  "  The  summer  winds  arise  and  the  dragon 
mounts  the  skies." 

In  the  Yuen-Shan-K'i  of  the  Hiao  King  it  is  said  :  "  Virtue  approaches 
the  fountains  and  the  yellow  dragon  appears.  It  is  the  Prince's 
image." 

In  the  "  Tso-K'i  "  of  the  Hiao  King  it  is  said :  "  The  Emperor  is  filial, 
the  heavenly  dragon  bears  the  plans  and  the  earthly  tortoise  issues  a 
book."  The  Ho-t'u  says  :  "  Yellow  gold  after  one  thousand  years  pro- 
duces a  yellow  dragon,  azure  gold  after  one  thousand  years,  the  azure 
dragon ;  red  and  white  dragon  is  also  thus.  Black  gold  after  one  thou- 
sand years  produces  the  black  dragon." 

The  Twan-ying-t'u  says  :  "  The  yellow  dragon  is  the  chief  of  the  four 
dragons,  the  true  beauty  of  the  four  regions.  He  can  be  large  or  small, 
obscure  or  manifest,  short  or  long,  alive  or  dead ;  the  king  cannot  drain 
the  pool  and  catch  him.  His  intelligence  and  virtue  are  unfathomable  ; 
moreover  he  ensures  the  peaceful  air,  and  sports  in  the  pools."  Again, 
it  says :  "  The  yellow  dragon  does  not  go  in  company,  and  does  not  live 
in  herds.  He  certainly  waits  for  the  wind  and  rain,  and  disports  himself 
in  the  azure  air.  He  wanders  in  the  wilds  beyond  the  heavens.  He 
goes  and  comes,  fulfilling  the  decree  ;  at  the  proper  seasons  if  there  is 
perfection  he  comes  forth,  if  not  he  remains  (unseen)." 

The  Shi  Ki  says  :  "  The  bright  moon  pearl  is  concealed  in  the  oyster, 
the  dragon  is  there." 

Books  of  the  after  Wei  dynasty  say,  "  Persia  has  three  pools."  They 
narrate  that  a  dragon  lives  in  the  largest,  his  wife  in  the  second,  and 
his  child  in  the  third.  If  travellers  sacrifice,  they  can  pass;  if  they  do 
not  sacrifice  they  encounter  many  storms  of  wind  and  rain. 

Lu-lan  asserts  that  Confucius  said,  "  The  dragon  feeds  in  the  pure 
(water)  and  disports  in  the  clear  (water)." 

Sun-k'ing-tsz  says  :  "  The  accumulated  waters  form  the  streams,  the 
Kiao-Lung  is  brought  forth."  Han-Fei-shwoh-nan  says  :  "  Now  as  the 
dragon  is  a  reptile  he  can  be  brought  under  control  and  ridden.f  But 
below  his  throat  are  tremendous  scales,  projecting  a  foot.  If  a  man 
should  come  in  contact  with  them  he  would  be  killed." 


*  The  male  and  female  principle. 

f  See  the  notices  in  the  body  of  the  work  from  the  Shan  Hat  King. 


400  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

Kwan-tsz  says :  "  The  dragon's  skin  has  five  colours,  and  he  moves  like 
a  spirit ;  he  wishes  to  be  small  and  he  becomes  like  a  silkworm ;  great, 
and  he  fills  all  below  heaven ;  he  desires  to  rise,  and  he  reaches  the 
ether ;  he  desires  to  sink,  and  he  enters  the  deep  fountains.  The  times 
of  his  changing  are  not  fixed,  his  rising  and  descending  are  undeter- 
mined ;  he  is  called  a  god  (or  spirit)." 

Hwai-nan-tsz  says  :  "  The  dragon  ascends  and  the  brilliant  clouds 
follow."  Again,  he  says :  "  This  Kiao-Lung  is  hidden  in  the  streams, 
and  his  eggs  are  opened  at  the  mound.  The  male  cries  above  and  the 
female  cries  below,  and  he  changes ;  his  form  and  essence  are  of  the 
most  exalted  (kind).  Man  cannot  see  the  dragon  when  he  flies  aloft. 
He  ascends,  and  wind  and  rain  escort  him." 

The  Tihing  P'ien  says  :  "  Wings  beautiful  grow  for  the  flying  dragon  ; 
hair  soft  like  that  of  a  calf  on  the  ying  dragon  ;  scales  only  for  the 
Kiao-Lung.  Only  in  pools  is  found  the  Sien-Lung."  Chang-hang  said  : 
"  How  the  Ts'ang-Lung  meets  the  summer  and  aspires  to  the  clouds, 
and  shakes  his  scales,  accomplishing  the  season.  He  passes  the  winter 
in  the  muddy  water,  and,  concealed,  he  escapes  harm."  Pan-ku,  answer- 
ing Pin-hi,  said  :  "  The  Ying-Lung  hides  in  the  lakes  and  pools.  Fish 
and  turtle  contemn  him,  and  he  does  not  observe  it.  He  can  exert  his 
skill  and  intelligence,  and  suddenly  the  clear  sky  appears.  For  this 
reason  the  Ying-Lung,  now  crouching  in  the  mud,  now  flying  in  the 
heavens,  appears  to  be  divine." 

Lun-hang  says,  "  When  the  dragon  is  small,  all  the  fish  are  small ; 
this  is  divine." 

Pao-poh-tz  says  :  "  There  are  self -existent  dragons  and  there  are 
worms  which  are  changed  into  dragons."  Again,  he  says  :  "  Among  the 
hills  the  Ch'an  day,  called  the  rain  master,  is  a  dragon."  Hwai-nan- 
tsz  said :  "  The  Chuh-Lung  is  north  of  the  goose  gate  concealed  in  the 
Wei-U  mountain."  The  Shan-hai-king  says  the  god  of  the  Ohung-shan 
is  called  Chuh-Lung.  When  he  opens  his  eyes  it  is  day,  when  he  shuts 
his  eyes  it  is  night.  His  body  is  three  thousand  li  long. 

The  Shui-king-chu  says :  "  The  Yulung  considers  the  autumn  days  as 
night.  But  the  dragon  descends  in  the  autumn  and  hibernates  in  the 
deep  pools ;  how  then  can  he  say  that  autumn  is  night  ?  "  It  also  says : 
"  There  is  a  divine  dragon  in  the  vermilion  pools  at  Kiao-chew.  When- 
ever there  was  a  drought,  the  village  people  obstructed  the  upper  tribu- 
taries of  the  pool,  and  many  fish  died  ;  the  dragon  became  enraged  at 
such  times,  and  caused  much  rain." 

The  Kwah-ti-t'u  says :  "  At  the  dragon  pool  there  is  a  hill  with  four 
lofty  sides,  and  within  them  is  a  pool  seven  hundred  li  square  ;  a  herd 
of  dragons  live  there,  and  feed  upon  the  many  different  kinds  of  trees. 


*  See  the  description  of  the  dragon  from  the  P'au-Tsaou-Kang-mu 


APPENDIX  VIIL  401 


It  is  beyond  Hwui-ki  forty-five  thousand  li."  Again,  it  says :  "  If  you 
do  not  ride  on  a  dragon  you  cannot  reach  the  weak  waters*  of  the  Kwan- 
lun  hill." 

The  Poh-Wuh-Chi  says  :  "  If  you  soak  the  dragon's  flesh  in  an  acid 
(and  eat  it),  you  can  write  essays."  Again,  it  says :  "  The  Tiao-sheh  is 
in  form  like  a  dragon,  but  smaller.  It  likes  danger ;  hence  it  is  ap- 
pointed to  guard  decayed  timber."  Again,  it  says  :  "  The  dragon  lays 
three  eggs.  The  first  is  Ki-tiao.  He  goes  ashore  and  cohabits  with  the 
deer  or  deposits  his  semen  at  the  water's  edge,  where  it  becomes 
attached  to  passing  boats  or  floating  wood  and  branches.  It  appears 
like  a  walnut,  it  is  called  Tsz-chao  flower,  and  constitutes  what  is  men- 
tioned in  the  Tao-ch'u  as  dragon-salt."  Again,  it  says :  "  Below  the 
dragon-gate  every  year  in  the  third  month  of  spring,  yellow  carps,  twof 
fish,  come  from  the  sea,  and  all  the  streams,  with  speed  to  the  contest. 
But  seventy-one  can  ascend  the  dragon-gate  in  a  year ;  when  the  first 
one  ascends  the  dragon-gate  there  is  wind  and  rain.  It  is  followed  by 
fire  which  burns  his  tail,  and  then  he  is  a  dragon." 

The  Shih-I-Ki  says :  "East  of  the  hills  of  Fang-chang  there  is  a 
dragon  plain  where  there  are  dragon  skins  and  bones  like  a  mountain : 
spread  out  they  would  cover  one  thousand  five  hundred  acres.  To  meet 
him  when  he  sloughs  his  bones  is  like  the  birth  of  a  dragon.  Or  it  is 
said  the  dragons  constantly  wrangle  at  this  place.  It  is  enriched  with 
blood  like  flowing  water." 

The  Shuh-I-Ki  says :  "  In  the  P'uning  district  there  are  the  isles  where 
the  dragons  are  buried.  Fu-loo  says  the  dragons  shed  their  bones  at 
these  isles,  the  water  now  contains  many  dragon-bones,  in  these  moun- 
tains, hills,  peaks,  and  gorges.  The  dragons  make  the  wind  and  rain. 
There  are  dragons'  bones  everywhere,  whether  in  the  deep  or  shallow 
places ;  there  are  many  in  the  ground.  Teeth,  horns,  vertebral  columns, 
feet,  it  seems  as  though  they  are  everywhere.  The  largest  measure  one 
hundred  feet  or  exceed  one  hundred  feet.  The  smallest  are  two  feet  or 
three  or  four  inches.  The  bones  are  everywhere.  Constantly  when 
looking  for  anything  they  are  seen."  Again,  it  says  :  "  It  is  told  of  the 
Kuh  mountains  in  Ki-cheu  that  when  the  dragon  is  a  thousand  years 
old,  he  enters  the  mountains  and  casts  his  bones.  Now  there  is  a 
dragon  hill,  from  the  midst  of  the  hill  issues  the  dragon's  brains." 

The  K'ie-Lan  Records  at  Loh-yangl  say :  "  You  cannot  trust  the  hills 
in  the  west.  They  are  too  cold.  There  is  snow  both  winter  and 
summer.  In  the  hills  there  is  a  pool  where  a  bad  dragon  lives  ;  long 
ago  some  merchants  rested  near  the  pool,  until  the  dragon  became 
enraged,  abused,  and  killed  them.  A  priest,§  Pan-T'o,  heard  of  it,  and, 
leaving  his  seat  to  the  pupils,  went  to  the  kingdom  of  Wuchang  to 

*  Waters  of  such  specific  gravity  that  even  a  feather  would  sink. 

t  Probably  a  pair  from  each  stream. 

J  In  Foh-kien. 

§  Probably  equivalent  to  "  abbot." 


402  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 


learn  the  Po-lo-man  incantations  ;  he  mastered  them  in  four  years, 
and  returned  to  his  seat.  He  went  to  the  pool  and  invoked  the 
dragon.  The  dragon  was  transformed  into  ra  man,  repented,  and  fol- 
lowed the  king.  The  king  then  removed."  Again,  it  says":  "  To  the 
west  of  the  kingdom  of  Wuchang  there  is  a  pool  in  which  the  dragon 
prince  dwells.  There  is  a  monastery  on  the  banks  of  the  pool,  in 
which  there  are  more  than  fifty  priests.  Whenever  the  dragon  prince 
does  anything  marvellous,  the  king  comes  and  beseeches  him,  using 
gold,  precious  stones,  pearls,  and  valuables,  throwing  them  into  the 
pool.  Afterwards  they  are  cast  up  and  the  priests  gather  them.  This 
monastery  relies  upon  the  dragon  for  food  and  clothing  and  the 
means  to  assist  people.  Its  name  is  '  Dragon  Prince  Monastery.'  " 

The  Ts'i-ti  records  say  there  is  a  well  in  the  city  of  Ch'ang-ping  at 
the  brambles  ;  when  the  water  is  disturbed  a  spiritual  dragon  comes 
and  goes.  So  the  city  is  called  the  dragon  city. 

The  Shi-San-Tsin  records  say  Ho-li  has  also  the  name  Dragon 
Gate.  Great  fish  collect  below  it,  in  number  one  thousand.  They 
cannot  ascend.  If  one  ascends  it  is  a  dragon.  Those  which  do  not 
ascend  are  fish.  Hence  it  is  called  the  "  Pao-sai-lung-man.  (Great 
carp  ascend  the  dragon  gate  and  become  dragons ;  those  which  do  not 
ascend  prick  the  forehead  and  strike  the  cheek.)  Again,  it  says :  "  The 
Lung-sheu  mountains  are  sixty  li  long ;  the  head  enters  the  Wei  waters, 
the  tail  extends  to  the  Fan  streams.  This  head  is  two  hundred  feet 
high  ;  his  tail  descends  gradually  to  a  height  of  fifty  or  sixty  feet.  It 
is  said  that  long  ago  a  strange  dragon  came  out  from  south  of  the 
mountains  to  drink  the  Wei  waters.  The  road  he  travelled  became 
mountain.  Hence  the  name." 

The  Klao-CJieu-Ki  says :  "  In  Kiao-chiat  Fung-ki-hien  there  is  a  dyke 
with  a  dragon  gate ;  the  water  is  one  hundred  fathoms  deep.  Great 
fish  ascend  this  gate  and  become  dragons.  Those  which  cannot  pass, 
strike  the  cheek  and  puncture  the  forehead,  until  the  blood  flows.  This 
water  is  continually  like  the  Vermilion  pool." 

The  annals  of  Hwa-yang  say :  "  Only  at  Wu-ch'ing  district  does  the 
earth  meet  the  gate  of  heaven ;  the  dragon  which  mounts  to  heaven  and 
does  not  reach  it,  falls  dead  to  this  place,  hence  when  excavating  you 
find  dragon-bones." 

The  I-Tung-Chi  says :  "  Twenty  li  west  of  Lin-fung-hien  is  a  stone 
dragon,  among  the  cliffs  is  a  rock  like  a  dragon.  In  a  year  of  drought 
wash  it,  and  it  rains."  Again,  it  says  :  "  At  Ten-T'ang  there  is  a  pond 
called  Smoky  Pond  ;  it  is  north-east  of  the  city  ten  li.  Its  depth  has 
never  been  ascertained.  It  is  reported  that  long  ago  a  man  caught  a 
white  eel,  and  was  about  to  cook  it,  when  an  old  man  said,  'This 
is  the  dragon  of  the  river  Siang ;  I  fear  calamity  will  follow.'  The 
man  was  angry,  and,  regarding  the  words  as  vain,  proceeded.  The 
next  day  the  whole  village  was  submerged." 


APPENDIX  VIII. 


The  Kwoh-Shi-Pu  says :  "  At  the  time  of  the  spring  rains  the  carp 
springs  through  the  dragon  gate  and  becomes  transformed.  At  the 
present  time,  in  Fan-cheu  of  Shansi,  there  is  a  cave  in  the  mountains  ; 
in  it  are  many  cast  bones  and  horns  of  dragons.  They  are  collected 
for  medicine,  and  are  of  five  colours.  It  is  recorded  in  the  Chw'en 
that  north  of  the  Wu-t'ai  hiUs,  below  the  terrace,  is  Azure  Dragon 
Pool,  about  one-third  of  an  acre  in  extent.  The  Buddhist  books  say 
five  hundred  evil  dragons  are  confined  (here).  Whenever  it  is  mid-day 
a  thick  mist  gradually  arises.  A  pure  priest  and  candidates  for  the 
priesthood  may  see  it.  If  a  nun  or  females  approach  then  there  is 
great  thunder,  lightning,  and  tempest.  If  they  come  near  the  pool,  he 
certainly  will  belch  forth  poisonous  breath  and  they  will  die  at  once. 
Foreigners  say  that  in  Piolosz  there  is  a  spiritual  dragon  which  goes 
and  comes  among  the  granaries.  When  a  servant  comes  for  rice  the 
dragon  vanishes.  If  the  servant  comes  constantly  for  rice  the  dragon 
does  not  suffer  it.  If  there  is  no  rice  in  the  granaries,  the  servant  wor- 
ships the  dragon,  and  the  granaries  are  filled." 

Yuin-Chu-Tsih  records :  "  If  one  sees  a  dragon's  egg  in  the  lake  or 
river  there  will  certainly  be  a  flood." 

The  Nan-Pu-Sin-Shu  says :  "  The  dragon's  disposition  is  ferocious, 
and  he  fears  bees'-wax,  loves  jade,  and  the  King-ts'ing  delight  to  eat 
the  flesh  of  cooked  sparrows.  For  this  reason  men  who  eat  sparrows  do 
not  cross  the  sea." 

The  Pah-mung-so-yen  says :  "  The  perverse  dragon,  when  rain  is 
wanted,  sneaks  away  into  old  trees  or  into  the  beams  of  houses.  The 
thunder  god  pulls  him  out." 

Wu-ch'an-tsah-ch'ao  says :  "  There  is  a  great  dragon  which  sloughed 
his  skin  on  the  brink  of  the  Great  Lake.  Insects  come  out  from  his 
scaly  armour.  Instantly  they  are  transformed  into  dragon-flies  of  a  red 
colour.  If  men  gather  them  they  get  fever  and  ague.  If  men  now-a- 
days  see  these  red  dragon-flies  they  call  them  dragon-armour,  also 
dragons'  grandsons,  and  are  unwilling  to  hurt  them." 

Pi-ahu-suh-hwa  says :  "  In  Suh-chan  and  Hang-cheu  the  twentieth  day 
of  the  fifth  month  is  called  the  day  of  the  separation  of  the  dragons. 
Therefore,  in  the  fifth  and  sixth  months,  whenever  there  is  thunder,  and 
the  clouds  crowd  together,  if  they  see  a  tail  bent  down,  and  stretching 
to  earth  from  among  the  clouds,  moving  like  a  serpent,  they  say, 
'  The  dragon  is  suspended.'  " 

Tsu-tz  say :  "  The  spiritual  dragon  leaves  the  water  and  dwells  in  the 
dry  place,  and  the  mole,  crickets,  and  ants  annoy  him." 

Kung  Sun  Hung  replied  to  Tung  Fang  Shoh,  saying  :  "  Before  the 
dragon  has  ascended  he  is  of  assort  with  fish  and  turtles  ;  after  he  has 
ascended  the  heavens  his  scales  cannot  be  seen." 

Siu  Tsung  Yuen  answered  an  inquirer,  saying!:  "  The  Kiao-Lung 
ascends  to  the  heavenly  fountain.  He  pervades  the  six  regions  (North, 


404  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

South,  East,  West,  Above,  Below).  He  moistens  all  things.  Shrimps 
and  the  leech  cannot  depart  one  foot  from  the  water." 

The  Shwoh-Wan  says:  "The  Kiao  belongs  to  the  dragon  species. 
When  a  fish  attains  three  thousand  six  hundred  [years  ?]  it  becomes  a 
Kiao ;  on  attaining  this  much  the  dragon  flies  away."  Again,  it  says  : 
"  [Dragons]  without  horns  are  Kiao" 

The  P'i-Ya  says  :  "  The  Kiao's  bones  are  green,  and  they  can  bring 
their  heads  and  tails  together  and  constrict  anything ;  hence  they  are 
called  Kiao.  A  popular  name  for  them  is  '  the  horse's  lasso.'  "  Another 
author  says  the  Kiao's  tail  has  fleshy  rings  ;  they  are  able  to  compress 
any  creature,  and  then  tear  it  with  the  head. 

The  Shuh-I-Ki  says  the  eye-brows  of  a  Kiao  unite,  and  their  uniting 
is  a  proof  that  it  is  a  Kiao. 

The  Siang-Shu  (Book  of  Physiognomy)  says  that  when  the  eye-brows 
unite  the  epithet  Kiao  is  applied,  because  the  Kiao  SMn  has  crossed 
eye-brows. 

The  Yueh-Jciu  (Divisions  of  Seasons)  says  that  the  season  of  autumn 
is  unfavourable  to  the  Kiao. 

The  Kia-Yil  (Family  Discourses)  says  that  if  a  stream  contains  fish, 
then  no  Kiao  will  stay  in  it. 

Hwai-nan-tsze  says  that  no  two  Kiao  will  dwell  in  one  pool. 

The  Shan-Hai-King  says  the  Kiao  is  like  a  dragon  and  snake,  with  a 
small  head  and  fine  neck.  The  neck  has  white  ornamentations  on  it. 
The  girth  (?)  is  five  cubits ;  the  eggs  of  the  capacity  of  three  catties ; 
and  it  can  swallow  a  man. 


405 


APPENDIX  IX. 


APPENDIX  TO  THE  CHAPTER  ON  THE  SEA-SERPENT. 
THE  SHAN.* 

"  The  SMn  belongs  to  the  snake  species." 

"  The  Tsah  Ping  Shu  (Work  on  Military  Science)  says :  '  In  drilling 
an  anny,t  when  you  arrange  it  like  the  SMn  expelling  its  breath,  its 
appearance  is  like  that  of  a  snake,  but  the  waist  is  large ;  below  there 
are  scales,  running  backwards.' 

"  One  says  that  its  form  is  like  that  of  the  Ch'i-lung,  which  has  ears 
and  horns  and  a  mane  of  a  red  colour.  When  it  exhales  its  breath,  it 
forms  a  cloud  just  like  a  palace  or  tower,  looking  as  if  its  walls  are 
moving  in  a  cloud  of  mist,  or  like  a  weary  bird  flying  above.  This  makes 
everyone  feel  very  happy  until  the  exhalation  or  snorting  of  the  breath 
is  finished. 

"  There  is  a  popular  saying  about  building  a  Shan  tower.  When  the 
sky  appears  to  rain  you  can  see  a  resemblance  of  it. 

"  The  Shi-Ki  (Book  of  Odes  or  Classical  Poetry)  uses  the  expression, 
The  Shan's  breath  forms  a  tower ' ;  it  is  in  allusion  to  this. 

"  At  the  present  day  it  is  said  that  the  Chi  (a  pheasant  or  francolinj) 
and  the  snake  copulate  and  produce  the  Shan. 

"  The  oily  substance  of  Shan  combined  with  wax  makes  the  Chinese 
wax  candles,  the  fragrance  of  which,  when  burning,  can  be  recognized 
for  one  hundred  feet  in  all  directions ;  and  the  smoke  emitted  from  the 
flame  forms  the  appearance  of  a  tower." 

"  The  Pih  T'an  (Familiar  Stories)  says  that  at  Tang-cheu  (in  Shan- 
tung), in  the  midst  of  the  sea,  there  are  often  clouds  arise  and  appear 


*  Extract  from  the  Yuen  Keen  Lei  Han,  vol.  ccccxxxviii.,  p.  23. 

f  In  drilling  an  army  there  are  names  for  all  positions  of  the  army.  Thus,  the 
general  says :  "  Arrange  yourselves  like  a  snake,  or  like  a  dragon,  or  any  other 
imaginable  shape." 

J  Williams  gives  this  translation  only,  but  I  think  there  must  be  another  meaning  : 
probably  some  sort  of  reptile  is  indicated. 


406  MYTHICAL  MONSTERS. 

like  the  imperial  palace,  or  towers  of  the  city  walls,  and  there  is  also  an 
appearance  of  people,  carriages,  and  horses  busily  engaged  [mirage?]. 
They  call  this  phenomenon  '  the  market  of  the  sea,'  while  others  say  it 
is  but  the  breath  of  the  Shan  Kiao. 

"  The  Wu  Lei  Siang  Kan  Chi  says  the  Shan  is  but  another  sort  of 
dragon,  and  can  be  found  in  some  of  the  ponds  and  wells.  They 
throw  out  the  air,  forming  rain  as  in  the  locality  of  Wu  San  Tin. 

"  The  P'i  Ta  Kwang  Yao  says,  when  a  snake  transforms  it  becomes  a 
shan,  in  the  likeness  of  the  Kiao,  but  without  paws." 

SECTION  II. 

"  The  twelfth  chapter  of  Ching  Kiun  Chw'en  says  that  Hii  Ching 
Kiiin,  author  of  the  above  book,  met  a  youth,  quite  handsome  in  his 
apparel.  The  youth  pretended  to  be  very  modest,  Hu  Kiiin  knowing  all 
the  time  that  he  was  a  Kiao  in  another  form.  So  he  told  his  followers, 
'  I  regret  to  think  that  the  province  of  Kiang-si  will  often  meet  with 
the  misfortune  of  inundation  if  we  do  not  exterminate  that  Kiao  Shan, 
and  are  not  careful  to  prevent  its  escape.'  But  the  Shan  knew  what  Hu 
Kiiin  was  saying,  and  gradually  slipped  away  to  a  place  called  Sung-sha- 
cheu,  where  he  transformed  himself  into  a  yellow  ox.  But  at  the  same 
time  Ching  Kiiin  also  transformed  himself  into  a  black  ox,  tying  a  hand- 
kerchief over  his  neck  to  distinguish  him  from  the  other  ox,  and  ordered 
his  disciple,  Shi  Tai  Yu,  to  use  his  sword,  and  thrust  at  the  left  thigh, 
because  he  had  entered  within  the  city  wall,  in  the  western  part 
of  which  there  is  a  well.  By  jumping  this  well  he  found  a  road  to 
Tau-cheu,  and  once  more  transformed  himself  into  a  handsome  youth, 
and  by  so  doing  got  married  to  the  daughter  of  a  magistrate  called 
Ku  Yu,  with  plenty  of  jewels  and  gold.  Then  Chiug  came  to  see  Ku 
Yu  and  said,  '  I  hear  that  you  have  a  very  noble  son-in-law.  May  I 
see  him  ?  '  Ku  answered  '  Yes,'  and  told  him  to  come  out.  But  he 
excused  himself  upon  account  of  sickness,  and  hid  himself.  Then  Ching 
Kiiin,  saying, '  The  dangerous  things  of  the  rivers  and  the  lake  are  old 
devils,  and  they  dare  to  transform  themselves  into  human  beings,' 
ordered  the  son-in-law  to  transform  himself  into  his  original  form,  and 
hid  himself  beneath  the  table.  Then  the"  magistrate  said,  '  Kill  this,' 
and  they  did  so.  Then  Kiiin  sprinkled  water  on  the  two  sons,  and  they 
were  immediately  transformed  into  Shan.  [There  must  be  children  born 
from  the  marriage.— Translator.']  He  advised  Ku  Yu  that  he  must  put 
them  away  immediately,  or  the  whole  house  would  be  in  danger  of 
breaking." 

"  The  Tai  Ping  Kwang  Ki  says  that  the  lake  of  Wan  Tun,  at  Fi  Chi, 
contains  a  Shan  which  often  fought  with  the  Shan  of  Lake  Su.  Near 
this  lake  is  a  place  called  Yao,  where  there  lived  a  man  called  Ch'ang 
Sing  Shan,  of  great  bravery,  and  an  expert  archer.  He  once  dreamed 
that  a  Shan  snake  was  transformed  into  a  Taouist,  and  then  it  said  to 


APPENDIX  IX.  407 


him :  '  I  am  endangered  by  the  Shan  of  the  lake  of  Lu.  Can  your 
honour  assist  me  ?  if  so  I  will  reward  you  heavily.  The  tight  white 
chain  is  me.'  Next  day  Sing  Shan  went  with  a  youth  of  Tao  to  the 
shore  of  the  lake  and  dreamed.  He  waited  until  the  waves  rose  and 
the  surf  struck  the  shore,  making  a  noise  like  thunder.  He  saw  two 
oxen  coming,  one  with  a  white  belly  and  legs  ;  then  Sing  Shan  discharged 
an  arrow  at  it,  and  it  turned  out  to  be  a  Shan.  The  water  immediately 
turned  into  blood,  and  the  Shan,  after  receiving  the  wound,  tried  to 
return  to  the  lake  of  Lu,  but  died  before  it  reached  there." 

Kang  Hi  Dictionary. 

"  The  Shan  Kiao  belongs  to  the  Kiao  species,  and  also  has  the  appear- 
ance of  a  snake.  It  has  horns  like  a  dragon ;  the  mane  is  red  below  the 
waist ;  all  the  scales  are  projecting.  It  eats  swallows,  and  can  emit  an 
air  which  appears  like  a  tower. 

"  Again,  any  turtle  when  old  enough  may  be  called  a  Shan." 


ANOTHER  "SEA-SERPENT"  STORY. 
LETTER  FROM  A  T'Tp-j?r— • 


LONDON  I 
PRINTED    BY    W.    H.    ALLEN    AND    CO.,    13    WATERLOO    PLACE.      S.W. 


PLEASE  DO  NOT  REMOVE 
CARDS  OR  SLIPS  FROM  THIS  POCKET 

UNIVERSITY  OF  TORONTO  LIBRARY 


GR      Gould,  Charles 

825        Mythical  monsters 

G6 

1886